Skip to main content

Full text of "Millennial dawn"

See other formats


V 


-Z.FKF 


r- 


MILLENNIAL 
DAWN. 


■  The  path  of  the  just  is  as  thk  shining  light,  which  shinbth  mors 
and  more  unto  the  perfect  day." 


VOIvUMK      II. 


^Ao  ^irriQ  is  at  J^and. 


175lh  Vf^OUSAJSIf). 


"  TIMES    OF   REFRESHING   SHALL    COME    FROM    THE   PRESENCE    OF  THE  :L1.<r  *    \ND 

HE  SHALL  SEND  JESUS  CHRIST,      *      *      *      WHCM  TM1 

HEAVENS  MUST  RETAIN  UNTIL 

THE  TIMES  OF  RESTITUTION  OF  ALL  THINGS, 

WIHCH  GOD  HATH  SPOKEN  BY  THE  MOUTH  OF  ALL    HIS  HOLY    PROPHETS    SINCE   THE 

WORLD  BEGAN."      "  YE,   BRETHREN,  ARE  NOT  IN  DARKNESS,  THAT  THAT 

DAY  SHOULD  OVERTAKE  YOU  AS  A  THIEF." 

ACTS  3  :  19-21 ;  I  THES.  5  : 4. 


WATCH  TOWER 
BIBLE  AND  TRACT  SOCIETY, 

ALLEGHENY,  PA.,  U.  S.  A. 
I902 


THE!  i  •/  YORr 
PUBLH>     LIBRARY 

ASTOR.   L6NOX  A>^» 
TILD    N    FOUNDATIONS. 

R  1914  L 


TO  THE  KING  OF  KINGS  AND  LORD  OF  LORDS 


IN    THE    INTEREST    OF 


HIS  CONSECRATED  "  SAINTS," 


WAITING    FOR   THE   ADOPTION, 


ALL  THAT  IN  EVERY  PLACE'  CALL  UPON  THE  LORD," 

y 

"  THE   HOUSEHOLD    OF    FAITH," 


—  AND    OF  — 

THE   GROANING   CREATION,   TRAVAILING   AND    WAITING    FOR    THE 
MANIFESTATION   OF  THE    SONS    OF   GOD, 

THIS  WORK  IS  DEDICATED. 


To  make  all  see  what  is  the  fellowship  of  the  mystery  which  from  the  beginning 
of  the  world  hath  been  hid  in  God."  "  Wherein  He  hath  abounded  toward 
us  in  all  wisdom  and  prudence,   having  made   known   unto  us  the 
mystery  of  His  will,  according  to  His  good  pleasure  which 
He  hath  purposed  in  Himself;  that  in  the  dispen- 
sation of  the  fulness  of  the  times  He  might 
gather  together  in  one  all  things, 
under  Christ." 
Eph.  3  :4,  5,  9;  i  :  8-10. 


COPYRIGHT  lP-89. 

WATCH  TOWER  BIBLE  &TRACT  SOCIETY, 

ALLEGHENY,  PA.,  U.  S.  A. 


N.  B.— This  volume  can  be  supplied  in  the  German,  Swedish  and  Dano-Nor- 
wegian  languages. 


PRKKACB. 


We  cannot  too  earnestly  urge  upon  the  reader  that,  be- 
fore beginning  the  study  of  "  The  Time  is  at  Hand ^^^  ht 
should  have  clearly  in  mind  "  The  Plan  of  the  Ages^  To 
study  the  time,  without  having  previously  a  knowledge  of 
the  general  chara6ter  of  the  events  to  be  jxpe6ted,  would 
be  worse  than  useless. 

The  Scripture  quotations  of  this  volume  are  not  always 
those  of  the  common  version,  which  is  not  always  the  best. 
We  have  followed  it  in  the  main,  however,  departing  only 
in  cases  where  clearness  of  sense  demanded.  For  the  same 
reason  we  have  not  been  able  to  adopt,  entire,  any  one  of 
the  various  translations,  each  of  which,  possessing  some 
merits,  possesses  also  some  demerits.  Translators  who  did 
not  understand  the  subjedts  (whose  due  time  to  be  under- 
stood had  not  yet  come  in  their  day)  could  not  be  ex- 
pedled  to  ^ive  more  accurate  translations  than  they  have 
given.  Their  services  to  the  Church,  in  this  direction, 
though  not  faultless,  have  been  of  great  value  and  should 
not  be  underestimated. 

We  earnestly  request  all,  who  consider  these  subje6ls 
worthy  of  investigation,  not  to  skim  through  this  book ; 
but,  beginning  at  the  preface,  to  read  it  throughout  in  con- 
secutive order.  This  is  necessary,  because  the  subjedls  and 
the  manner  in  which  they  are  treated  are  unusual ;  and  in 


passing  lightly  over  any  portion,  conneding  links  will  be 
lost,  and  thus  the  force  of  the  interwoven  testimony  of 
prophecy  be  lessened.  Remember  that  the  topic  is  one, 
and  that  every  detail  has  its  weight  and  influence.  To  ap- 
preciate the  conclusions  reached,  the  reader  must  give  the 
subje6l  the  patient  and  careful  study  of  which  it  is  worthy. 
Our  earnest  prayer  is  that  the  truths  herein  presented  may 
bring  as  great  a  blessing  to  the  conscientious  reader  as  their 
presentation  has  been  to  the  writer.  The  real  author  of 
these  jewels  of  truth  is  God,  whose  ''due  time"  has  now 
come  for  revealing  them  through  his  Word  and  spirit  to 
such  as  have  ''an  ear  to  hear:"  the  writer  disclaims  any 
originality,  and  merely  presents  to  the  attention  of  fellow 
Christians  what  he  gleans  from  Scripture,  citing  the  stu- 
dent of  the  divine  Word  to  it  as  the  only  "lamp"  now 
shining  on  the  "narrow  way."  The  writer's  hope  is  that 
each  child  of  God,  as  he  hears  the  good  tidings,  that  The 
Time  is  at  Hand  for  the  establishment  of  Messiah's  King- 
dom in  the  earth,  may  thereby  be  strengthened,  and  ena- 
bled to  become  a  more  faithful  servant  of  the  Lord,  in 
heralding  the  truth. 

Yours,  in  fellowship  and  service, 

Charles  T.  Russell. 
Allegheny,  Fa.,  i88^. 


COKTKKTS, 


CHAPTER  I. 

SPECIAL  TIMES  AND  SEASONS  DIVINELY 
APPOINTED. 

The  Times  and  Seasons  of  Divine  Appointment.— Why  Not  More  Plainly 
Stated. — In  Due  Time  Revealed. — Earnest  Desire  to  Know  the  Times 
and  Seasons  Commendable.— Mistakes  of  Adventists. — The  Real  Object 
OF  Time  Prophecies. — Our  Present  Position.— The  Object  of  Succeeding 
Chaptbks.  ..........   13 

CHAPTER  II. 
BIBLE  CHRONOLOGY. 

Chronology  Necessary  to  an  Understanding  of  Prophecy. — Indispensablb 
Data  Furnished  in  the  Bible.— From  the  Creation  of  Adam  to  A.  D.  1873 
was  Six  Thousand  Years. — A  Statement  of  Bible  Chronology  in  Great 
Periods. — Its  Examination  in  Detail. — From  Creation  to  the  Day  the 
Flood  was  Dried  Up. — To  the  Abrahamic  Covenant. — To  the  Giving  of 
the  Law. — To  the  Division  of  Canaan  among  the  Tribes. — The  Period  of 
THE  Judges. — The  Period  of  the  Kings. — The  Period  ofthe  Desolation. — 
To  a.  D.  1873. — Wherein  this  Chronology  Differs  from  that  of  Bishop 
Usher,Noted  in  our  English  Bibles.— The  True  Date  of  our  Lord's  Birth  .    33 

CHAPTER  in. 

THE  FULFILMENT  OF  TIME-PROPHECY  AT 
THE  FIRST  ADVENT  OF  CHRIST. 

Dan.  9 :  23-27. 

The  Seventy  Weeks  of  Daniel's  Prophecy. — Events  Foretold  to  Transpire 
Within  that  Time. — The  Time  of  Messiah's  Advent  Indicated,  and  a 
Principle  EifrABLiSHED  by  the  Manner  in  which  It  is  Indicated. — A  Key  to 
Other  Time-Prophecies. — The  Time  of  Messiah's  Crucifixion  Indicated. 
—The  Special  Favor  to  Israel  as  a  Nation  Cut  Short  in  Righteous- 
ness, BUT  Continued  Individually. — Anointing  the  Most  Holy. — Trouble 
Poured  upon  the  Desolate  One.     ,  .  .  .  .  .  .63 


CHAPTER  IV. 

THE  TIMES  OF  THE  GENTILES. 

What  ARE  Gentile  Times?— Thetr  Beginning;  Their  Length;  Their  End, 
A.  D.  1914. — Attendant  Events. — Events  to  Follow. — Literal  and  Sym- 
bolic Time. — A  Remarkable  Type. — Present  Indications. — God's  Kingdom 
TO  Overthrow  Gentile  Rule.— Therefore  Organized  Before  It  Ends— 
Before  A.  D.  1914. — Why  Opposed  by  Gentile  Kingdoms. — How  and  Why 
All  will  Finally  Accept  it  Joyfully.— "The  Desire  of  All  Nations 
Shall  Come."    ..........   73 

CHAPTER  V. 

THE  MANNER  OF  OUR  LORD'S  RETURN 
AND  APPEARING. 

Harmony  of  the  Manner  of  Our  Lord's  Second  Advent  with  Other  Fea- 
tures OF  THE  Divine  Plan. — How  and  When  the  Church  will  See  Him. — 
How  and  When  the  Glory  of  the  Lord  will  be  so  Revealed  that  All 
Flesh  shall  See  it  Together. — Statements  Apparently  Conflicting 
Shown  to  be  Harmonious. — He  Comes  "As  a  Thief,"  Not  with  Out- 
ward Show;  and  yet  "With  a  Shout" — With  "Voices" — and  "With 
the  Sound  of  the  Great  Trumpet." — "He  Shall  be  Revealed  in  Flaming 
Fire,  Taking  Vengeance,"and  yet,  "He  shall  So  Come,  in  Like  Man- 
ner," AS  He  Went  Away. — Importance  of  Prophetic  Time  in  this  Con- 
nection Shown. — Harmony  of  Present  Indications.     ....  103 

CHAPTER  VI. 

EARTH'S  GREAT  JUBILEE. 

"The  Times  of  Restitution  of  All  Things"  Foretold  by  Moses. — The  Datb 
of  their  Beginning  Indicated.— They  Cannot  Begin  Until  the  Great 
Restorer  Has  Come. — Evidence  from  the  Law. — Corroborative  Testi- 
mony from  the  Prophets. — Logical  Conclusions  Drawn  from  These  as 
Separately  and  Unitedly  Considered. — Harmony  of  Present  Indications.  173 

CHAPTER  VII. 

THE  PARALLEL    DISPENSATIONS. 

The  Jewish  Age  a  Type  of  the  Gospel  Age. — Remarkable  Parallelism  or 
Correspondency  Between  the  Two  Dispensations.— Yet  They  are  Dis- 
tinct.— Superiority  of  the  Christian  Epoch,  the  Antitype. — Fleshly 
AND  Spiritual  Israel  Contrasted.— Prominent  Parallels  Examined.— 
Time  Parallels  Specially  Noticed.— Period  of  Fleshly  Israel's  Favor. 
—Time  of  Their  Cutting  Off  From  Favor.— The  Period  of  Disfavor 


Shown  from  Prophkcv  to  be  Equal  to  thb  Period  of  Favor. — Apostolic 
Testimony  that  their  Period  of  Disfavor  is  the  Period  for  the  High 
Calling  of  Spiritual  Israel.— The  Length  of  the  Gospel  Age  thus  Shown 
Indirectly  but  Clearly. — Harmony  of  the  Bible  Chronology,  Jubilee 
Testimony,  Gentile  Times  and  Other  Prophecies  With  the  Lessons  of 
These  Parallels  Unanswerable,  Conclusive  and  Satisfying.        .        .      .  201 

CHAPTER  VIII. 

ELIAS  SHALL  FIRST  COME. 

How  This  Important  Prophecy  Stands  Related  to  the  Second  Advent. — A 
Partial  and  Typical  Fulfilment  in  John  the  Baptist.— The  Real  Ful- 
filment.— The  Vision  on  the  Holy  Mount. — Remarkable  Correspond- 
encies between  Elijah,  the  Type,  and  the  Antitypical  Elijah  . — The  Time 
IS  At  Hand. — The  Outlook. — Elijah's  Successor,  Elisha.  .  .        .  349 

CHAPTER  IX. 

THE  MAN  OF  SIN— ANTICHRIST. 

Antichrist  Must  be  Developed,  Revealed  and  Smitten  Before  the  Day 
of  the  Lord. — A  Contrary  View  of  this  Subject  Considered. — Prophetic 
Delineation. — Antichrist's  Birth. — His  Rapid  Development. — The  His- 
toric Picture  and  Bible  Description  Agree. — His  Kingdom  a  Counter- 
feit.— His  Head  and  Mouth  Notable. — His  Great  Swelling  Words  op 
Blasphemy. — His  Blasphemous  Teachings. — His  Wearing  Out  of  the 
Saints  OF  THE  Most  High. — His  Millennial  Reign. — Antichrist  Smitten 
With  the  Sword  of  the  Spirit.— His  Final  Struggle  and  End.       .        .  267 

CHAPTER  X. 

THE  TIME  IS  AT  HAND. 

Nothing  Intervenes.- The  Establishment  of  Christ's  Ktngdom,  the  Work 
Now  IN  Progress. — The  Testimony  of  Prophecy  Concurs. — The  Worldly- 
wise  See  Much. — The  Watching  Saints  See  More  Distinctly. — The  Im- 

PgRTANCB,  TO  AlL,  OF  OpEN  EyES  IN  THE  RiGHT  DiRBCTION.  .  .  .  36^ 


CHAPTER  I. 

SPECIAL  TIMES  AND  SEASONS  DIVINELY 
APPOINTED. 

The  Times  and  Seasons  of  Divine  Appointment. — Why  Not  More  Plainli! 
Stated.— In  Due  Time  Revealed. — Earnest  Desire  to  Know  the  Times 
AND  Seasons  Commendable. — Mistakes  of  Adventists. — The  Real  Object 
of  Time  Prophecies. — Our  Present  Position.— The  Object  of  Succeeding 
Chapters. 

AS  in  "  The  Plan  of  the  Ages"  we  endeavored  to  set 
^^  forth  the  prominent  outlines  of  the  divine  arrangement 
for  human  salvation  from  a  purely  Scriptural  standpoint, 
so  it  is  the  purpose  of  this  volume  to  show,  on  the  same 
authority,  that  the  various  features  of  that  plan  have  def- 
nitely  appointed  times  and  seasons  for  their  accomplish- 
ment; that,  so  far  as  that  plan  has  progressed,  each  suc- 
ceeding feature  of  it  has  been  accomplished  exadlly  on 
time ;  and  that  the  time  is  now  at  hand  for  its  culmina- 
tion in  the  blessing  of  all  the  families  of  the  earth. — Gen. 
28:  14;    Gal.  3 :  16. 

During  the  long  centuries  of  the  Gospel  age,  the  Church, 
as  instru(5ted  by  her  Lord,  has  prayed,  ''Thy  kingdom 
come ;  thy  will  be  done  on  earth  as  it  is  done  in  heaven." 
But,  like  drowsy  children,  because  the  time  was  long,  many 
have  almost  forgotten  the  import  of  the  words  that  now 
seem  to  die  upon  their  lips.  To  all  such  whose  hearts  are 
still  loyal  to  the  Lord,  we  call  in  the  words  of  the  Apostle 

n 


14  The  Time  is  at  Hand, 

Paul,  "It  is  high  time  to  awake  out  of  sleep;  for  now  is 
our  salvation  nearer  than  when  we  believed.  The  night  is 
far  spent,  the  [Millennial]  day  is  at  hand."  Yea,it  is  even 
at  the  doors.  The  kingdom  of  heaven  is  now  at  hand,  not 
in  its  mere  embryotic  or  incipient  stage,  as  at  our  Lord's 
first  advent  (Matt.  3 :  2),  but  in  the  sense  in  which  he 
declared  it  was  yet  to  come  (John  18  :  36,  37) — "in  pow- 
er and  great  glory." 

Only  those,  however,  who  have  made  a  careful  study  of 
the  Plan  of  the  Ages  will  be  prepared  to  appreciate  the 
teaching  of  this  volume  concerning  the  divinely  appointed 
times  and  seasons  for  the  development  of  the  various  feat- 
ures of  that  plan,  and  for  its  final  consummation.  It  is 
hoped  that  none  will  undertake  this  study,  therefore,  before 
they  have  thoroughly  comprehended  the  lessons  of  the  pre- 
ceding volume.  Otherwise  it  will  not  be  meat  in  due 
season  to  them.  Truth  is  only  meat  in  season  when  we  are 
prepared  to  receive  it.  A  child  is  not  prepared  to  solve  a 
mathematical  problem  until  he  has  first  been  instru6ted  in 
the  use  of  figures  and  of  i^nguage.  So  also  with  divine 
truth :  it  is  built  up  step  by  step,  and  to  gain  an  understand- 
ing of  it  we  must  ascend  by  the  steps  provided — carefully, 
of  course,  proving  by  the  Scriptures  every  advance  step  we 
take,  yet  not  fearful  to  take  the  steps  as  we  thus  find  for 
them  sure  footing.  Only  those  who  have  implicit  faith  in 
God,  and  to  whom  a  "Thus  saith  the  Lord"  is  the  end  of 
all  doubt  and  controversy,  can  be  led  by  the  Spirit  of  God 
into  advanced  truth  as  it  becomes  due — led  into  things  new, 
as  well  as  confirmed  in  things  old  and  proved  true  by  the 
same  authority. 

Only  such,  God  proposes  so  to  lead.  In  the  end  of  the 
age,  which  is  the  harvest  time,  much  truth  is  due  to  be  un- 
covered, which  God  did  not  make  known  in  times  past,  even 
to  his  most  faithful  and  devoted  children.     It  was  in  the 


Times  and  Seasons.  15 

time  of  the  end  that  the  Prophet  Habakkuk  (2:3)  declared 
that  the  vision,  concerning  the  glorious  consummation  of 
God's  plan,  should  speak  and  not  lie;  and  that  to  some  of 
God's  children  it  should  speak  so  plainly  that  they  would 
be  able,  as  dire6led,  to  make  it  plain  on  tables  ;  that  through 
their  instrumentality  others  might  be  enabled  to  read  it 
clearly:  and  then  Daniel  also  (12:4,  9,  10)  declared  that 
knowledge  should  be  increased,  and  that  the  wise  (through 
faith)  should  understand  the  vision. 

Our  obje6l  here  is  not  to  prophesy  out  of  the  abundance 
of  human  imagination,  nor  in  any  sense  to  be  wise  above 
what  is  written  in  the  sacred  Scriptures.  Therefore,  dis- 
carding all  human  inventions,  we  keep  close  to  the  fountain 
of  divine  truth,  endeavoring  to  read  prophecy  in  the  light 
of  prophecy  and  its  manifest  fulfilment ;  and  to  make  plain 
upon  tables  that  which  God  said  would  be  sealed  up,  and 
which  therefore  could  not  be  understood  before  this  time 
of  the  end,  but  of  which  he  gave  assurance  that  it  should 
then  be  understood. 

In  this  volume  we  offer  a  chain  of  testimony  on  the  sub- 
je6l  of  God's  appointed  times  and  seasons,  each  link  of 
which  we  consider  Scripturally  strong,  while  the  whole  of 
it  when  viewed  together,  in  the  relationship  which  one  part 
bears  to  another,  gives  evidence  of  a  plan  so  broad  and 
comprehensive,  a  design  so  deep,  and  a  harmony  so  perfe6t, 
as  to  clearly  manifest  to  the  studious  and  reverent  inquirer 
that  it  is  beyond  the  breadth  and  depth  of  human  thought, 
and  therefore  cannot  be  of  human  origin. 

We  find  that  the  end  of  the  Gospel  age,  like  the  end  of 
the  Jewish  age,  is  called  a  harvest  (Matt.  9:37;  13:24, 
30,  39) ;  that  like  that  also,  it  is  a  period  of  forty  years ; 
and  that  upon  the  harvests  of  the  ages  the  rays  of  prophetic 
testimony  are  specially  concentrated,  particularly  upon  the 
harvest  of  this  age,  where  even  all  the  light  of  the  Jewish 


1 6  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

age — because  of  its  typical  chara6ler — converges  in  a  glori- 
ous focus.  In  this  light  we  may  now  distinctly  see  the 
stately  steppings  of  our  God,  not  only  in  the  long  vista  of 
the  ages  past,  but  also  in  the  present  outworkings  of  his 
plan.  And  not  only  so,  but  according  to  his  promise  to 
show  us  things  to  come  (John  i6:  13),  we  see,  with  won- 
derful distinctness  of  vision,  his  wise  policy  for  the  bless- 
ing of  all  in  the  incoming  Millennial  age — even  down  to 
its  glorious  consummation  in  the  restitution  of  all  things. 
We  find  that  many  great  and  wonderful  events  center  in 
this  harvest :  that  in  it  occur  the  great  time  of  trouble,  the 
day  of  Jehovah  ;  the  final  and  complete  overthrow  of  Anti- 
christ and  the  fall  of  Great  Babylon ;  the  beginning  of  return- 
ing favor  to  the  Jew ;  the  second  advent  of  our  Lord  and 
the  establishment  of  his  kingdom ;  and  the  resurre(5lion  and 
reward  of  the  saints. 

We  find  in  prophecy  the  beginning  and  the  ending  of 
this  harvest  period  clearly  marked,  as  well  as  the  events  due 
to  occur  in  it.  And  to  call  attention  to  and  trace  the  vari- 
ous lines  of  prophetic  time  to  the  events  in  which  they 
culminate  is,  in  substance,  the  obje6l  of  this  volume.  To 
receive  its  testimony,  the  reader  will  need  to  have  an  ear  to 
hear  (Rev.  2:7;  Matt.  11  :  15),  and  must  expe6l  meekly  to 
cast  away  many  preconceived  opinions  as  fast  as  he  comes 
to  see  their  lack  of  harmony  with  God's  Word.  To  such 
as  are  thus  minded,  and  who  pursue  the  lessons  of  this 
volume  v/ith  patience  and  care,  and  in  the  order  of  their 
arrangement,  we  doubt  not  it  will  be  a  great  blessing.  If 
its  lessons  are  received  into  good  and  honest  hearts,  we  trust 
it  will  be  a  power  to  separate  them  from  the  world  and  to 
ripen  them  as  wheat  for  the  garner.  To  thus  quicken  and 
ripen  and  separate  the  saints,  as  wheat  from  tares,  in  this  time 
of  harvest,  is  the  obje6l  for  which,  we  apprehend,  these 
prophecies  now  unfolding  were  designed  by  our  Lord; 


Times  and  Seasons.  17 

Those  permitted  to  view  God's  grand  chart  of  the  ages, 
which  so  clearly  maps  out  the  orderly  arrangement,  the 
deep  design  and  the  wonderful  scope  of  the  divine  plan 
as  set  forth  in  the  preceding  volume,  should  be  anxious  to 
discover  whatever  God  may  be  pleased  to  reveal  concerning 
its  times  and  seasons.  Their  interest  in  this  subje6l  should 
be  many  fold  greater  than  that  of  any  in  the  past  ages  who  did 
not  see  the  great  blessings  in  reservation  for  all.  Faithful 
children  of  God  long  to  know  when  the  King  of  Glory  shall 
come  in,  and  the  prince  of  darkness  be  bound ;  when  the 
children  of  the  light  shall  shine  forth  as  the  sun,  and  the 
darkness  be  scattered ;  when  the  saints  shall  be  rceived  into 
full  divine  adoption,  and  the  groaning  creation  released  from 
the  bondage  of  corruption ;  and  when  our  heavenly  Father's 
glorious  chara6ler  shall  be  fully  revealed  to  an  astonished 
world,  causing  all  who  love  righteousness  to  bow  their 
hearts  in  adoration  and  love  and  obedience. 

To  be  devoid  of  such  desires  indicates  a  lack  of  interest 
in,  and  appreciation  of,  God's  plans.  The  apostles,  the 
prophets  and  the  angels  all  desired  and  sought  earnestly  to 
know  what  time  the  spirit  of  God  indicated  through  the 
prophets.  And  this  interest  on  the  part  of  his  children  is 
ever  pleasing  to  God ;  for  though  he  never  heretofore  grati- 
fied such  desires  to  any  considerable  extent,  because  the 
due  time  had  not  yet  come,  he  never  once  chided  such  in- 
terest. On  the  contrary,  he  called  the  inquiring  Daniel 
greatly  beloved,  and  answered  his  inquiry  so  far  as  was  con- 
sistent with  his  plan. 

Such  inquiry,  therefore,  should  not  be  regarded  as  an  im- 
proper prying  into  the  secrets  of  God.  God  would  have 
us  manifest  that  interest  in  his  plans  which  would  ''search 
the  Scriptures,"  and  ''take  heed  to  the  sure  word  of  proph- 
ecy," and  thus  be  in  that  proper,  waiting  attitude  which 
will  quickly  discern  the  truth  as  it  becomes  due.     Secret 


1 8  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

things  belong  unto  God,  but  things  revealed  belong  unto 
us  and  our  children  forever.  (Deut.  29:  29.)  Therefore, 
if  we  confine  ourselves  stri6tly  to  the  Word  of  God,  and 
avoid  idle  speculation,  we  are  on  safe  ground.  If  God's 
plan  and  times  and  seasons  are  not  recorded  in  the  Scrip- 
tures, none  can  find  them  there ;  and  God  has  surely  had 
nothing  recorded  by  his  prophets  and  apostles  which  he 
desires  to  keep  secret  forever.  In  due  time  and  order  every 
recorded  feature  of  the  divine  plan,  and  its  time  and  sea- 
son, is  manifested  to  those  watching  ;  but  the  entire  outline 
of  the  plan,  together  with  the  time  features  of  it,  was  not 
due  to  be  understood  until  the  period  designated  "The 
time  of  the  end."  (Dan.  12:9,  10.)  And  let  it  be  borne 
in  mind  that  until  such  time  as  God  purposes  to  reveal  his 
secrets,  neither  learning  nor  piety  can  find  them  out.  Al- 
though  the  prophecies  have  stood  for  centuries  before  the 
eyes  of  all,  they  could  not  be  unlocked  and  their  secrets 
read  until  the  due  time  had  come. 

When  some  of  the  disciples  came  to  our  Lord  inquiring 
concerning  the  time  for  the  establishment  of  the  Kingdom 
of  God,  before  it  was  yet  due  to  be  revealed,  he  answered, 
"It  is  not  for  you  to  know  the  times  or  the  seasons  which 
the  Father  hath  appointed  by  his  own  authority."  A6ls 
I  :  7.)  And  on  another  occasion,  concerning  the  same 
subje6l,  he  said,  "Of  that  day  and  hour  knoweth  no  man, 
no,  not  the  angels  who  are  in  heaven,  neither  the  Son,  but 
the  Father.  Take  ye  heed,  watch  and  pray ;  for  ye  know 
not  when  the  time  is.  .  .  .  And  what  I  say  unto  you,  I  say 
unto  all,   Watch.'''' — Mark  13  :  32,  t^^,  37. 

These  words  of  our  Lord  cannot  be  understood  to  mean 
that  none  but  the  Father  will  ever  know  of  his  times  and 
seasons  ;  hence  it  no  more  proves  that  we  cannot  know  those 
times  and  seasons  now,  than  that  our  Lord  cannot  know 
them  now.     And  the  very  fadl  that  the  entire  outline  of 


Times  and  Seasons.  19 

our  Father's  plan,  and  also  his  times  and  seasons,  are  now 
clearly  discernible,  is  strong  proof  that  we  are  now  living  in 
the  time  of  the  end  of  the  present  dominion  of  evil,  and 
the  dawn  of  the  Millennial  Day,  when  knowledge  should  be 
increased,  and  the  wise  should  understand.  (Dan.  12:4, 
10.)  If  prophecy  was  never  designed  to  be  understood, 
there  could  have  been  no  reasonable  obje6t  in  giving  it. 

These  expressions  of  the  Master  indicate  that  God  is  not 
executing  the  various  parts  of  his  plan  in  a  random,  hap- 
hazard manner,  but  that  he  has  fixed  2jiA  definite  times  and 
seasons  for  every  feature  of  his  great  work.  And  his  infi- 
nite power  and  wisdom  guarantee  that  there  can  be  no  mis- 
carriage or  delay. 

The  words  also  impress  the  thought  that  up  to  that  time 
the  Father  had  revealed  the  times  and  seasons  conne6ted 
with  his  plans  to  no  one,  not  even  to  our  Lord  Jesus.  So 
far  from  warranting  the  general  supposition,  that  our  Lord 
rebuked  investigation  and  interest  in  the  times  and  seasons, 
and  by  these  words  forbade  such  examination,  the  very 
reverse  is  true.  His  words  clearly  show  that  though  the 
times  and  seasons  were  not  yet  given  to  them  to  know,  they 
would  be  very  important  some  time,  and  would  then  be 
revealed  to  those  watching.  In  view  of  the  fa6l  that  they 
would  be  unsealed  some  time,  and  that  they  would  be  very 
important  the7i,  he  urges  them  to  "  take  lieed,''''  and  not  to 
allow  indifference  to  come  over  them,  but  to  '^watch^'  con- 
tinually, that  they  might  know  when  the  due  time  should 
come. 

Those  who  watched  3X\  down  the  age,  though  they  did  not 
see  all  they  watched  for,  were  nevertheless  greatly  blessed 
and  kept  separate  from  the  world,  by  so  doing;  while 
those  who  will  be  living  in  the  ^'  due  tinie^'  and  shall  obe- 
diently ' '  watch, ' '  shall  know,  shall  see,  ' '  shall  understand, ' ' 
and  not  be  in  ignorance,   in  the  midst  of  the  wonderful 


20  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

events  of  the  * 'harvest"  of  this  age.  He  who  at  any  time 
neglects  to  watch,  loses  a  blessing  upon  which  the  Master 
laid  great  stress,  and  proves  himself  to  be  either  blinded 
with  prejudice  by  the  god  of  this  world,  or  overcharged 
with  matters  of  this  life  and  present  interests,  to  the  neg- 
le6t  of  his  vow  of  full  consecration  to  the  Lord,  to  seek 
chiefly  the  Kingdom  and  life  to  come. 

The  Apostles  Peter  and  Paul  call  attention  to  this  subje(5l 
of  the  times  and  seasons.  Peter  declares  (2  Pet.  1:16), 
that  we  are  not  following  cunningly  devised  fables;  that  he  saw 
in  a  figure  the  glory  of  the  coming  kingdom  of  Christ  on 
the  mount  of  transfiguration,  when  he  beheld  the  glorious 
'^vision''  of  Moses  and  Elijah  and  Jesus  in  glittering  gar- 
ments,— Moses  representing  the  ancient  worthies  (Heb.  11: 
38-40)  who  shall  be  the  earthly  representatives  of  the  heav- 
enly Kingdom,  and  Elijah  representing  the  "overcomers" 
of  this  Gospel  age — the  scene  as  a  whole  foreshadowing  the 
''glory  to  follow,"  after  the  sufferings  for  righteousness'sake 
shall  have  completed  the  ele6tion  according  to  favor.  Yet 
Peter,  even  while  relating  his  Vision,  points  to  the  prophetic 
testimony,  saying,  "We  have  a  7nore  sure  word  of  prophecy, 
whereunto  ye  do  well  that  ye  take  heed  as  unto  a  light  that 
shineth  in  a  dark  place  until  the  Day-dawn."  (2  Pet.  1:19.) 
He  well  knew  that  all  the  prophecies  could  not  be  fully 
understood  by  any  then,  and  thus  urged  a  watching  attitude 
on  the  part  of  the  saints — not  a  watching  of  the  sky,  but  a 
watching  for  the  fulfilment  of  all  that  God  had  spoken  by 
the  holy  prophets  concerning  the  restitution,  and  the  ''times 
of  restitution,  which  form  so  large  and  important  a  part  of 
their  testimony.  He  assures  us  that  prophecy  will  have  fresh- 
ly important  truths  for  us,  all  the  way  along  until  Day-dawn. 
The  Apostle  Paul  declares,  "  Of  the  times  and  seasons, 
brethren,  ye  have  no  need  that  I  write  unto  you;  for  your- 
selves know  perfe6lly  that  the  Day  of  the  Lord  so  cometh 


Times  and  Seasons.  21 

as  a  thief  in  the  night.     [Quietly,  stealthily  it  will  come, 
and  after  it  has  come,  many  will  not  for  some  time  know 
that  they  are  in  it.]     When  they  shall  say,  Peace  and  safety, 
then  sudden  destru6lion    cometh   upon   them  [sudden  or 
rapid,  compared  with  the  slow  processes  of  the  past  six  thou- 
sand years,  as  our  day  is  called  the  fast  day  of  steam  and  elec- 
tricity— not  sudden  as  lightning,  but  sudden]  as  travail 
upon  a  woman.     But  ye,  brethren,  are  not  in  darkness,  that 
that  day  should  overtake  you  as  a  thief." — i  Thess.  5  :  1-4. 
The  "brethren"   all  have  the  lamp,  the  sure  word  of 
prophecy  mentioned  by  Peter,  as  a  light  in  a  dark  place ; 
and  while  they  keep  the  proper  attitude  of  brethren,  as  faith- 
ful, meek  and  humble  students  of  the  Word,  they  will  at 
no  time  be  in  darkness  :   they  will  always  have  the  truth  sup- 
plied as  meat  in  due  season.     At  no  time  have  those  then 
living  in  full  harmony  with  God  been  left  in  ignorance  of 
necessary  truth,  to  grope  their  way  in  the  dark  with  the 
world.      Abraham   and    Lot   knew  of  the   destruction   of 
Sodom  beforehafid,  God  saying,  *' Shall  I  hide  from  Abra- 
ham that  thing  which  I  do?  "  (Gen.  18  :  17.)     Noah  knew 
of  the  flood  in  time  to  build  the  ark,  and  was  informed  of 
the  very  day  that  he  should  go  into  it.     At  the  first  advent, 
too,  Simeon  and  Anna,  and  the  wise  men  of  the  East,  knew 
to  expedl  Messiah.     In  fa6t,  the  expectation  was  general 
then.     (Luke  2  :  25-38  ;  Matt.    2:2;  Luke  3  :  15.)     And 
if  God  so  dealt  with  the  house  of  servants,  shall  he  do  less 
for  the  house  of  Sons?      Our  Lord  and  Head  has  said, 
'*  Henceforth  I  call  you  not  servants,  for  the  servant  knoweth 
not  what  his  Lord  doeth ;  but  I  have  called  you  friends,  for 
all  things  that  I  have  heard  of  ??iy  Father  I  have  made  known 
unto  you. ' '     Our  Lord  certainly  shall  know  of  the  times  and 
seasons  in  due  ti?ne,  since  he  is  to  accomplish  the  plan,  and 
unless  he  has  changed,  he  will  make  known  the  plans  to  those 
close  to  him  and  associated  in  his  work — his  friends,  his  saints. 


22  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

Reason,  then,  teaches  us  that  so  surely  as  it  is  written, 
"  The  Lord  will  do  nothing,  but  he  revealeth  his  secret 
unto  his  servants  the  prophets"  (Amos  3  :  7),  and  that 
most  of  what  he  revealed  unto  them  was  not  for  themselves, 
but  for  us,  the  Gospel  Church  (i  Pet.  i  :  12),  so  surely 
will  the  faithful  not  be  left  in  darkness,  unable  to  discern 
it,  when  the  day  of  the  Lord  has  come.  It  will  not  come 
upon  them  as  a  thief  and  a  snare — unawares ;  for  they  will 
be  watching,  and  will  have  the  promised  light  then  due 
upon  the  subje6l. 

The  Apostle  states  why  he  makes  the  positive  assertion 
that  ye,  brethren,  will  know  of  the  times  and  seasons  when 
due,  and  will  not  be  in  darkness,  saying  (verse  5),  "Ye  are 
all  the  children  of  light,  and  the  children  of  the  day." 
Such  are  begotten  of  the  truth,  and  are  to  be  developed 
by  the  truth  more  and  more  unto  the  perfe6l  day — to  which 
they  belong. — James  i  :  18;  John  17 :  17,  19. 

Notice  how  carefully  the  pronouns  ye  and  you,  and  they 
and  them,  of  this  and  other  Scriptures,  distinguish  the  classes 
referred  to — the  saints  from  the  world.  The  knowledge 
which  the  saints  will  have  in  the  day  of  the  Lord  is  con- 
trasted with  the  ignorance,  on  the  part  of  the  world,  of  the 
significance  and  tendency  of  transpiring  events — ''  Ye  have 
no  need  that  I  write  unto  youV  ''  When  they  shall  say, 
Peace  and  safety,  then  sudden  destru6lion  cometh  upon 
them  .  .  .  and  they  shall  not  escape.  But  ye,  brethren, 
are  not  in  darkness  that  that  day  should  overtake  you  as  a 
thief.  Ve  are  all  children  of  the  light. "  "  Take  heed, ' '  says 
our  Lord,  "  to  yourselves,  lest  at  any  time  yot/r  hearts  be 
overcharged  with  surfeiting,  and  drunkenness,  and  cares  of 
this  life,  and  so  that  day  come  upon  you  unawares ;  for  as  a 
snare  it  shall  come  on  all  them  that  dwell  on  the  face  of 
the  whole  earth.  Watch  ye,  therefore  [watch  yourselves 
and  also  the  word  of  prophecy],  and  pray  always,  that  yt; 


Times  and  Seasons.  23 

may  be  accounted  worthy  to  escape  all  these  things  that 
shall  come  to  pass,  and  to  stand  before  the  Son  of  man." — 
Luke  21  :  24-36. 

It  follows,  then,  that  if  a  child  of  God,  living  in 
the  day  of  the  Lord,  remain  in  darkness  or  ignorance 
as  to  the  fa6l,  he  must  be  either  surfeited  with  the  things 
of  this  life  and  intoxicated  with  the  spirit  of  the  world,  or 
else  overcharged  with  the  cares  of  this  life,  and  in  either 
case  indifferently  negle6ling  to  watch  with  his  lamp  trimmed 
and  burning  and  with  oil  in  his  vessel — /.  e.,  with  the 
Word  of  God  in  heart  and  mind,  and  with  the  spirit  of 
truth  in  himself. 

Though  much,  connected  with  the  times  and  seasons,  as 
well  as  with  the  details  of  the  plan,  had  been  foretold  by 
the  prophets,  they  confessed  their  ignorance  of  the  import 
of  the  prophecies  to  which  they  gave  expression.  (See 
Dan.  12:8;  Ezek.  20:  49 ;  Matt.  13  :  17;  i  Pet.  i  :  20-12.) 
Stated  in  dark  and  symbolic  language,  and  linked  with 
events  then  future,  to  understand  them  then  was  impossible. 
Thus,  though  recorded  aforetime,  and  made  to  bear  witness 
to  the  divine  foreknowledge  and  arrangement,  they  were 
for  the  learning  of  those  living  in  the  due  time  for  their  ful- 
filment, and  not  for  those  who  uttered  them.  (Rom.  15:4.) 
They  awaited  the  unfolding  of  various  connected  features 
of  the  divine  plan  and  human  history,  which,  by  God's 
arrangement,  should  unlock  them,  and  enrich  the  patient, 
searching  children  of  God  with  ''meat  in  due  season"  for 
an  hour  of  trial  and  need  in  ''the  evil  day" — the  day  of 
trouble  with  which  this  age  closes,  and  in  the  midst  of 
which  also  the  new  era  and  dispensation  dawns. 

A  wonderful  modern  device,  which  serves  well  to  illus- 
trate the  divine  arrangement  of  time  prophecy,  is  what  is 
termed  a  Combination  Time-Lock,  used  in  some  of  the 
largest  banks.     Like  other  combination  locks,  the  key  on 


24  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

handle  remains  in  the  lock  constantly.  Certain  peculiar 
movements  of  the  handle,  known  only  to  one  aware  of  the 
arrangement,  are  needful  to  open  it,  while  the  slightest  de- 
viation from  the  proper  movements  only  complicates  the 
matter  and  makes  it  the  more  difficult  to  open.  The  Com- 
bination Time-ljock  adds  the  peculiar  feature,  that  by  a 
clock  arrangement  inside  the  bank  vaults,  the  doors  when 
closed  at  night  are  so  locked  that  they  cannot  be  opened 
by  any  one  until  a  fixed  hour  the  next  morning ;  and  then, 
only  in  response  to  the  use  of  the  right  combination  upon 
which  the  lock  has  been  set. 

Thus  our  Heavenly  Father  has  closed  up  and  sealed  many 
features  of  his  plan  during  the  night  with  his  great  Time- 
Lock,  which  was  so  set  as  to  prevent  their  being  opened 
until  "  the  time  appointed" — in  the  morning  of  the  great 
day  of  restitution.  And  then  Jehovah's  Anointed,  **  he 
that  hath  the  key"  and  understands  the  combination  upon 
which  it  has  been  set,  ''openeth,  and  no  man  shutteth." 
(Rev.  3:7.)  He  opens  unto  us  by  giving  us  the  necessary 
information  as  to  how  the  key  of  prophecy  is  to  be  operated 
by  those  desiring  to  find  the  treasures  of  infinite  wisdom. 
And  we  may  unlock  the  treasures  of  divine  wisdom  now, 
because  the  morning  hour  has  come — th^"\3h  it  is  early  and 
not  yet  light  to  the  world.  But  only  by  carefully  heeding 
the  instru6tions,  and  applying  the  key  to  the  combination 
set  by  the  great  Designer,  will  its  treasures  open  to  us. 

In  fa(5t,  this  illustration  fits  the  entire  plan  of  God  in  all 
its  parts :  Elach  feature  of  truth  and  each  prophecy  is  but  a 
part  of  the  one  grand  combination,  which  may  be  opened 
now  because  it  is  morning — because  the  bolts  of  the  great 
Time-Lock  are  withdrawn.  And  this  grand  combination, 
once  opened,  discloses  fully  and  grandly  the  boundless 
treasures  of  divine  wisdom,  justice,  love  and  power.  He 
who  opens  will  indeed  know  God  as  never  before. 


Times  and  Seasons.  25 

Let  us,  then,  examine  the  Scriptures  with  a  reverent  spirit, 
that  we  may  learn  what  God  is  pleased  to  show  us  with 
reference  to  his  times  and  seasons.  Since  he  has  recently 
made  the  grand  outlines  of  his  plan  so  clear,  we  may 
reasonably  expect  that  his  time  is  due  to  lead  us  into  a 
knowledge  of  its  time  features.  The  times  and  seasons 
were  wisely  hidden  in  the  past,  and  the  saints  were  thus 
saved  from  discouragement,  because  the  time  was  long; 
but  as  the  plan  nears  its  glorious  consummation,  it  is  the 
privilege  of  the  saints  to  know  it,  that  they  may  lift  up 
their  heads  and  rejoice,  knowing  that  their  deliverance  draw- 
eth  nigh.  (Luke  21  :  28.)  The  revealing  of  the  time,  in 
the  "time  of  the  end,"  will  be  as  profitable  and  stimu- 
lating to  the  saints  as  its  revealing  before  would  have  been 
unprofitable  and  discouraging. 

Evidently  our  God  is  a  God  of  order.  Every  thing  that 
he  does  is  in  accordance  with  a  definitely  pre-arranged 
plan  ;  and  his  appointed  times  and  seasons  are  no  insignifi- 
cant or  unimportant  part  of  that  plan.  Notice  that  Jesus 
was  born  on  time — " /;z  the  fulness  of  time  God  sent  his 
only  begotten  Son."  (Gal.  4:4.)  Not  before,  nor  after, 
but  just  when  the  time  was  full.  Our  Lord's  first  preach- 
ing was  on  the  subjecft  of  time, — "He  came  preaching,  and 
saying,  The  time  is  fulfilled.  .  .  .  Repent  and  believe  the 
good  tidings."  (Mark  i :  15.)  ^^In  due  time  Christ  died." 
(Rom.  5  :  9.)  "He  rose  again  the  third  day  [at  the  ap- 
pointed time]  according  to  the  Scriptures.''''  (i  Cor.  15:4.) 
During  his  ministry  his  enemies  frequently  sought  to  take 
him,  but  it  is  stated  that  they  could  not,  "  because  his  hour 
was  not  yet  come.'" — John  7  :  30. 

The  time-prophecies  were  not  given  to  satisfy  mere  curi- 
osity, but  to  enable  the  student  of  the  Word  to  recognize 
the  foretold  events  when  due.  For  instance  :  Although 
prophecy  marked  the  time  and  manner  of  the  first  advent, 


26  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

it  was  not  understood  until  Christ  had  come ;  and  then  it 
helped  those  who  carefully  studied  the  Scriptures  to  recog- 
nize the  man  Jesus  as  the  Christ,  sent  of  God  according 
to  appointment  and  prophecy.  And,  just  so,  prophecies 
marking  the  time  and  manner  of  the  second  advent  are 
due  to  be  understood  at  about  the  time  of  that  event,  to 
aid  us  in  recognizing  his  day  when  it  has  come — and  its 
order  of  events  and  the  duties  of  the  hour.  One  cannot 
read  the  Old  Testament  Scriptures  thoughtfully  without 
noticing  the  prominence  given  to  dates,  and  the  great  par- 
ticularity with  which  some  are  marked,  even  to  a  day,  though 
quite  frequently  they  are  attached  to  what  may  seem  to  be 
very  insignificant  events.  But  the  close  student  will  find  that 
these  various  dates  and  chronological  references  are  links 
in  a  wonderful  chain  of  evidence  which  points  out  with 
great  precision  particularly  two  of  the  most  notable  and 
important  events  in  the  history  of  the  world,  viz.  :  the  first 
and  second  advents  of  the  world's  Redeemer  and  Lord, 
and  the  important  matters  associated  therewith. 

The  fa(5l  that  the  majority  of  Christians  are  indifferent 
to  these  things  is  no  reason  why  those  who  love  his  appear- 
ing, and  desire  to  be  found  approved  of  him,  should  drop 
into  a  similar  condition  of  lukewarmness. 

It  should  be  borne  in  mind  that  fleshly  Israel,  except  the 
''friends"  of  God,  stumbled  and  knew  not  the  time  of 
their  visitation  (Luke  19:  44),  and  that  the  prophet  has 
foretold  the  stumbling  of  both  the  houses  of  Israel — the 
nominal  Jewish  house,  and  the  nominal  Christian  house. 
(Isa.  8:  14.)  Only  *'«  remnant''  in  the  close  or  harvest 
of  each  dispensation  is  prepared  to  receive  and  appreciate 
the  truths  then  due,  and  therefore  to  enter  into  the  special 
privileges  and  blessings  of  the  dawning  dispensation.  It 
therefore  remains  for  each  individual  Christian,  in  the  clos- 
ing period  of  this  age,  to  see  to  it  that  he  is  one  of  ''the 


Times  and  Seasons.  ^7 

remnant,"  and  not  one  of  the  lukewarm,  listless,  indifferent 
mass  of  the  notninal  Christian  Church,  which  will  surely 
stumble,  as  foretold  by  the  Prophet,  by  the  Lord  and  by 
the  Apostles,  and  as  foreshadowed  by  the  course  of  fleshly 
Israel,  which  was  declared  to  be  its  shadow  or  type. 

But  while  time-prophecy  will  be  of  great  advantage  in 
its  due  time,  showing  various  features  of  God's  plan  per- 
taining to  the  harvest,  etc. ,  it  is  also  true  that  a  knowledge 
of  the  manner  of  our  Lord's  coming  and  appearing  is  very 
necessary.  To  this,  very  careful  attention,  in  its  appropri- 
ate place,  is  requested.  And  back  of  all  this  knowledge 
must  lie  holiness  and  humility,  which  must  pave  the  way 
for  its  reception  by  enabling  the  child  of  God  to  remove 
prejudice  from  his  heart  and  to  search  diligently  to  know 
what  has  been  revealed.  So  it  was  at  the  first  advent :  the 
earnest,  consecrated,  meek  ones  alone  discerned  the  time 
and  manner.  The  worldly  and  overcharged  ones,  the  full 
ones,  will  not  discern  either  the  prophecies  or  the  signs  of 
the  times  fulfilling  them,  until  the  harvest  is  past  and  the 
summer  of  special  favor  is  ended. 

In  the  end  or  *' harvest"  of  the  Jewish  age,  the  truly 
humble  and  earnest ''  Israelites  indeed  "  were  in  a  condition 
of  expedtancy  which  differed  widely  from  that  of  the  proud, 
worldly-minded  and  self-righteous  about  them  ;  so  that  not 
only  were  they  more  ready  to  accept  God's  plan  as  he 
had  arranged  it,  but  they  were  more  ready  to  hear  and  ex- 
amine the  truth  when  they  came  in  conta6t  with  it.  And 
our  Lord,  while  dismissing  the  self-satisfied,  fault-finding 
quibbles  of  the  Pharisees  with  dark  or  evasive  answers,  took 
time  and  care  in  making  truth  clear  and  plain  to  the  humble, 
earnest  seekers.  (Matt.  13: 10-17;  16:  1-4;  Mark  7:1-23; 
Luke  18:18-30;  John  1:45-51;  Luke  24:13-32  and 
33-49;  John  20:  24-28;  21  :  1-12.)  The  proud  and  self- 
satisfied,    and  all   who   followed  them,  stumbled    (Matt. 


2$  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

15 :  14),  while  the  humble  and  truth-hungry  inquired 
earnestly  for  the  truth.  (Matt.  13 :  36  ;  Mark  4  :  10.)  And 
the  Lord  expounded  the  dark  sayings  to  such,  and  said, 
'*  \^Xi\.Q>  you  it  is  given  to  know  the  mystery  of  the  Kingdom 
of  God,  but  to  them  that  are  without  [not  Israelites  indeed\ 
all  these  things  are  done  in  parables,  that  seeing  they  may 
see  and  not  perceive,  and  hearing  they  may  hear  and  not 
understand." 

So,  too,  it  is  at  the  end  of  this  age.  Truth  here,  as  there, 
separates  the  earnest  and  humble,  and  leads  them  forward 
into  the  knowledge  now  due  to  such,  and  strengthens  and 
enlightens  them,  that  they  may  not  stumble  with  the  mass 
of  nominal  Christians ;  while  the  lukewarm  and  self-satisfied 
rejedl  the  truths  here  due,  because  blinded  by  their  own 
improper  condition  of  heart.  Hence  they  will  be  reje6ted 
by  the  Lord  as  unworthy  of  becoming  his  bride. — Eph.  4:1; 
I  Cor.  9:  27. 

It  is  a  serious  error  into  which  many  fall,  to  suppose  that  a 
knowledge  of  God's  doings  and  plans  is  of  little  impor- 
tance, that  the  graces  of  Christian  chara6ler  are  all  that  God 
requires,  and  that  these  are  better  conserved  by  ignorance. 
How  differently  the  Scriptures  present  the  matter !  Thej* 
counsel  us,  not  only  to  cultivate  the  graces  of  the  Christian 
chara6ler,  but  to  preserve  constantly  that  condition  of  heart 
which  will  enable  us  to  discern  the  truth — especially  that 
great  truth  of  the  Lord's  presence  when  due — and  when  dis- 
pensational  changes  take  place.  A  knowledge  of  dispensa- 
tional  truth  is  quite  as  important  in  the  end  of  this  age  as 
it  was  in  the  end  of  the  Jewish  age.  Those  who  did  not 
discern  the  truth  then  due  did  not  receive  the  favors  then 
due.  And  just  so  in  the  end  of  this  age :  Those  who  can- 
not discern  the  truth  now  due,  being  blinded  by  unbelief 
and  worldliness,  cannot  receive  j^m^/ favors  now  due.  They 
are  not  overcomers,  and  hence  are  unfit  to  be  the  bride  of 


Times  and  Seasons  29 

Christ,  and  to  enter  into  the  glorious  inheritance  of  the 
saints  as  joint-heirs  with  him.  Truth,  in  this  age,  under 
the  adverse  circumstances  for  its  reception,  becomes  a  test 
of  our  faithfulness  to  God,  and  therefore  as  a  sickle  sepa- 
rates the  fit  ones  from  those  unfit — the  wheat  from  the  tares. 

Odium  attaches  to  the  study  of  prophetic  time  by  reason 
of  past  misapplications  of  it  by  **  Second  Adventists"  and 
others,  and  the  consequent  failures  to  realize  the  events 
expe6led  to  occur  at  stated  times.  We  see,  however,  that 
even  this  has  been  a  part  of  God's  plan  to  obscure  the  sub- 
jc6l  to  all  but  the  class  for  whom  it  was  intended,  by 
permitting  contempt  and  ridicule  to  attach  to  it,  thus  hin- 
dering the  worldly-wise  and  prudent  from  apprehending  it. 
(Matt.  II  :  25.)  This,  we  doubt  not,  was  as  much  a  part 
of  the  divine  plan  as  the  sending  of  Jesus  into  Nazareth, 
a  despised  place,  ''that  he  might  be  called  a  Nazarene" 
(Matt.  2  :  23),  though  he  was  really  born  in  the  honorable 
town  of  Bethlehem.  As  the  worldly-wise  and  prudent  of 
that  day  said,  "■  Can  any  good  thing  come  out  of  Nazareth?'* 
so  to-day,  when  prophetic  time  or  anything  relating  to  the 
Lord's  second  advent  is  mentioned,  many  cry  '' Adventist," 
as  if  to  say,  ''  Can  any  good  thing  come  out  of  Adventism  ?" 
— even  though  they  admit  that  many  prophecies  containing 
time  are  not  yet  fulfilled,  and  that  the  second  coming  of  the 
Lord  is  the  most  prominent  topic  of  Scripture. 

We  have  great  sympathy  for  both  the  First  Adventists 
(the  Jews)  and  the  Second  Adventists,  though  only  a  it'N 
of  either  realized  the  truths  they  so  nearly  apprehended, 
yet  failed  to  grasp,  each  being  blinded  by  false  expe^aiions. 
Our  Adventist  friends  have  failed  to  recognize  both  the 
manner  and  the  obje6l  of  the  Lord's  return  as  taught  in 
the  Scriptures ;  consequently  they  have  not  been  expe6ling 
to  '/  see  him  as  he  is, ' '  but  as  he  was.  They  consider  the  ob- 
je6t  of  his  coming  one  which  will  fill  the  hearts  of  all  except 


30 


The  Time  is  at  Hand. 


the  saints  with  dismay  and  terror;  that  his  objecSt  is  to 
gather  the  ele6l,  destroy  all  others  of  mankind,  and  buru 
up  the  world.  Having  such  ideas,  they  used  the  time  proph- 
ecies as  a  whip  to  scourge  and  drive  the  world  to  God. 
But  the  world  coolly  looked  on,  and  said  that  these  were 
unreasonable  enthusiasts,  and,  if  there  is  a  God,  he  is  cer- 
tainly more  reasonable  and  just  than  that.  The  scorn  of 
the  world  grew  more  and  more  intense,  as  time  after  time 
they  foretold  a  wreck  of  matter  and  a  crush  of  worlds,  and 
time  after  time  their  predi6lions  failed — until  now  the  very 
mention  of  prophetic  time  is  received  very  generally  with 
an  incredulous  smile,  or  with  open  contempt,  even  by  Chris- 
tians who  well  know  that  prophecy  and  chronology  con- 
stitute a  large  proportion  of  God's  revelation. 
But  blessed  is  he 

"Who  bears  unmoved  the  world's  dark  frown. 

Nor  heeds  its  scornful  smile ; 
Whom  seas  of  trouble  cannot  drown, 

Nor  Satan's  arts  beguile." 

But  God  provided  time-prophecies  for  no  such  purpose, 
nor  will  he  attempt  to  convert  the  world  in  any  such 
way  as  this ;  for  he  seeketh  such  to  worship  him  as  worship 
in  spirit  and  in  truth  (John  4 :  23),  and  not  such  as  are 
frightened  into  his  service.  If  he  had  designed  to  terrorize 
men  into  obedience,  he  could  have  devised  some  more 
successful  method  than  the  proclamation  of  time — as  our 
Adventist  friends  have  proved.  Prophetic  time  was  given, 
not  to  alarm  the  world — nor  for  the  world  in  any  sense — 
but  to  enlighten,  strengthen,  comfort,  encourage  and  guide 
the  Church  in  the  troublous  times  in  the  end  of  the  age. 
Therefore  it  is  written.  None  of  the  wicked  shall  under- 
stand, but  the  wise  only.  To  these,  this  becomes  meat  in 
due  season,  and  it,  with  other  meat,  will  strengthen  those  who 
use  it,  so  that  they  will  be  "able  to  stand  in.  the  evil  day" 


Times  and  Seasons.  31 

—the  day  of  trouble  with  which  this  age  closes.  It  will 
enable  them  to  understand  the  wonderful  events  transpiring 
around  them,  so  that  they  will  neither  be  consumed  by 
fear  and  dread,  nor  swallowed  up  by  the  proje6ls  and  false 
theories — science  falsely  so  called — with  which  this  day  will 
abound.  And,  withal,  they  may  be  in  the  devouring  fire 
[trouble],  witnesses  for  God  and  his  plan,  and  teachers  of 
the  people — pointers  to  the  glorious  outcome  of  Jehovah's 
plan,  lifting  up  a  standard  for  the  people. — Isa.  62  :  10. 

This  is  the  objedl  of  time  prophecy,  and  how  important, 
how  indispensable — that  the  man  of  God  may  be  perfed, 
thoroughly  furnished,  at  this  time.  Without  these  pro- 
phetic  time-proofs,  we  might  see  the  events  of  this  Day  of 
the  Lord,  and  know  not  of  it,  or  of  our  duties  and  privi- 
leges in  it.  Let  none,  then,  of  the  truly  consecrated  under- 
value these  prophetic  time-evidences,  which  were  designed 
to  guide  our  words  and  deeds  in  the  early  Dawn  of  the 
Millennial  Day,  before  sunrise,  while  the  world  and  the 
nominal  church  are  yet  asleep,  ignorant  and  heedless  of  the 
dispensational  changes  now  occurring.  These  prophetic 
time-proofs  were  largely  God's  means  of  drawing  the  at- 
tention of  the  writer  more  fully  and  carefully  to  other 
features  of  the  divine  plan.  Attention  given  to  these  must 
result  in  lasting  profit  to  the  student,  not  only  by  informing 
him  of  "present  truth,"  but  also  by  giving  force  and  vital 
reality  to  all  Scriptural  truths,  by  furnishing  proof  that  all 
God's  plans  are  working  together  in  time,  as  well  as  in  kind, 
to  the  development  of  his  glorious  purposes. 

The  failure  of  the  predi(5lions  of  Adventists,  who  at- 
tempted to  fix  a  time  for  the  burning  of  the  world,  etc., 
etc.,  has  been  more  in  regard  to  the  charadter  of  the  events 
expe6ted  than  in  the  time.  Like  the  Jews,  they  erred  by 
looking  for  the  wrong  thing  at  the  right  time.  This  was 
the  secondary  cause  of  their  failure  to  clearly  apprehend  the 


32  The  Time  is  at  Hand.    " 

truth,  but  the  primary  cause  of  it  was  the  facfl  that  it  was  not 
yet  time  for  a  clearer  unfolding.  And  yet  it  was  time  foi 
the  stirring  up  of  the  saints  to  look  for  the  Lord's  appear- 
ing— for  a  going  forth  to  meet  the  Bridegroom,  and  a  dis- 
appointment prior  to  his  a6lual  coming — all  of  which  was 
indicated  in  our  Lord's  parable  of  the  Ten  Virgins,  as 
will  be  shown  at  length  hereafter.  As  shown  in  the  pre- 
ceding volume,  the  fire  which  is  to  devour  the  earth  in  the 
Day  of  the  Lord  is  symbolic,  not  literal ;  and  in  succeeding 
chapters  it  will  be  shown  that  the  applications  of  some  time- 
prophecies  which  Adventists  have  discarded  as  failures  were 
not  failures,  but  corre6l,  and  that  they  clearly  mark  the 
symbolic  fire  of  this  time — already  getting  under  way. 

The  Advent  people,  laboring  under  the  difficulty  of  ex- 
pelling a  literal  burning  of  the  earth,  attempted  to  force 
all  the  prophetic  periods  to  one  common  day  of  termination 
— a  twenty-four  hour  day  at  that — and  thus  they  did  violence 
to  some  prophecies  to  make  them  fit  and  end  with  others. 
But  the  clearer  view  of  the  divine  plan  now  reveals  the 
perfe6l  harmony  of  the  various  time-prophecies,  and  there 
is  no  necessity  for  twisting  or  doing  violence  to  any,  to 
make  it  fit  with  the  others.  As  in  succeeding  chapters 
we  institute  an  examination  of  the  leading  prophecies,  we 
do  not  form  a  theory  and  then  endeavor  to  bend  all  the 
prophetic  periods  to  it,  but  we  carefully  trace  each  period 
to  its  termination,  and  then  weave  together  the  theory  or 
plan  thus  indicated  by  the  great  Revealer  of  secrets.  It 
will  be  found  that  the  order  and  harmony  of  God's  plan 
are  just  as  manifest  in  its  times  and  seasons  as  in  the  glori- 
ous features  of  that  plan  traced  in  the  preceding  volume, 
and  mapped  out  on  the  Chart  of  the  Ages.  And  when  the 
great  clock  of  the  ages  strikes  the  hours  indicated  on  the 
prophetic  dial,  the  events  foretold  are  as  sure  to  follow  as 
that  God  foretold  them. 


CHAPTER  11. 

BIBLE  CHRONOLOGY. 

Chronology  Necessary  to  an  Understanding  of  Prophecy. — Indispensable 
Data  Furnished  in  the  Bible. — From  the  Creation  of  Adam  to  A.  D.  1873 
WAS  Six  Thousand  Years. — A  Statement  of  Bible  Chronology  in  Great 
Periods. — Its  Examination  in  Detail. — From  Creation  to  the  Day  the 
Flood  was  Dried  Up. — To  the  Abrahamic  Covenant. — To  the  Giving  of 
the  Law. — To  the  Division  of  Canaan  among  the  Tribes. — The  Period  of 
the  Judges. — The  Period  of  the  Kings. — The  Period  of  the  Desolation. — 
To  a.  D.  1873. — Wherein  this  Chronology  Differs  from  that  of  Bishop 
Usher,  Noted  in  our  English  Bibles. — The  True  Date  of  our  Lord's  Birth. 

TN  this  chapter  we  present  the  Bible  evidence  which  in- 
-*■  dicates  that  six  thousand  years  from  the  creation  of 
Adam  were  complete  with  A.  D.  1872  ;  and  hence  that,  since 
1872  A.  D. ,  we  are  chronologically  entered  upon  the  seventh 
thousand  or  the  Millennium — the  forepart  of  which,  the 
'^  Day  of  the  Lord,"  the  *' day  of  trouble,"  is  to  witness  the 
breaking  into  pieces  of  the  kingdoms  of  this  world  and  the 
establishment  of  the  Kingdom  of  God  under  the  whole 
heavens. 

Chronology  is  necessary,  too,  as  a  basis  for  the  examination 
of  the  prophetic  periods.  We  must  ascertain  first  of  all 
where  we  are  on  the  stream  of  time ;  and  to  do  this,  we 
must  have  reliable  dates  for  the  calculation  ;  hence  we  take 
up  the  subje6l  of  chronology  first  in  order.  And  a  complete 
chronology  of  human  history  must  of  necessity  begin  with 
the  creation  of  man. 

The  length  of  time  since  the  creation  of  man  is  variously 
estimated.  Among  those  who  accept  the  Bible  record, 
there  can  be  but  little  difference  of  opinion ;  but  among 
those  who  reje6l  it,  the  differences  are  enormous,  varying 

5  33 


34  The  Time  is  at  Hand, 

all  the  way  from  ten  thousand  to  hundreds  of  thousands  of 
years.  These  suppositions  are  based  upon  fa6ts  which  afford 
but  slight  ground  for  such  extravagant  and  reckless  conclu- 
sions. For  instance,  the  finding  of  flint  arrow-heads  in  the 
peat  bogs  of  Switzerland  and  Ireland,  at  a  considerable 
depth  below  the  surface,  is  taken  as  2i  proof  that  their  level 
was  once  the  surface,  and  that  the  peat  mosses  gradually 
grew  up  around  and  above  them ;  and  the  time  necessary 
for  such  a  growth  is  calculated  from  the  present  rate  of 
growth  per  century,  which  is  very  slight.  If  their  premises 
were  true,  of  course  it  would  prove  that  man  had  lived 
hundreds  of  thousands  of  years  ago.  But  other  geologists 
will  show,  and  with  good  reason,  that  these  peat  bogs  were 
once  so  soft  that  a  flint  arrow-head  might  easily  sink  to  a 
great  depth  gradually,  during  a  few  centuries. 

Another  instance  we  quote: — ''In  making  soundings  in 
the  slimy  soil  of  the  Nile  valley  two  baked  bricks  were  dis- 
covered, one  at  a  depth  of  twenty,  the  other  of  twenty-four 
yards.  If  we  estimate  the  thickness  of  the  annual  deposit 
formed  by  the  river  at  eight  inches  a  century,  we  must 
assign  to  the  first  of  these  bricks  an  age  of  12,000  years 
and  to  the  second  that  of  14,000.  By  means  of  analogous 
calculations,  Burmeister  [a  celebrated  geologist]  supposes 
seventy-two  thousand  years  to  have  elapsed  since  the  first 
appearance  of  man  upon  the  soil  of  Egypt ;  and  Draper 
[another  noted  geologist]  attributes  to  the  European  man 
who  witnessed  the  last  glacial  epoch  an  antiquity  of  more 
than  250,000  years."  * 

Of  course  ^^  if  we  estimate^ ^  just  as  these ^r<f^/ men  do, 
we  should  reach  the  same  great  conclusions.  But  some  of 
us  are  unscientific  enough  to  inquire,  whether  it  is  not  more 
than  probable  that  the  slime  deposits  of  the  Nile  river  have 
been  very  irregular,  as  of  other  rivers,  which  sometimes  shift 

^  fyof.  N.  Joly,  in  '.'■  M^-n  Before  Metals,"  page  183. 


Bible  Chronolo^t  35 

their  beds  and  wash  away  their  banks  wonderfully  in  a  single 
freshet:.  Again,  we  remember  the  Flood  of  Noah's  day,  not 
only  particularly  mentioned  in  the  Bible,  but  preserved  in 
the  oldest  traditions  of  the  heathen  nations,  and  we  won- 
der how  much  slime  and  debris  that  caused,  over  and 
above  the  eight  inches  a  century.  We  wonder,  too,  why  it 
has  not  occurred  to  these  ^r<?^/ minds,  as  it  naturally  does  to 
some  not  too  great,  that  two  bricks  thrown  into  that  ^^  slimy 
soil,"  at  a  time  when  it  was  covered  with  water  and  very 
soft,  would  sink  quite  a  distance  by  their  own  weight,  being 
so  much  more  dense  than  the  slimy  soil.  As  for  the  differ- 
ence in  depth  of  the  two  bricks,  it  would  seem  to  an  un- 
scientific mind  much  more  reasonable  to  suppose  that  the 
one  fell  into  the  slime  edge-wise  or  end-wise,  while  the  other, 
falling  flat,  would  sink  more  slowly,  than  to  suppose  that 
men  living  two  thousand  years  apart  made  two  bricks 
exa6tly  alike. 

It  is  not  many  years  since  the  skeleton  of  a  man  was  found 
in  a  former  bed  of  the  Mississippi  river,  and  some  geolo- 
gists began  to  calculate  how  many  thousands  of  years  might 
be  indicated  by  the  many  feet  of  silt,  slime,  etc. ,  covering 
the  skeleton,  and  fancied  they  had  a  very  valuable  sample 
of  pre-historic  man.  But  finding  later,  several  feet  below 
the  skeleton,  parts  of  a  *^flat  boat,"  such  as  was  in  use  on 
the  Mississippi  less  than  fifty  years  ago,  it  completely  upset 
the  calculations,  and  relieved  mankind  of  another /r^^/" 
that  the  world  is  hundreds  of  thousands  of  years  older  than 
the  Bible  teaches. 

Leaving  the  discordant  and  wholly  unreliable  guessing  of 
some  geologists  on  this  subje(5l  of  chronology,  we  appeal  to 
human  history  for  information.  And  what  do  we  find? — 
The  history  of  the  oldest  of  the  Gentile  nations  can  be 
traced  back  clearly  and  distindlly  less  than  three  thousand 
years.     Back  of  that  all  is  dark,  uncertain,  mythical,  fab- 


36  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

iilous,  and  untrustworthy  tradition.  Roman  history  does 
not  extend  so  far  back,  as  it  is  only  twenty-seven  hundred 
years  since  Rome  was  founded,  and  then  its  first  centuries 
are  wrapped  in  uncertain  tradition.  Three  thousand  years 
back  in  the  Babylonian,  Syrian,  and  Egyptian  histories 
brings  us  to  a  period  where  their  records  are  fragmentary 
and  involved  in  great  obscurity.  In  the  history  of  China, 
it  brings  us  to  the  Tchou  dynasty,  where  the  events  of 
Chinese  history  **  /^^^/;/ to  be  more  trustworthy."  In  Greece, 
noted  for  its  scholarship  in  the  past  three  thousand  years, 
with  whom  above  all  nations  we  might  expe6l  to  find  ac- 
curate history,  what  do  we  find?  We  find  its  dates  accu- 
rate for  the  last  twenty-six  hundred  years,  but  no  farther 
back.  Back  of  that,  we  come  to  what  is  known  as  the 
*' fabulous,  mythical  or  pre-historic  age"  of  Greece.  The 
only  reasonable  and  conne6led  account  of  the  first  three 
thousand  years  of  man  on  the  earth  is  found  in  the  Bible ; 
and  this  fa6l  is  surely  in  harmony  with  its  claim  to  divine 
origin,  dire6lion  and  preservation. 

As  with  history,  so  with  dates :  the  world  has,  aside  from 
the  Bible,  no  means  of  tracing  its  chronology  farther  back 
than  B.  C.  776.  On  this  subje6l  we  quote  Prof.  Fisher,  of 
Yale  College.  He  says :  ''An  exa6l  method  of  establishing 
dates  was  slowly  reached.  The  invention  of  eras  was  in- 
dispensable to  this  end.  The  earliest  definite  time  for  the 
dating  of  events  was  established  in  Babylon — the  era  of 
Nabonassar,  747  B.  C.  The  Greeks  (from  about  300  B.  C.) 
dated  events  from  the  first  recorded  vi6lory  at  the  Olympic 
games,  776  B.  C.  These  games  occurred  every  fourth  year. 
Each  Olympiad  was  thus  a  period  of  four  years.  The 
Romans,  though  not  for  some  centuries  after  the  founding 
of  Rome,  dated  from  //^^/ event;  /.  e.,  from  753  B.  C." 

In  further  evidence  that  the  many  so-called  histories  of 
the  remote  past  so  abound  with  vagaries  and  mythical  tra- 


Bible   Chro7iology.  37 

ditions  as  to  make  them  valueless  as  to  chronological  data, 
and  wholly  unworthy  of  consideration,  we  quote  as  follows 
from  the  American  Cyclopaedia,  under  the  caption,  Chro- 
nology : — 

*'The  history  of  ancient  nations,  unless  we  make  an  ex- 
ception in  the  case  of  the  Hebrews,  goes  back  into  mythical 
periods  of  thousands  or  millions  of  years ;  and  even  after 
the  records  begin  to  assume  a  historical  aspedl,  the  discrep- 
ancies are  very  great.  .  .  .  The  Assyrian,  Babylonian  and 
Egyptian  inscriptions  are  in  extin6l  languages,  and  in 
chara6lers  long  obsolete.  .  .  .  Greek  and  Roman  dates 
are  generally  well  authenticated  to  the  first  Olympiad,  B.  C. 
776,  and  the  establishment  of  the  Consulate,  B.  C.  510, 
previous  to  which  they  are  mainly  traditional  or  legendary. 
Herodotus  is  valuable  only  as  to  events  of  his  own  time, 
about  450  B.  C,  and  those  of  a  century  or  two  earlier." 

Clinton  in  his  work  on  Grecian  Chronology  (page  283) 
says,  ''The  history  contained  in  the  Hebrew  Scriptures 
presents  a  remarkable  and  pleasing  contrast  to  the  early 
accounts  of  the  Greeks.  In  the  latter  we  trace  with  diffi- 
culty a  few  obscure  fadls  preserved  to  us  by  the  poets,  who 
transmitted,  with  all  the  embellishments  of  poetry  and  fable, 
what  they  had  received  from  oral  tradition.  In  the  annals 
of  the  Hebrew  nation,  we  have  authentic  narratives  written 
by  contemporaries  under  the  guidance  of  inspiration.  Wh^t 
they  have  delivered  to  us  comes  accordingly  under  a  double 
san6lion.  They  were  aided  by  divine  inspiration,  in  re- 
cording fa6ls  upon  which,  as  mere  human  witnesses,  their 
evidence  would  by  valid." 

The  Bible,  our  God-provided  history  of  the  first  three 
thousand  years,  is  the  only  work  in  the  world  which — begin- 
ning with  Adam,  the  first  man  mentioned  in  history,  mon- 
ument or  inscription,  whose  name,  the  time  of  his  creation 
and  death  are  recorded,  and  from  whom  his  descendants 


38  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

can  be  traced  by  name  and  age  in  successive  links  for  nearly 
four  thousand  years — furnishes  us  a  clear  and  conne(5led 
history  down  to  a  period  where  secular  history  is  well 
authenticated.  As  we  shall  see,  the  Bible  record  extends 
to  the  first  year  of  Cyrus,  B.  C.  536,  a  well  established 
and  generally  accepted  date.  There  the  thread  of  Bible 
chronology  is  dropped — at  a  point  where  secular  history  is 
reliable.  God  has  thus  provided  for  his  children  a  clear 
and  con'xie6ted  record  down  to  the  present  time.  The  Bible 
by  its  prophecies  even  supplements  history,  down  to  the 
consummation  of  "  the  restitution  of  all  things,"  in  the  end 
of  the  seventh  millennium,  whence  the  new  era  of  eternal 
blessedness  will  begin  to  date.  The  Bible  is  therefore  the 
only  record  in  the  world  which  furnishes  a  view  of  human 
history  as  a  whole.  It  carries  us  from  the  lost  paradise  of 
Genesis  to  the  restored  paradise  of  Revelation,  tracing  the 
pathway  of  humanity  into  eternity.  Taken  together,  the 
history  and  prophecy  of  the  Bible  afford  a  panoramic  view 
of  the  whole  course  of  events  from  the  creation  and  fall  of 
man  to  his  reconciliation  and  restitution.  The  Bible,  there- 
fore, is  the  chart  of  all  history.  Without  it,  as  has  been 
truly  said,  history  would  be  "like  rivers  flowing  from  un- 
known sources  to  unknown  seas;"  but  under  its  guidance 
we  may  trace  these  rivers  to  their  springs,  yea,  and  see  their 
glorious  ending  in  the  ocean  of  eternity. 

In  the  Bible  alone,  therefore,  we  may  expe6l  to  find  a 
record  which  will  order  aright  the  inharmonious  periods  and 
chronological  irregularities  which  the  annals  of  human 
history  at  first  sight  present — into  harmony  with  each  other 
and  with  the  periods  of  nature. 

In  starting  with  the  question,  How  long  is  it  since  man's 
creation?  we  should  and  do  feel  confident  that  he  who 
gave  the  prophecies,  and  said  that  in  the  time  of  the  end 
they  should  be  understood,  has  provided  in  his  Word  the  data 


Bible  Chronology,  y^ 

necessary  to  enable  us  accurately  to  locate  those  prophecies. 
However,  any  who  expe6l  to  find  these  matters  so  plainly 
stated  as  to  be  convincing  to  the  mere  surface  reader,  or  the 
insincere  skeptic,  will  be  disappointed.  God's  times  and 
seasons  are  given  in  such  a  way  as  to  be  convincing,  at  this 
time,  only  to  those  who,  by  acquaintance  with  God,  are 
able  to  recognize  his  chara6l eristic  methods.  The  evidence 
is  given  '*  that  the  man  of  God  may  be  thoroughly  fur- 
nished." (2  Tim.  3:  17.)  These  well  know  that  in  all 
the  paths  by  which  their  Father  leads  they  must  walk  by 
faith  and  not  by  sight.  To  all  who  are  prepared  to  walk 
thus,  we  expe6l  to  be  able  to  point  out,  at  every  step,  solid 
statements  of  God's  Word — a  sure  foundation  for  reason- 
able faith. 

We  will  not  here  discuss  the  merits  of  the  Septuagint  and 
Hebrew  versions  of  the  Old  Testament  Scriptures,  their 
difference  in  chronological  data,  etc.,  but  will  satisfy  our- 
selves, and  we  trust  the  reader,  with  the  statement  that  the 
former  was  a  translation  by  Egyptians,  while  the  latter  is 
the  original  Hebrew  .ecord;  wnich  fa6ls,  taken  in  con- 
ne6lion  with  the  almost  superstitious  veneration  with  which 
the  Hebrews  guarded  every  jot  and  tittle  of  those  sacred 
writings,  is  strong  evidence  of  the  reliability  of  the  Hebrew 
version.  Its  acceptance  by  scholars  is  quite  general,  and 
in  this  volume  we  follow  its  dates,  etc. 

Here  we  furnish  the  evidence  that  from  the  creation  of 
Adam  to  A.  D.  1873  was  six  thousand  years.  And  though 
the  Bible  contains  no  direct  statement  that  the  seventh 
thousand  will  be  the  epoch  of  Christ's  reign,  the  great 
Sabbath  Day  of  restitution  to  the  world,  yet  the  venerable 
tradition  is  not  without  a  reasonable  foundation.  The  law 
given  to  Israel,  the  typical  people,  appointing  that  six  days 
of  labor  and  weariness  should  be  followed  by  one  of  re- 
freshment and  rest  irom  their  own  works,  seems  fitly  to 


40  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

illustrate  the  six  thousand  years  in  which  the  whole  creation 
labors  and  groans  under  the  bondage  of  sin  and  death 
(Rom.  8  :  22)  in  a  vain  endeavor  to  extricate  itself,  and  the 
grand  Millennial  Day  in  which  the  weary  and  heavy  laden 
may  come  to  Christ  Jesus,  the  shepherd  and  bishop  of  their 
souls,  and  through  him  find  rest,  refreshment  and  restitu- 
tion— in  which,  through  the  merits  of  his  precious  blood, 
they  may  find  repentance  and  remission  of  sins.  On  the 
typical  seventh  day  he  inquired  of  the  impotent  man, 
*'  Wilt  thou  be  made  whole  ?' '  and  in  answer  to  his  faith  and 
obedience  gave  him  strength  to  take  up  his  bed  and  walk. 
(See  John  5  :  6-9;  also  Matt.  12  :  10,  13  ;  John  7  :  23;  Luke 
13  :  11-16  ;  14:  1-5  •)  So,  during  the  antitypical  Sabbath, 
the  Millennium,  it  will  be  declared  to  all  the  world  that 
^^  whosoever  wiW  may  have  life  and  health  eternal  if  he 
will  take  the  steps  of  faith  and  obedience. 

We  must  not  overlook  the  fa6l  already  noted  (Vol.  I., 
Chap.  VIII.),  that  the  term  day  is  indefinite,  and  signifies 
merely  a  period  of  time,  whether  of  long  or  of  short  duration. 
The  Apostle  Peter  intimated  that  the  seventh  thousand- 
year  period  of  the  world's  history  would  be  the  seventh  day 
in  God's  reckoning,  saying,  "  Beloved,  be  not  ignorant  of 
this  one  thing,  that  one  day  is  with,  the  Lord  as  a  thousand 
years,  and  a  thousand  years  as  one  day.  .  .  .  The  day  of 
the  Lord  will  come,"  etc. — 2  Pet.  3:8,  10. 

If,  then,  the  seventh  thousand-year  period  of  earth's  his- 
tory be  an  epoch  specially  noted  as  the  period  of  Christ's 
reign,  we  shall,  by  showing  that  it  began  in  A.  D.  1873,  ^^ 
proving  that  we  are  already  in  it.  This  calls  to  mind  what 
we  have  already  noted  in  the  preceding  volume,  that  the 
Scriptures  indicate  that  the  dawn  of  the  Millennium,  or  Day 
of  the  Lord,  will  be  dark  and  stormy,  and  full  of  trouble 
upon  the  world  and  ui)on  the  nominal  church,  though  its 
earliest  dawning  light  will  be  full  ot  comfort  and  cheer  to 


Bible   Chronology.  41 

the  saints,  who  draw  their  comfort  and  peace  from  the  hope 
set  before  them  in  the  gospel,  which,  as  an  anchor,  enters 
beyond  the  time  of  trouble,  and  fastens  in  the  precious 
promises  of  the  Millennial  sunrise  and  glory : — they  see, 
beyond  the  time  of  trouble,  the  glorious  reign  and  blessings 
promised. 

The  general  condition  of  the  world  to-day,  and  the  rapid 
development  since  1873  of  Socialism,  Nihilism  and  Com- 
munism, whose  avowed  obje6l  is  the  overturning  of  the 
powers  that  be,  and  the  redistribution  of  the  wealth  of  the 
world,  are  certainly  not  out  of  harmony  with  what  we  should 
expe6l,  however  much,  in  some  respedts,  these  things  may 
be  deprecated  by  those  who  love  law  and  order  and  peace. 
Only  those  who  see  that  the  coming  anarchy  and  trouble 
are  God's  agencies  for  the  establishment  of  a  yet  more 
complete  law  and  order,  and  a  more  lasting  peace,  will  be 
relieved  from  overwhelming  fear  as  they  pass  through  it. 

Nor  is  this  pointing  out  of  the  seventh  epoch,  or  Millen- 
nium, the  only  value  of  chronology ;  for  while  we  shall 
present  several  lines  of  prophecy  entirely  independent  of 
chronology,  it  is  the  measure  by  which  several  lines  of 
prophecy  are  established.  The  perfecft  agreement  between 
these  two  classes  of  prophetic  teaching,  some  dependent  on, 
and  some  independent  of,  chronology,  is  very  strong  proof, 
not  only  of  the  corre6lness  of  those  applications,  but  also  of 
the  correctness  of  the  chronology  which  shows  this  har- 
mony ;  on  the  same  principle  that  a  key  which  will  unlock 
a  treasure-casket  difficult  to  open  is  evidently  the  true  key. 
The  chronology  given  below  harmonizes  the  various  pro- 
phetic statements  relating  to  Christ's  Kingdom  and  its  es- 
tablishment, by  showing  their  relative  order  and  time. 
Chronology  is  the  stem  or  handle  by  which  all  the  prophetic 
time-proofs,  as  notches  or  wards  of  the  key,  are  held  together 
and  operated. 


42  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

A    CONDENSED   STATEMENT  OF  CHRONOLOGY 
TO  THE  YEAR  A.   M.   6000. 


The  following  condensed  statement  of  chronological 
periods  may  properly  be  termed  Bible  chronology,  because 
the  Bible  record  alone  is  followed  down  to  the  first  year  of 
Cyrus,  B.  C.  536,  a  date  well  authenticated  and  generally 
accepted  by  scholars.  Here  the  thread  of  Bible  chronology 
ends — a  little  beyond  the  period  where  secular  history  be- 
gins to  be  reliable.  This,  in  itself,  is  a  marked  evidence  of 
divine  direcSlion  and  oversight,  in  helping  us  only  where 
we  are  unable  to  help  ourselves. 

FROM    THE    CREATION    OF    ADAM 

To  the  end  of  the  flood      .         .         .         .1656  years. 

Thence  to  the  covenant  with  Abraham    .         -427  " 

Thence  to  the  Exodus  and  the  giving  of  the  Law  430  *' 

Thence  to  the  division  of  Canaan       .  .  46  " 

The  period  of  the  Judges        ....     450  '' 

The  period  of  the  Kings    .  .  .  .         513  '' 

The  period  of  the  desolation  .         .         .       70  " 

Thence  to  A.  D.  i      .         .         .  .         .         536  '' 

Thence  to  A.  D.  1873 1872  '' 


Total  ....        6000     '' 

As  we  consider  particularly  each  of  these  periods,  let 
the  reader  figure  it  out  for  himself,  and  see  how  firm 
a  foundation  for  our  faith  is  laid  in  God's  Word.  Two 
breaks  in  the  historic  narrative  of  the  Old  Testament  we 
shall  find,  yet  when  we  discover  that  in  the  New  Testament 
God  has  provided  bridges  to  span  these  two  chasms,  it 
should  increase  our  confidence  that  God  so  arranged  the 
record  as  to  hide  his  times  and  seasons,  until  his  due  time 


Bible  Chronology.  43 

for  revealing  them  had  come — ^just  as  he  has  done  with  other 
truths  already  noticed. 

We  will  now  examine  the  foregoing  periods  separately, 
and  in  their  order  as  named  above,  down  to  the  reign  of  Cyrus. 
Have  your  Bible  at  hand  and  verify  every  quotation,  that 
you  may  receive  this  as  God's  Word  and  not  as  man's. 

CHRONOLOGY   OF   THE    PERIOD    FROM    THE    CREATION   OF 
ADAM    TO    THE  DAY    THE    FLOOD    WAS    DRIED    UP. 

''Adam  lived  130  years  and  begat  a  son  and 

called  his  name  Seth." — Gen.  5:3.       .  .130  years. 

''Seth  lived    105    years    and    begat    Enos." 

— Gen.  5:6 105 

"Enos  lived  90  years,  and  begat  Cainan." 

—  Gen.  5:9.  .         .         .  .  .         .90 

* '  Cainan  lived  70  years  and  begat  Mahalaleel . ' ' 

— Gen.  5:12 70 

''Mahalaleel  lived  65  years  and  begat  Jared." 

—Gen.  5:  15 65 

"Jared  lived  162  years  and  begat  Enoch." 

— Gen  5 :  18.      .         .         .         .         .  .         162 

"Enoch  lived  65  years  and  begat  Methuselah." 

— Gen.  5:21.         .  .         .  .  .         -65 

"Methuselah  lived  187  yrs.  and  begat  Laraech." 

—Gen.  5:  25.  187 

"Lamech  lived  182  years  and  begat  a  son  and 

called  his  name  Noah." — Gen.  5  :  28.   ,         .182 
"  Noah  was  600  years  old  when  the  flood  of 

waters  was  upon  the  earth." — Gen.  7  :  6.  600 

Total  from  the  creation  of  Adam  to  the  day        

the  flood  was  dried  up. — Gen.  8:13.  1656  years 

Nothing  more  simple  and  exa6l  to  a  day  than  this  could 
be  asked.     Let  us  now  examine  the  next  period. 


44  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

THE  PERIOD  FROM  THE  FLOOD  TO  THE  COVENANT  WITH 
ABRAHAM,  AT  THE  DEATH  OF  TERAH,  HIS  FATHER. 

'^  Shem — begat  Arphaxad  2  years  after  the  flood." 

— Gen.  II  :  10. 

"  Arphaxad  lived  35  years  and  begat  Salah." 

— Gen.  11:12. 

''Salah   lived    30    years    and    begat  Eber." 

— Gen.  II  :  14. 

"Eber    lived    34   years   and  begat    Peleg." 

— Gen.  II  :  16. 

"Peleg    lived    30   years    and    begat    Reu." 

— Gen.  II  :  18. 

"Reu  lived   32    years    and    begat    Seriig." 

— Gen.  II  :  20. 

"  Serug  lived  30   years  and  begat  Nahor. " 

— Gen.  II  :  22. 

"Nahor  lived  29  years  and  begat  Terah." 

— Gen.  II  :  24. 

"The  days  of  Terah  were  205  yrs.  and  he  died. ' 

— Gen.  II  :  32. 

Total 

This,  too,  is  very  simple  and  exa6t.  But  the  next  period 
is  not  so  easily  traced  ;  for  the  dire6t  line  of  chronology  is 
broken,  until  after  the  exodus  of  Israel  from  Egypt.  Hence 
we  would  be  quite  unable  to  proceed,  were  it  not  that  Paul 
and  Stephen,  as  the  mouth-pieces  of  the  Spirit,  furnish  the 
connecting  link. 

THE    PERIOD    FROM    THE    COVENANT    WITH    ABRAHAM 
TO    THE    GIVING    OF    THE    LAW. 

Paul  declares  that  the  length  of  this  period  was  four 
hundred  and  thirty  years.     (Gal.  3:  17.)     The  covenant 


.        2 

years. 

35 

•   30 

34 

•30 

32 

•   30 

29 

205 

427 

years, 

Bible   Chronology.  45 

included  the  promise  of  the  land  of  Canaan  for  an  ever- 
lasting possession,  and  though  several  times  re-affirmed,  to 
Abraham,  to  Isaac  and  to  Jacob,  it  was  always  the  same 
covenant.  (See  Gen.  12  :  7,  8  ;  13  :  14-18  ;  26  :  3,  4;  35:  9- 
12;  46 :  2-4 ;  50 :  24.)  As  shown  by  a  comparison  of  Gen. 
12:  1-5,  7  and  A6ls  7:  2-5,  the  covenant  was  made  (ac- 
cording to  previous  promise)  as  soon  as  Abraham  had  fully 
complied  with  the  conditions  on  which  he  was  to  receive 
it :  that  was,  as  soon  as  he  had'entered  Canaan,  which  he  did 
immediately  after  the  decease  of  his  father,  who  died  in 
Haran,  on  the  way  to  Canaan.  Havmg  the  date  of  the 
covenant — ^just  after  Terah's  death — thus  established  by 
Stephen's  statement,  and  having  Paul's  statement,  that  the 
Law  was  four  hundred  and  thirty  years  after  the  covenant, 
the  break  in  the  Old  Testament  chronology  is  thus  bridged 
by  the  New.  But  let  us  read  the  account  carefully,  and  mark 
the  particularity  with  which  the  bridge  is  constru6led  : — 

"Now  the  Lord  i^^^ [previously,  before  he  left  Mesopo- 
tamia, or  Ur  of  the  Chaldees]  said  unto  Abraham,  Get 
thee  out  of  thy  country,  and  from  thy  kindred,  and  from 
thy  father's  house  [brethren,  etc.],  unto  a  land  that  I  will 
show  thee ;  and  [if  you  do  so]  I  will  make  of  thee  a  great 
nation,"  etc.  (Gen.  12:  i,  2.  Compare  A6ls  7:  2.)  This 
indicates  that  God  had  proposed  the  covenant  to  Abraham 
before  Terah,  his  father,  died,  and  before  he  came  to  dwell 
in  Haran  or  Charran.  But  there  was  a  stipulation  which 
demanded  Abraham's  faith  and  obedience  before  the  cov- 
enant should  be  adlually  made.  This  stipulation  was 
that  he  must  manifest  faith  in  the  promise  that  such  a  cov- 
enant would  be  made  with  him,  by  leaving  his  native  coun- 
try and  kindred  and  going  to  the  land  to  which  he  was 
directed.  This  Abraham  did,  and  as  his  wife,  his  nephew 
Lot  and  his  aged  father  shared  his  faith  and  desired  to 
share  his  fortunes  with  him,  they  were  permitted  to  do  so, 


46  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

and  the  four  started  for  the  land  of  promise.  His  father 
Terah  died  on  the  way,  in  Haran,  after  which  Abraham 
passed  over  into  Canaan,  that  there  he  might  secure  and 
bind  the  covenant.  As  Stephen  declared  to  Israel :  "When 
his  father  was  dead,  he  removed  him  into  this  land  where- 
in ye  now  dwell. "  "So  Abraham  departed  [out  of  Haran] 
as  the  Loi'd  had  spoken  unto  him. ' '  (A6ls  7:4;  Gen.  12:4.) 
And  the  covenant  was  made  just  after  he  entered  the  land. 
(See  Gen.  12  :  5-7.)  Thus  we  have  the  date  of  the  cov- 
enant, and  the  beginning  of  the  four  hundred  and  thirty 
years,  fixed  as  immediately  following  Terah' s  death,  and 
the  chain  of  chronology  complete  to  the  giving  of  the  Law. 
The  first  feature  of  the  Law  was  the  Passover,  which  was 
instituted  the  same  day  that  Israel  left  Egypt. — Exod. 
12:41-43,  47,  50^  51- 

In  harmony  with  this  we  read :  "  Now  the  sojourning  of 
the  children  of  Israel  who  dwelt  in  Egypt  was  four  hundred 
and  thirty  years  ;  and  it  came  to  pass  at  the  end  of  the  four 
hundred  and  thirty  years,  even  the  self-same  day  it  came 
to  pass,  that  all  the  hosts  of  the  Lord  went  out  from  the 
land  of  Egypt." — Exod.  12  :  40-42,  51. 

Some  may  suppose  that  the  statements  of  Moses  and  Paul 
(Exod.  1 2  :  40-42  and  Gal.  3:17)  are  not  in  harmony, 
the  one  affirming  that  the  sojourning  of  Israel  was  four 
hundred  and  thirty  years,  and  the  other,  that  from  the 
covenant  with  Abraham  to  the  giving  of  the  Law  was  four- 
hundred  and  thirty  years,  reasoning  that  if  only  four  hun- 
dred and  thirty  years  elapsed  between  Abraham's  coming 
into  Canaan  and  the  giving  of  the  Law,  the  sojourn  of  the 
children  of  Israel  in  Egypt  must  have  been  much  less. 
But  it  should  be  observed  that  the  statement  is  not  that 
Israel  sojourned  in  Egypt  four  hundred  and  thirty  years, 
but  that  the  whole  length  of  the  sojourning  of  that  people 
who  for  some  time  lived  in  Egypt  lasted  four  hundred  and 


Bible   Chronology,  47 

thirty  years  : — ''Now  the  sojourning  of  the  children  of 
Israel  who  dwelt  in  Egypt  was  four  hundred  and  thirty 
years."  The  sojourning  referred  to  began  when  Abraham 
first  came  into  Canaan.  (Heb.  11:8,  9.)  Israel  sojourned 
in  Abraham  and  in  Isaac  and  in  Jacob,  even  as  Levi  paid 
tithes  to  Melchizedec,  while  yet  in  the  loi?is  of  his  father. 
— Heb.  7  :  9,  10. 

The  covenant  with  Abraham  took  effe6t  from  the  time 
that,  leaving  Haran  or  Charran,  he  set  foot  in  Canaan,  the 
land  of  promise.  From  that  time,  he  and  all  Israel  in 
him,  yet  unborn,  became  heirs  of  the  things  promised,  and 
sojourners,  or  pilgrims,  waiting  on  God  for  the  fulfilment 
of  the  promise.  This  sojourning  had  lasted  four  hundred 
and  thirty  years,  to  a  day,  when  Israel  left  Egypt,  and  re- 
ceived that  first  feature  of  the  Law,  the  institution  of  the 
Passover.  The  statements  of  Moses  and  Paul,  therefore, 
refer  to  precisely  the  same  period,  thus  giving  most  positive 
evidence  that  from  the  covenant  with  Abraham  to  the  giving 
of  the  Law  was  four  hundred  and  thirty  years.  Paul  gave 
special  emphasis  to  the  fa6l  that  the  Passover  must  be  re- 
garded as  the  beginning  of  the  Law  (which  Moses  also  shows, 
Exod.  12  :  42,  43,  47,  50),  and  Moses  gave  special  empha- 
sis to  the  exa6lness  of  the  period,  to  a  day. 

Thus  we  have  our  third  period  clearly  established.  And 
when  we  mark  the  Lord's  particularity  to  a  day,  in  furnish- 
ing this  link  in  the  chain  of  chronology,  it  gives  us  strong 
confidence,  especially  when  we  consider  that  such  particu- 
larity was  probably  of  no  special  interest  to  the  Church  of 
the  past,  and  was  given  for  no  other  than  the  present  use. 

PERIOD    FROM    THE    EXODUS    TO    THE    DIVISION 
OF    CANAAN    AMONG    THE    TRIBES. 

Israel's  forty  years,  or  "  day  of  temptation  in  the  wilder- 
ness "   (Deut.  8:2;   Psa.  95:8-10;   Heb.  t^\Z,  9),  was 


48  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

followed  by  six  years  of  war  in  Canaan,  and  the  dividing 
of  the  land  among  the  tribes.  One  year,  one  month  and 
five  days  elapsed  from  their  going  out  of  Egypt  to  their 
leaving  Sinai  for  Paran.  (Num.  ZZ'- Z'f  10:11-13.)  And 
it  was  then,  from  Kadesh-barnea  in  the  wilderness  of  Paran, 
that  the  spies  were  sent.  (Num.  13:3-26;  32:8-13.) 
One  of  these,  Caleb,  when  applying  for  his  portion  at  the 
division  of  the  land  (Joshua  11 :  23;  10:  42),  said,  ''Forty 
years  old  was  I  when  Moses  the  servant  of  the  Lord  sent 
me  from  Kadesh-barnea  to  espy  out  the  land,  and  I  brought 
him  word  again.  .  .  .  And  now,  behold,  the  Lord  hath 
kept  me  alive,  as  he  said,  these  forty  and  Jive  years,  even 
since  the  Lord  spake  this  word  .  .  .  while  Israel  wandered 
in  the  wilderness ;  and  now,  lo,  I  am  this  day  fourscore 
and  five  years  old."  (Joshua  14:  7,  10.)  Thus  it  will  be 
seen  that  it  was  forty-five  years  from  the  spying  of  the  land 
to  its  division  among  the  tribes,  as  affirmed  by  Joshua,  and 
a  little  over  a  year  from  the  exodus  to  the  sending  of  the 
the  spies,  making  forty-six  full  years  and  a  fra^lion  *  from 
the  exodus  to  the  division  of  the  land.  As  the  first  forty 
years  of  this  period  were  passed  in  the  wilderness,  as  shown 
by  many  Scriptures,  notably  A6ls  7 :  36  and  Heb.  3 :  9,  the 
remaining  six  to  the  division  of  the  land  were  spent  in  Canaan, 
conquering  and  taking  possession  of  the  land  of  promise. 

*  We  take  account  of  only  the  complete  years,  more  accurate  account 
being  impossible.  Sometimes,  as  above,  the  years  are  fracftionally  long. 
And  again  some  are  short,  as  in  the  case  of  Zedekiah's  reign.  Zedekiah 
is  said  to  have  reigned  eleven  years  (i  Chron.  36 :  ii ;  Jer.  52  :  i) ;  yet, 
from  verses  3  to  7  of  the  latter  chapter,  it  is  clear  that  his  adlual  reign 
was  ten  years  four  months  and  nine  days.  We  believe  that  these  frac- 
tional parts  of  years  counterbalance  themselves ;  and  that  the  Lord  has 
thus  overruled  and  arranged  the  matter  is  our  confidence,  supported  by 
the  outcome  and  the  results  deducible  from  it,  and  the  accuracy  to  a  day, 
even  in  large  periods,  already  noticed.  As  illustrating  God's  care  and 
particularity  in  this  matter,  see  Gen.  7:11;  7  :  13 ;  Exod.  12  :  40,  41, 


Bible  Chronology.  49 


THE    PERIOD    OF    THE    JUDGES. 

We  come  now  to  the  most  difficult  portion  of  chronology, 
the  period  from  the  division  of  the  land  to  the  anointing 
of  Saul  as  king.  It  is  usually  termed  the  period  of  the 
Judges,  though  the  Judges  did  not  fill  the  office  continu- 
ously. The  record  given  in  the  books  of  Judges  and  i  Sam- 
uel mentions  nineteen  periods,  approximating  a  total  of 
four  hundred  and  fifty  years ;  but  they  are  disconne6led, 
broken,  lapped  and  tangled  so  much  that  we  could  arrive 
at  no  definite  conclusion  from  them,  and  should  be  obliged 
to  conclude  as  others  have  done,  that  nothing  positive  could 
be  known  on  the  subje6t,  were  it  not  that  the  New  Testa- 
ment supplies  the  deficiency.  Paul  states  that  after  God 
divided  their  land  to  them  by  lot,  "He  gave  unto  them 
Judges  about  [during]  the  space  of  four  hundred  and  fifty 
years,  until  Samuel  the  Prophet.  Afterward  they  desired  a 
king,  and  God  gave  unto  them  Saul." — A6ls  13  :  19-21. 

The  Greek  word  rendered  about  in  the  common  version 
is  hos,  and  has  the  significance  of  dui-ing,  or  while.  The 
same  writer  uses  the  word  in  three  other  places  where  the 
common  version  translates  it  ivhile,  viz. :  A6ls  i :  10  ;  10:17; 
Luke  24:  32.  This  passage  would  be  better  translated, 
''He  gare  unto  them  Judges  during  the  space  of  four  hun- 
dred and  fifty  years."  The  Syriac  reads  thus — "  And  for 
four  hundred  and  fifty  years  he  gave  them  Judges,  until 
Samuel  the  Prophet" — the  last  of  the  ''Judges." 

The  statement  ©f  the  length  of  this  period  of  the  Judges, 
by  the  Apostle,  we  accept  as  a  specially  designed  solution 
of  the  problem.  In  only  two  instances — the  four  hundred 
and  thirty  years  from  the  Covenant  to  the  Law,  and  this 
period  of  the  Judges — is  there  any  reasonable  uncertainty 
about  the  Old  Testament  chronology,  and  both  are  clearly 
stated  in  the  New.     Can  we  suppose  that  this  merely  hap- 

4 


5° 


The  Time  is  at  Hand. 


pened  so  ?  It  is  more  reasonable  to  suppose  that  God  first 
hid  the  matter,  by  leaving  the  Old  Testament  record  incom- 
plete, and  later  supplied  the  deficiency  in  the  New  Test- 
ament, so  that  in  due  time,  when  attention  should  be  called 
to  it,  those  having  sufficient  interest  to  compare  the  ac- 
counts might  find  the  missing  links  supplied  in  a  manner 
calculated  to  teach  dependence  upon  the  Great  Time-Keeper. 

THE    PERIOD    OF    THE    KINGS. 

Saul's  reign  was  in  or  during  the  space  of  forty  years 
following  the  last  Judge,  until  David  was  anointed  king, 
as  shown  above  ;  and  following  him,  the  periods  of  the  kings 
in  the  line  of  David  are  easily  traced  in  Chronicles,  thus :  — 


Saul's '^  space"      . 

.       Ads 

13:21           . 

40  years 

David      reigned 

.    I  Chron. 

29:  27     . 

.     40     " 

Solomon 

(( 

2  Chron. 

9:30          . 

40     '•' 

Rehoboam 

n 

((          a 

12: 13      . 

.    17     " 

Abijah 

''    . 

u          a 

13:  2 

3     '' 

Asa 

<  ( 

i(          ii 

16:13      . 

.  41     " 

Jehoshaphat  "    . 

((         a 

20  :  31 

.      25     - 

Tehoram 

a         a 

21  :  20    . 

.   8     '' 

Ahaziah 

a          (( 

r-^  :  2 

I     " 

Athaliah 

(I          a 

22:12  . 

.     6     " 

Jehoash 

((          li 

24:  I 

40     •'' 

Amaziah 

a          a 

25:  I     • 

.  29     '' 

Uzziah 

((          i( 

26:3 

52     '' 

Jotham 

a         a 

27:  I      . 

.    16     '' 

Ahaz 

(c          a 

28:  I 

16     " 

Hezekiah 

( i          a 

29:  I     . 

.    29     " 

Manasseh 

li          li 

33-  I 

55     " 

Anion 

11          11 

33'  21  . 

2     " 

Josiah 

,       a          li 

34:  I 

31     '' 

Jehoiakim 

t(          a 

36:5    . 

.  II     " 

Zedekiah 

ti         if 

36 :  II 

II     *' 

Total 


513  years. 


Bible  Chronology.  51 

THE   SEVENTY    YEARS    OF    DESOLATION. 

This  brings  us  to  the  period  of  the  desolation  of  the  land, 
which  lasted  seventy  years,  and  v/as  ended  by  the  restora- 
tion of  its  people  from  Babylon,  in  the  first  year  of  Cyrus, 
B.  C.  536  (See  2  Chron.  36:  20,  23),  a  date  well  estab- 
lished in  secular  history,  and  beyond  which  the  line  of 
Bible  chronology  does  not  extend. 

PERIOD    FROM    THE    RESTORATION    TO    A.    D.     1 873. 

The  period  from  the  time  of  the  restoration  of  the  Jews 
from  Babylon,  at  the  close  of  the  seventy  years  desolation 
of  their  land,  in  the  first  year  of  Cyrus,  down  to  the  date 
known  as  A.  D.  i,  is  not  covered  by  Bible  history.  But, 
as  before  stated,  it  is  w^ll  established  by  secular  history 
as  a  period  of  536  years.  Ptolemy,  a  learned  Greek-Egypt- 
ian, a  geometer  and  astronomer,  has  well  established  these 
figures.  They  are  generally  accepted  by  scholars,  and 
known  as  Ptolemy's  Canon. 

Thus  we  have  found  a  clear  and  conne6led  line  of  chro- 
nology from  creation  to  the  beginning  of  the  Christian  era ' 
(A.  D.) — in  all,  a  period  of  four  thousand  one  hundred  and 
twenty-eight  (4128)  years,  which,  together  with  eighteen 
hundred  and  seventy-two  years  of  the  Christian  era,  make 
six  thousand  years  from  creation  to  the  year  1873  ^-  •^• 

THIS    AND    usher's    CHRONOLOGY    COMPARED. 

It  will  be  interesting  to  some  to  know  v/herein  the  above 
chronology  differs  from  that  inserted  in  the  margin  of  the 
common  version  of  the  Bible,  known  as  Usher's  Chronolo- 
gy. The  difference  between  the  two,  down  to  the  time  of 
the  seventy  years  of  desolation,  is  one  hundred  and  twenty- 
four  (124)  years.  This  difference  is  made  up  of  four  peri- 
ods of  18,  4;  2  and  100  years — as  follows; 


52  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

Usher  dates  the  seventy  years  desolation  eighteen  years 
earher  than  shown  above — /.  e.,  before  the  dethronement 
of  Zedekiah,  Judah's  last  king — because  the  king  of  Baby- 
lon took  many  of  the  people  captive  at  that  time.  (2  Chron. 
36:9,  10,  17,  21;  2  Kings  24:  8-16.)  He  evidently  makes 
the  not  uncommon  mistake  of  regarding  those  seventy 
years  as  the  period  of  captivity,  whereas  the  Lord  expressly 
declares  them  to  be  seventy  years  of  desolation  of  the  land, 
that  the  land  should  lie  *' desolate,  without  an  inhabitant." 
Such  was  not  the  case  prior  to  Zedekiah's  dethronement. 
(2  Kings  24:14.)  But  the  desolation  which  followed  Zed- 
ekiah's overthrow  was  complete;  for,  though  some  of  the 
poor  of  the  land  were  left  to  be  vine-dressers  and  husband- 
men (2  Kings  25:12),  shortly  even  these — "all  people, 
buth  small  and  great" — fled  to  Egypt  for  fear  of  the  Chal- 
dees.  (Verse  26.)  There  can  be  no  doubt  here;  and  therefore 
in  reckoning  the  time  to  the  desolation  of  the  land,  all  pe- 
riods up  to  the  close  of  Zedekiah's  reign  should  be  counted 
in,  as  we  have  done. 

The  four  yea^-s  difference  is  in  the  reign  of  Jehoram. 
Usher  gives  it  as  a  reign  of  four  years,  while  the  Bible  says 
it  was  eight  years. — 2  Chron.  21 :5;   2  Kings  8:17. 

Of  the  two  years  difference,  one  year  is  found  in  the 
term  of  the  reign  of  Ahaz,  which  Usher  gives  as  fifteen, 
while  the  Bible  says  it  was  sixteen  years.  (2  Chron.  28:1; 
2  Kings  16:2.)  And  the  other  is  in  the  term  of  Jehoash, 
which  Usher  reckons  as  thirty-nine,  while  the  Bible  gives  it 
as  forty  years. — 2  Kings  12:1;   2  Chron.  24:  i. 

These  differences  can  be  accounted  for  only  by  supposing 
that  Usher  followed,  or  attempted  to  follow,  Josephus,  a 
Jewish  historian  whose  chronological  dates  are  now  gener- 
ally recognized  as  reckless  and  faulty.  We  rely  on  the 
Bible  alone,  believing  that  God  is  his  own  interpreter. 

Aside  from  these  twenty-four  years  difference  in  the  period 


Bible  Chronology.  53 

of  the  Kings,  there  is  another  variance  between  the  above 
Bible  chronology  and  that  of  Usher,  namely,  ofie  hun- 
dred years  in  the  period  of  the  Judges.  Here  Usher  is 
misled  by  the  evident  error  of  i  Kings  6:1,  which  says 
that  the  fourth  year  of  Solomon's  reign  was  the  four-hun- 
dred-and-eightieth  year  from  the  coming  out  of  Egypt.  It 
evidently  should  read  the  five-hundred-and-eightieth  year, 
and  was  possibly  an  error  in  transcribing ;  for  if  to  Solo- 
mon's four  years  we  add  David's  forty,  and  Saul's  space 
of  forty,  and  the  forty-six  years  from  leaving  Egypt  to  the 
division  of  the  land,  we  have  one  hundred  and  thirty  years, 
which  dedu6led  from  four  hundred  and  eighty  would  leave 
only  three  hundred  and  fifty  years  for  the  period  of  the 
Judges,  instead  of  the  four  hundred  and  fifty  years  men- 
tioned in  the  Book  of  Judges,  and  by  Paul,  as  heretofore 
shown.  The  Hebrew  chara6ler  '^  daleth^'  (4)  very  much 
resembles  the  chara6ter  ''  hay''  (5),  and  it  is  supposed  that 
in  this  way  the  error  has  occurred,  possibly  the  mistake  of 
a  transcriber.  1.  Kings  6:  i,  then,  should  rQ2id  five  hun- 
dred and  eighty,  and  thus  be  in  perfe6l  harmony  with 
the  other  statements. 

Thus  the  Word  of  God  corre6ls  the  few  slight  errors 
which  have  crept  into  it  by  any  means.  ^  And  remember 
that  those  breaks  occur  in  the  period  bridged  effectually  by 
the  inspired  testimony  of  the  New  Testament. 

So,  then,  whereas  Usher  dates  A.  D.  i  as  the  year  4005 
from  the  creation  of  Adam,  it  really  was,  as  we  have  shown, 
the  year  4129,  according  to  the  Bible  record,  thus  showing 

*  A  similar  discrepancy  will  be  noticed  in  comparing  2  Chron.  36 :  9 
with  2  Kings  24  :  8,  the  one  giving  eighteen  years  and  the  other,  evidently 
incorrect,  giving  eight  years  as  the  age  of  Jehoiachin,  who  reigned  three 
months,  and  did  evil  in  the  sight  of  the  Lord,  and  was  punished  by  cap- 
tivity, etc.  Such  a  mistake  could  easily  occur,  but  God  has  so  guarded 
his  Word  that  the  few  trivial  errors  of  copyists  are  made  very  manifest, 
and  the  full  harmony  of  his  Word  gives  ample  foundation  for  faith. 


54  T^^^   Time  is  at  Hand. 

the  year  1872  A.  D.  to  be  the  year  of  the  world  6000,  and 
1873  ^-  ^-  ^^^^  commencement  of  the  seventh  thousand- 
year  period,  the  seventh  millennium,  or  thousand-year  day 
of  earth's  history. 

Thus  chronology  as  gathered  from  the  Bible  alone,  from 
creation  down  to  well  authenticated  secular  history,  is  clear 
and  strong,  bearing  evidence,  too,  of  the  peculiar  methods 
of  divine  providence  in  its  record,  in  its  concealing  and  in 
its  gradual  unfolding  in  due  time.  And  this,  together  with 
the  reliable  dates  of  the  Christian  era  and  the  several  cen- 
turies before  it  at  hand,  enables  us  to  locate  ourselves  ac- 
curately on  the  stream  of  time.  And  we  begin  hopefully 
to  lift  up  our  heads  and  rejoice,  as  we  realize  that  we  are 
actually  sweeping  into  the  glorious  age  of  the  seventh  mil- 
lennium— even  though  we  recognize  that  its  beginning  is 
to  be  dark  and  full  of  trouble,  as  foretold  by  the  prophets, 
and  that  the  storm-clouds  are  already  gathering  and  grow- 
ing darker. 

THE  DATE  OF  OUR  LORD'S  BIRTH. 

In  the  sixth  century  the  Church  began  to  reckon  time 
form  the  birth  of  our  Lord,  and  fixed  the  date  A.  D.  as  it 
now  stands;  viz.,  536  years  after  the  first  year  of  Cyrus, 
king  of  Persia.*  Whether  they  placed  it  corre6lly  or  not 
does  not  affe6l  the  chronology  as  just  given,  whicji  shows 
that  the  six  thousand  years  from  the  creation  of  Adam  ended 
with  A.  D.  1872;  because  it  is  eighteen  hundred  and  seven- 
ty-two years  since  the  year  designated  A.  D.,  and  the  first 
year  of  Cyrus  was  five  hundred  and  thirty-six  years  before 
that  year  (A.  D.),  whether  it  was  the  year  of  our  Lord's 
birth  or  not. 

*  The  year  A.  D.  was  fixed  upon  as  early  as  the  sixth  century  by 
Dionysius  Exiguus,  and  other  scholars  of  that  period,  though  it  did  not 
come  into  general  use  until  two  centuries  later. 


Date  of  fesus'  Birth.  5^ 

We  cannot,  perhaps,  explain  this  better  than  by  the 
time-worn  illustration  of  a  line  with  a  star  upon  it — thus  : 

B.  C ZI A.  D.     Let  the 

line  represent  the  six  thousand  years  of  earth's  history  from 
the  creation  of  Adam  to  1873  ^'  D-  J  ^^^  ^^^  ^he  star  rep- 
resent the  turning  point  between  B.  C.  and  A.  D.  To 
move  that  point  either  way  would  not  alter  the  length  of 
the  entire  period,  though  it  would  alter  the  names  of  the 
years.  To  move  the  A.  D.  point  backward  one  year  would 
make  the  B.  C.  period  one  year  less,  and  the  A.  D.  period 
one  year  more,  but  the  sum  of  the  B.  C.  and  A.  D.  years 
would  still  be  the  same ;  for  the  amount  taken  from  the  one 
is  always  an  addition  to  the  other.  Nevertheless,  let  us 
briefly  examine  the  date  of  our  Lord's  birth,  as  it  will  be 
found  useful  in  our  subsequent  studies. 

It  has  become  customary  among  scholars  to  concede  that 
our  commonly  accepted  A.  D.  is  incorrect  to  the  amount 
of  four  years — that  our  Lord  was  born  four  years  previous 
to  the  year  designated  A.  D.,  /.  e.,  in  the  year  B.  C.  4.  And 
this  theory  has  been  followed  by  the  publishers  of  the  com- 
mon version  of  the  Bible.  We  cannot  agree  that  B.  C.  4 
was  the  true  date  of  our  Lord's  birth.  On  the  contrary, 
we  find  that  he  was  born  only  one  year  and  three  months 
before  our  common  era,  A.  D.,  viz.,  in  Odtoberof  B.  C.  2. 

The  general  reason  with  most  of  those  who  claim  that 
A.  D.  should  have  been  placed  four  years  earlier,  to  cor- 
reaiy  mark  the  Savior's  birth,  is  a  desire  to  harmonize  it 
with  certain  statements  of  the  Jewish  historian  Josephus, 
relative  to  the  length  of  the  reign  of  Herod  the  Great. 
According  to  one  c^  his  statements,  it  would  appear  that 
Herod  died  three  yc^rs  before  the  year  reckoned  A.  D. 
If  this  were  true,  it  would  certainly  prove  that  our  Lord 
was  born  in  the  year  B.  C.  4 ;  for  it  was  this  Herod,  that 
issued  the  decree  for  the  slaying  of  the  babes  of  Bethle- 


56  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

hem,  from  whom  the  infant  Jesus  was  delivered.  (Matt. 
2  :  14-16.)  But  is  this  statement  of  Josephus  rehable?  Is 
it  true  that  Herod  died  four  years  before  the  year  A.  D.  ? 
No,  we  answer :  Josephus  alone  is  not  sufficient  authority 
for  such  a  decision,  as  he  is  known  and  admitted  to  be 
inaccurate  in  his  record  of  dates. 

But  this  notion  has  prevailed  :  the  date  B.  C.  4  has  been 
generally  accepted,  and  historical  events  and  dates  have 
been  somewhat  bent  to  fit  and  support  this  theory.  Among 
other  supposed  proofs  that  B.  C.  4  was  the  proper  date,  was 
an  eclipse  of  the  moon,  said  by  Josephus  to  have  occurred 
a  short  time  before  the  death  of  Herod.  All  that  is  known 
of  that  eclipse  is  as  follows :  Herod  had  placed  a  large 
golden  eagle  over  the  gate  of  the  Temple.  Two  notable  Jews, 
named  Matthias  and  Judas,  persuaded  some  young  men  to 
pull  it  down.  They  did  so,  were  arrested  and  executed. 
To  make  the  matter  clear,  Josephus  relates  that  there  was  at 
that  time  another  Matthias,  a  high-priest,  who  was  not  con- 
cerned in  the  sedition.  He  then  adds:  "But  Herod  de- 
prived this  Matthias  of  his  high-priesthood,  and  burnt 
the  other  Matthias  who  had  raised  the  sedition,  with  his 
companions,  alive,  and  that  very  night  there  was  an  eclipse 
of  the  moon."  This  is  recorded  as  one  of  the  last  promi- 
nent a6ts  of  Herod,  and  is  given  a  date  which  might  cor- 
respond with  B.  C.  4  by  Josephus,  who  marks  the  date  by 
the  eclipse  mentioned. 

But  since  at  times  as  many  as  four  eclipses  of  the  moon 
occur  in  one  year,  it  is  evident  that  except  under  very  pe- 
culiar circumstances  the  record  of  such  an  occurrence 
proves  nothing.  Where  the  time  of  the  night,  the  time  of 
the  year  and  the  amount  of  obscura  ion  are  all  given,  as 
has  been  done  in  several  instances,  the  record  is  of  great 
value  in  fixing  dates  ;  but  in  the  case  under  consideration, 
there  is  nothing  of  the  kind ;  hence  absolutely  nothing  is 


Date  of  Jesus'  Bi?'fh.  57 

proved  by  the  record,  so  far  as  chronology  is  concerned. 
Josephus  does  mention  a  fast,  as  having  been  kept  before 
the  event,  but  what  fast,  or  how  long  before,  is  not  stated. 

As  it  happens,  there  was  only  one  eclipse  of  the  moon  in 
B.  C.  4,  while  in  B.  C.  i  there  were  three.  The  eclipse 
of  B.  C.  4  was  only  partial  (six  digits,  or  only  one-half 
of  the  moon  being  obscured),  while  all  three  in  B.  C.  i 
were  total  eclipses — the  entire  moon  was  obscured,  and  of 
course  for  a  longer  time,  causing  the  event  to  be  much 
more  noticeable.  ;  Hence  if  the  eclipse  theory  has  any  weight 
it  certainly  is  not  in  favor  of  the  earlier  date,  B.  C.  4. 

Unfortunately,  the  time  of  Herod's  death  is  not  given  by 
a  reliable  historian.  Josephus  gives  some  important  periods 
in  his  history  and  the  dates  of  some  events,  but  these  dates 
are  not  trustworthy.  Some  of  them  would  teach  that 
Herod  died  B.  C.  4,  but  others  cannot  be  reconciled  with 
that  date.  For  instance,  his  death  is  said  to  have  been 
at  the  age  of  seventy.  He  was  made  governor  of  Galilee 
B.  C.  47,  at  which  time  Josephus  says  he  was  twenty-five 
years  of  age.  (Ant.  149:2.)  This  would  date  his  birth 
B.  C.  72  (47  plus  25).  His  death  at  seventy  would  then 
be  B.  C.  2  instead  of  B.  C.  4. 

In  this  connection  it  may  be  well  to  note  the  confli6t  of 
opinion  among  learned  men,  relative  to  the  exa6l  date  of 
Herod's  death,  that  thus  it  may  be  apparent  to  all  that  there 
is  no  well  founded  reason  for  accepting  B.  C.  4  as  the  only 
date  in  harmony  with  Matt.  2  :  14-16.  Faussetts'  Bible 
Encyclopaedia  gives  Herod's  age  when  made  governor  at 
about  twenty  years.  This  would  make  his  death,  at  seventy 
years,  A.  D.  2.  Chambers'  Cyclopaedia  and  Smith's  Bible 
Didlionary  give  his  age  at  that  time  as  fifteen  years,  which 
would  place  his  death  A.  D.  7.  Appleton's  Cyclopaedia, 
article  Chronology,  says:  ''Josephus  also  gives  dates,  but 
he  is  altogether  too  careless  to  be  taken  into  account." 


58  TJlc  Time  is  at  Hand. 

We  now  proceed  to  offer  the  Scriptural  evidence  relating 
to  this  subject,  which  more  nearly  agrees  with  the  common 
era,  and  shows  that  our  Lord's  birth  occurred  only  one  year 
and  three  months  prior  to  January,  A.  D.  i .  It  is  as  follows : — 

Our  Lord's  ministry  lasted  three  and  a  half  years.  The 
sixty-nine  symbolic  weeks  of  years  (Dan.  9  :  24-27)  reached 
to  his  baptism  and  anointing  as  Messiah,  and  there  the 
last  or  seventieth  week  (seven  years)  of  Israel's  favor  be- 
gan. He  was  cut  off  [in  death]  in  the  middle  of  that  seven- 
tieth week — three  and  a  half  years  from  the  beginning  of 
his  ministry.  He  was  crucified,  we  know,  at  the  time  of 
the  Passover,  about  April  ist,  whatever  the  year.  The 
three  and  a  half  years  of  his  ministry,  which  ended  in 
April,  must  consequently  have  begun  about  06lober,  what- 
ever the  year.  And  06lober  of  some  year  must  have  been 
the  true  month  of  his  birth,  because  he  delayed  not  to  be- 
gin his  ministry  as  soon  as  he  was  thirty,  and  could  not, 
according  to  the  Law  (under  which  he  was  born  and 
which  he  obeyed),  begin  before  he  was  thirty.  As  we  read, 
*'Now  when  Jesus  began  to  be  about  thirty  years  of  age  he 
Cometh^'  etc. 

John  the  Baptist  was  six  months  older  than  our  Lord 
(Luke  I  :  26,  36),  hence  he  was  of  age  (thirty  years,  ac- 
cording to  the  Law — Num.  4:3;  Luke  3:  23,  etc.)  and 
began  to  preach  six  months  before  our  Lord  became  of 
age  and  began  his  ministry.  The  date  of  the  beginning  of 
John's  ministry  is  clearly  stated  to  have  been  the  ''  fifteenth 
year  of  the  reign  of  Tiberius  Ccesar,"  the  third  emperor  of 
Rome.  (Luke  3:1.)  This  is  a  clearly  fixed  date  of  which 
there  can  be  no  reasonable  doubt.  Tiberius  became  em- 
peror at  the  death  of  Augustus  Cssar,  in  the  year  of  Rome 
767,  which  was  the  year  A.  D.  14. 

But  those  misled  by  the  inaccurate  statements  of  Jose- 
phus  relative  to  Herod,  and  who  place  the  birth  of  Jesus 


Date  of  jesus^  Birth.  59 

at  B.  C.  4,  in  order  to  harmonize  with  him,  run  across  a 
difficulty  in  this  clearly  stated  date  given  by  Luke,  and  en- 
deavor to  make  it  also  harmonize  with  their  B.  C.  4  theory. 
To  accomplish  this  end  they  make  the  claim  that  Tiberius 
began  to  exercise  authority  some  three  or  four  years  before 
Augustus  died,  and  before  he  was  fully  constituted  emperor. 
They  claim  that  possibly  his  rule  might  have  been  reckoned 
from  that  date. 

But  such  suppositions  will  be  found  baseless,  by  any  who 
will  investigate  the  matter  on  the  pages  of  history.  It  is 
true  that  Tiberius  was  exalted  to  a  very  important  position 
by  Augustus,  but  it  was  not  four  years  before  Augustus' 
death,  as  their  theory  would  demand,  but  ten  years  before, 
in  A.  D.  4.  But  the  power  then  conferred  upon  him  was 
only  such  as  had  been  enjoyed  by  others  before  his  day. 
It  was  in  no  sense  of  the  word  imperial  power,  and  in  no 
sense  of  the  word  can  his  ";r?^/z"  be  said  to  have  begun 
there :  he  was  only  the  heir-apparent.  Even  in  the  most 
exaggerated  use  of  language,  his  ^^  reign  "  could  not  be  said 
to  have  commenced  before  Augustus'  death  and  his  own 
investiture  in  office  at  the  hands  of  the  Roman  Senate, 
A.  D.  14. 

History  says,  ''  The  Emperor,  whose  declining  age  needed 
an  associate,  adopted  Tiberius  A.  D.  4,  reiiewing  his  tribu- 
nian  power." — Article  Tiberius,  Rees'  Cyclopcedia. 

''  He  [Augustus]  determined  accordingly  to  devolve  upon 
him  [Tiberius]  a  share  in  the  government.  *  *  This  formal 
investiture  placed  him  on  the  same  footing  as  that  enjoyed 
by  the  veteran  Agrippa  during  his  later  years,  and  there  can 
be  no  doubt  that  it  was  universally  regarded  as  an  intro- 
du6tion  to  the  first  place  in  the  empire.  *  *  The  pro- 
gramme for  the  successio7i  was  significantly  shadowed  out : 
Tiberius  had  been  ordered  to  assume  his  place  at  the  head 
of  the  Senate,  the  people,  and  the  army."  *  *  The  adop- 


6o  The  Time  is  at  Hand, 

Hon,  which  took  place  at  the  same  time,  is  dated  June  27 
(A.  U.  C.  757) — A.  D.  4. — Merivale's  History  of  the  Ro- 
mans (Appleton's),  Vol.  IV.,  pp.  220,  221. 

Thus  there  is  conclusive  proof  that  the  first  year  of  the 
reign  of  Tiberius  Caesar  was  not  three  or  four  years  before 
Augustus  died ;  and  that  the  honors  referred  to  as  con- 
ferred during  Augustus'  reign  were  conferred  ten,  and  not 
four,  years  before  Augustus'  death,  and  then  were  in  no 
sense  imperial  honors. 

We  may,  therefore,  consider  the  date  of  Luke  3 :  i  not 
merely  the  only  one  furnished  in  the  New  Testament,  but  an 
unequivocal  one.  There  can  be  no  doubt  about  it  in  the 
minds  of  any  who  have  investigated  it.  Tiberius  began  to 
reign  in  A.  D.  14.  The  fifteenth  year  of  his  reign,  would 
therefore  be  the  year  A.  D.  29,  in  which  year,  Luke  states  (3 : 
1-3),  John  began  his  ministry.  Since  our  Lord's  thirtieth 
birthday  and  the  beginning  of  his  ministry  were  in  06to- 
ber,  and  since  John's  birthday  and  the  beginning  of  his 
ministry  were  just  six  months  earlier,  it  follows  that  John 
began  his  ministry  in  the  spring,  about  April  first — ^just  as 
soon  as  he  was  of  age ;  for  God's  plans  are  always  carried 
out  on  exa6l  time.  So,  then,  John  was  thirty  years  old  in 
A.  D.  29,  about  April  first,  consequently  he  was  born  B.  C. 
2  *,  about  April  first.  And  Jesus'  birth,  six  months  later, 
must  have  been  B.  C.  2,  about  06lober  first. 

Again,  there  is  clear,  strong  evidence  that  Jesus  was  cru- 
cified on  Friday,  April  3rd,  A.  D.  2,2>'  The  fad  that  his  cru- 
cifixion occurred  at  the  close  of  the  fourteenth  day  of  the 
month  Nisan,  and  that  this  date  rarely  falls  on  Friday,  but 
did  so  in  the  year  A.  D.  ^2i^  substantiates  that  date  so 
thoroughly  that  even  Usher,  who  adopted  B.  C.  4  as  the 

*  For  the  benefit  of  readers  not  much  accustomed  to  calculating  dates» 
we  call  attention  to  the  fa6l  that  in  the  beginning  of  the  year  A.  D.  29, 
only  28  full  years  had  elapsed :  the  twenty-ninth  was  only  beginning. 


Date  of  Jesus'  Birth.  61 

date  of  Jesus'  birth,  was  forced  to  admit  that  his  crucifixion 
was  A.  D.  yi^.  Compare  Usher's  dates  in  the  margin  of 
the  common  version  Bible  at  Luke  2:21  and  Matt.  2  :  i 
with  those  at  Matthew  27  and  Luke  23.  The  date  of  the 
crucifixion  being  A.  D.  2)Z^  it  follows  that  if  Jesus  had  been 
born  B.  C.  4,  he  would  have  been  -^^  years  old  when  he 
died  ;  and  his  ministry  from  his  thirtieth  to  his  thirty-sixth 
year  would  have  been  six  years.  But  it  is  clear  that  our 
Lord's  ministry  was  three  and  a  half  years  only.  And  this 
generally  conceded  fa6l  is  proved  by  Daniel's  prophecy 
concerning  Messiah's  cutting  off  in  the  middle  of  the 
seventieth  week  of  Israel's  favor. 

Thus,  it  is  again  proven  that  Jesus'  birth  was  about  one 
year  and  three  months  before  our  common  era,  A.  D.  i ; 
for,  his  ministry  ending  when  he  was  thirty-three  and  a 
half  years  old,  April  3d,  A.  D.  2,2)^  the  date  of  his  birth  may 
be  readily  found  by  measuring  backward  to  a  date  thirty- 
three  and  a  half  years  prior  to  April  3d,  A.  D.  2iZ'  Thirty- 
two  years  and  three  months  before  April  A.  D.  2)Z  would 
be  January  3d,  A.  D.  i,  and  one  year  and  three  months 
further  back  would  bring  us  to  Odlober  3d,  B.  C.  2,  as  the 
date  of  our  Lord's  birth  at  Bethlehem.  The  difference  be- 
tween lunar  time,  used  by  the  Jews,  and  solar  time,  now  in 
common  use,  would  be  a  few  days,  so  that  we  could  not  be 
certain  that  the  exa6l  day  might  not  be  in  September  about 
the  27th,  but  06lober  ist,  B.  C.  2,  is  about  qoxxq^.  Nine 
months  back  of  that  date  would  bring  us  to  about  Christmas 
time,  B.  C.  3,  as  the  date  at  which  our  Lord  laid  aside  the 
glory  which  he  had  with  the  Father  before  the  world  was 
[made]  and  the  taking  of  or  changing  to  human  nature  began. 
It  seems  probable  that  this  was  the  origin  of  the  celebra- 
tion of  December  25th  as  Christmas  Day.  Some  writers  on 
Church  history  claim,  even,  that  Christmas  Day  was  orig- 
inally celebrated  as  the  date  of  the  annunciation  by  Ga- 


62  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

briel  to  the  virgin  Mary.  (Luke  i  :  26.)  Certain  it  is  that 
a  midwinter  date  does  not  well  agree  with  the  declaration 
of  Scripture,  that  at  the  time  of  our  Lord's  birth  the  shep- 
herds were  in  the  fields  with  their  flocks. 

"  Lift  up  your  heads,  desponding  pilgrims; 
Give  to  the  winds  your  needless  fears ; 
He  who  has  died  on  Calvary's  mountain 
Soon  is  to  reign  a  thousand  years. 

"  A  thousand  years  !  earth's  coming  glory — 

'Tis  the  glad  day  so  long  foretold : 
'Tis  the  bright  morn  of  Zion's  glory, 
Prophets  foresaw  in  times  of  old. 

"  Tell  the  whole  world  these  blessed  tidings; 
Speak  of  the  time  of  rest  that  nears ; 
Tell  the  oppressed  of  every  nation. 
Jubilee  lasts  a  thousand  years. 

«  What  if  the  clouds  do  for  a  moment 

Hide  the  blue  sky  where  morn  appears  ? 
Scon  the  glad  sun  of  promise  given 
Rises  to  shine  a  thousand  years." 

— Bonar. 


CHAPTER  III. 

THE  FULFILMENT  OF  TIME-PROPHECY  AT 
THE  FIRST  ADVENT  OF  CHRIST. 

Dan.  9:  23-27, 

The  Seventy  Weeks  of  Daniel's  Prophecy. — Events  Foretold  to  Transpire 
Within  that  Time. — The  Time  of  Messiah's  Advent  Indicated,  and  a 
Principle  Established  by  the  Manner  in  which  It  is  Indicated. — A  Key  to 
Other  Time-Prophecies. — The  Time  of  Messiah's  Crucifixion  Indicated. 
— The  Special  Favor  to  Israel  as  a  Nation  Cut  Short  in  Righteous- 
ness, but  Continued  Individually. — Anointing  the  Most  Holy. — Trouble 
PeuRED  upon  the  Desolate  One. 

^'TTNDERSTAND  the  matter,  and  consider  the  vision. 

^  Seventy  weeks  are  determined  upon  thy  people  and 
upon  thy  holy  city,  to  finish  the  transgression,  and  to  make 
an  end  of  sins,  and  to  make  reconciliation  for  iniquity,  and 
to  bring  in  everlasting  righteousness,  and  to  seal  up  the 
vision  and  prophecy,  and  to  anoint  the  most  holy.  Know 
therefore  and  understand,  that  from  the  going  forth  of  the 
commandment  to  restore  and  to  build  Jerusalem,  unto  the 
Messiah  the  Prince,  shall  be  seven  weeks,  and  threescore 
and  two  weeks  [7  and  60  and  2  r=  69  weeks] :  the  street 
shall  be  built  again,  and  the  wall,  even  in  troublous  times. 

''And  after  threescore  and  two  weeks  shall  Messiah  be 
cut  off,  but  not  for  himself.  (And  the  people  of  the  prince 
that  shall  come  [the  Roman  prince — Titus'  army]  shall  de- 
stroy the  city  and  the  san6luary ;  and  the  end  thereof  shall 
be  with  a  flood,  and  unto  the  end  of  the  war  desolations 
are  determined.)  And  he  [Messiah]  shall  confirm  the  cov- 
enant with  many  for  one  week  [the  seventieth,  or  last  week 
of  the  covenant  of  favor].     And  in  the  midst  of  the  week 

63 


64  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

he  shall  cause  the  sacrifice  and  the  oblation  to  cease,  and 
for  [or  because  of]  the  overspreading  of  abominations,  he 
[Messiah]  shall  make  it  desolate — even  until  the  consum- 
mation [or  completion]  and  that  [which  is]  determined 
[in  God's  plan]  shall  be  poured  upon  the  desolate"  [peo- 
ple— represented  by  Jerusalem]. — Dan.  9  :  23-27. 

While  this  prophecy  marks  the  beginning  of  the  '^har- 
vest "  of  the  Jewish  age  and  our  Lord's  presence  there  as 
the  chief  reaper,  there  are  several  prophecies  which  much 
more  clearly  mark  the  beginning  of  the  "  harvest  "  of  the 
Gospel  age,  in  which  also  our  Lord  is,  at  his  second  advent, 
to  be  the  chief  reaper.  The  fulfilment  of  this  prophecy 
illustrates  prophetic  fulfilments  in  general,  as  well  as  estab- 
lishes a  point  marked  in  another  prophecy,  yet  to  be  shown. 

While  many  prophecies  combine  to  fix  and  confirm  the 
date  of  the  second  coming  of  Christ,  this  one  alone  marked 
the  date  of  the  first  advent.  If  its  fulfilment  is  clearly 
established,  it  will  aid  us  in  calculating  and  judging  of  those 
relating  to  the  second  advent.  For  this  reason  we  here 
give  place  to  this  fulfilled  prophecy,  as  well  as  because  some 
of  the  dates  established  in  this  will  be  needful  to  be  under- 
stood in  conne6lion  with  prophecies  relating  to  the  second 
advent,  considered  farther  along. 

Daniel  had  been  shown  many  visions,  as  recorded  in 
chapters  2,  4,  7  and  8  of  his  prophecy,  all  of  which  showed 
great  prosperity  and  exaltation  to  heathen  or  gentile  king- 
doms ;  but  his  special  interest  was  in  Israel,  and  he  had  not 
been  informed  concerning  Israel's  future.  He  knew,  how- 
ever, from  Jeremiah's  prophecy  (Jer.  29:10;  2  Chron. 
'Tjb :  20-23),  that  the  desolation  of  Judea  would  continue 
seventy  years ;  and  knowing  that  period  to  be  nearly  com- 
plete (Dan.  9 :  2),  he  prayed  earnestly  for  the  return  of  God's 
favor  to  Israel  (verses  17-19),  and  the  foregoing  was  God's 
answer  to  him  through  an  angel. 


The  First  Advent.  65 

The  marked  off  Q'  cut  off,"  or  '•'  determined  ")  period  of 
Israel's  history  here  shown  is  '•'■seventy  weeks  ' '  from  a  given 
starting  point — viz.,  from  the  going  forth  of  a  decree  '^o 
restore  and  to  build  Jerusalem."  (Mark  !  not  the  Temple.) 
During  the  period  great  things  were  to  be  accomplished : — 
The  city  would  be  rebuilt  under  unfavorable  circumstances 
(Neh.  4),  in  troublous  times ;  sin  would  be  finished  by  a 
reconciliation  being  made  for  iniquity ;  and  righteousness 
(justification)  would  be  established — not  like  that  accom- 
plished year  by  year  with  the  blood  of  bulls  and  goats,  but 
the  true  and  *' everlasting  righteousness,  "  brought  about 
by  the  sacrifice  of  Christ.  Daniel  was  also  informed  that 
he  who  would  introduce  the  better  sacrifice  would  thereby 
cause  the  typical  sacrifices  and  oblations  of  the  Law  to  cease. 

In  this  period,  Messiah,  the  long-looked-for  Saviour  of 
Israel,  would  come,  and  seven  weeks  and  threescore  and 
two  weeks,  or  sixty-nine  weeks,  are  stated  as  the  measure 
of  the  time  to  Messiah's  presence.  And  after  that  he  would 
be  cut  off,  but  not  for  himself.  There  would  therefore 
remain,  after  Messiah's  coming,  one  week,  the  last,  the 
seventieth  of  this  promised  favor;  and  in  the  midst  or 
middle  of  that  week  it  was  foretold  that  he  would  cause 
the  typical  sacrifices  to  cease,  by  making  *Miis  soul  an 
offering  for  sin." — Isa.  53  :  10-12. 

These  seventy  weeks,  or  four  hundred  and  ninety  days, 
represented  four  hundred  and  ninety  years,  each  symbolic 
day  representing  a  year.  And  being  so  fulfilled  in  this, 
the  only  time-prophecy  directly  relating  to  the  first  advent, 
it  furnishes  a  key  to  some  other  prophecies  which  will  here- 
after be  shown  to  have  been  thus  hidden  in  symbolic  num- 
bers— a  day  for  a  year — until  their  due  time  had  come  for 
solution.  This  prophecy  was  so  worded  that  Daniel  and 
other  Jews  might,  if  they  chose,  think  it  incredible,  and 
in  time  forget  it ;  or  it  might  be  remeinbered  by  those  who 

S 


66  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

'^waited  for  the  consolation  of  Israel,"  and  who  might 
infer  the  time  to  be  symbolic,  as  in  the  case  of  Ezekiel. 
(Chap.  4:  6.)  Certain  it  is  that  faithful  ones  knew  to  ex- 
pe6l  Messiah;  and  it  is  even  written  that  all  men  were  in 
expe6lation  of  him  (Luke  3  :  15),  even  if  they  were  not  all 
able  to  receive  him  in  the  way  he  came. 

It  should  be  noticed  that  the  sixty-nine  symbolic  weeks, 
or  four  hundred  and  eighty-three  years,  reach  unto  Messiah 
the  Prince,  and  not  to  the  birth  of  Jesus  in  Bethlehem. 
The  Hebrew  word  Messiah,  corresponding  to  the  Greek  word 
Christ,  signifies  The  Anointed,  and  is  a  title  rather  than 
a  name.  Jesus  was  not  the  Anointed,  the  Messiah,  the 
Christ,  until  after  his  baptism.  Compare  A6ts  10  :  37,  38 
and  Matt.  3:  16.  He  was  anonited  with  the  holy  Spirit 
immediately  on  coming  out  of  the  water.  This  was  when 
he  had  attained  manhood's  estate,  which  was  at  thirty  years 
according  to  the  Law,  under  which  he  was  born,  and  to 
which  he  and  every  Jew  was  subje(5l  until  he  ended  its 
dominion  by  fulfilling  its  conditions — ''nailing  it  to  his 
cross."  Therefore  the  sixty-nine  weeks  of  this  prophecy 
reach  to  the  time  of  his  baptism  and  anointing,  from  which 
time,  and  not  before,  he  was  the  Messiah,  the  Christ,  the 
Anointed.  Hence  the  sixty-nine  weeks,  or  four  hundred 
and  eighty-three  years,  ended  in  the  autumn  of  A.  D.  29. 
And  there  that  portion  of  the  prophecy  was  fulfilled  which 
says:  ''From  the  going  forth  of  the  commandment  to  re- 
store and  to  build  Jerusalem  (Dan.  9 :  25),  unto  Messiah 
[the  Anointed]  the  Prince,  shall  be  seven  weeks  and  three- 
score and  two  [sixty-nine]  weeks. ' '  Beginning  there,  we  find 
the  seventieth  week  fulfilled  like  the  rest — a  year  for  a  day. 

Most  writers  on  this  subje6l  have  commenced  to  count 
this  period  from  the  seventh  year  of  Artaxerxes,  when  a 
commission  was  given  to  Ezra  (Ezra  7  :  7-14),  supposed  to 
be  the  enforcement  of  the  decree  of  Cyrus.     (Ezra  1:3; 


The  First  Advent  67 

5  :  13  ;  6  :  i-i  2.)  It  should  be  noted,  however,  that  Cyrus' 
order  was  to  build  the  house  of  the  Lord — the  Temple  and 
its  court  wall.  But  there  was  another  decree  granted  to 
Nehemiah  in  the  twentieth  year  of  Artaxerxes  to  rebuild 
the  walls  of  Jerusalem,  which  at  that  time  were  still  unre- 
paired. (Neh.  2:3-8;  6  :  15  ;  7  :  I.)  And  it  is  from  this 
decree  "to  restore  and  to  build  Jerusalem"  that  this 
prophecy  of  Daniel  should  be  dated.  The  entire  account 
harmonizes  with  this,  there  being  but  one  seeming  obje6lion, 
in  a  prophecy  concerning  it  by  Isaiah,  which  had  said  of 
Cyrus,  not  only,  "  He  shall  let  go  my  captives,"  but  also, 
"  He  shall  build  my  cityV  (Isa.  45:  13.)  This  apparent 
obje6lion  we  answer  thus :  The  word  here  translated  city 
is  ir,  and  signifies  a  walled  place.  We  understand  the 
court  walls  of  the  Temple  to  be  referred  to  here ;  and  with 
this  the  fa6ts  above  referred  to  agree.  The  same  word  ir 
is  rendered  court  in  2  Kings  20  :  4. 

The  date  of  Nehemiah's  commission  is  ordinarily  stated 
to  be  B.  C.  445.  But  Dr.  Hale's  work  on  chronology 
(pages  449  and  531)  and  Dr.  Priestlie's  treatise  on  the 
'*  Harmony  of  the  Evangelists"  (pages  24-38)  show  this 
common  view  to  be  nine  years  short,  which  would  g\\& 
B.  C.  454  as  the  true  date  of  Nehemiah's  commission ;  and 
with  this  date  Daniel's  predidlion  (Chapter  9 :  25),  con- 
cerning the  decree  to  restore  and  to  build  Jerusalem,  agrees. 

Since  sixty-nine  weeks  (7  and  62),  or  four  hundred  and 
eighty-three  years,  reach  tinto  Messiah  (the  Anointed) 
the  Prince,  therefore  from  this  period  of  sixty-nine  sym- 
bolic weeks,  or  four  hundred  and  eighty-three  (483)  years, 
we  dedu(5l  four  hundred  and  fifty-four  (454)  years  B.  C.  as 
the  true  date  of  the  decree  to  restore  and  to  build  Jerusa- 
lem ;  and  the  remainder — 29  A.  D. — should  be  the  year  in 
which  the  Anointed  (Messiah)  would  be  manifested.  This 
is  in  exa6l  accord  with  what  we  have  already  shown,  viz. : 


68  The  Time  is  at  Hand, 

that  Jesus  was  baptized  by  John  and  received  the  anointing 
of  the  Spirit  A.  D.  29,  about  06tober  3d,  at  which  time 
he  was  thirty  years  of  age,  according  to  the  true  date  of 
his  birth  as  shown  in  the  preceding  chapter. 

Our  Lord's  ministry  covered  three  and  a  half  years,  end- 
ing with  his  crucifixion,  at  the  time  of  the  Passover,  in  the 
spring  of  A.  D.  2,Z-  ^"^  this  he  exa6lly  fulfilled  the  proph- 
ecy concerning  the  remaining  or  last  week  (seven  years)  of 
promised  favor,  which  says:  ^^ After  (^"j  and  62)  sixty-nine 
weeks  shall  Messiah  be  cut  oK\_Doiiay  translation,  *  ^  be  slain' '  ] 
but  not  for  himself"  * — '^  in  the  midst  of  the  week  [remain- 
ing— the  70th]  he  shall  cause  the  sacrifice  and  oblation 
to  cease." 

The  sacrifices  which  were  offered  according  to  the  Law 
there  ceased;  not  that  animals,  incense,  etc.,  were  not 
offered  thereafter  by  the  priests,  for  they  continued  to  be 
offered  year  by  year,  but  that  they  were  not  accepted  by 
Jehovah,  and  were  in  no  sense  sacrifices  for  sin.  The  true 
sacrifice  having  come,  our  Lord  Jesus  having  "put  away 
sin  by  the  sacrifice  of  himself "  (Heb.  9  :  26),  Jehovah  could 
no  longer  recognize  other  offerings  as  sacrifices,  nor  any 
necessity  for  them. 

There,  at  the  cross,  Messiah,  who  had  been  sacrificing 
himself  for  three  and  a  half  years,  finished  the  work  (John 
19:  30)  and  thus  "made  an  end  of  sin,"  made  full  and 
complete  reconciliation  toward  God  for  the  iniquity  of 
men,  thus  bringing  to  all  mankind  an  everlasting  justifica- 
tion from  sin,  instead  of  the  typical  yearly  justification,  ac- 
complished by  the  types  for  the  typical  people,  Israel.  The 
death  of  Messiah  was  also  the  '■^  seaV — the  guarantee  of 
the  fulfilment — of  all  the  visions  and  prophecies  of  coming 

*  This  expression,  "  but  not  for  himself,"  is  variously  rendered  in 
other  translations,  several  of  which  are  before  us ;  but  in  our  opinion  this. 
of  our  common  version,  is  the  clearest  and  best  rendering. 


The  First  Adve?if.  69 

blessings,  and  ''times  of  restitution  of  all  things,  which 
God  hath  spoken  by  the  mouth  of  all  his  holy  prophets 
since  the  world  began."  (A6ls  3  :  21.)  Those  promises, 
both  the  Abrahamic  Covenant  and  the  New  Covenant,  were 
sealed  or  made  sure  with  "his  own  precious  blood  "  (Luke 
22  :  20  j  I  Cor.  II  :  25),  which  speaketh  better  things  for  us 
than  the  blood  of  bulls  and  goats — even  everlasting  justi- 
fication and  putting  away  of  sin,  to  all  those  who  receive 
him.  And  in  the  remainder  or  latter  half  of  this  seven- 
tieth or  last  week  of  Jewish  favor — the  three  and  a  half 
years,  beginning  with  Pentecost — his  followers,  "the  most 
holy  "  of  that  nation,  were  anointed  with  the  holy  spirit  of 
God,  as  Messiah  had  been  at  the  close  of  thesixty-ninth  week. 

Thus  were  fulfilled  the  statements  of  verse  24  of  this 
prophecy :  "Seventy  weeks  are  determined  [set  apart]  upon 
THY  PEOPLE,  and  upon  thy  holy  city — (^)  to  finish  the 
transgression,  and  to  make  an  end  of  sins,  and  to  make 
reconciliation  for  iniquity,  and  to  bring  in  everlasting  right- 
eousness— (/^)  and  to  seal  up  the  vision  and  prophecy — 
((t)  and  to  anoint  the  most  holy."  The  prophecy  did  not 
show  that  this  entire  work  would  be  deferred  until  the  last 
"week,"  when  Messiah  would  be  present;  and  doubtless 
they  understood  it  to  imply  great  moral  reform  on  thet'r 
part  which,  would  prepare  them  for  Messiah,  and  the  anoint- 
ing under  him  of  their  nation  as  the  "most  holy  "  people, 
to  bless  the  world  in  general.  They  had  not  learned  by 
centuries  of  experience  that  they  were  powerless  to  put 
away  sin  and  make  reconciliation  for  iniquity,  and  that  it 
would  require  a  perfe6l  ransom-sacrifice  to  accomplish  this 
great  work  of  blotting  out  sin  and  justifying  the  condemned. 

On  the  other  hand,  Daniel's  prophecy,  while  showing 
that  Messiah  would  be  cut  off  [die]  in  the  midst  of  the 
last  week,  did  not  show  that  the  mass  of  his  people  would 
be  unholy  and  therefore  cast  off,  as  they  were,  in  the  midst 


70  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

of  that  week.  (Matt.  23  :38.)  Another  prophet  had  said, 
He  shall  finish  the  work  and  cut  it  short  in  righteousness 
[justly] ;  and  all  was  finished  in  the  half- week  (three  and 
a  half  years)  of  Jesus'  ministry,  except  the  anointing  of 
the  most  holy. 

But  what  of  the  balance  of  the  seventieth  week,  the 
three  and  a  half  years  of  it  which  extended  beyond  the 
cross?  Did  Jehovah  promise  to  set  aside  seventy  weeks  of 
favor  upon  Israel,  and  really  give  them  but  sixty-nine  and 
a  half?  At  first  glance  it  has  this  appearance,  especially 
when  we  recall  that  it  was  just  five  days  before  his  death 
"  in  the  midst  of  the  week  "  that  Jesus  wept  over  their  city 
and  gave  them  up,  saying,  ''Your  house  is  left  unto  you 
desolate."  But  not  so:  Jehovah  knew  the  end  from  the 
beginning;  and  when  he  promised  seventy  weeks,  he  meant 
it.  Hence  we  must  look  for  favor  upon  that  people  for 
three  and  a  half  years  after  the  crucifixion,  notwithstand- 
ing they  were  then  left  desolate  nationally. 

That  the  Israelites  as  a  nation  were  not  fit  to  be  the  re-, 
cipients  of  the  chief  or  spiritual  favor  (nor  of  the  earthly 
favor  either)  was  demonstrated  by  their  reje6tion  of  Mes- 
siah, as  God  had  foreseen  and  foretold ;  hence  it  was  profit- 
less to  them  to  continue  their  national  testing  beyond 
the  midst  of  their  seventieth  week,  and  it  was  cut  short 
there,  when  they  were  left ''  desolate  " — rejeded  from  favor. 
During  the  remaining  portion  (three  and  a  half  years)  of 
their  period,  the  favor  was  increased,  though  confined  to  the 
"remnant,"  the  most  holy,  the  purest  or  fittest,  whom 
alone  it  could  benefit.  (Isa.  10:  22,  23.  Compare  Rom. 
9:28.)  The  increase  of  favor  consisted  in  the  fa6l  that  it  gave 
to  that  remnant  three  and  a  half  years  of  exclusive  attention 
and  ministration,  under  the  increased  advantages  of  the  spirit 
dispensation,  which,  beginning  with  the  disciples  at  Pente- 
cost, reached  probably  all  the  ripe  wheat  of  that  nation,  dur- 


The  First  Advent  71 

ing  ^hat  -peAtid  of  special  favor.  See  A6ls  2  :  41  and  4  :  4 
for  the  results  of  the  first  few  days. 

It  was  for  this  reason  that,  though  Jesus  had  tasted  death 
for  all,  and  the  Gospel  was  to  be  proclaimed  to  all,  yet  his 
instrudlions  to  his  disciples  were,  that  they  l)egin  at  Jeru- 
salem. Nor  were  they  to  leave  that  special  work,  or  offer 
the  favor  of  the  new  dispensation  to  any  others,  until  the 
three  and  a  half  years  of  p?'omised  favor  to  Israel  were  ful- 
filled— until  God  specially  sent  it  to  the  Gentiles  as  well  as 
to  the  Jews. — A6ls  10. 

The  exadl  date  of  the  conversion  of  Cornelius,  chronol- 
ogers  can  only  guess  at ;  and  hence  it  is  variously  esti- 
mated as  having  occurred  from  A.  D.  37  to  40;  but  in  view 
of  this  marked  prophecy  which  we  are  now  considering,  we 
doubt  not  that  it  was  in  the  autumn  of  A.  D.  36  ;  for  there 
the  seventy  weeks,  or  four  hundred  and  ninety  years,  of 
favor  upon  Israel  ended.  Since  their  exclusive  favor  ended 
there,  most  appropriately  should  it  be  marked  by  sending 
the  gospel  to  the  Gentiles.  Israelites  were  not  deprived 
of  the  gospel  after  that,  but  were  treated  the  same  as  the 
Gentiles,  though  prejudice  no  doubt  placed  the  remainder 
in  a  less  favorable  position.  The  ''most  holy ' '  being  already 
chosen  out,  the  gospel  was  no  longer  confined  to  them  exclu- 
sively, but  was  open  to  every  creature  having  an  ear  to  hear. 

After  the  seventy  weeks  came  the  distress  and  trouble 
mentioned  in  the  latter  clauses  of  verses  26  and  27.  The 
Roman  prince  came,  and  did  destroy  the  city  and  the  Tem- 
ple, and,  like  a  flood,  he  left  behind  him  terrible  waste  and 
destru6lion.  And  Messiah,  whom  they  reje6led,  has  per- 
mitted various  evils  to  befall  that  people  since,  and  will 
continue  to  permit  them  ''until  the  consummation,"  until 
they  shall  have  had  enough,  until  he  shall  say,  "Speak  ye 
comfortably  to  Jerusalem,  and  cry  unto  her  that  her  ap- 
pointed time  is   accomplished,  that  her  iniquity  is  par- 


72  The  Time  is  at  Hand, 

doned."  (Isa.  40:  2.)  Meantime  that  that  is  determined 
shall  be  poured  upon  that  desolate  one  (or  cast  off  people) 
till  her  cup  be  full  of  sorrow — until  that  day  when  they 
shall  say,  '' Blessed  is  he  that  cometh  in  the  name  of  the 
Lord."  That  day  of  Israel's  deliverance  is  now  dawning, 
thank  God ;  and  though  their  desolation  and  distress  are 
not  yet  at  an  end,  each  hour  hastens  the  time  when  their 
prejudice-blinded  minds  shall  see  out  of  obscurity  him  whom 
they  have  pierced,  and  when  they  shall  mourn  for  him  as 
one  mourneth  for  his  only  son. — Zech.  12  :  10. 

Since  many,  in  reading  the  passage  here  examined,  have 
fallen  into  great  confusion  and  error  through  a  failure  to 
understand  rightly  the  arrangement  of  the  Prophet's  words, 
confounding  Messiah  the  Prince  with  the  Roman  prince, 
etc. ,  we  suggest  a  careful  study  of  the  passage  as  arranged 
at  the  beginning  of  this  chapter,  noting  the  parenthesis 
and  the  explanatory  remarks  in  brackets. 


CHAPTER  IV. 

THE  TIMES  OF  THE  GENTILES. 

What  ARE  Gentilh  Times? — Their  Beginning;  Their  Length;  Their  End 
A.  D.  1914. — Attendant  Events. — Events  to  Follow. — Literal  and  Sym- 
bolic Time.— A  Remarkable  Type.— Present  Indications.— God's  Kingdom 
to  Overthrow  Gentile  Rule. — Therefore  Organized  Before  It  Ends — 
Before  A.  D.  1914. — Why  Opposed  by  Gentile  Kingdoms. — How  and  Why 
All  will  Finally  Accept  it  Joyfully.— "The  Desire  of  All  Nations 
Shall  Come." 

[Since  the  topic  considered  in  this  chapter  is  very  closely  related  to 
that  of  chapter  xiii.  of  Vol.  I.,  the  reader  w^ill  be  greatly  assisted  by  a 
review  of  that  chapter  before  commencing  this.] 

'*  JERUSALEM  shall  be  trodden  down  of  the  Gentiles, 

J  until  the  times  of  the  Gentiles  be  fulfilled." — Luke 
21  :  24. 

The  term  "Times  of  the  Gentiles"  was  applied  by  our 
Lord  to  that  interval  of  earth's  history  between  the  removal 
of  the  typical  Kingdom  of  God,  the  Kingdom  of  Israel 
(Ezek.  21  :  25-27),  and  the  introdu6lion  and  establishment 
of  its  antitype,  the  true  Kingdom  of  God,  when  Christ 
comes  to  be  "glorified  in  his  saints,  and  to  be  admired 
in  all  them  that  believe  in  that  day." 

During  this  interval,  the  dominion  of  earth  was  to  be  ex- 
ercised by  Gentile  governments;  and  Israel,  both  fleshly 
and  spiritual,  have  been  and  are  to  be  subje6l  to  these  pow- 
ers until  their  time  is  expired.  While  God  does  not  ap- 
prove of  nor  commend  these  governments,  he  recognizes 
their  dominion.  In  other  words,  he  has  for  v/ise  ends  per- 
mitted their  dominion  for  an  appointed  time. 

The  dominion  of  earth  was  originally  given  to  Adam, 
to  subdue  and  possess  and  rule  it  in  righteousness.     (Gen. 

73 


74  I'he  Time  is  at  Hand. 

I  :  28.)  Adam  failed,  and  the  dominion  forfeited  by  sin 
was  taken  from  him.  Angels  were  next  permitted  to  have 
the  control.  Instead,  however,  of  lifting  up  the  fallen  race, 
some  of  them  "kept  not  their  first  estate,"  but  fell  into 
transgression.  After  the  flood,  God  declared  to  Abraham 
his  purpose  to  bring  the  needed  help  for  the  sinful,  dying 
race  through  his  posterity,  by  raising  up  from  among  them 
a  great  deliverer,  ruler  and  teacher,  saying,  "In  thy  seed 
shall  all  the  families  of  the  earth  be  blessed." 

This  was  the  earliest  suggestion  of  a  national,  universal 
dominion  over  earth.  And  this  suggestion,  coming  from 
God,  implied  a  special  fitness,  a  peculiar  superiority  of  this 
ruler  over  and  above  all  others,  and  that  it  would  be  to 
the  advantage  of  all  mankind  to  be  subje6t  to  such  a  ruler. 
That  this  promise  to  Abraham  filled  the  hearts  and  minds 
of  his  posterity,  Israel,  and  was  well  known  by  their  relatives, 
thi  Moabites  and  Edomites,  there  can  be  no  doubt.  That 
such  a  national  hope  would  become  known  to  other  nations 
is  probable;  and,  if  known,  we  cannot  doubt  that  pride 
would  beget  in  them  the  desire  to  be  the  chief  nation,  and 
to  have  universal  dominion,  as  being  in  every  way  as  able 
and  as  fit  to  rule,  and  teach,  and  thus  bless  the  nations,  as 
any  of  Abraham's  posterity. 

Israel's  hope  of  attaining  universal  dominion,  not  by 
the  choice  of  the  nations  to  have  it  so,  but  by  God's  choice 
and  power  manifested  in  their  favor,  seems  to  have  spread  to 
other  nations  also.  At  all  events,  we  find  that  these  Gentile 
kings  and  peoples  accepted  their  dominions  as  favors  from 
the  gods  whom  they  worshiped.  And  the  same  thought 
still  clings  to  every  petty  ruler  and  prince,  as  well  as  to  the 
more  powerful  kings  and  emperors.  No  matter  how  weak 
mentally  or  physically,  and  no  matter  how  vicious  and 
unfit  to  rule  either  themselves  or  others,  they  possess  to  an 
aimost  insane  degree  the  idea  that  God  specially  chose  them 


Times  of  the   Gentiles.  75 

and  their  families  to  rule  over  and  "  bless  "  (?)  all  the  earth. 
This  theory,  accepted  by  the  masses  of  the  people,  is  bla- 
zoned forth  on  medals,  coins  and  papers  of  state  in  the 
words,  "King by  the  grace  of  God." 

Thus,  while  Israel  were  waiting  and  hoping  for  the  prom- 
ised dominion  of  earth,  and  often  supposed  they  were  just 
within  reach  of  its  realization,  particularly  under  kings 
David  and  Solomon,  the  desire  for  universal  empire  became 
general  among  other  nations.  And  when  God  was  about 
to  remove  the  crown  from  Israel  until  the  true  seed  of  prom- 
ise should  come  to  take  the  dominion,  he  determined  to 
let  the  Gentile  kingdoms  take  control  and  try  the  experi- 
ment of  ruling  the  world,  that  thus  the  world  might  also 
learn  the  futility  of  its  own  efforts  at  self-government  while 
in  its  present  sinful  condition.  As  he  had  given  the  do- 
minion forfeited  by  Adam  to  the  angels,  to  demonstrate 
their  inability  to  rule  and  bless  the  world,  so  he  now  de- 
livered that  dominion  over  to  the  Gentiles,  to  let  them  try 
their  various  methods,  unaided  by  him.  These  various  ex- 
periments God  permits,  as  so  many  valuable  and  necessary 
lessons,  filling  the  intervening  time  until  the  Lord's 
Anointed,  whose  right  it  is,  shall  come  and  take  the  do- 
minion and  accomplish  all  his  gracious  purposes. 

Since  Israel  after  the  fle.sh  was  typical  of  spiritual  Israel, 
the  Gospel  Church,  which  is  also  called  in  this  higher  sense 
*' a  royal  priesthood  and  holy  nation"  (i  Pet.  2:  9),  and 
which  in  due  time  is  to  rule  and  bless  all  nations,  so  their 
kingdom  was  typical  in  some  respects  of  the  Kingdom  of 
Christ.  Consequently,  when  God's  time  came  to  turn  over 
the  dominion  of  earth  to  Gentile  rule,  it  was  appropriate 
that  he  should  first  remove  the  typical  crown  from  Israel, 
and  that  the  typical  kingdom  should  no  longer  be  recog- 
nized. This  he  did,  declaring  that  they  h.2i^  proven  them- 
selves unfit  for  exaltation  to  universal  dominion,  having 


76  The   Thue  is  at  Ha7id. 

become  corrupt,  vain  and  idolatrous,  in  proportion  as  they 
had  attained  national  distin6lion.  This  was  in  the  days  of 
King  Zedekiah ;  and  the  divine  decree  was  expressed  in  the 
words  of  the  prophet :  ''  Thus  saith  the  Lord  God,  remove 
the  diadem  and  take  off  the  crown  :  this  shall  not  be  the 
same  :  exalt  him  that  is  low  and  abase  him  that  is  high.  I 
will  overturn,  overturn,  overturn  it;  and  it  shall  be  no  more 
until  he  come  whose  right  it  is,  and  I  will  give  it  him." — 
Ezek.  21  :  24-27. 

This  overturning  of  the  crown,  or  dominion,  has  been 
accomplished.  It  was  first  turned  over  to  Babylon,  then 
to  Medo-Persia,  then  to  Grecia,  and  then  to  Rome.  The 
chara6ler  of  these  empires,  as  recorded  on  the  pages  of  his- 
tory, we  have  found  to  agree  perfe6lly  with  the  prophetic 
descriptions,  as  portrayed  in  Nebuchadnezzar's  vision  of 
the  great  image  and  in  Daniel's  vision  of  the  four  beasts. 
This  overturned  condition  of  Israel's  dominion  was  to  con- 
tinue until  Christ,  the  rightful  heir  to  the  throne  of  Israel 
and  all  the  earth,  who  purchased  it  with  his  own  precious 
blood,  would  come  and  take  control.  His,  as  we  have 
seen,  will  be  the  fifth  universal  empire  of  earth,  the  King- 
dom of  God  under  the  whole  heavens.  But  unlike  the 
preceding  four  dominions  which  were  permitted  for  an 
appointed  time,  and  therefore  recognized,  though  not  ap- 
provingly, this  one  will  be  approved  and  established  by  God, 
as  his  representative  in  the  earth.  It  will  be  God's  King- 
dom, the  Kingdom  of  Jehovah's  Anointed.  It  will  be 
established  gradually,  during  a  great  time  of  trouble  with 
which  the  Gospel  age  will  close,  and  in  the  midst  of  which 
present  dominions  shall  be  utterly  consumed,  passing  away 
amid  great  confusion. 

In  this  chapter  we  present  the  Bible  evidence  proving 
that  the  full  end  of  the  times  of  the  Gentiles,  /.  e. ,  the  full 
end  of  their  lease  of  dominion,  v/ill  be  reached  in  A.  D. 


Times  of  the  Gentiles,  7^ 

1914 ;  and  that  that  date  will  be  the  farthest  limit  of  the  rule  of 
imperfe6l  men.  And  be  it  observed,  that  if  this  is  shown  to 
be  a  fa6l  firmly  established  by  the  Scriptures,  it  will  prove : — 

Firstly,  That  at  that  date  the  Kingdom  of  God,  for  which 
our  Lord  taught  us  to  pray,  saying,  ''Thy  Kingdom  come," 
will  have  obtained  full,  universal  control,  and  that  it  will 
then  be  ''set  up,"  or  firmly  established,  in  the  earth. 

Secondly,  It  will  prove  that  he  whose  right  it  is  thus  to 
take  the  dominion  will  then  be  present  as  earth's  new 
Ruler  \  and  not  only  so,  but  it  will  also  prove  that  he  will  be 
present  for  a  considerable  period  before  that  date ;  because 
the  overthrow  of  these  Gentile  governments  is  dire6lly 
caused  by  his  dashing  them  to  pieces  as  a  potter's  vessel 
(Psa.  2:9;  Rev.  2  :  27),  and  establishing  in  their  stead  his 
own  righteous  government. 

Thirdly,  It  will  prove  that  some  time  before  the  end  of 
A.  D.  1914  the  last  member  of  the  divinely  recognized 
Church  of  Christ,  the  "royal  priesthood,"  "the  body  of 
Christ,"  will  be  glorified  with  the  Head;  because  every 
member  is  to  reign  with  Christ,  being  a  joint-heir  with  him 
of  the  Kingdom,  and  it  cannot  be  fully  '*set  up"  without 
every  member. 

Fourthly,  It  will  prove  that  from  that  time  forward  Jeru- 
salem shall  no  longer  be  trodden  down  of  the  Gentiles,  but 
shall  arise  from  the  dust  of  divine  disfavor,  to  honor ;  because 
the  "Times  of  the  Gentiles"  will  be  fulfilled  or  completed. 

Fifthly,  It  will  prove  that  by  that  date,  or  sooner,  Israel's 
blindness  will  begin  to  be  turned  away ;  because  their 
"blindness  in  part ' '  was  to  continue  only  "  until  the  fulness 
of  the  Gentiles  be  come  in  "  (Rom.  11 :  25),  or,  in  other 
words,  until  the  full  number  from  among  the  Gentiles,  who 
are  to  be  members  of  the  body  or  bride  of  Christ,  would 
be  fully  sele6led. 

Sixthly,  It  will  prove  that  the  great  "  time  of  trouble  sucL 


78  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

as  never  was  since  there  was  a  nation,"  will  reach  its  cul- 
mination and  will  end  at  that  date ;  and  then  men  will 
have  learned  to  be  still,  and  to  know  that  Jehovah  is  God 
and  that  he  will  be  exalted  in  the  earth.  (Psa.  46:  10.) 
The  condition  of  things  spoken  of  in  symbolic  language 
as  raging  waves  of  the  sea,  melting  earth,  falling  mountains 
and  burning  heavens  will  then  have  passed  away,  and  the 
*^  new  heavens  and  new  earth  "  with  their  peaceful  blessings 
will  begin  to  be  recognized  by  trouble-tossed  humanity.  But 
the  Lord's  Anointed  and  his  rightful  and  righteous  authority 
will  first  be  recognized  by  a  company  of  God's  children 
while  passing  through  the  great  tribulation — the  class  re- 
presented by  ;//  and  t  on  the  Chart  of  the  Ages  (See  also 
pages  235  to  239,  Vol.  l);  afterward,  just  at  its  close,  by 
fleshly  Israel;  and  ultimately  by  mankind  in  general. 

Seventhly,  It  will  prove  that  (^<?/i?r^//^<2/^/^/<?  God's  King- 
dom, organized  in  power,  will  be  in  the  earth  and  will 
have  smitten  and  crushed  the  Gentile  image  (Dan.  2  :  34) — 
it  will  have  consumed  the  power  of  these  kings.  Its  own 
power  and  dominion  will  be  established  as  fast  as  by  its 
varied  influences  and  agencies  it  crushes  and  scatters  the 
"powers  that  be" — civil  and  ecclesiastical — iron  and  clay. 

THE    BEGINNING    OF    GENTILE    TIMES,   6o6  B.  C. 


Our  Lord's  words,  ''  until  the  times'''^  of  the  Gentiles  be 
fulfilled^'"  imply  that  the  times  of  the  Gentiles  must  have 
a  definitely  appointed  limit;  because  an  unlimited,  indefi- 
nite period  could  not  be  said  to  hQ  fulfiiled.  So,  then. 
Gentile  rule  had  a  beginning,  will  last  iox  a  fixed  time,  and 
will  end  at  the  time  appointed. 

*  The  Greek  word  here  rendered  "times''  is  kairos,  which  signifies  a 
fixed  iifiie.  It  is  the  same  word  translated  "times  '  in  the  following  pas-- 
'sages— Mark  I  :  15;  I  Tim.  6:  15  :  Rev.  12 :  14;  Ads  3:  19;  17:26. 
The  word  "seasons"  in  A(5ls  i :  7  is  from  the  same  Greek  word. 


Times  of  the  Gentiles.  79 

The  beginning  of  these  Gentile  Times  is  clearly  located 
by  the  Scriptures.  Hence,  if  they  furnish  us  the  length  also 
of  the  fixed  period,  or  lease  of  Gentile  dominion,  we  can 
know  positively  just  when  it  will  terminate.  The  Bible 
does  furnish  this  fixed  period,  which  must  be  fulfilled ; 
but  it  was  furnished  in  such  a  way  that  it  could  not  be  un- 
derstood when  written,  nor  until  the  lapse  of  time  and  the 
events  of  history  had  shed  their  light  upon  it ;  and  even 
then,  only  by  those  who  were  watching  and  who  were  not 
overcharged  by  the  cares  of  the  world. 

The  Bible  evidence  is  clear  and  strong  that  the  *' Times 
of  the  Gentiles"  is  a  period  of  2520  years,  from  the  year 
B.  C.  606  to  and  including  A.  D.  191 4.  This  lease  of  uni- 
versal dominion  to  Gentile  governments,  as  we  have  already 
seen,  began  with  Nebuchadnezzar — not  when  his  reign  be- 
gan, but  when  the  typical  kingdom  of  the  Lord  passed 
away,  and  the  dominion  of  the  whole  world  was  left  in  the 
hands  of  the  Gentiles.  The  date  for  the  beginning  of  the 
Gentile  Times  is,  therefore,  definitely  marked  as  at  the  time 
of  the  removal  of  the  crown  of  God's  typical  kingdom, 
from  Zedekiah,  their  last  king. 

According  to  the  words  of  the  prophet  (Ezek.  21 :  25-27), 
the  crown  was  taken  from  Zedekiah;  and  Jerusalem  was 
besieged  by  Nebuchadnezzar's  army  and  laid  in  ruins,  and 
so  remained  for  seventy  years — until  the  restoration  in  the 
first  year  of  Cyrus.  (2  Chron.  36  :  21-23.)  Though  Jeru- 
salem was  then  rebuilt,  and  the  captives  returned,  Israel  has 
never  had  another  king  from  that  to  the  present  day. 
Though  restored  to  their  land  and  to  personal  liberty  by 
Cyrus,  they,  as  a  nation,  were  subject  successively  to  the 
Persians,  Grecians  and  Romans.  Under  the  yoke  of  the 
latter  they  were  living  when  our  Lord's  first  advent  occurred, 
Pilate  and  Herod  being  deputies  of  Caesar. 

With  these  fads  before  us,  we  readily  find  the  date  for 


So  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

the  beginning  of  the  Gentile  Times  of  dominion  ;  for  the 
first  year  of  the  reign  of  Cyrus  is  a  very  clearly  fixed  date 
— both  secular  and  religious  histories  with  marked  unanim- 
ity agreeing  with  Ptolemy's  Canon,  which  places  it  B.  C. 
536.  And  if  B.  C.  536  was  the  year  in  which  the  seventy 
years  of  Jerusalem's  desolation  ended  and  the  restoration 
of  the  Jews  began,  it  follows  that  their  kingdom  was  over- 
thrown just  seventy  years  before  B.  C.  536,  /.  <?.,  536  plus 
70,  or  B.  C.  606.  This  gives  us  the  date  of  the  beginning 
of  the  Times  of  the  Gentiles — B.  C.  606. 

Recognizing  God's  lease  of  power  to  these  worldly  or 
Gentile  governments,  we  know,  not  only  that  they  will  fail, 
and  be  overthrown,  and  be  succeeded  by  the  Kingdom  of 
Christ  when  their  ''times"  expire,  but  also  that  God  will 
not  take  the  dominion  from  them,  to  give  it  to  his  Anointed, 
until  that  lease  expires — ''until  the  Times  of  the  Gentiles 
be  fulfilled."  Consequently,  we  are  guarded  right  here 
against  the  false  idea  into  which  Papacy  has  led  the  world 
— that  the  Kingdom  of  God  was  set  up  at  Pentecost,  and 
more  fully  established  when,  as  it  is  claimed,  the  Roman 
empire  was  converted  to  Christianity  (to  Papacy),  and  it 
attained  both  temporal  and  spiritual  empire  in  the  world. 
We  see  from  this  prophecy  of  the  Times  of  the  Gentiles 
that  this  claim  made  by  the  church  of  Rome,  and  more  or 
less  endorsed  by  Protestants,  is  false.  We  see  that  those 
nations  which  both  Papacy  and  Protestantism  designate 
Christian  Nations,  and  whose  dominions  they  call  Christen- 
dom (/.  e.  Christ's  Kingdom),  arenot  such.  They  are  "king- 
doms of  this  world,"  and  until  their  "times"  are  fulfilled 
Christ's  Kingdom  cannot  take  the  control,  though  it  will 
be  org-anizing  and  preparing  to  do  so  in  the  few  years  which 
close  the  Gentile  Times,  while  these  kingdoms  will  be 
trembling,  disintegrating  and  falling  into  anarchy. 

During  the  Gospel  age,  the  Kingdom  of  Christ  has  existed 


Times  of  thf  Gentiles.  8i 

only  in  its  incipient  stage,  in  its  humiliation,  without 
power  or  j>rivilege  of  reigning — without  the  crown,  pos- 
sessing only  the  scepter  of  promise :  unrecognized  by  the 
world,  and  subje6t  to  the  '^  powers  that  be  " — the  Gentile 
kingdoms.  And  the  heirs  of  the  heavenly  kingdom  must 
so  continue,  until  the  time  appointed  for  them  to  reign 
together  with  Christ.  During  the  time  of  trouble,  closing 
this  age,  they  will  be  exalted  to  power,  but  their  '■'•  reign  "  of 
righteousness  over  the  world  can  date  only  from  A.  D.  1914 
— when  the  Times  of  the  Gentiles  have  expired.  Therefore  it 
is  the  duty  of  the  Church  to  await  patiently  the  appointed 
time  for  its  triumph  and  glorious  reign ;  to  keep  separate  from 
the  kingdoms  of  this  world  as  strangers,  pilgrims  and  for- 
eigners ;  and,  as  heirs  of  the  Kingdom  to  come,  to  let  their 
hopes  and  ambitions  center  in  it.  Christians  should  recog- 
nize the  true  chara6ter  of  these  kingdoms,  and,  while  they 
keep  separate  from  them,  should  render  to  them  due  respect 
and  obedience,  because  God  has  permitted  them  to  rule. 
As  Paul  teaches,  ''  Let  every  soul  be  subje6l  unto  the  higher 
powers;  for  there  is  no  power  but  of  God." — Rom.  13:  i. 

Nor  can  fleshly  Israel  come  into  their  long  promised 
inheritance  until  that  time,  though  preparatory  steps  will 
previously  be  taken ;  for  God  will  not  fully  establish  either 
the  earthly  or  the  spiritual  phase  of  his  Kingdom  until  this 
lease  to  the  Gentiles  expires. 

The  crown  (dominion)  was  removed  from  God's  people 
(both  the  spiritual  and  the  fleshly  seed)  until  the  Times  of  the 
Gentiles  shall  end — at  the  glorious  presence  of  Messiah, 
who  will  be  not  only  *'  King  of  the  Jews,"  but  "  King  over 
all  the  earth,  in  that  day."  Some  may  think  that  this  re- 
moval of  the  crown  from  Israel  was  a  violation  of  the 
promise,  *'  The  scepter  shall  not  depart  from  Judah,  nor  a 
law-giver  from  between  his  feet,  until  Shiloh  come."  (Gen. 
49 :  10.)     Note,  however,  a  distindlion  between  the  crown 

6b 


82  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

and  the  scepter ;  for,  though  the  crown  passed  away  in  the 
days  of  Zedekiah,  the  scepter,  as  we  shall  see,  did  not  depart 
until  six  hundred  and  thirty-nine  years  afterward — when  our 
Lord  Jesus,  of  the  tribe  of  Judah  and  seed  of  David  ac- 
cording to  the  flesh,  being  approved  of  God,  became  the 
rightful  and  only  heir  of  the  long-promised  scepter  of  earth. 

God's  promise  to  Abraham,  renewed  to  Isaac  and  to 
Jacob,  was  that  from  their  posterity  should  come  the  great 
deliverer  who  should  not  only  bless  and  exalt  their  family 
in  the  world,  but  who  should  *'  bless  all  the  families  of  the 
earth."  It  looked  for  a  time  as  though  Moses,  the  great 
Law-giver  and  deliverer,  was  the  one  promised  ;  but  he  pro- 
phetically declared  to  the  people,  *'A  Prophet //^^  ?/;//(?  me 
shall  the  Lord  your  God  raise  up  unto  you  of  your 
brethren,"  thus  indicating  that  he  was  but  a  type  of  him 
that  was  to  come ;  and  Moses  died.  Next,  the  promise, 
"The scepter  shall  not  depart  from  Judah,"  narrowed  down 
the  expedtation .  to  that  tribe.  And  all  the  other  tribes  in 
a  measure  clung  to  Judah  in  proportion  as  they  had  faith  in 
God's  promises,  expe6ling  a  blessing  in  conjun(5lion  with 
Judah,  in  due  time. 

When  King  David  arose  from  the  promised  tribe,  his 
vi6tories  led  to  great  expe6tations  of  an  extended  kingdom, 
whose  influence  would  spread  and  embrace  the  world,  and 
stibjeB  all  nations  to  the  Law.  And  when  Solomon's  world- 
renowned  wisdom  and  greatness  were  at  their  height,  it  surely 
looked  as  though  the  crown  oi  universal do7ninio7i  was  almost 
within  their  grasp.  The  Lord's  promise  to  David,  that  of 
the  fruit  of  his  loins  he  would  raise  up  one  to  sit  on  his 
throne  forever,  had  narrowed  down  the  promise  in  the 
tribe  of  Judah  to  one  family,  and  that  family  already  on  the 
throne  of  Israel.  And  when  the  grand  Temple  of  Solomon 
was  ere6ted,  and  its  hundreds  of  singers  and  priests  were 
an  imposing  spedacle ;  when  Solomon'?  fame  for  wisdom 


Times  of  the  Gentiles,  83 

and  riches  was  world-wide ;  when  kings  sent  him  presents 
and  desired  his  favor;  and  when  the  queen  of  Sheba  came 
with  gifts  to  see  this  most  renowned  and  wonderful  king  the 
world  had  yet  known,  no  wonder  the  Jewish  bosom  swelled 
with  hope  and  pride  as  the  long  expe6led  moment  for  the 
exaltation  of  the  seed  of  Abraham,  and  the  blessing  of  all 
nations  through  them,  seemed  just  at  hand. 

Sore  was  their  disappointment  when,  after  Solomon's 
death,  the  kingdom  was  torn,  and  finally  utterly  overturned, 
and  the  people  who  had  expe6ted  to  rule  and  bless  all  nations 
as  God's  holy  nation  were  carried  captives  to  Babylon. 
*'By  the  rivers  of  Babylon  there  we  sat  down,  yea,  we  wept 
when  we  remembered  Zion." — Psa.  137. 

But  though  the  crown  was  removed,  /.  e. ,  though  \)s\& power 
to  govern  even  themselves  was  taken  from  them,  the  right  to 
rule  (the  scepter),  conveyed  originally  in  God's  promise, 
was  not  removed.  Though  universal  dominion  was  given 
to  Nebuchadnezzar  and 'his  successors,  as  illustrated  in  the 
great  image,  and  by  the  four  great  beasts,  yet  it  was  to  con- 
tinue only  a  limited  period.  The  original  promise  to  Israel 
must  be  fulfilled — the  crown  was  removed,  but  the  scepter 
remained  until  Shiloh  came.  This  was  even  pointed  out  in 
the  decree  against  Zedekiah :  Take  off  the  crown — I  will 
overturn  it,  ////  he  come  whose  right  it  is,  and  I  will  give 
it  unto  him. 

While  the  covenant  made  with  Abraham  promised  the 
ruling  and  blessing  of  the  world  through  his  seed,  the  cov- 
enant of  the  Law  made  with  Israel,  Abraham's  children, 
limited  and  restri6ledthat  Abrahamic  Covenant,  so  that  only 
such  as  would  fully  and  perfeclly  obey  the  Law  could  claim, 
or  had  any  right  to  hope  for,  a  share  in  the  ruling  and  bless- 
ing promised  in  the  Abrahamic  Covenant.  Seeing  this  fa6l 
led  to  the  formation  of  the  se6l  of  the  Pharisees,  who  claimed 
to  fulfil  every  particular  of  the  Law  blamelessly,  and  "trusted 


84  The  Time  is  at  Hand, 

in  themselves  that  they  were  7'ighteous  and  despised  others," 
calling  others  ^'  publicans  and  sinners  "  and  themselves  the 
'*  children  of  Abraham,"  heirs  of  the  promised  dominion 
which  was  to  bless  the  world. 

The  clear,  forcible  teaching  of  our  Lord  Jesus  was  in  part 
dire6led  against  the  errors  of  the  Pharisees,  who  supposed 
that  their  careful  performance  of  some  of  the  outward  cer- 
emonies of  the  Law  was  a  full  compliance  with  its  letter 
and  spirit.  Our  Lord  taught  what  all  Christians  now  know, 
that  the  Law,  when  seen  in  its  fulness,  is  so  majestically  per- 
fe6l,  and  man  so  fallen  and  imperfe^,  and  so  beset  with 
temptations  from  without  as  well  as  by  weakness  from  within, 
that  none  of  them  could  possibly  keep  that  Law  perfe6lly 
nor  claim  the  Abrahamic  blessing.  Our  Lord's  censures  of 
Pharisaism  must  not  therefore  be  understood  as  obje6lions 
to  their  endeavor  to  keep  the  Law  blamelessly ;  nor  did  he 
blame  them  for  failing  to  keep  the  Law  fully,  which  no  im- 
perfe6l  man  can  do.  But  he  did  blame  them  for  hypocrisy, 
in  deceiving  themselves  and  others  with  a  claimed  perfe6lion 
and  holiness,  which  they  as  well  as  others  could  see  was 
merely  a  cleansing  of  the  outside,  while  their  hearts  were 
still  impure  and  unconsecrated.  He  censured  them  for 
having  a  mere  form  of  godliness,  and  a  lip  service,  while  their 
hearts  were  far  from  God.  So,  then,  as  our  Lord  and  Paul 
declare,  none  of  them  really  did  or  really  could  keep  the 
Law  perfe6lly  (John  7:  19;  Rom.  3:  20),  though  they 
might  have  come  much  nearer  to  a  perfe6l  observance  of 
its  requirements  than  they  did. 

Our  Lord  not  only  declared  in  words  the  full  import  of 
the  Law  to  be,  ^'Thou  shalt  love  the  Lord  thy  God  with 
all  thy  heart,  and  with  all  thy  mind,  and  with  all  thy  soul, 
and  with  all  thy  strength,  and  thy  neighbor  as  thyself," 
but  he  illustrated  this  in  his  full  surrender  of  himself  to 
the  will  and  plan  of  God,  in  his  avoidance  of  any  plan  and 


Iwies  of  the  Gentiles.  85 

ambition  of  his  own,  and  of  all  self-seeking — a  most  hearty 
doing  of  the  will  of  God  with  all  his  heart,  mind,  soul  and 
strength,  and  loving  his  neighbor  as  himself; — all  this  even 
unto  death. 

Thus  by  fulfilling  its  conditions — Dy  obeying  the  Law 
perfe6lly,  as  none  of  the  imperfedl  human  family  could  do — 
our  Lord  Jesus  became  heir  of  all  the  blessings  promised  in 
that  Law  Covenant  made  with  Israel  at  Mount  Sinai;  and 
thics  also  he  was  proved  to  be  the  seed  of  Abraham  to 
ivhom  the  entire  Abrahamic promise  now  applied.  Our  Lord 
thus  secured  to  himself  the  sceptre  (the  promised  right  or 
authority  of  earth's  dominion)  which  for  centuries  had 
been  promised  should  be  merited  by  and  given  to  some  one 
in  the  tribe  of  Judah  and  family  of  David.  The  great 
prize,  for  which  Israel  had  been  hoping  and  striving  and 
longing  for  centuries,  was  won  at  last  by  the  Lion  (the 
strong  one)  of  the  tribe  of  Judah.  Shiloh,  the  great  Peace- 
maker, had  come :  he  who  not  only  made  peace  between 
God  and  man  by  the  blood  of  his  cross,  when  he  redeemed 
mankind  from  the  condemnation  of  death  justly  upon  all, 
but  he  who  also,  when  he  takes  his  great  power  and  reigns 
King  of  kings  and  Lord  of  lords,  will  overthrow  all  wrong 
and  evil  and  sin,  and  establish  peace  upon  a  sure  basis  of 
holiness.     He  is  the  Prince  of  Peace. 

When  the  sceptre  (the  righf)  under  the  covenant  passed 
to  our  Lord  Jesus,  that  Law  Covenant  ended;  for  how  could 
God  continue  to  Ojfer  to  others,  on  any  conditions,  the 
prize  which  had  already  been  won  by  Shiloh  ?  Hence,  as 
the  Apostle  declares,  ''  Christ  made  an  end  of  the  Law 
[covenant],  nailing  it  to  his  cross." — Col.  2:14. 

Thus  the  ''  Prince  of  Peace  "  secured  for  his  subje6ls  both 
forgiveness  of  sins  and  restitution,  and  established  an  ever- 
lasting kingdom  on  the  basis  of  righteousness,  such  as  could  in 
no  other  way  have  been  brought  about .     Thus  was  fulfilled  the 


S6  The   Time  is  at  Band. 

predidtion,  "The  scepter  shall  not  depart  from  Judah,  nor 
a  law-giver  from  between  his  feet  [loins],  until  Shiloh 
come."  Then  it  did  depart  from  Judah,  being  given  to 
''the  Lion  [the  strong  one,  the  highly  exalted  spiritual 
creature,  the  Lord  of  glory]  f7'om  the  tribe  of  Judah," 
who  now  holds  this  scepter  [or  title  to  authority]  as  King 
of  kings  and  Lord  of  lords. 

Even  after  the  seventy  years  captivity  in  Babylon,  when 
some  returned  and  built  again  the  Temple  and  the  walls  of 
the  city,  it  was  such  as  had  respe6l  to  the  promise  of  God, 
and  who  ''waited  for  the  consolation  of  Israel."  These 
gathered  about  the  tribe  of  Judah,  remembering  God's 
promise  that  the  Lawgiver,  the  Deliverer,  the  great  Shiloh  or 
peace-maker,  should  come  in  that  tribe.  But  alas  !  when 
the  peaceful  one  who  made  peace  and  reconciliation  for 
iniquity  by  the  blood  of  his  cross  came,  they  despised  and 
reje6ted  him,  expe6ting  not  a  great  High  Priest,  but  a  great 
general. 

Shiloh  having  received  the  scepter  and  "all  power"  at 
his  resurre6lion,  because  of  his  obedience  unto  death,  will 
indeed  bless  Israel  first — but  not  fleshly  Israel,  for  they  are 
not  all  true  Israelites  who  are  called  such  according  to  the 
flesh.  (Rom.  9  :  6.)  Shiloh,  the  heir,  is  seeking  and  finding 
children  of  Abraham  according  to  the  spirit — such  as  share 
the  Abrahamic  disposition  of  faith  and  obedience,  both  from 
his  natural  posterity  and  from  among  the  Gentiles — to  be 
a  people  for  his  name.  (A6ls  15  :  14.)  And  '■^  after  this' ^ 
[after  the  gathering  of  his  ele6t  Church  is  accomplished — in 
the  harvest  or  end  of  the  Gospel  age,  at  the  close  of  the 
Gentile  Times]  he  will  turn  again  his  favor  and  will  build 
again  the  ruins  of  Israel,  and  finally  of  all  tlie  families  of 
the  earth,  upon  a  better  basis  than  has  ever  entered  into  the 
heart  of  man  to  conceive.  He  who  now  holds  the  scepter — 
"  ^Uosc  right  it  is  "  to  rule — will  at  the  expiration  of  the  Gen- 


Times  of  the  Gentiles.  S7 

tile  Times  receive  the  crown  also  ;  ''and  unto  him  shall  the 
gathering  of  the  people  be."  (Gen.  49  :  10.)  The  scepter, 
or  title  to  ''all  power  in  heaven  and  in  earth,"  was  given 
unto  him  at  his  resurre6tion,  but  he  awaits  the  Father's  ap- 
pointed time — the  limit  of  the  Gentile  Times — before  he 
will  take  his  great  power  and  begin  his  glorious  reign. — See 
Rev.  11:17,  18. 

Now  bear  in  mind  the  date  already  found  for  the  begin- 
ning of  these  Gentile  Times — viz.,  B.  C.  606 — while  we 
proceed  to  examine  the  evidence  proving  their  length  to  be 
2520  years,  ending  A.  D.  1914. 

We  must  not  expert  to  find  this  information  stated  m  so 
many  words.  Had  it  been  so  stated,  it  would  have  been 
known  before  it  was  due.  It  is  given  in  such  a  way  as  to 
conceal  it  until  "  the  time  of  the  end." — Dan.  12:4,  10. 

Our  Lord's  words,  "  Jerusalem  shall  be  trodden  down  of 
the  Gentiles  until  the  Times  of  the  Gentiles  be  fulfilled," 
not  only  suggest  a  limit  and  definite  period  of  Gentile 
domination,  but  they  also  suggest  the  thought  that  though 
spiritual  as  well  as  fleshly  Israel  has  been  subje6l  to  these  Gen- 
tile powers,  yet  these  "  times''  are  somehow  conne6ted  with 
and  measured  upon  the  earthly  city,  Jerusalem,  and  the  flesh- 
ly house  of  Israel.  And  the  thought  occurs — Can  it  be  that 
God  foretold  concerning  Israel's  history  something  which 
will  give  us  the  exa6l  measure  of  these  ^^ times''  to  which 
our  Lord  refers  ?    It  is  even  so. 

Turning  to  Leviticus  we  find  recorded  blessings  and  curs- 
ings of  an  earthly  and  temporal  charadler.  If  Israel  would 
obey  God  faithfully,  they  would  be  blessed  above  other 
nations ;  if  not,  certain  evils  would  befall  them.  The  con- 
clusion is  stated  thus:  "And  I  will  walk  among  you  and 
be  your  God,  and  ye  shall  be  my  people ;  .  .  .  but  if  ye 
will  not  hearken  unto  me,  and  will  not  do  all  these  com- 
mandments, ...  I  will  set  my  face  against  you,  and  ye 


88  The   TiTh^.r  is  at  Hand, 

shall  be  slain  before  your  cwemies ;  they  that  hate  you  shall 
reign  over  you."  "And  ye  shall  sow  your  seed  in  vain;  for 
your  enemies  shall  eat  it. "  "  ATid  if  ye  will  not  yet  for  all 
this  hearken  unto  me,  then  I  will  punish  you  seven  times 
more  \im\\iQT'\  for  yotir  sifts ^ — Lev.   26:17,   18,  24,  28. 

This  threat  of  "  seven  times^'  of  punishment  is  mentioned 
three  times.  The  various  punishments  mentioned  before 
the  ''seven  tijnes''  refer  to  the  several  captivities  to  the 
Assyrians,  Moabites,  Midianites,  Philistines,  etc.,  etc.,  dur- 
ing all  of  which  God's  care  continued  over  them.  His 
dealings  were  to  them  "line  upon  line,  precept  upon  pre- 
cept, here  a  little  and  there  a  little  ;"  yet  he  kept  hold  of 
them,  and  when  they  repented  and  cried  unto  him,  he  heard 
them  and  answered,  and  delivered  them  from  their  enemies. 
(Judges  3:9,  15.)  But  these  chastisements  having  failed, 
he  applied  the  threatened  seven  times  :  the  crown  was  per- 
manently removed,  and  Israel,  as  well  as  the  whole  world, 
was  subje6l  "'^  ■^he  beastly  powers  for  seven  tifnes.  Thus  it 
befell  them  according  to  God's  warning — "If  ye  will  not 
yet  for  all  this  [previous  chastisements]  hearken  unto  me, 
then  I  will  punish  you  seven  times.'' ^ 

The  conne6lion  in  which  the  '^ seven  times''^  (more, 
further,  or  additional)  are  threatened  indicates  that  they 
include  a  final  and  conclusive  punishment  upon  that  people 
after  the  other  chastisements  had  repeatedly  failed  to  reform 
them  permanently.  The  punishment  of  these  ''seven  ti?nes^^ 
will  have  the  designed  effed  of  thoroughly  humbling  them 
before  the  Lord,  and  thus  preparing  them  to  receive  his 
blessings.  These  seven  times  therefore  refer  to  the  length 
of  time  during  which  the  Gentiles  should  rule  over  them. 
And  to  this  period  of  "seven  times"  our  Lord  undoubtedly 
referred  when  speaking  of  "the  Titties  of  the  Gentiles." 

The  time  when  the  lesser  captivities  and  chastisements 
gave  place  to  this  final  great  national  chastisement  of  "seven 


Times  of  the  Ge7itiles.  89 

times"  was,  as  already  shown,  when  their  last  king  Zedekiah 
was  removed — since  which  there  has  been  one  long  period  of 
chastisement — the predidled  " seven  times"  or  2520  years. 

In  the  Bible  a  ^^  time^^  is  used  in  the  sense  of  a  year, 
whether  the  year  be  literal  or  symbolic ;  but  at  the  time  of  the 
utterance  of  any  prophecy,  it  could  not  be  known  whether 
the  time  referred  to  was  literal  or  symbolic.  The  prophets 
searched  diligently,  but  in  vain,  to  learn  what  time,  or 
manner  of  time  (literal  or  symbolic),  the  Spirit  did  signify, 
(i  Pet.  i:ii.)  K symbolic  YQdiX3&  used  in  prophecy  is  reck- 
oned on  the  basis  of  a  lunar  year — twelve  months  of  thirty 
days  each,  or  three  hundred  and  sixty  days — each  day  repre- 
senting a  year.  Consequently,  a  "time"  or  year,  ifsym- 
bolic,signifies  three  hundred  and  sixty(36o)symbolic  days,and 
'  'sevenjtimes' '  represent  twenty-five  hundred  and  twenty  (  7  x 
360=2520)  symbolic  days,  or  2520  literal  years. 

The  question  here  presenting  itself  is.  Were  these  "seven 
times"  literal  or  symbolic?  Did  they  refer  to  seven  years,  or 
twenty-five  hundred  and  twenty  years?  We  answer,  they  were 
symbolic  times,  2520  years.  They  cannot  be  understood  as 
seven  literal  years;  for  Israel  had  many  captivities  of  longer 
duration — for  instance,  they  served  the  king  of  Mesopotamia 
eight  years  (Judges  3:8),  the  king  of  Moab  eighteen  years 
(IJudges  3  :i4),  King  Jabin  twenty  years  (Judges  4:2,  3), 
the  Philistines  one  period  offorty  years  and  another  of  eighteen 
years  (Judges  10:7,  8;  13:1),  besides  their  seventy  years  in 
Babylon.  All  these  periods  being  far  longer  than  "seven 
times"  or  years  literal,  yet  the  "seven  times"  being  men- 
tioned as  the  last,  greatest  and  final  punishment,  proves 
that  symbolic,  not  literal  time  is  meant,  though  the  Hebrew 
word  translated  ^^  seven  ti?nes''  in  Leviticus  26:18,  21,  24, 
28,  is  the  same  word  so  translated  in  Daniel  4:16,  23, 
25,  32,  except  that  in  Daniel  the  word  iddan  is  ad- 
ded,   whereas   in   Leviticus   it   is   left  to   be    understood. 


9^  The   Time  is  at  Hand, 

And,  peculiarly,  too,  it  is  repeated  four  times  in  each  case. 
In  Nebuchadnezzar's  case  they  were  literal  years,  but,  as  we 
shall  yet  see,  both  Nebuchadnezzar  and  his  "  seven  times" 
were  typical. 

The  ^^  seven  times''  of  Nebuchadnezzar's  degradation 
(Dan.  4:  i6,  23-26)  proved  to  be  seven  literal  years,  when 
a6tually  so  fulfilled ;  and  so  the  humiliation  of  Israel  and 
the  world  under  the  ''powers  that  be"  has  proved  to  be 
seven  symbolic  times — twenty-five  hundred  and  twenty 
literal  years.  This  period  now  lacks  but  twenty-six  years 
of  being  fulfilled,  and  agencies  are  at  work  on  every  hand 
pointing  to  a  termination  of  Gentile  dominion,  and  the 
bringing  in  of  everlasting  righteousness  and  all  the  bless- 
ings of  the  New  Covenant  to  Israel  and  to  all  the  groaning 
creation. 

THE    END    OF    ISRAEL'S    SEVEN    TIMES. 

This  long  period  ("seven  times,"  or  2520  years)  of  Israel's 
punishment  is  the  period  of  Gentile  dominion — the  "Times 
of  the  Gentiles."  Since,  as  we  have  already  shown,  the 
"Gentile  Times"  began  B.  C.  606,  and  were  to  continue 
twenty-five  hundred  and  twenty  years,  they  will  end  A.  D. 
1914.  (2520 — 606=1914.)  Then  the  blessings  recorded 
in  the  latter  part  of  the  same  chapter  (Lev.  26  :  44,  45)  will 
be  fulfilled.  God  will  remember  and  fulfil  to  Israel  the 
covenant  made  v/ith  their  fathers. — Rom.  11  :  25-27. 

This  may  be  shown  more  clearly  to  some  thus  : — 

Israel's  ' '  seven  times ' '  of  chastisement  =         25  20  years. 
They  began  w^hen  the  lesise  of  power  was 
given  to  the  Gentiles,  which,  as  we  have 
shown,  was  606  B.  C.     Consequently,  in 
A.  D.  I,  606     " 

of  their   period    had  passed,  and  the  re-        

mainder  would  indicate  the  A.  D.  date,  viz.,         1914 


Times  of  the  Gentiles.  91 

In  proof  that  a  day  for  a  year  is  Bible  usage  in  symbolic 
prophecy,  we  cite  the  following  instances  thus  fulfilled  : — 
{a)  The  spies  were  caused  to  v/ander  forty  days  searching 
Canaan,  typical  of  Israel's  forty  years  wandering  in  the 
wilderness.    (Num.  14:  2iZy  34-)  C'^)  When  God  would  an- 
nounce to  Israel  by  Ezekiel  a  period  of  adversity,  he  had 
the  prophet  symbolize  it,   declaring,    ''I  have  appointed 
thee  each  day  for  a  year."     (Ezek.  4:  1-8.)     {c)  In  that 
notable  and  already  fulfilled  prophecy  of  Daniel  9 :  24-27, 
examined  in  the  preceding  chapter,  in  which  the  time  to 
the  anointing  of  our  Lord  is  shown,  and  also  the  seven 
years  of  favor  to  Israel  thereafter,  in  the  midst  of  which 
Messiah  was  '^  cut  off,  "  symbolic  time  is  used  :   Each  day 
of  the  seventy  symbolic  weeks  represented  a  year,  and  was 
so  fulfilled,   {a)  Again,  in  Dan.  7  :  25  and  12  :    7,  the  peri- 
od of  Papacy's  triumph  is  given  as  three  and  a  half  times,  and 
this  we  know  (and  will  show  in  this  volume)  was  fulfilled  in 
twelve  hundred  and  sixty  years  (360  x  3)^=1 260).  The  same 
period  is  mentioned  in  the  book  of  Revelation  :  In  chapter 
12 :  14  it  is  called  three  and  a  half  times  (360x3}^  =  1260); 
in  chapter  13:5  it  is  termed  forty-two  months  (30x42= 
1 260) ;  and  in  chapter  1 2 :  6  it  is  called  twelve  hundred  and 
sixty  days.      The  fulfilment  of  these  prophecies  will  be  par- 
ticularly examined  hereafter.    Suffice  it  now  to  note  that  the 
use  by  the  Spirit  of  the  word  ''  time,"  elsewhere,  agrees  with 
the  present  use  of  that  term — that  in  symbolic  prophecy  a 
*'  time' '  is  a  symbolic  year  of  three  hundred  and  sixty  years; 
and  th©  fa6l  that  three  and  a  half  times,  applied  as  a  measure 
to  the  triumph  of  the  apostate  Church,  has  been  fulfilled  in 
twelve  hundred  and  sixty  years,  establishes  the  principle 
upon  which  the  seven  times  of  Gentile  dominion  are  reckoned 
(360  x  7  r=:  25  20)  and  proves  their  end  to  be  A.  D.  1 9 1 4 ;  for 
if  three  and  a  half  times  are  1260  days  (years),  seven  times 
will  be  a  period  just  twice  as  long,  namely,  2520  years. 


92 


The  Tune  is  at  Hand. 


Had  Israel's  ** seven  times"  been  fulfilled  in  literal  time 
(seven  years),  the  blessing  guaranteed  to  them  by  God's 
unconditional  covenant  with  their  fathers  would  have  fol- 
lowed. (See  Lev.  26  :  45  ;  Rom.  11  :  28.)  But  this  was  not 
the  case.  They  have  never  yet  enjoyed  those  promised 
blessings ;  and  that  covenant  will  not  be  fulfilled,  says  Paul 
(Rom.  II :  25,  26),  until  the  ele6l  Gospel  Church,  the  body 
of  Christ,  has  been  perfedled  as  their  deliverer,  through 
whom  the  covenant  will  be  put  into  operation.  ' '  This  shall 
be  the  covenant  that  I  will  make  with  the  house  of  Israel 
after  those  days  [/.  e.,  the  seven  times  of  punishment],  saith 
the  Lord  :  I  will  put  my  law  in  their  inward  parts,  and  write 
it  in  their  hearts,  and  will  be  their  God  and  they  shall  be 
my  people.  And  they  shall  teach  no  more  every  man  his 
neighbor,  and  every  man  his  brother,  saying.  Know  the 
Lord ;  for  they  shall  all  know  me  from  the  least  of  them 
unto  the  greatest  of  them,  saith  the  Lord  ;  for  I  will  forgive 
their  iniquity,  and  I  will  remember  their  sin  no  more." 
(Jer.  31:33,  34;  Heb.  10:16,  17.)  "In  those  days  [the 
days  of  favor  following  the  seven  times  of  punishment]  they 
shall  say  no  more,  The  fathers  have  eaten  a  sour  grape  and 
the  children's  teeth  are  set  on  edge.  But  every  one  [who 
dies]  shall  die  for  his  own  iniquity ;  every  man  that  eateth  the 
sour  grape,  his  teeth  shall  be  set  on  edge." — Jer.3 1 :  29,  30. 

The  restoration  at  the  end  of  the  seventy  years  in  Bab- 
ylon was  not  a  release  from  Gentile  rule;  for  they  were  a 
tributary  people  ever  after  that.  That  restoration  served 
merely  to  keep  together  a  people  to  whom  Messiah  should 
be  presented.  It  was  while  Gentile  rule  was  already  holding 
Israel  in  subje6lion,  and  in  view  of  that  fa6l,  that  our  Lord 
declared  that  they  would  continue  to  be  trodden  down 
until  the  Times  of  the  Gentiles  expired,  or  were  fulfilled. 
The  world  is  witness  to  the  fa6l  that  Israel's  punishment 
under  the  dominion  of  the  Gentiles  has  been  continuous 


Times  of  the  Gentiles.  93 

^ince  B.  C.  606,  that  it  still  continues,  and  that  there  is 
is  no  reason  to  expe(5l  their  national  re-organization  sooner 
than  A.  D.  1914,  the  limit  of  their  ''seven  times" — 2520 
years.  But  as  this  long  period  of  their  national  chastise- 
ment draws  near  its  close,  we  can  see  marked  indications 
that  the  barren  fig  tree  is  about  to  put  forth,  showing  that 
the  winter  time  of  evil  is  closing,  and  the  Millennial 
summer  approaching,  which  will  fully  restore  them  to  their 
promised  inheritance  and  national  independence.  The  fa6l 
that  there  are  now  great  preparations  and  expe6lations  rel- 
ative to  the  return  of  Israel  to  their  own  land  is  of  itself 
strong  circumstantial  evidence  corroborative  of  this  Scrip- 
ture teaching.  As  to  the  significance  of  such  an  event,  see 
Vol.  I.,  pages  286-298. 

ANOTHER    LINE    OF    TESTIMONY. 

Another  view  of  the  Gentile  Times  is  presented  by  Daniel 
— Chapter  4.  Here  man's  original  dominion  over  the  whole 
earth,  its  removal,  and  the  certainty  of  its  restitution,  to 
begin  at  the  end  of  the  Gentile  Times,  is  forcibly  illustrated 
in  a  dream  given  to  Nebuchadnezzar,  its  interpretation  by 
Daniel,  and  its  fulfilment  upon  Nebuchadnezzar. 

In  his  dream,  Nebuchadnezzar  ''saw,  and  behold  a  tree 
in  the  midst  of  the  earth,  and  the  height  thereof  was  great. 
The  tree  grew  and  was  strong,  and  the  height  thereof 
reached  unto  heaven,  and  the  sight  thereof  to  the  end  of 
all  the  earth;  the  leaves  thereof  were  fair,  and  the  fruit 
thereof  much,  and  in  it  was  meat  for  all :  and  the  beasts  of 
the  field  had  shadow  under  it,  and  the  fowls  of  the  heaven 
dwelt  in  the  boughs  thereof,  and  all  flesh  was  fed  of  it. 
And,  behold,  a  watcher  and  a  holy  one  came  down  from 
heaven.  He  cried  aloud  and  said  thus.  Hew  down  the 
tree  and  cut  off  his  branches ;  shake  off  his  leaves  and  scatter 
his  fruit ;  let  the  beasts  get  away  from  under  it,  and  the 


94  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

fowls  from  his  branches.  Nevertheless,  leave  the  stump  of 
his  roots  in  the  earth,  even  with  a  band  of  iron  and  brass, 
in  the  tender  grass  of  the  field ;  and  let  it  be  wet  with  the 
dew  of  heaven,  and  let  his  portion  be  with  the  beasts  in 
the  grass  of  the  earth.  Let  his  heart  be  changed  from  man's 
and  let  a  beast's  heart  be  given  unto  him ;  and  let  seven 
times  pass  over  him.  This  matter  is  by  the  decree  of  the 
watchers,  and  the  demand  by  the  word  of  the  holy  ones, 
to  the  intent  that  the  living  may  know  that  the  Most  High 
ruleth  in  the  kingdom  of  men,  and  giveth  it  to  whomsoever 
he  will,  and  setteth  up  over  it  the  basest  of  men." 

This  remarkable  tree,  in  its  glory  and  beauty,  represented 
the  first  dominion  of  earth  given  to  the  human  race  in  its 
representative  and  head,  Adam,  to  whom  God  said,  '^  Be 
fruitful,  and  multiply,  and  fill  the  earth,  and  subdue  it ;  and 
have  doffiifiion  over  the  fish  of  the  sea,  and  over  the  fowl 
of  the  air,  and  over  every  living  thing  that  moveth  upon 
the  earth."  (Gen.  i  :  28.)  The  original  glory  of  man 
and  the  poAver  vested  in  him  were  indeed  sublime,  and 
were  over  the  whole  earth,  to  bless,  and  feed,  and  pro- 
te6l  and  shelter  every  living  thing.  But  when  sin  entered, 
the  command  came  to  hew  down  the  tree,  and  the  glory 
and  beauty  and  power  of  mankind  were  taken  away ;  and 
the  lower  creation  no  more  found  shelter,  prote6lion  and 
blessing  under  his  influence.  Death  hewed  down  the  great 
tree,  scattered  his  fruit  and  foliage,  and  left  the  lower 
creation  without  its  lord  and  benefa6lor. 

So  far  as  man  was  concerned,  all  power  to  recover  the 
lost  dominion  was  hopelessly  gone.  But  it  was  not  so  from 
God's  standpoint.  The  dominion  originally  sprang  out  of  his 
plan,  and  was  his  gracious  gift ;  and  though  he  had  command- 
ed it  to  be  hewn  down,  yet  the  root — God's  purpose  and  plan 
of  a  restitution — continued,  though  bound  with  strong  fetters 
SO  that  it  should  not  sprout  until  the  divinely  appointed  time. 


Times  of  the  Gentiles.  95 

As  in  the  dream  the  figure  changes  from  the  stump  of  a  tree 
to  a  man  degraded  and  brought  to  the  companionship  and 
likeness  of  beasts,  with  reason  dethroned  and  all  his  glory 
departed,  so  we  see  man,  the  fallen,  degraded  lord  of  earth: 
his  glory  and  dominion  have  departed.  Ever  since  the 
sentence  passed,  the  race  has  been  having  its  portion  with 
the  beasts,  and  the  human  heart  has  become  beastly  and 
degraded.  How  striking  the  pidlure,  when  we  consider  the 
present  and  past  half-civilized  and  savage  condition  of  the 
great  mass  of  the  human  race,  and  that  even  the  small  mi- 
nority who  aspire  to  overcome  the  downward  tendency  suc- 
ceed only  to  a  limited  degree,  and  with  great  struggling  and 
constant  effort.  The  race  must  remain  in  its  degradation, 
under  the  dominion  of  evil,  until  the  lesson  has  been  learned, 
that  the  Most  High  ruleth  in  the  kingdom  of  men,  and 
giveth  it  to  whomsoever  he  will.  And  while  men  are  in 
this  degraded  condition  God  permits  some  of  the  basest 
charadlers  among  them  to  rule  over  them,  that  their  present 
bitter  experience  may  prove  in  the  future  to  be  of  lasting 
benefit. 

True  to  Daniel's  interpretation,  we  are  told  that  "All 
this  came  upon  the  king,  Nebuchadnezzar,"  and  that  in 
this  insane,  degraded,  beastly  condition  he  wandered  among 
the  beasts  until  seven  times  (seven  literal  years  in  his  case) 
passed  over  him.  Daniel's  interpretation  of  the  dream  re- 
lates only  to  its  fulfilment  upon  Nebuchadnezzar ;  but  the 
fa6l  that  the  dream,  the  interpretation  and  the  fulfilment 
are  all  so  carefully  related  here  is  evidence  of  an  obje6t  in 
its  narration.  And  its  remarkable  fitness  as  an  illustra- 
tion of  the  divine  purpose  in  subjecting  the  whole  race 
to  the  dominion  of  evil  for  its  punishment  and  correc- 
tion, that  in  due  time  God  might  restore  and  establish  it 
in  righteousness  and  everlasting  life,  warrants  us  in  accept- 
ing it  as  an  intended  type. 


g6  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

The  dream  in  its  fulfilment  upon  Nebuchadnezzar  is 
specially  noteworthy  when  we  remember  that  he  was  made 
the  representative  ruling  >^^^^  of  human  dominion  (Dan.  2  : 
38),  and,  as  lord  of  earth,  was  addressed  by  the  prophet  in 
almost  the  same  words  which  God  at  the  first  addressed  to 
Adam — "  The  God  of  heaven  hath  given  thee  a  kingdom, 
power,  and  strength,  and  glory.  And  wheresoever  the 
children  of  men  dwell,  the  beasts  of  the  field  and  the  fowl 
of  heaven  hath  he  given  into  thy  hand,  and  hath  made 
thee  ruler  over  them  all."  (Dan.  2  :  37-38.  Compare  Gen. 
I  :  28.)  Afterward,  because  of  sin,  Nebuchadnezzar  re- 
ceived the  '^ seven  times"  of  punishment,  after  which  his 
reason  began  to  return,  and  his  restitution  to  dominion  was 
accomplished.  He  was  re-established  in  his  kingdom,  and 
majesty  was  added  unto  him  after  he  had  learned  the  needed 
lesson  to  which  he  referred  in  the  following  language : — 

*'At  the  end  of  the  days  I,  Nebuchadnezzar,  lifted  up 
mine  eyes  unto  heaven,  and  mine  understanding  returned 
unto  me,  and  I  blessed  the  Most  High,  and  I  praised  and 
honored  him  that  liveth  forever,  whose  dominion  is  an 
everlasting  dominion,  and  his  kingdom  is  from  generation 
to  generation.  And  all  the  inhabitants  of  the  earth  are 
reputed  as  nothing ;  and  he  doeth  according  to  his  will  in 
the  army  of  heaven,  and  among  the  inhabitants  of  the  earth ; 
and  none  can  stay  his  hand  or  say  unto  him.  What  doest 
thou  ?  At  the  same  time  my  reason  returned  unto  me ;  and 
for  the  glory  of  my  kingdom,  mine  honor  and  brightness  re- 
turned unto  me  .  .  .  and  I  was  established  in  my  king- 
dom, and  excellent  majesty  was  added  unto  me.  Now  I, 
Nebuchadnezzar,  praise  and  extol  and  honor  the  King  of 
heaven,  all  whose  works  are  truth,  and  his  ways  judgment: 
and  those  that  walk  in  pride  he  is  able  to  abase." 

The  degradation  of  Nebuchadnezzar  was  typical  of  human 
degradation  under  beastly  governments  during  seven  sym- 


Times  of  the  Gentiles.  97 

bolic  times  or  years — a  year  for  a  day,  2520  years — from 
his  day  onward.  And  be  it  observed  that  this  corresponds 
exadlly  with  the  seven  times  foretold  upon  Israel,  which,  as 
we  have  just  seen,  end  A.  D.  1914.  For  it  was  under  this 
Nebuchadnezzar  that  Israel  was  carried  away  captive  to 
Babylon,  when  the  crown  of  God's  kingdom  was  removed, 
and  the  seven  times  began. 

It  is  in  perfedt  harmony  with  this  that  God,  in  represent- 
ing these  governments  of  the  Gentiles,  portrayed  them  to 
Daniel  as  so  many  wild  beasts,  while  the  kingdom  of  God  at 
their  close  is  represented  as  given  to  one  like  unto  a  sojt  of  man. 

Unless  it  was  thus  to  foreshadow  the  degradation  and 
the  duration  of  Gentile  Times,  we  know  of  no  reason  for 
the  recording  of  this  scrap  of  the  history  of  a  heathen 
king.  That  his  seven  years  of  degradation  fitly  illustrated 
human  debasement,  is  a  fa6l ;  that  God  has  promised  a 
restitution  of  earth's  dominion  after  humanity  has  learned 
certain  great  lessons,  is  also  a  fa6l ;  and  that  the  seven 
symbolic  Gentile  Times  (2520  years)  end  at  the  exa6t  point 
when  mankind  will  have  learned  its  own  degradation  and 
present  inability  to  rule  the  world  to  advantage,  and  will 
be  ready  for  God's  kingdom  and  dominion,  is  a  third  fa(?t. 
And  the  fitness  of  the  illustration  forces  the  convi6lion 
that  Nebuchadnezzar's  seven  years,  while  literally  fulfilled 
on  him  personally,  had  a  yet  greater  and  broader  signifi- 
cance as  a  figure  of  the  seven  symbolic  times  of  Gentile 
dominion,  which  he  represented. 

The  exa6l  date  of  Nebuchadnezzar's  degradation  is  not 
stated,  and  is  of  no  consequence,  because  the  period  of  his 
degradation  typified  the  entire  period  of  Gentile  dominion, 
which  began  when  the  crown  of  the  typical  kingdom,  of 
God  was  removed  from  Zedekiah.  It  was  beastly  from  its 
very  start,  and  its  times  are  numbered :  its  boundc-ries  are 
set  by  Jehovah,  and  cannot  be  passed, 

7 


98  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

How  refreshing  the  prospe6l  brought  to  view  at  the  close 
of  these  seven  times!  Neither  Israel  nor  the  world  of 
mankind  represented  by  that  people  will  longer  be  trodden 
down,  oppressed  and  misruled  by  beastly  Gentile  powers. 
The  Kingdom  of  God  and  his  Christ  will  then  be  established 
in  the  earth,  and  Israel  and  all  the  world  will  be  blessed 
under  his  rightful  and  righteous  authority.  Then  the  root 
of  promise  and  hope  planted  first  in  Eden  (Gen.  3:  15), 
and  borne  across  the  flood  and  transplanted  with  Israel  the 
typical  people  (Gen.  12  :  1-3),  will  sprout  and  bloom  again. 

It  began  to  sprout  at  our  Lord's  first  advent,  but  the  ap- 
pointed season  had  not  arrived  for  it  to  bloom  and  bring 
forth  its  blessed  fruitage  in  the  restitution  of  all  things. 
But  at  the  end  of  the  Gentile  Times  the  sure  signs  of  spring 
will  not  be  lacking,  and  rich  will  be  the  summer  fruitage 
and  glorious  the  autumnal  harvest  to  be  reaped  and  enjoyed 
in  the  eternal  ages  of  glory  to  follow.  Then  the  original 
lord  of  earth,  with  reason  restored,  will  be  fully  re-instated, 
with  added  excellence  and  glory,  as  in  the  type,  and  will 
praise  and  extol  and  honor  the  King  of  heaven. 

Already  we  begin  to  see  reason  returning  to  mankind : 
men  are  awakening  to  some  sense  of  their  degradation,  and 
are  on  the  lookout  to  improve  their  condition.  They  are 
thinking,  planning  and  scheming  for  a  better  condition  than 
that  to  which  they  have  been  submitting  under  the  beastly 
powers.  But  before  they  come  to  recognize  God  and  his 
dominion  over  all,  they  will  experience  one  more  terrible 
fit  of  madness,  from  which  struggle  they  will  awake  weak, 
helpless,  exhausted,  but  with  reason  so  far  restored  as  to  rec- 
ognize and  bow  to  the  authority  of  him  who  comes  to 
re-establish  the  long  lost,  first  dominion,  on  the  permanent 
basis  of  experience  and  knowledge  of  both  good  and  evil. 

True,  it  is  expeding  great  things  to  claim,  as  we  do,  that 
within  the  coming  twenty-six  years  all  present  governments 


Times  of  the  Gentiles.  99 

will  be  overthrown  and  dissolved  ;  but  we  are  living  in  a 
special  and  peculiar  time,  the  ''  Day  of  Jehovah,"  in  which 
matters  culminate  quickly  ;  and  it  is  written,  ''  A  short  Avork 
will  the  Lord  make  upon  the  earth. ' '  (See  Vol.  I. ,  chap,  xv.) 
For  the  past  eleven  years  these  things  have  been  preached 
and  published  substantially  as  set  forth  above ;  and  in  that 
brief  time  the  development  of  influences  and  agencies  for 
the  undermining  and  overthrow  of  the  strongest  empires  of 
earth  has  been  wonderful.  In  that  time  Communism,  So- 
cialism and  Nihilism  sprang  into  vigorous  existence,  and 
already  are  causing  great  uneasiness  among  the  rulers  and 
high  ones  of  earth,  whose  hearts  are  failing  them  for  fear, 
and  for  looking  after  those  things  which  are  coming  on  the 
earth  ;  for  the  present  powers  are  being  mightily  shaken, 
and  ultimately  shall  pass  away  with  a  great  tumult. 

In  view  of  this  strong  Bible  evidence  concerning  the 
Times  of  the  Gentiles,  we  consider  it  an  established  truth 
that  the  final  end  of  the  kingdoms  of  this  world,  and  the 
full  establishment  of  the  Kingdom  of  God,  will  be  accom- 
plished by  the  end  of  A.  D.  191 4.  Then  the  prayer  of  the 
Church,  ever  since  her  Lord  took  his  departure — "Thy 
Kingdom  come' ' — will  be  answered ;  and  under  that  wise  and 
just  administration,  the  whole  earth  will  be  filled  with  the 
glory  of  the  Lord — with  knowledge,  and  righteousness,  and 
peace  (Psa.  72  :  19  ;  Isa.  d:  2i\  Hab.  2  :  14) ;  and  the  will 
of  God  shall  be  done  ^^on  earth,  as  it  is  done  in  heaven^ 

Daniel's  statement,  that  God's  Kingdom  will  be  set  up, 
not  after  these  kingdoms  of  earth  are  dissolved,  but  in  their 
days,  while  they  still  exist  and  have  power,  and  that  it  is 
God's  Kingdom  which  shall  break  in  pieces  and  consume 
all  these  kingdoms  (Dan.  2  :  44),  is  worthy  of  our  special 
consideration.  So  it  was  with  each  of  these  beastly  govern- 
ments :  it  existed  before  it  acquired  universal  dominion. 
Babylon  existed  long  before  it  conquered  Jerusalem  and 

6627G8 


100  The  Time  is  at  Hand, 

obtained  the  dominion  (Dan.  2:  37,  38)  ;  Medo-Persia  exist- 
ed before  it  conquered  Babylon  ;  and  so  with  all  kingdoms  : 
they  must  first  have  existed  and  have  received  superior 
power  before  they  could  conquer  others.  So,  too,  with 
God's  Kingdom :  it  has  existed  in  an  embryo  form  for 
eighteen  centuries;  but  it,  with  the  world  at  large,  was 
made  subje6l  to  ' '  the  powers  that  be, "  ' '  ordained  of  God. ' ' 
Until  their  *' seven  times  "  shall  end,  the  Kingdom  of  God 
cannot  come  into  universal  dominion.  However,  like  the 
others,  it  must  obtain  power  adequate  to  the  overthrow  of 
these  kingdoms  before  it  shall  break  them  in  pieces. 

So,  in  this  ''  Day  of  Jehovah,"  the  ''  Day  of  Trouble," 
our  Lord  takes  his  great  power  (hitherto  dormant)  and  reigns, 
and  this  it  is  that  will  cause  the  trouble,  though  the  world 
will  not  so  recognize  it  for  some  time.  That  the  saints 
shall  share  in  this  work  of  breaking  to  pieces  present  king- 
doms, there  can  be  no  doubt.  It  is  written,  '■'■  This  honor 
have  all  his  saints — to  execute  the  judgments  written,  to 
bind  their  kings  with  chains,  and  their  nobles  with  fetters 
of  iron" — of  strength.  (Psa.  149:8,9.)  ''He  that  over- 
cometh,  and  keepeth  my  works  unto  the  end,  to  him  will  I 
give  power  over  the  nations,  and  he  shall  rule  them  with  a 
rod  of  iron  ;  as  the  vessels  of  a  potter  shall  they  [the  empii-es'] 
be  broken  to  shivers." — Rev.  2  :  26,  27  ;  Psa.  2:8,  9. 

But  our  examination,  in  the  preceding  volume,  of  the  great 
difference  in  chara6ler  between  the  Kingdom  of  God  and 
the  beastly  kingdoms  of  earth,  prepares  us  to  see  also  a 
difference  in  modes  of  warfare.  The  methods  of  conquest 
and  breaking  will  be  widely  different  from  any  which  have 
ever  before  overthrown  nations.  He  who  now  takes  his 
great  power  to  reign  is  shown  in  symbol  (Rev.  19:15)  as 
the  one  whose  sword  went  forth  out  of  his  mouthy  *'  that  with 
it  he  should  smite  the  nations;  and  he  shall  rule  them  with 
a  rod  of  iron."     That  sword  is  the  truth  (Eph.  6  :  17)  ; 


Times  of  the   Gent'iteL  ioi 

and  the  living  saints,  as  well  as  many  of  the  world,  are  now 
being  used  as  the  Lord's  soldiers  in  overthrowing  errors  and 
evils.  But  let  no  one  hastily  infer  a  peaceable  conversion 
of  the  nations  to  be  here  symbolized  j  for  many  scriptures, 
Such  as  Rev.  ii :  17,  i8 ;  Dan.  12:1;  2  Thes.  2:8;  Psalms 
149  and  47,  teach  the  very  opposite. 

Be  not  surprised,  then,  when  in  subsequent  chapters  we 
present  proofs  that  the  setting  up  of  the  Kingdom  of  God 
is  already  begun,  that  it  is  pointed  out  in  prophecy  as  due 
to  begin  the  exercise  of  power  in  A.  D.  1878,  and  that  the 
''battle  of  the  great  day  of  God  Almighty  "  (Rev.  16:14.), 
which  will  end  in  A.  D.  191 4  with  the  complete  overthrow 
of  earth's  present  rulership,  is  already  commenced.  The 
gathering  of  the  armies  is  plainly  visible  from  the  stand- 
point of  God's  Word. 

If  our  vision  be  unobstru6led  by  prejudice,  when  we  get 
the  telescope  of  God's  Word  rightly  adjusted  we  may  see 
with  clearness  the  characSter  of  many  of  the  events  due  to 
take  place  in  the  "Day  of  the  Lord" — that  we  are  in  the 
very  midst  of  those  events,  and  that  '^  the  Great  Day  of  His 
Wrath  is  come." 

The  sword  of  truth,  already  sharpened,  is  to  smite  every 
evil  system  and  custom — civil,  social  and  ecclesiastical. 
Nay,  more,  we  can  see  that  the  smiting  is  commenced : 
freedom  of  thought,  and  human  rights,  civil  and  religious, 
long  lost  sight  of  under  kings  and  emperors,  popes,  synods, 
councils,  traditions  and  creeds,  are  being  appreciated  and 
asserted  as  never  before.  The  internal  conflicft  is  already 
fomenting :  it  will  ere  long  break  forth  as  a  consuming  fire, 
and  human  systems,  and  errors,  which  for  centuries  have 
fettered  truth  and  oppressed  the  groaning  creation,  must 
melt  before  it.  Yes,  truth — and  widespread  and  increasing 
knowledge  of  it — is  the  sword  which  is  perplexing  and 
wounding  the  heads  over  many  countries.     (Psa.  no  :  6.) 


I02  The  Tt?ne  is  at  Hand. 

Yet  in  this  trouble  what  a  blessing  is  disguised :  It  will  pre- 
pare mankind  for  a  fuller  appreciation  of  righteousness  and 
truth,  under  the  reign  of  the  King  of  Righteousness. 

As  men  shall  eventually  come  to  realize  that  justice  is 
laid  to  the  line  and  righteousness  to  the  plummet  (Isa.  28: 
1 7),  they  will  also  learn  that  the  stri6l  rules  of  justice  alone  can 
secure  the  blessings  which  all  desire.  And,  thoroughly 
disheartened  with  their  own  ways  and  the  miserable  fruit- 
age of  selfishness,  they  will  welcome  and  gladly  submit  to 
the  righteous  authority  which  takes  the  control ;  and  thus, 
as  it  is  written,  ^'The  desire  of  all  nations  shall  come" — 
the  Kingdom  of  God,  under  the  absolute  and  unlimited 
control  of  Jehovah's  Anointed. 


"  We  are  living,  we  are  dwelling, 

In  a  grand  and  awful  time. 
In  an  age  on  ages  telling. 

To  be  living  is  sublime. 
Hark  !  the  rumbling  in  the  nations, 

Iron  crumbling  with  the  clay  : 
Hark!  what  soundeth?     'Tis  creation 

Groaning  for  a  better  day. 

"  Scoffers  scorning,  Heaven  beholding, 

Thou  hast  but  an  hour  to  fight. 
See  prophetic  truth  unfolding ! 

Watch  !  and  keep  thy  garments  white. 
Oh,  let  all  the  soul  within  you 

For  the  truth's  sake  go  at)road  ! 
Strike !   let  every  nerve  and  sinew 

Tell  on  ages — tell  for  God  !  " 


CHAPTER  V. 

THE  MANNER    OF   OUR   LORD'S  RETURN 
AND  APPEARING. 

Harmony  of  the  Manner  of  Our  Lord's  Second  Advent  with  Other  Fea- 
tures OF  the  Divine  Plan. — How  and  When  The  Church  shall  See  Him. — 
How  AND  When  the  Glory  of  the  Lord  shall  be  so  Revealed  that  All 
Flesh  shall  See  it  Together. — Statements  Apparently  Conflicting 
Shown  to  be  Harmonious. — He  Comes 'As  a  Thief," — "Not  with  Out- 
ward Show  ;" — And  yet  "  With  a  Shcut," — With  "Voices," — And  "With 
the  Sound  of  the  Great  Trumpet." — "  He  Shall  be  Revealed  in  Flam- 
ing Fire,  Taking  Vengeance;" — And  yet,  "He  Shall  So  Come,  in  Like 
Manner"  as  He  Went  Away. — Importance  of  Prophetic  Time  in  this 
Connection  Shown. — Harmony  of  Present  Indications. 

''PHE  VIEW  just  had,  of  the  speedy  close  of  Gentile  Times, 
^  and  the  assurance  that  the  consummation  of  the  Church's 
hope  must  precede  their  close,  only  whets  the  appetite  of 
those  now  waiting  for  the  consolation  of  Israel.  Such  will 
be  hungering  for  whatever  information  our  Father  may  have 
supplied  through  the  prophets,  touching  the  "harvest,"  the 
end,  or  closing  period  of  this  age — the  separating  of  wheat 
from  tares  among  the  living  members  of  the  nominal  Church, 
and  the  time  of  the  change  of  the  overcomers,  to  be  with 
and  like  their  Lord  and  Head. 

But  in  order  to  appreciate  the  reasonableness  of  the  pro- 
phetic teaching  on  these  deeply  interesting  subjedls,  it  is 
absolutely  necessary  that  we  have  clear  views  both  of  the 
objeH:  of  our  Lord's  second  coming,  and  of  the  manner  in 
which  he  will  be  revealed.  That  the  objefl  of  his  coming 
is  to  reconcile  '^whosoever  will,"  of  the  world,  to  God,  by 
a  process  of  ruling,  and  teaching,  and  disciplining,  called 
judging  and  blessing,  we  trust  all  present  readers  have  been 
convinced  in  the  reading  of  Volume  I.     The  manner  of  the 

103 


td4  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

Lord's  coming  and  appearing,  therefore,  is  of  paramount 
importance  here,  before  proceding  in  our  study  of  the  time 
of  the  harvest,  etc.  The  student  must  hold  clearly  in  mind 
the  obje6l  while  studying  the  manner  of  our  Lord's  return; 
and  both  of  these,  when  he  comes  to  study  the  time.  This 
is  needful  as  an  offset  to  the  erroneous  views,  already  pre- 
occupying many  minds,  based  upon  false  ideas  of  both  the 
obje6l  and  the  manner  of  our  Lord's  coming. 

Grasp  and  hold  in  mind  as  firmly  as  possible  the  fa6l 
already  demonstrated,  that  God's  plan  is  one  harmonious 
whole,  which  is  being  wrought  out  through  Christ ;  and 
that  the  work  of  the  second  advent  stands  related  to  the 
work  of  the  first  as  effe6l  to  cause :  That  is,  that  the  great 
work  of  Restitution  at  the  second  advent  follows  the  work 
of  Redemption  accomplished  at  the  first  advent  as  a  logical 
sequence  according  to  the  divine  plan.  Therefore  the 
Lord's  return  is  the  dawn  of  hope  fo7^  the  world,  the  time 
for  the  bestowment  of  the  favors  secured  by  the  redemption 
— the  Gospel  Age  being  merely  an  intervening  parenthesis, 
during  which  the  bride  of  Christ  is  seleded,  to  be  associated 
with  her  Lord  in  the  great  work  of  restitution  which  he 
comes  to  accomplish. 

And  since  the  Church  of  Christ,  which  has  been  develop- 
ing during  the  Gospel  age,  is  to  be  associated  with  her 
Lord  in  the  great  restitution  work  of  the  Millennial  age, 
the  first  work  of  Christ  at  the  second  advent  must  be  the 
gathering  of  his  ele6l  Church,  to  which  reference  is  made 
through  the  Prophet  (Psa.  50:5),  saying,  *'  Gather  my  saints 
together  unto  me — those  that  have  made  a  covenant  with 
me  by  sacrifice."  This  gathering  or  harvesting  time  is  in 
the  lapping  period  of  the  two  ages.  As  will  be  shown,  it 
is  a  period  of  forty  years,  v/hich  both  ends  the  Gospel  age 
and  introduces  the  Millennial  age.  (See  Vol.  L,  pages 
219-221;  234-237;  and  the  Chart  of  the  Ages.)  Thisharvest 


Manner  of  the  Second  AdveJit.  to^ 

period  not  only  accomplishes  the  separation  of  wheat  from 
tares  in  the  nominal  Gospel  church,  and  the  gathering  and 
glorification  of  the  wheat  class,  but  it  is  also  to  accomplish 
the  burning  (destru6lion)  of  the  tares  (as  tares,  or  imitation 
wheat — not  as  individuals :  the  fire  of  destru6lion  is  sym- 
bolic as  well  as  the  tares),  and  the  gathering  and  destru6tion 
of  the  corrupt  fruitage  of  "the  Vine  of  the  earth"  (human 
ambition,  greed  and  selfishness),  which  has  been  growing  and 
ripening  for  centuries  in  the  kingdoms  of  this  world  and 
in  the  various  civil  and  social  organizations  among  men. 

Althougn,  when  treating  of  the  obje6l  of  our  Lord's 
return,  we  showed  that  it  would  be  a  personal  coming,  let 
us  again  guard  the  student  against  confusion  of  thought  in 
considering  the  two  apparently  confli61:ing  expressions  of 
our  Lord — "  Lo,  I  am  with  you  alway,  even  unto  the  end  of 
the  world  "  (atonos,  age),  and,  ''  Igo  to  prepare  a  place  for 
you,  .  .  .  and  will  come  again  and  receive  you."  (Matt. 
28  :  20;  John  14 :  2,  3.)  The  following  incident  will  serve 
as  an  illustration  of  the  harmony  of  the  two  promises : — 
One  friend  said  to  another  as  they  were  about  to  part.  Re- 
member, I  will  be  with  you  through  all  your  journey.  How  ? 
Certainly  not  in  person  ;  for  there  they  took  trains  to  go  in 
opposite  dire6lions  to  distant  points.  The  idea  was  that  in 
love,  and  thought,  and  care  one  for  another,  they  would 
not  be  separated.  In  a  similar  yet  fuller  sense,  the  Lord 
has  always  been  with  his  Church,  his  divine  power  enabling 
him  to  oversee,  dire6l  and  assist  them,  from  first  to  last. 
But  we  are  now  considering,  not  our  Lord's  presence  with 
us  in  this  figurative  sense,  but  the  manner  of  his  second 
personal  presence  and  appearing,  ''when  he  shall  come  to 
to  be  glorified  in  his  saints  and  to  be  admired  in  all  them 
that  believe  in  that  day." 

The  Scriptures  teach  that  Christ  comes  again  to  reign ; 
that  he  must  reign  until  he  has  put  down  all  enemies — all 


io6  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

opponents,  all  things  in  the  way  of  the  great  restitution 
which  he  comes  to  accomplish — the  last  to  be  overthrown 
being  death  (i  Cor.  15  :  25,  26)  ;  and  that  he  will  reign  for 
a  thousand  years.  It  is  therefore  only  as  should  be  expected, 
that  we  find  a  much  larger  space  in  prophecy  devoted  to 
the  second  advent  and  its  thousand  years  of  triumphant 
reign  and  overthrow  of  evil  than  to  the  thirty-four  years 
of  the  first  advent  for  redemption.  And  as  we  have  found 
that  prophecy  touches  the  various  important  points  of  those 
thirty-four  years,  from  Bethlehem  and  Nazareth  to  the  gall 
and  vinegar,  the  parted  raiment,  the  cross,  the  tomb  and 
the  resurre6lion,  so  we  find  that  prophecy  likewise  touches 
various  points  of  the  thousand  years  of  the  second  presence, 
particularly  their  beginning  and  ending. 

The  second  presence  of  our  Lord  will  cover  a  much 
longer  period  of  time  than  the  first.  The  mission  of  his 
first  advent  was  finished  in  less  than  thirty-four  years,  while 
it  will  require  a  thousand  years  to  accomplish  the  appointed 
work  of  his  second  presence.  And  thus  it  may  be  seen  at 
a  glance  that,  while  the  work  of  the  first  advent  was  no  less 
important  than  that  of  the  second  advent — yea,  though  it 
was  so  i?Hpo7'ta?if  that  the  work  of  the  second  advent  cou/d 
neve?'  have  been  possible  without  it — yet  it  was  not  so  varied, 
and  hence  required  less  description  than  the  work  of  the 
second  advent. 

In  considering  the  second  advent  we  must  not,  any  more 
than  at  the  first  advent,  expe6l  all  prophecies  to  mark 
one  particularly  eventful  moment  of  our  Lord's  arrival 
and  to  call  the  attention  of  all  men  to  the  fa6l  of  his  presence. 
Such  is  not  God's  usual  method:  such  was  not  the  case  at 
the  first  advent.  The  first  advent  of  Messiah  was  not  marked 
by  any  sudden  or  surprising  demonstration,  out  of  the 
usual  order  of  things,  but  it  was  manifested  and  proven  by 
the  gradual  fulfilment  of  prophecy  showing  to  thoughtful  ob- 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent  lo^ 

servers  that  the  events  which  should  be  expeded  were  being 
accompHshed  on  time.  And  thus  it  will  be  at  his  second 
advent.  It  is  of  less  importance  that  we  discover  the 
exa6t  moment  of  his  arrival  than  that  we  discern  the  fa6l 
of  his  presence  when  he  has  arrived,  even  as  at  the  first 
advent  it  was  important  to  be  able  to  recognize  his  pres- 
ence, and  the  sooner  the  better,  but  much  less  important  to 
know  the  exa(5l  date  of  his  birth.  In  considering  the  second 
advent,  the  a6l  of  coming  and  the  moment  of  arrival  are 
too  frequently  the  thought,  whereas  it  should  be  thought  of 
z.'Sidi  period  of  presence,  as  was  the  first  advent.  The  precise 
moment  at  which  that  presence  would  begin  would  then 
seem  less  important,  and  his  object  and  work  during  the 
period  of  his  presence  would  receive  the  greater  consideration. 

We  must  bear  in  mind,  also,  that  our  Lord  is  no  longer 
a  human  being;  that  as  a  human  being  he  gave  himself  a 
ransom  for  men,  having  become  a  man  for  that  very  pur- 
pose, (i  Tim.  2:6;  Heb.  10:  4,  5 ;  i  Cor.  15:  21,  22.) 
He  is  now  highly  exalted,  to  the  divine  nature.  Therefore 
Paul  said,  ''  Though  we  have  known  Christ  after  the  flesh, 
yet  now,  henceforth,  know  we  him  [so]  no  more."  (2  Cor. 
5  :  16.)  He  was  raised  from  the  dead  a  life-giving  spirit 
being  (i  Cor,  15  :  45),  and  not  a  7nan,  of  the  earth  earthy. 
He  is  no  longer  human  in  any  sense  or  degree ;  for  we  must 
not  forget  what  we  have  learned  (See  Vol.  I.,  Chap.  10) — 
that  natures  are  separate  and  distin6l.  Since  he  is  no  longer 
in  any  sense  or  degree  a  human  being,  we  must  not  expert 
him  to  come  again  as  a  human  being,  as  at  the  first  advent. 
His  second  coming  is  to  be  in  a  different  manner,  as  well 
as  for  a  different  purpose. 

Noting  the  fa6l  that  our  Lord's  change  from  human  to 
divine  nature  at  his  resurre6lion  was  even  a  greater  change 
than  the  one  which  occurred  some  thirty-four  years  previ- 
ously, when  he  laid  aside  the  glory  of  spiritual  being  and 


loS  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

"was  made  flesh,"  we  may  with  great  profit  consider  very 
minutely  his  every  a6lion  during  the  forty  days  after  his 
resurredlion  before  he  went  "to  the  Father;"  because  it  is 
the  resurredted  Jesus  of  those  forty  days  who  is  to  come 
again,  and  not  the  man  Christ  Jesus  who  gave  himself  as 
our  ransom,  in  death.  He  who  was  put  to  death  a  flesh 
being  was  also  in  his  resurre6lion  quickened  [made  alive]  a 
spirit  being. — i  Pet.  3:18.* 

At  his  second  advent  he  does  not  come  to  be  subje6l  to 
the  powers  that  be,  to  pay  tribute  to  Csesar  and  to  suffer 
humiliation,  injustice  and  violence;  but  he  comes  to  reign, 
exercising  all  power  in  heaven  and  in  earth.  He  does  not 
come  in  the  body  of  his  humiliation,  a  human  body,  which 
he  took  for  the  suffering  of  death,  inferior  to  his  former 
glorious  body  (Heb.  2:9);  but  in  his  glorious  spiritual 
body,  which  is  "the  express  image  of  the  Father's  person" 
(Heb.  1 13);  for,  because  of  his  obedience  even  unto  death, 
he  is  now  highly  exalted  to  the  divine  nature  and  likeness, 
and  given  a  name  above  every  name — the  Father's  name 
only  excepted.  (Phil.  2:9;  i  Cor.  15:27.)  The  Apostle 
shows  that  it  "doth  not  yet  appear"  to  our  human  under- 
standing what  he  is  now  like;  hence  we  know  not  what  we 
shall  be  like  when  made  like  him,  but  we  (the  Church)  may 

■*  In  this  passage,  the  words  "in  the"  and  "by  the"  are  arbitrarily 
supplied  by  the  translators,  and  are  misleading.  The  Greek  reads  simply, 
— "  Put  to  death  flesh,  quickened  spirit."  Our  Lord  was  put  to  death  a 
fleshly  or  human  being,  but  was  raised  from  the  dead  a  spirit  being.  And 
since  the  Church  is  to  be  '■'■  changeW^  in  order  that  she  may  be  like 
Christ,  it  is  evident  that  the  change  which  occurred  in  the  Head  was  ot 
a  kind  similar  to  that  described  as  in  reservation  for  the  overcomers, 
who  shall  be  changed  from  human  to  spiritual  nature,  and  made  like 
him — ^"partakers  of  the-divine  nature."  Hence,  the  following  descrip- 
tion of  the  change  of  the  saints  is  applicable  also  to  their  Lord;  viz  , 
. — "  It  is  sown  in  dishonor,  it  is  raised  in  glory ;  it  is  sown  in  weakness,  it 
is  raised  in  power;  it  is  sown  a  natural  body,  it  is  raised  a  spiritual  body." 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  109 

rejoice  in  the  assurance  that  we  shall  one  day  be  with  him, 
and  like  him,  and  see  him  as  he  is  (i  John  3  :  2) — not  as  he 
was  at  his  first  advent  in  humiliation,  when  he  had  laid 
aside  his  former  glory  and  for  our  sakes  had  become  poor, 
that  we  through  his  poverty  might  be  made  rich. 

If  we  consider  the  wisdom  and  prudence  of  our  Lord's 
methods  of  manifesting  his  presence  to  his  disciples  after 
his  resurredlion,  as  well  as  previously,  it  may  help  us  to 
remember  that  the  same  wisdom  will  be  displayed  in  his 
methods  of  revealing  himself  at  his  second  advent,  both  to 
the  Church  and  to  the  world — methods  not  necessarily  sim- 
ilar, but  in  each  case  well  suited  to  his  obje6l,  which  never 
is  to  alarm  or  excite  men,  but  to  co7ivince  their  cool,  calm 
judgments  of  the  great  truths  to  be  impressed  upon  them. 
Our  Lord's  first  advent  was  not  a  startling,  exciting  or 
alarming  event.  How  quietly  and  unobtrusively  he  came  ! 
So  much  so  that  only  those  who  had  faith  and  humility 
were  enabled  to  recognize  in  the  infant  of  humble  birth,  in 
the  man  of  sorrows,  in  the  friend  of  the  humble  and  poor, 
and  finally  in  the  crucified  one,  the  long-looked-for  Messiah. 

After  his  resurre6lion,  the  manifestation  of  his  presence 
would  in  the  nature  of  the  case  be  a  more  astounding  fa6l, 
particularly  v/hen  his  changed  nature  is  taken  into  consider- 
ation. Yet  the  fa6l  of  his  resurre6lion,  together  with  the 
fadt  of  his  changed  nature,  had  to  be  fully  manifested,  not  to 
all  the  world  at  that  time,  but  to  chosen  witnesses  who 
would  give  credible  testimony  of  the  fa6l  to  succeeding 
generations.  Had  all  the  world  been  made  acquainted  with 
the  fa6l  then,  the  testimony  coming  down  to  our  day  would 
probably  have  been  much  less  trustworthy,  being  colored 
and  warped  by  men's  ideas  and  mixed  with  their  traditions, 
so  that  the  truth  might  appear  almost  or  quite  incredible. 
But  God  entrusted  it  only  to  chosen,  faithful  and  worthy 
witnesses ;  and  as  we  notice  the  account,  let  each  mark  how 


no  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

perfedly  the  obje^  was  accomplished,  and  hoAV  clear,  posi- 
tive and  convincing  was  the  proof  of  Christ's  resurrection 
and  change  offered  to  them.  Mark,  too,  the  carefulness 
with  which  he  guarded  against  alarming  or  unduly  exciting 
them  while  making  manifest  and  emphasizing  these  great 
truths.  And  be  assured  that  the  same  wisdom,  prudence 
and  skill  will  be  displayed  in  his  methods  of  making  known 
the  fa6l  of  his  glorious  presence  at  his  second  advent.  The 
cool,  calm  judgment  will  be  convinced  in  every  case, 
though  the  world  in  general  will  need  to  be  brought  by 
severe  discipline  to  the  proper  attitude  to  receive  the  testi- 
mony, while  those  whose  hearts  are  right  will  have  the 
blessed  intelligence  sooner.  All  the  proofs  of  his  resurrec- 
tion and  change  to  spiritual  nature  were  not  given  to  his  dis- 
ciples at  once,  but  as  they  were  able  to  bear  them  and  in 
the  manner  calculated  to  make  the  deepest  impression. 

During  the  three  and  a  half  years  of  our  Lord's  ministry, 
his  disciples  had  sacrificed  friends,  reputation,  business, 
etc.,  to  devote  time  and  energy  to  heralding  Messiah's  pres- 
ence and  the  establishment  of  his  kingdom.  But  they  had 
necessarily  crude  ideas  regarding  the  manner  and  time  of 
their  Master's  exaltation,  and  of  their  promised  exaltation 
with  him.  Nor  was  full  knowledge  then  necessary  :  it  was 
quite  sufficient  that  they  should  faithfully  take  each  step  as 
it  became  due ;  hence  the  Master  taught  them  little  by  little 
as  they  were  able  to  receive  it.  And  near  the  close  of  his 
ministry  he  said,  "  I  have  yet  many  things  to  say  unto  you, 
but  ye  cannot  bear  them  now.  Howbeit,  when  he,  the 
Spirit  of  truth,  is  come,  he  will  guide  you  into  all  truth  .  .  . 
and  show  you  things  to  come,  and  bring  all  things  to  your 
remembrance,  whatsoever  I  have  said  unto  you." — John 
i6:  12,  13;   14:  26. 

Who  can  tell  their  great  disappointment,  even  though  so 
far  as  possible  they  had  been  armed  against  it,  when  they 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  ii i 

saw  him  suddenly  taken  from  them  and  ignominously  cruci- 
fied as  a  felon — him  whose  kingdom  and  glory  they  had  been 
expelling  and  declaring,  and  which  only  five  days  before 
his  crucifixion  had  seemed  to  them  so  near  a  realization. 
(John.  12:1,  12-19.)  Though  they  knew  him  to  be  falsely 
accused  and  wrongfully  crucified,  this  did  not  altbr  the  fa(5l 
that  their  long  cherished  national  hopes  of  a  Jewish  king, 
who  would  restore  their  nation  to  influence  and  power, 
together  with  their  own  individual  hopes,  ambitions  and 
air-castles  of  important  offlces  and  high  honors  in  the  king- 
dom, were  all  suddenly  demolished  by  this  unfavorable 
turn  which  matters  had  taken  in  the  crucifixion  of  their  king. 

Well  did  the  Master  know  how  desolate  and  aimless  and 
perplexed  they  would  feel ;  for  thus  it  was  written  by  the 
Prophet,  ''I  will  smite  the  Shepherd,  and  the  sheep  shall 
be  scattered."  (Zech.  13:7;  Mark  14:27.)  And  during  the 
forty  days  between  his  resurre6lion  and  ascension,  it  was 
therefore  his  chief  concern  to  gather  them  again,  and  to 
re-establish  their  faith  in  him  as  the  long-looked-for  Mes- 
siah, by  proving  to  them  the  facft  of  his  resurre6lion, 
and  that  since  his  resurrection,  though  retaining  the  same 
individuality,  he  was  no  longer  human,  but  an  exalted 
spirit  being,  having  ''  all  power  in  heaven  and  in  earth." — 
Matt.  28:  18. 

He  broke  the  news  of  his  resurredlion  gradually  to  them — 
first,  through  the  women  (Mary  Magdalene,  and  Joanna, 
Mary  the  mother  of  James  and  Salome,  and  others  with 
them — Mark  16:  i;  Luke  24:  i,  10),  who  came  early  to 
the  sepulcher  to  anoint  his  dead  body  with  sweet  spices. 
While  they  wondered  whom  they  should  get  to  roll  away  the 
stone  from  the  door  of  the  sepulcher,  behold,  there  was 
an  earthquake,  and  when  they  came  they  found  the  stone 
rolled  away,  and  an  angel  of  the  Lord  sat  upon  it,  who  ad- 
dressed them,  saying,  ''  Fear  not,  for  I  know  that  ye  seek 


112  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

Jesus  which  was  crucified.  He  is  not  here ;  for  he  is  risen, 
as  he  said.  Come,  see  the  place  where  the  Lord  lay.  And 
go  quickly  and  tell  his  disciples  that  he  is  risen  frc?m  the 
dead  ;  and  behold,  he  goeth  before  you  into  Galilee ;  there 
shall  ye  see  him." — Matt.  28  :  5-7. 

It  seems  that  Mary  Magdalene  separated  from  the  other 
women  and  ran  to  tell  Peter  and  John  (John  20:  i,  2), 
while  the  others  went  to  tell  the  rest  of  the  disciples,  and 
that  after  she  had  left  them  Jesus  appeared  to  the  other 
women  on  the  way,  saying  (Matt.  28:  9,  10),  ^^All  hail." 
And  they  came  and  held  him  by  the  feet  and  worshiped 
him.  Then  said  Jesus  unto  them,  ''Be  not  afraid  :  go  tell 
my  brethren  that  they  go  into  Galilee  [their  home],  and 
there  shall  they  see  me."  And  with  fear  and  joy  they  ran 
to  tell  the  other  disciples.  In  their  mingled  feelings  of  sur- 
prise, perplexity,  joy  and  fear,  and  their  general  bewilder- 
ment, they  scarcely  knew  how  to  report  their  strange  and 
wonderful  experience.  When  Mary  met  Peter  and  John  she 
said  sadly,  "  They  have  taken  away  the  Lord  out  of  the  sep- 
ulcher,  and  we  know  not  where  they  have  laid  him. ' '  (John 
20 :  2.)  The  other  women  told  how  at  the  sepulcher  they 
had  seen  a  vision  of  angels  who  said  he  was  alive  (Luke 
24:  22,  23),  and  then  how  they  afterward  met  the  Lord  in 
the  way. — Matt.  28  :  8,  10. 

The  majority  of  the  disciples  evidently  regarded  their 
story  merely  as  superstitious  excitement,  but  Peter  and  John 
said,  We  will  go  and  see  for  ourselves ;  and  Mary  returned 
to  the  sepulcher  with  them.  All  that  Peter  and  John  saw 
was  that  the  body  was  gone,  that  the  grave  clothes  were 
carefully  folded  and  laid  by,  and  that  the  stone  was  rolled 
away  from  the  door.  So  in  perplexity  they  turned  away, 
though  Mary  still  remained  there  weeping.  As  she  Wept 
she  stooped  down  and  looked  into  the  sepulcher  and  saw 
two  angels,  who  said,  ' '  Woman  why  weepest  thou  ?' '     ShQ 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  113 

answered,  ''  Because  they  have  taken  away  my  Lord,  and  I 
know  not  where  they  have  laid  him. '  *  And  as  she  turned 
about  she  saw  Jesus  standing,  but  did  not  know  him.  He 
inquired,  "Woman,  why  weepest  thou?  whom  seekest 
thou?"  And  she,  supposing  him  to  be  the  gardener,  an- 
swered, "  Sir,  if  thou  hast  borne  him  hence,  tell  me  where 
thou  hast  laid  him,  and  I  will  take  him  away."  Then,  in 
the  old  familiar  tone  which  she  quickly  recognized,  the 
Lord  said,  "Mary  !" 

That  was  enough  to  establish  her  faith  in  the  statement 
of  the  angel,  that  he  had  risen,  which  until  now  had  seemed 
like  a  dream  or  an  idle  tale ;  and  in  her  joy  she  exclaimed, 
*' Master /'^  Ller  first  impulse  was  to  embrace  him,  and  to 
tarry  in  his  presence.  But  Jesus  gently  informed  her  that 
there  was  a  very  important  mission  for  her  to  perform  now, 
in  bearing  witness  to  the  fa(5l  of  his  resurredion,  and  that 
she  should  be  in  haste  to  carry  the  message  and  establish 
the  faith  of  the  other  disciples,  still  in  perplexity  and  uncer- 
tainty, saying,  "  Touch  [Greek,  haptomai,  embrace]  me  not 
[do  not  tarry  for  further  demonstration  of  your  affe(5lion 
now] ;  for  I  am  not  yet  ascended  to  my  Father  [I  will  be 
with  you  for  a  short  time  yet]  :  but  go  to  my  brethren  and 
say  unto  them,  I  ascend  unto  my  Father,  and  your  Father, 
and  to  my  God,  and  your  God."  (John  20  :  17.)  Through 
the  other  women  also  he  had  sent  them  word  that  he  would 
meet  them  in  Galilee. 

Next,  he  overtook  tv>^o  of  the  sad  and  perplexed  disciples 
as  they  walked  from  Jerusalem  to  Emmaus,  and  inquired  the 
cause  of  their  sadness  and  despondency.  (Luke  24:  13-35.) 
And  one  of  them  answered  :  "  Art  thou  only  a  stranger  in 
Jerusalem,  and  hast  not  known  the  things  which  are 
come  to  pass  there  in  these  days  ?  And  he  said  unto  them, 
What  things  ?  And  they  said  unto  him.  Concerning  Jesus 
of  Nazarethj  which  was  a  prophet  mighty  in  deed  and  word 

3 


114  ^^  ^'^^^  ^^  ^^  Hand. 

before  God  and  all  the  people :  and  how  the  chief  priests 
and  our  rulers  delivered  him  to  be  condemned  to  death, 
and  have  crucified  him.  But  we  trusted  that  it  had  been 
he  which  should  have  redeemed  Israel  :  and  besides  all 
this,  to-day  is  the  third  day  since  these  things  were  done. 
[Here  they  were  probably  calling  to  mind  John  2  :  19,  21, 
22.]  Yea,  and  certain  women  also  of  our  company  made 
us  astonished,  which  were  early  at  the  sepulcher.  And  when 
they  found  not  his  body,  they  came  saying  that  they  had 
also  seen  a  vision  of  angels,  which  said  he  was  alive.  And 
certain  of  them  which  were  with  us  went  to  the  sepulcher,  and 
found  it  even  so  as  the  women  had  said ;  but  him  they  saw  not. " 

No  wonder  they  were  perplexed ;  how  strange  it  all  seemed  ! 
how  peculiar  and  thrilling  had  been  the  events  of  the  past 
few  days ! 

Then  the  stranger  preached  them  a  stirring  sermon  from 
the  prophecies,  showing  them  that  the  very  things  which 
had  so  disheartened  them  were  the  things  which  the  proph- 
ets had  foretold  concerning  the  true  Messiah :  that  before 
he  could  rule  and  bless  and  lift  up  Israel  and  all  the  world,  he 
must  first  redeem  them  with  his  own  life  from  the  curse  of 
death,  which  came  upon  all  through  Adam,  and  that  after- 
ward, raised  to  life  and  glory  by  Jehovah,  their  Master 
would  fulfil  all  that  was  written  by  the  prophets  concern- 
ing his  future  glory  and  honor,  as  truly  as  he  had  fulfilled 
those  prophecies  which  foretold  his  sufferings,  humiliation 
and  death.  A  wonderful  preacher !  and  a  wonderful  sermon 
was  that !  It  started  new  ideas  and  opened  new  expedlations 
and  hopes.  As  they  drew  near  the  village  they  constrained 
him  to  tarry  with  them,  as  it  was  toward  evening  and  the 
day  was  far  spent.  He  went  in  to  tarry  with  them  ;  and 
as  he  sat  at  meat  with  them,  he  took  bread  and  brake  and 
gave  it  to  them.  Then  their  eyes  were  opened  )  and  he  van- 
ished out  of  their  sight. 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  115 

Not  until  that  moment  did  they  recognize  him,  though 
they  had  walked,  and  talked  and  sat  at  meat  together.  He 
was  known  to  them  not  by  face,  but  in  the  simple  a6l  of 
blessing  and  breaking  bread  in  the  old  familiar  way,  thus 
assuring  their  faith  in  what  they  had  already  heard — that 
he  had  risen,  and  would  see  them  again. 

Then  the  two  surprised  and  overjoyed  disciples  arose  that 
same  hour  and  returned  to  Jerusalem,  saying  to  each  other, 
"  Did  not  our  hearts  burn  within  us  while  he  talked  with  us 
by  the  way,  and  while  he  opened  to  us  the  Scriptures?"  Ar- 
riving in  Jerusalem  they  found  the  others  rejoicing  also, 
saying,  *'The  Lord  is  risen  indeed,  and  hath  appeared  to 
Simon. ' '  And  they  told  what  things  were  done  in  the  way, 
and  how  he  was  known  of  them  in  breaking  of  bread. 
Probably  they  were  nearly  all  there  that  evening,  homes, 
business  and  everything  else  forgotten — Mary  Magdalene 
with  her  tears  of  joy,  saying,  I  knew  him  the  moment  he 
called  my  name — I  could  not  credit  the  angel's  assurance  of 
his  resurre6lion  until  then ;  and  the  other  women  telling  their 
wonderful  experience  of  the  morning,  and  how  they  had 
met  him  in  the  way.  Then  Simon  had  his  story  to  tell ; 
and  now  here  were  two  other  witnesses  from  Emmaus. 
What  an  eventful  day !  No  wonder  they  desired  to  meet 
together  on  the  first  day  of  every  week  after  that,  to  talk 
the  matter  over  and  to  call  to  mind  all  the  circumstances 
conne6led  with  this  wonderful  event  of  the  Lord's  resur- 
rection, and  to  have  their  hearts  "burn"  again  and  again. 

While  the  excited  and  overjoyed  little  company  were  thus 
met  and  relating  to  each  other  their  several  experiences,  the 
Lord  Jesus  himself  suddenly  stood  in  their  midst  (Luke 
24:  36-49)  and  said,  "Peace  be  unto  you!"  From  where 
had  he  come?  All  such  meetings  were  held  secretly  with 
closed  doors,  for  fear  of  the  Jews  (John  20:  19,  26),  but 
here  was  a  sudden  appearance  without  any  visible  approach; 


1 1 6  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

and  they  were  terrified,  and  supposed  they  had  seen  a 
spirit.  Then  he  comforted  them,  told  them  to  calm  their 
fears,  and  showed  them  his  hands  and  his  feet,  saying,  ''It 
is  I,  myself;  handle  me  and  see ;  for  a  spirit  hath  not  flesh 
and  bones,  as  ye  see  me  have."  And  while  they  yet  be- 
lieved not  for  joy,  and  wondered,  he  said  unto  them,  '*  Have 
ye  here  any  meat  ?"  and  they  gave  him  a  piece  of  a  broiled 
fish,  and  he  took  it  and  did  eat  before  them.  Then  he 
opened  their  tmderstanding,  their  mental  eyes,  and  ex- 
pounded  the  Scriptures  to  them,  showing  from  the  law  and 
the  prophets  that  these  things  had  come  to  pass  exactly  as 
foretold.  But  Thomas  was  absent  (John  20 :  24) ;  and  when 
the  other  disciples  told  him  that  they  had  seen  the  Lord, 
he  would  not  believe  it,  but  said,  ''Except  I  shall  see  in  his 
hands  the  print  of  the  nails,  and  thrust  my  hand  into  his 
side,  1  will  not  believe." 

Eight  days  passed  without  further  manifestations,  and 
they  had  time  calmly  to  think  and  talk  over  the  experiences 
of  that  wonderful  day,  when,  the  disciples  being  again  as- 
sembled as  before,  Jesus  stood  in  their  midst,  just  as  on 
the  first  evening,  saying,  "Peace  be  unto  you."  (John 
20  :  26.)  This  time  Thomas  was  present,  and  the  Lord  ad- 
dressed him,  saying,  "Thomas,  reach  hither  thy  finger,  and 
behold  my  hands;  and  reach  hither  thy  hand,  and  thrust  it 
into  my  side ;  and  be  not  faithless,  but  believing. ' '  He  thus 
showed  that  he  knew  what  Thomas  had  said  without  being 
told,  and  he  gave  that  proof  of  his  resurre6lion  which 
Thomas  had  said  would  satisfy  him  ;  and  with  joy  Thomas 
answered,  "My  Lord  and  my  God  !" 

After  this,  there  must  have  been  quite  a  long  interval  be- 
fore there  was  any  further  manifestation  of  the  Lord's  pres- 
ence, and  the  disciples  who  were  Galileans  began  to  think 
of  home  and  the  future  ;  and  remembering  the  Lord's  mes- 
sage by  the  women,  that  he  would  go  before  them  into 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  117 

Galilee,  they  went  thither.  Probably  on  their  way,  the 
Lord  met  them,  as  Matthew  relates,  in  a  mountain.  They 
were  perplexed  j  they  no  longer  felt  the  same  familiarity 
they  once  had  toward  him ;  he  seemed  so  gieatly  changed 
since  his  crucifixion  from  what  he  used  to  be — he  appeared 
and  disappeared  in  such  peculiar  times  and  places ;  he  no 
longer  seemed  like  '*the  man  Christ  Jesus;"  so  Matthew 
says  'Hhey  worshiped  him — but  some  doubted."  After 
a  few  words  with  them  the  Lord  "vanished"  from  their 
sight,  and  left  them  to  wonder  what  next  would  happen. 
For  some  time  after  their  return  to  Galilee  nothing  unusual 
occurred,  and  there  was  no  further  indication  of  the  Lord's 
presence.  Doubtless  they  met  together  and  talked  over  the 
situation,  and  wondered  why  he  did  not  appear  to  them 
more  frequently. 

As  they  waited,  the  days  and  the  weeks  seemed  long. 
They  had  long  ago  given  up  the  ordinary  pursuits  of  life, 
to  follow  the  Lord  from  place  to  place,  learning  of  him, 
and  preaching  to  others,  ''The  kingdom  of  heaven  is  at 
hand. ' '  (Matt.  10:5-7.)  They  did  not  now  wish  to  go  back 
to  the  old  pursuits ;  and  yet,  how  should  they  proceed  with 
the  Lord's  work  ?  They  comprehended  the  situation  clearly 
enough  to  know  that  they  could  no  longer  preach  as  for- 
merly the  kingdom  at  hand ;  for  all  the  people  knew  that 
their  Master  and  King  had  been  crucified,  and  none  but 
themselves  knew  of  his  resurre6tion.  While  all  of  the 
eleven  were  thus  perplexed  and  anxious,  waiting  for  some- 
thing, they  knew  not  what,  Peter  said,  Well,  it  will  not 
do  to  remain  idle :  I  will  go  back  to  my  old  fishing  business ; 
and  six  of  the  others  said,  We  will  do  the  same :  we  will  go 
with  you.  (John  21  :  3.)  And  probably  the  rest  also  turned 
again  to  their  old  employments. 

Who  can  doubt  that  the  Lord  was  invisibly  present  with 
them  many  times  as  they  talked  together,  overruling  and 


ii8  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

dire6ling  the  course  of  circumstances,  etc. ,  for  their  highest 
good?  If  they  should  have  great  success  and  become  swal- 
lowed up  by  interest  in  business,  they  would  soon  be  untit 
for  the  higher  service ;  yet  if  they  should  have  no  success, 
it  would  seem  like  forcing  them  ',  so  the  Lord  adopted  a 
plan  which  taught  them  a  lesson  such  as  he  often  teaches 
his  followers,  viz. :  that  the  success  or  failure  of  their  efforts, 
in  any  dire6lion,  he  can  control  if  he  please. 

The  old  firm  of  fishermen  reorganized  :  got  together  their 
boats,  nets,  etc.,  and  went  out  for  their  first  catch.  But 
they  toiled  all  night  and  caught  no  fish,  and  began  to  feel 
disheartened.  In  the  morning  a  stranger  on  shore  calls  to 
them  to  know  of  their  success.  Poor  success  !  We  have 
caught  nothing,  they  answer.  Try  again,  said  the  stranger. 
Now  cast  your  net  on  the  other  side  of  the  boat.  No  use, 
stranger,  we  have  tried  both  sides  all  night  long,  and  if 
there  were  fish  on  one  side,  there  would  be  on  the  other. 
However,  we  will  try  again  and  let  you  see.  They  did  so, 
and  got  an  immense  haul.  How  strange  !  said  some ;  but 
the  quick  and  impressible  John  at  once  got  the  correct  idea, 
and  said.  Brethren,  the  Lord  only  could  do  this.  Don't 
you  remember  the  feeding  of  the  multitudes,  etc.?  That 
must  be  the  Lord  on  shore,  and  this  is  another  way  that  he 
has  chosen  to  manifest  himself  to  us.  Don't  you  remember 
that  it  was  just  so  when  the  Lord  first  called  us?  Then, 
too,  we  had  toiled  all  night  and  caught  nothing  until  he 
called  to  us,  saying,  ''Let  down  your  nets  for  a  draught." 
(Luke  5  :  4-1 1 .)  Yes,  surely  that  is  the  Lord,  though,  since 
his  resurredlion,  we  cannot  recognize  him  by  his  appear- 
ance. He  now  appears  in  a  variety  of  forms  ;  but  we  know 
each  time  that  it  is  he  by  some  peculiar  circumstance  like 
this  calling  to  mind  some  marked  incident  of  our  past  ac- 
quaintance with  him. 

And  when  they  got  to  shore  they  found  that  Jesus  had 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  119 

bread  as  well  as  fish,  and  they  learned  the  lesson,  that  under 
his  dire(5lion  and  care  and  in  his  service  they  would  not  be 
left  to  starve.  (Luke  12  :  29,  30.)  They  did  not  ask  him 
if  he  were  the  Lord  ;  for  on  this  as  on  other  occasions,  the 
eyes  of  their  undeistanding  being  opened,  they  knew  him, 
not  by  physical  sight,  but  by  the  miracle.  Then  followed 
the  instructions  of  that  delightful  hour,  re-assuring  Peter 
of  his  continued  acceptance  notv/ithstanding  his  denial  of 
the  Lord,  for  which  he  repented  and  wept.  He  now  learned 
afresh  of  his  Master's  love,  and  of  his  continued  privilege 
of  feeding  the  sheep  and  the  lambs.  We  seem  to  hear  the 
Lord  say,  You  need  not  go  back  to  the  fishing  business, 
Peter  :  I  called  you  once  to  be  a  fisher  of  men,  and,  know- 
ing your  heart  to  be  still  loyal  and  zealous,  I  renew  your 
commission  as  a  fisher  of  men. 

*'  And,  eating  together  with  them,  he  commanded  them 
that  they  should  not  depart  from  Jerusalem,  but  wait  for 
the  promise  of  the  Father,  which,  saith  he,  ye  have  heard 
of  me.  For  John  truly  baptized  with  water ;  but  ye  shall 
be  baptized  with  the  Holy  Spirit  not  many  days  hence. ' ' 
(A6ts  I  :  6 — margin.)  So  they  came  to  Jerusalem  as  in- 
structed, and  here  it  was,  forty  days  after  his  resurre6tion, 
that  he  met  with  them  for  the  last  time  and  talked  with 
them.  They  summoned  courage  this  time  to  question  him 
about  the  kingdom  he  had  promised  them,  saying,  ''Lord, 
wilt  thou  at  this  time  restore  the  kingdom  to  Israel  ?' '  This 
thought  of  the  kingdom  was  the  one  uppermost  in  the 
mind  of  every  Jew.  Israel,  they  understood,  was  to  be 
chief  among  the  nations  under  Messiah,  and  they  knew  not 
of  the  long  Times  of  the  Gentiles,  and  they  saw  not  yet 
that  the  chief  blessing  had  been  taken  from  fleshly  Israel 
(Matt.  21 :  43  ;  Rom.  11:7),  and  that  they  themselves  were 
to  be  members  of  the  new  (spiritual)  Israel,  the  royal  priest- 
hood and  holy  nation,  through  whom,  as  the  body  of  Christ, 


I20  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

the  blessing  of  the  world  would  come.  They  as  yet  un- 
derstood none  of  these  things.  How  could  they  ?  They 
had  not  yet  received  the  holy  Spirit  of  adoption  as  sons, 
but  were  still  under  condemnation ;  because,  though  the 
ransom-sacrifice  had  been  made  by  the  Redeemer,  it  had 
not  yet  been  formally  presented  on  our  behalf  in  the  Most 
Holy,  even  Heaven  itself.  (John  7  :  39,)  Hence  our  Lord 
did  not  attempt  any  explanatory  answer  to  their  question, 
but  merely  said,  *'  It  is  not  iox  you  [now]  to  know  the  times 
and  seasons  which  the  Father  hath  put  in  his  own  power. 
But  ye  shall  receive  power  *  after  that  the  Holy  Spirit  is 
come  upon  you  ;  and  ye  shall  be  witnesses  unto  me  both  in 
Jerusalem,  and  in  all  Judea,  and  in  Samaria,  and  unto  the 
uttermost  part  of  the  earth." — A6ts  i  :  7,  8. 

Then  the  Lord,  who  was  walking  with  them,  when  they 
reached  the  Mount  of  Olives,  lifted  his  hands  and  blessed 
them,  and  he  was  parted  from  them  and  went  upward  ;  and 
a  cloud  received  him  out  of  their  sight.  (Luke  24:  48-52; 
A6ls  I  :  6-15.)  They  began  to  see  something  more  of 
God's  plan  now.  The  Lord  who  came  doAvn  from  heaven 
had  returned  to  the  Father,  as  he  had  told  them  before  he 
died ; — had  gone  to  prepare  a  place  for  them  and  would  come 
again  and  receive  them ; — had  gone  afar  to  receive  the  prom- 
ised kingdom,  and  to  return  (Luke  19:12)  ;  and  meantime 
they  were  to  be  his  witnesses  in  all  the  earth  to  call  and  make 
ready  a  people  to  receive  him  when  he  would  come  to  be 
glorified  in  his  saints,  and  to  reign  King  of  kings  and  Lord 
of  lords.     They  saw  their  new  mission,  of  proclaiming  to 

*  This  promised  power  to  know  and  to  understand  times  and  seasons, 
and  all  things  pertaining  to  a  proper  witnessing^  applies  to  the  whole 
Chm-ch  from  first  to  last ;  and  under  the  guidance  and  power  of  the  holy 
Spirit,  meat  in  due  season  concerning  every  feature  of  the  plan  is  pro- 
vided, in  order  that  we  may  be  his  witnesses,  even  to  the  end  of  this  age. 
— Compare  John  16: 12,  13. 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  \i\ 

every  creature  a  coming  king  from  heaven,  ''  with  all  power 
in  heaven  and  in  earth,"  to  be  a  much  more  important 
work  than  that  of  the  preceding  years,  when  they  heralded 
''the  man  Christ  Jesus,"  and  followed  him  who  was  ''  de- 
spised and  reje6led  of  men. ' '  Their  risen  Lord  was  changed 
indeed,  not  only  in  his  personal  appearance — appearing 
sometimes  in  one  way  and  place,  and  again  in  a  different 
way  and  place,  manifesting  his  ''all  power" — but  he  was 
changed  in  condition  or  nature  also.  No  longer  did  he 
appeal  to  the  Jews,  nor  show  himself  to  them ;  for  since 
his  resurredlion  none  saw  him  in  any  sense  except  his  friends 
and  followers.  His  words,  "Yet  a  little  while,  and  the 
world  seeth  me  no  more,'^  were  thus  verified. 

Thus  was  the  faith  of  the  apostles  and  of  the  early  Church 
established  in  the  fadl  of  the  Lord's  resurrection.  Their 
doubts  were  scattered,  and  their  hearts  rejoiced ;  and  they 
returned  to  Jerusalem  and  continued  in  prayer  and  suppli- 
cation and  study  of  the  Scriptures,  waiting  for  the  adoption 
promised  by  the  Father,  and  their  endowment  with  spiritual 
understanding,  and  with  special  miraculous  gifts  of  power, 
to  enable  them  to  convince  true  I'sraelites,  and  to  establish 
the  Gospel  Church,  at  the  day  of  Pentecost. — A6ts  i :  14;  2  :i. 

Though  our  Lord  at  his  second  advent  will  not  manifest 
his  presence  in  the  same  way  that  he  did  during  those  forty 
days  after  his  resurre6lion,  yet  we  have  his  assurance  that 
the  "brethren  shall  not  be  in  darkness."  Nay,  more :  we 
shall  have  an  aid  which  they  could  not  and  did  not  have 
to  help  them  during  those  forty  days,  viz.,  "J>ower  from  on 
high,"  to  guide  us  into  the  understanding  of  every  truth 
due  to  be  understood,  and,  even  as  promised,  to  show  us 
things  to  come.  Hence  in  due  season  we  shall  have  full 
understanding  of  the  manner,  time  and  attendant  circum- 
stances of  his  appearing,  which,  if  carefully  watched  for  and 
marked,  will  be  no  less  convincing  than  were  the  evidences 


122  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

of  our  Lord's  resurre6lion  furnished  to  the  early  Ciiurch, 
although  of  a  different  kind. 

That  our  Lord  at  his  second  advent  could  assume  the 
human  form,  and  thus  appear  to  men,  as  he  did  to  his  dis- 
ciples after  his  resurre6lion,  there  can  be  no  question  ;  not 
only  because  he  thus  appeared  in  human  form  during  those 
forty  days,  but  because  spirit  beings  have  in  the  past  mani- 
fested the  power  to  appear  as  men  in  flesh  and  in  various 
forms.  But  such  a  manifestation  would  be  out  of  harmony 
with  the  general  tenor  of  God's  plan,  as  well  as  out  of 
harmony  with  the  Scriptural  indications  given,  relative  to 
the  manner  of  his  manifestation,  as  we  shall  see.  Instead, 
it  is  the  Lord's  plan  that  his  spiritual  kingdom  shall  com- 
municate, operate,  and  manifest  its  presence  and  power 
through  human,  earthly  agencies.  Just  as  the  prince  of 
this  world,  Satan,  though  unseen  by  men,  exercises  a  wide 
influence  in  the  world  through  those  subje6l  to  him,  and 
possessed  of  and  controlled  by  his  spirit,  so  the  new  Prince 
of  Peace,  the  Lord,  will  chiefly  operate  in,  and  manifest 
his  presence  and  power  through,  human  beings,  subje6l  to 
him  and  possessed  of  and  controlled  by  his  spirit. 

Seeing  with  the  natural  eye  and  hearing  with  the  natural 
ear  are  not  all  there  is  of  seeing  and  hearing.  **  No  man 
hath  seen  God  at  any  time"  thus,  yet  all  God's  children 
have  seen  him,  and  known  him,  and  held  communion  with 
him.  (John  i  :  i8;  5  :  37  ;  14:  7.)  We  Jiear  God's  call, 
our  **high  calling,"  we  hear  the  voice  of  our  Shepherd, 
and  are  constantly  looking  MXiXo  Jesus,  and  see  the  prize,  the 
crown  of  life  which  he  promises — not  by  natural  sight  and 
liearing,  but  by  our  understanding.  Far  more  precious  is 
the  sight  we  have  of  our  glorified  Lord  as  the  spiritual, 
.highly  exalted  King  of  glory,  our  Redeemer  as  w^l)  as  our 
King,  by  the  eyes  of  our  understanding  and  faith,  thaiA  the 
sight  afforded  to  the  natural  eye  before  Pentecost 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  123 

There  was  a  necessity  for  our  Lord's  appearing  in  the 
manner  he  did  to  his  disciples,  after  his  resurrection,  which 
will  not  exist  at  his  second  advent.  His  objecSt  then  will 
be  better  served  in  a  different  way.  In  faCt,  to  appear  so  at 
his  second  advent  would  be  detrimental  to  the  purpose  then 
to  be  accomplished.  His  objedl  in  appearing  to  his  disci- 
ples after  his  resurrc6tion  was  to  convince  them  that  he 
who  was  dead  is  alive  forevermore,  that  they  might  go  forth 
as  witnesses  to  the  fa6t  of  his  resurre6lion  (Luke  24:  48), 
and  that  their  testimony  might  be  a  sure  foundation  for  the 
faith  of  coming  generations.  Since  no  man  can  come  to 
God  acceptably,  to  receive  the  holy  Spirit  of  adoption, 
without  faith  in  Christ,  it  became  necessary,  not  only  for 
the  sake  of  the  disciples  then,  but  for  all  since,  that  the 
evidences  of  his  resurre6tion  and  change  should  be  such  as 
natural  men  could  grasp  and  appreciate.  After  they  had 
become  partakers  of  the  holy  Spirit  and  understood  spiritual 
things  (See  i  Cor.  2  :  12-16),  they  could  have  believed  the 
angels  at  the  sepulcher,  that  he  had  risen  from  the  dead 
condition,  even  if  they  had  seen  the  fleshly  body  of  the 
man  Christ  Jesus  still  lying  in  the  tomb ;  but  not  so  before 
— the  body  must  be  away  to  make  faith  in  his  resurre6tion 
possible  to  them.  After  the  holy  Spirit  had  enabled  them 
to  discern  spiritual  things,  they  could  have  believed  the  tes- 
timony of  the  prophets  that  he  must  needs  die,  and  would 
rise  fro7n  the  dead,  and  that  he  would  be  highly  exalted  as 
King  of  glory,  without  its  being  needful  for  him  to  appear 
as  a  man,  and  assume  various  bodies  of  flesh  as  a  garment, 
so  that  they  could  handle  him  and  see  him  ascend.  But  all 
this  was  needful  for  them  and  for  all  natural  men.  By  be- 
lieving, we  come  to  God  by  him  and  receive  forgiveness  of 
sins  and  the  Spirit  of  adoption,  to  understand  spiritual  things. 

Even  while  removing  the  natural  obstacles  to  faith,  by 
assuming  human  form,  etc.,  our  Lord  convinced  the  disci- 


1^4  '^^^^  Time  is  at  Hand. 

pies,  and  made  them  witnesses  to  others,  not  by  their  natural 
sight  and  touch,  but  by  reasoning  with  them  out  of  the 
Scriptures :  "  Then  opened  he  their  understanding,  that  they 
might  understand  the  Scriptures,  and  said  unto  them,  Thus 
it  is  written,  and  thus  it  behooved  Christ  to  suffer  and  to 
rise  from  the  dead  the  third  day,  and  that  repentance  and 
remission  of  sins  should  be  preached  in  his  name  among  all 
nations,  beginning  at  Jerusalem.  Aiid  ye  are  witnesses  of 
these  things.''^  (Luke  24:45-48.)  Peter  also  states  this 
obje6t  clearly,  saying,  ^'  Him  God  raised  up  the  third  day, 
and  permitted  him  to  become  manifest — not  to  all  the 
PEOPLE,  but  to  those  witnesses  previously  chosen  of  God,  to 
us,  who  did  eat  and  drink  with  him  after  he  arose  from  the 
dead.  And  he  commanded  us  to  proclaim  to  the  people 
that  this  [the  resurre6ted  Jesus]  is  he  who  has  been  ap- 
pointed by  God  the  judge  of  the  living  and  the  dead."- — 
A6ls  10  :  40-42.     Diagiott  translation. 

With  our  Lord,  afttr  his  resurre(5lion,  it  was  simply  a 
question  of  expediency  as  to  which  way  of  apjDearing  to  his 
disciples  would  best  accomplish  his  objecSl,  of  making  known 
his  resurre6lion  and  change  of  nature.  Had  he  appeared 
as  a  fla?ne  of  fire,  as  the  angel  appeared  to  Moses  in  the 
burning  bush  (Exod.  3  :  2),  he  might  indeed  have  conversed 
with  them,  but  the  evidence  thus  given  would  have  been 
far  from  being  as  convincing  as  the  method  he  did  adopt, 
both  to  the  apostles  and  to  the  world  at  large  to  whom 
they  witnessed. 

If  he  had  appeared  in  the  glory  of  the  spirit  form,  as  the 
angel  did  to  Daniel  (Dan.  10:  5-8),  the  glory  would  have 
been  greater  than  the  witnesses  could  have  borne.  They 
would  probably  have  been  so  alarmed  as  to  be  unable  to 
receive  instrudlions  from  him.  To  none  except  Paul  did 
the  Lord  ever  thus  show  himself;  and  Paul  was  so  over- 
come by  that  glimpse  of  his  glory  that  he  fell  to  the  ground 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  125 

and  was  blinded  by  its  brightness,  which  was  above  that  of 
the  sun  at  noonday. 

In  our  examination  of  the  method  of  manifestation 
adopted  by  our  Lord  during  those  forty  days,  we  saw  that 
he  ''pet'mitied''  himself  to  become  manifest  even  to  the 
chosen  witnesses  only  a  few  times,  and  then  but  briefly. 
The  entire  time  that  he  was  manifest  to  them,  had  it  all 
been  crowded  into  one  day  instead  of  being  at  intervals 
during  the  forty  days ,  would  probably  have  been  less  than 
twelve  hours,  or  one  eightieth  of  that  entire  time.  This 
being  true,  it  is  evident  that  he  was  present  with  them  unseen 
about  seventy-nine  eightieths  of  that  period  of  forty  days. 
And  even  when  they  did  have  manifestations,  they  were  not 
(except  once  to  Thomas)  in  a  form  exa6lly  like  the  one 
they  had  known  so  intimately  for  three  years,  and  had  seen 
but  a  few  days  before.  It  is  not  once  intimated  that  they 
knew  him  by  the  familiar  features  of  his  face,  nor  even  that 
he  was  recognized  by  the  same  appearance  as  in  other  man- 
ifestations. 

Mary  supposed  him  to  be  "  the  gardener."  To  the  two 
on  their  way  to  Emmaus  he  was  *'  a  stranger."  He  was  also 
a  stranger  to  the  fishermen  on  the  sea  of  Galilee,  and  to 
the  eleven  in  the  upper  room.  On  every  occasion  he  was 
recognized  by  his  actions,  his  words,  or  the  familiar  tones 
of  his  voice. 

When  Thomas  declared  that  only  the  proof  which  ad- 
dressed his  natural  sight  and  touch  would  be  acceptable  to 
him,  the  Lord,  though  he  granted  that  demand,  gently  re- 
proved him,  saying.  Because  thou  hast  seen  me,  thou  hast 
believed ;  blessed  are  those  who  believe,  not  having  seen. 
(John  20 :  27-29.)  The  stronger  evidence  was  that  which  was 
not  addressed  to  natural  sight,  and  more  blessed  are  those 
who  hold  themselves  in  readiness  to  receive  the  truth  through 
whatsoever  proofs  God  is  pleased  to  substantiate  it. 


126  The  Time  is  at  Hand, 

He  thus  showed  them,  not  only  that  he  now  had  th^ 
power  to  appear  in  a  variety  of  ways  and  forms,  but  also 
that  no  one  of  those  bodies  which  they  sav/  was  his  spirit- 
ual, glorious  body,  though  the  fa6ls  of  his  resurredlion  and 
presence  were  thus  manifested  to  them.  The  different  forms, 
and  the  long  intervals  of  invisible  presence  with  no  outward 
manifestation,  made  evident  the  fa6l  that  though  their 
Lord  and  teacher  was  alive  and  not  yet  ascended  to  the 
Father,  he  was  now  a  spirit  being,  really  invisible  to  human 
sight,  but  with  ability  to  manifest  his  presence  and  power 
in  a  variety  of  ways  at  pleasure.  '-^ 

The  creating  of  the  body  and  clothing  in  which  he  ap- 
peared to  them,  in  the  very  room  in  which  they  were  gath- 
ered, was  proof  unquestionable  that  Christ  was  no  longer  a 
human  being,  though  he  assured  his  disciples  that  the  body 
which  they  saw,  and  which  Thomas  handled,  was  a  veritable 
flesh  and  bone  body,  and  not  a  mere  vision  or  appearance.  \ 

*  The  occurrence  recorded  by  Luke  (4 :  30)  should  not  be  regarded 
as  a  case  parallel  to  his  appearing  and  vanishing  after  his  resurrecflion. 
That  was  not  a  disappearance  in  the  sense  of  becoming  invisible  to  the 
people.  It  was  merely  an  adroit,  prompt  movement,  by  which  he  eluded 
the  murderous  design  of  his  enemies.  Before  they  had  executed  their 
plans  for  his  death  he  turned  about,  and,  passing  through  their  midst,  no 
man  had  courage  or  power  to  molest  him,  because  his  hour  had  not  yet  come, 
f  Let  no  one  hastily  suppose  that  we  are  here  following  Spiritism, 
Swedenborgianism  or  any  other  isin.  We  are  simply  following  and  logic- 
ally connedling  the  apostolic  account.  The  vast  difference  between  the 
Bible  teaching  and  that  counterfeit  of  it  promulgated  by  Satan,  known 
as  Spiritualism,  we  distincflly  discern  and  shall  examine  in  a  succeeding 
volume.  Suffice  it  here  to  point  out  that  Spiritism  affedls  to  communi- 
cate between  dead  men  and  living  men,  while  the  Bible  condemns  this 
(Isa.  8  :  I9),andteaches  that  such  communications  as  were /rz^i?  have  been 
made  only  by  spirit  beings,  such  as  angels,  and  by  our  Lord ;  and  not  by  our 
Lord  while  he  was  "  the  ■nian  Christ  Jesus,"  nor  while  he  was  dead,  but 
after  his  resurrecflion  change,  when  he  had  become  a  life-giving  or  "  quick- 
ening spirit"  being. 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  127 

As  a  human  being  he  could  not  come  into  the  room  with- 
out opening  the  door,  but  as  a  spirit  being  he  could,  and 
there  he  instantly  created  and  assumed  such  a  body  of  flesh 
and  such  clothing  as  he  saw  fit  for  the  purpose  intended. 

Nor  can  we  for  a  moment  admit  the  suggestion  offered  by 
some,  that  our  Lord  opened  the  doors  without  being  ob- 
served ;  for  the  record  is  plain  and  clear  that  he  came  and 
stood  in  their  midst  -while  the  doos  tvere  shut — probably 
very  carefully  barred  and  bolted  too — ''for  fear  of  the 
Jews." — John  20:  19,  26. 

The  lesson  of  his  changed  nature  was  still  further  em- 
phasized by  his  manner  of  leaving  their  sight:  "He  van- 
is  lie  d  o\xt  of  their  sight."  The  human  body  of  flesh  and 
bones,  etc.,  and  its  clothing,  which  appeared  suddenly  while 
the  doors  were  shut,  did  not  go  out  of  the  door,  but  simply 
disappeared  or  dissolved  into  the  same  elements  from  which 
he  had  created  them  a  few  moments  before.  He  vanished 
out  of  their  sight,  and  was  no  longer  seen  of  them  when 
the  flesh  and  bones  and  clothing  in  which  he  had  manifested 
himself  were  dissolved,  though  doubtless  he  was  still  with 
them — invisibly  present ;  and  so  also  much  of  the  time  dur- 
ing those  forty  days. 

On  special  occasions,  for  special  instru6lion,  God  has 
granted  similar  power  to  other  spirit  beings,  angels,  en- 
abling them  to  appear  as  men,  in  bodies  of  flesh  and  bones 
which  ate  and  talked  to  those  they  instructed,  just  as  our 
Lord  did.  See  Gen.  18;  Judges  6:  11-22;  13:  3-20;  and 
the  comments  on  these  in  Vol.  I.,  pages  178  to  180. 

The  power  manifested  by  our  Lord,  and  the  angels  re- 
ferred to,  to  create  and  dissolve  the  clothing  in  which  they 
appeared,  was  just  as  superhuman  as  the  creating  and  dis- 
solving of  their  assumed  human  bodies;  and  the  bodies 
were  no  more  their  glorious  spiritual  bodies  than  were  the 
clothes  they  wore.     It  will  be  remembered  that  the  seam- 


12^  The   71me  is  at  Hand. 

less  robe  and  other  clothing  which  our  Redeemer  wore  be- 
fore his  crucifixion  had  been  divided  among  the  Roman 
soldiers,  and  that  the  grave  clothes  were  left  folded  away  in 
the  sepulcher  (John  19:  23,  24;  20:  5-7),  so  that  the 
clothing  in  which  he  appeared  on  the  occasions  mentioned 
must  have  been  specially  created,  and  probably  was  the 
most  appropriate  for  each  occasion.  For  instance,  when 
he  appeared  as  a  gardener  to  Mary,  it  was  probably  in  such 
apparel  as  a  gardener  would  wear. 

That  the  bodies  in  which  our  Lord  appeared  were  real 
human  bodies,  and  not  mere  delusions,  he  gave  them 
clearly  to  understand  when  he  ate  before  them,  and  invited 
them  to  handle  him  and  see  that  the  body  was  real  flesh 
and  bones,  saying,  *' Why  are  ye  troubled?  .  .  .  Behold 
my  hands  and  my  feet,  that  it  is  I  myself:  handle  me  and 
see ;  iox  a  spirit  hath  not  flesh  and  bones,  as  ye  see  me  have." 

Some  Christians  draw  very  absurd  conclusions  from  this 
expression  of  our  Lord  as  to  the  verity  of  his  assumed  flesh 
and  bone  body.  They  regard  the  assumed  body  as  his 
spirit  body,  and  declare  that  a  spirit  body  is  flesh  and 
bones,  and  just  like  a  human  body,  excepting  that  an  inde- 
finable something,  which  they  call  spirit,  flows  through  its 
veins  instead  of  blood.  They  seem  to  disregard  the  state- 
ment of  our  Lord,  that  this  was  not  a  spirit  body — that  a 
spirit  being  has  not  flesh  and  bones.  Do  they  also  forget 
John's  statement,  that  "It  doth  not  yet  appear"  what  a 
spirit  body  is,  and  that  we  shall  not  know  until  we  are 
changed  and  made  like  him  and  see  him,  not  as  he  was, 
but  as  he  is?  (i  John  3:2.)  Do  they  also  forget  the  Apos- 
tle Paul's  express  statement  that  '^ flesh  and  blood  cannot 
inherit  the  kingdom  of  God?" — and  his  further  assurance 
that  therefore  all  the  heirs  with  Christ  must  also  "be 
changed?'' — i  Cor.  15:50,  51. 

Many  Christians  have  the  idea  that  our  Lord's  glorious 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  129 

spiritual  body  is  the  very  same  body  that  was  crucified  and 
laid  away  in  Joseph's  tomb:  they  expe6l,  when  they  see 
the  Lord  in  glory,  to  identify  him  by  the  scars  he  received 
on  Calvary.  This  is  a  great  mistake,  which  a  very  little 
consideration  should  make  manifest — Firstly,  It  would  prove 
that  his  resurredlion  body  is  not  glorious  or  perfe6t,  but 
scarred  and  disfigured :  Secondly,  It  would  prove  that  we 
do  know  what  a  spirit  body  is,  notwithstanding  the  Apostle's 
statement  to  the  contrary:  Thirdly,  It  would  prove  that 
our  redemption  price  was  taken  back;  for  Jesus  said,  *'My 
flesh  I  will  give  for  the  life  of  the  world. ' '  It  was  his  flesh, 
his  life  as  a  fnan^  his  humanity,  that  was  sacrificed  for  our 
redemption.  And  when  he  was  raised  to  life  again  by  the 
power  of  the  Father,  it  was  not  to  human  existence ;  because 
that  was  sacrificed  as  our  purchase  price.  And  if  that 
price  had  been  taken  back,  we  would  still  be  under  the 
condemnation  of  death,  and  without  hope. 

We  have  no  more  reason  to  suppose  that  our  Lord's  spirit 
body  since  his  resurre6lion  is  a  human  body  than  we  have 
for  supposing  that  his  spirit  body  prior  to  his  incarnation 
was  human,  or  that  other  spirit  beings  have  human  bodies ; 
for  a  spirit  hath  not  flesh  and  bones ;  and,  says  the  Apostle 
Peter,  our  Lord  was  "put  to  death  in  the  flesh  but  made 
alive  in  spirit. ' ' 

Our  Lord's  human  body  was,  however,  supernaturally 
removed  from  the  tomb ;  because  had  it  remained  there  it 
would  have  been  an  insurmountable  obstacle  to  the  faith  of 
the  disciples,  who  were  not  yet  instru6ted  in  spiritual  things 
— for  ''the  spirit  was  not  yet  given."  (John  7  :  39.)  We 
know  nothing  about  what  became  of  it,  except  tliat  it  did 
not  decay  or  corrupt.  (Aas  2:27,  31.)  Whether  it  was 
dissolved  into  gases  or  whether  it  is  still  preserved  some- 
where as  the  grand  memorial  of  God's  love,  of  Christ's 
obedience,  and  of  our  redemption,  no  one  knows ; — nor  is 

9  s 


130  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

such  knowledge  necessary.  That  God  did  miraculously 
hide  the  body  of  Moses,  we  are  assured  (Deut.  34  :  6 ;  Jude 
9) ;  and  that  as  a  memorial  God  did  miraculously  preserve 
from  corruption  the  manna  in  the  golden  bowl,  which 
was  placed  in  the  Ark  under  the  Mercy  Seat  in  the  Taber- 
nacle, and  that  it  was  a  symbol  of  our  Lord's  flesh,  the 
bread  from  heaven,  we  also  know  (Exod.  14:  20,  -^t,  ;  Heb. 
9:4;  John  6:51-58).  Hence  it  will  not  surprise  us  if, 
in  the  Kingdom,  God  shall  show  to  the  world  the  body  of 
flesh,  crucified  for  all  in  giving  the  ransom  on  their  behalf— 
not  permitted  to  corrupt,  but  preserved  as  an  everlasting 
testimony  of  infinite  love  and  perfedl  obedience.  It  is  at 
least  possible  that  John  19  :  37  and  Zech.  12  :  10  may  have 
such  a  fulfilment.  Those  who  cried,  "  Crucify  him !  "  may 
yet,  as  witnesses,  identify  the  very  body  pierced  by  the 
spear  and  torn  by  the  nails  and  thorns. 

To  regard  our  Lord's  glorious  body  as  a  body  of  flesh 
would  not  in  the  least  account  for  his  peculiar  and  sudden 
appearings  during  those  forty  days  prior  to  his  ascension. 
How  could  he  so  suddenly  appear  and  then  vanish?  How 
was  it  that  he  kept  himself  almost  constantly  invisible  dur- 
ing those  forty  days  ?  And  why  was  it  that  his  appearance  each 
time  was  so  changed  as  not  to  be  recognized  as  the  same  one 
seen  on  any  former  occasion,  or  as  the  one  so  well  known  and 
loved  by  all,  before  his  crucifixion,  only  a  few  days  previous  ? 

It  will  not  do  merely  to  say  that  these  were  miracles, 
for  then  some  use  or  necessity  for  the  miracles  should 
be  named.  If  his  body  after  his  resurredlion  were  flesh  and 
bones,  and  the  same  body  that  was  crucified,  with  all  the 
features  and  scars,  why  did  he  perform  miracles  which  not 
only  did  not  establish  that  fa6l,  but  which  were  likely, 
we  see,  to  teach  the  opposite? — that  he  himself  was  no 
longer  human — flesh  and  bones — but  a  spirit  being  who 
could  go  and  come  as  the  wind,  so  that  none  could  tell 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  131 

whence  he  came  or  whither  he  went,  but  who,  for  the 
purpose  of  instru6ting  them,  appeared  as  a  man  in  various 
bodies  of  flesh  and  bones  which  he  created  and  dissolved 
as  occasion  required. 

Before  our  Lord's  crucifixion,  he  had  been  on  familiar 
terms  with  his  disciples,  but  after  his  resurredlion,  though 
he  loved  them  none  the  less,  his  manner  toward  them  was 
more  reserved.  This  was  doubtless  to  impress  them  more 
forcibly  with  the  dignity  and  honor  of  his  high  exaltation, 
and  to  inspire  due  reverence  for  his  person  and  authority. 
Though  as  a  man  Jesus  never  lacked  that  dignity  of  de- 
portment which  commands  respe6l,  yet  a  greater  reserve 
was  necessary  and  expedient  after  his  change  to  the  divine 
nature.  Such  reserve  has  always  been  maintained  by  Jeho- 
vah toward  his  creatures,  and  is  expedient  under  the  cir- 
cumstances. This  reserve  marked  all  our  Lord's  interviews 
with  the  disciples  after  his  resurrection.  They  were  very 
brief,  even  as  he  had  said,  "  Hereafter  I  will  not  talk  much 
with  you." — John  14:  30. 

Those  who  believe  that  our  Heavenly  Father  is  a  spirit 
and  not  a  man  should  find  no  difficulty  in  realizing  that 
our  Lord  Jesus,  who  is  now  exalted  to  the  divine  nature, 
and  who  is  not  only  a  moral  likeness  of  God  but  in  fa6t 
''  the  express  image  of  the  Father' s  person,""  is  no  longer  a 
man  but  a  spirit  being,  whom  no  man  hath  seen  nor  can 
see  without  a  miracle.  It  is  just  as  impossible  for  men  to 
see  the  unveiled  glory  of  the  Lord  Jesus  as  it  is  for  them 
to  behold  Jehovah.  Think  for  a  moment  how  even  a  re- 
fle6lion  of  the  spiritual  glory  affe6ted  Moses  and  Israel  at 
Sinai.  (Heb.  12:21;  Exod.  1 9  ;  20  :  1 9-2 1 ;  33 :  20-23 ;  34 : 
29-35.)  "So  terrible  was  the  sight,"  so  overwhelming  and 
fear-inspiring,  "that  Moses  said,  I  exceedingly  fear  and 
quake."  And  though  Moses  was  supernaturally  strength- 
ened to  behold  the  glory  of  the  Lord,  so  that  for  forty  days 


132  The  Time  is  at  Hand, 

and  forty  nights,  alone  with  God,  overshadowed  by  his 
glory  and  without  either  food  or  drink,  he  received  and 
wrote  the  divine  law  (Exod.  34:  28),  yet  when  he  desired 
to  see  the  Lord  face  to  face  he  was  told,  ''Thou  canst  not 
see  my  face ;  for  there  shall  no  man  see  me  and  live. ' '  (Exod. 
33  :  20.)  All  that  Moses  ever  saw,  therefore,  was  an  appear- 
ance representing  God,  and  nothing  more  was  possible.  This 
accords,  too,  with  the  Apostle's  statements:  "  No  man  hath 
seen  God  at  any  time T  he  is  "the  King  immortal,  in- 
visible, whom  no  man  hath  seen  nor  can  \ever\  seeJ"  (i  Tim. 
6  :  15,  16.)  But  that  spirit  beings  can  and  do  see  God,  who 
himself  is  a  spirit  being,  is  clearly  stated. — Matt.  18:  10. 
If  our  Lord  is  still  ''the  man  Christ  Jesus,  who  gave 
himself  a  ransom  for  all"  (i  Tim.  2:5,  6) — if  being  put 
to  death  in  the  flesh  he  was  raised  again  in  the  flesh,  and 
not,  as  the  Apostle  declares,  a  life-giving  spirit — then  instead 
of  being  exalted  higher  than  angels  and  every  name  that 
is  named  in  heaven  as  well  as  in  earth,  he  is  still  a  man. 
And  if  he  retains  the  form  of  a  servant,  which  he  took  for 
the  purpose  of  suffering  death  for  every  man,  and  is 
still  a  little  lower  than  the  angels,  he  never  can  see 
God.  But  how  unreasonable  such  a  view  when  fully 
examined  in  the  light  of  apostolic  testimony.  Consider, 
too,  that  if  our  Lord's  flesh,  that  was  pierced  and  wounded 
with  nail  and  spear  and  crown  of  thorns,  and  marked  with 
sorrow,  is  his  glorious  spiritual  body,  and  if  the  scars  and 
marred  human  features  are  part  and  parcel  of  the  exalted 
Lord,  he  would  be  far  from  beautiful,  even  if  we  should 
love  the  wounds  endured  for  us.  And  if  he  thus  bears  an 
imperfect,  scarred,  marred  body,  and  if  we  shall  be  like  him, 
would  it  not  imply  that  the  apostles  and  saints  who  were 
crucified,  beheaded,  stoned  to  death,  burned,  cut  to  pieces 
and  torn  by  beasts,  as  well  as  those  who  met  with  accidents, 
would  each  likewise  bear  his  blemishes  and  scars  ?    And  in 


Mariner  of  the  Second  Advent.  133 

tkat  view  would  not  heaven  present  a  most  awful  spedacle — 
to  all  eternity?  But  this  is  not  the  case,  and  no  one  could 
long  hold  so  unreasonable  and  unscriptural  a  view.  Spirit 
beings  are  perfe6l  in  every  particular,  and  so  the  Apostle 
reminds  the  Church,  who  are  heirs  of  heavenly  or  spiritual 
glory  and  honor,  that,  though  sown  [in  death]  in  weakness 
[with  marks  and  wounds,  etc.]  it  [the  being]  is  raised  in 
power ;  though  sown  in  dishonor  [with  lines  of  care  and 
sorrow,  etc.]  it  is  raised  in  glory;  though  sown  a  natural 
body  [literally,  ''an  animal  body"]  it  will  be  raised  a 
spiritual  body ;  and  that  as  we  have  borne  the  image  of 
the  earthly  father,  we  shall  bear  the  image  of  the  heavenly 
Lord,  (i  Cor.  15  :  42-51.)  Our  Lord  Jesus  for  our  sakes 
took  and  bore  the  image  of  the  earthly  also,  for  a  while, 
that  he  might  redeem  us.  But  in  his  resurrection  he  be- 
came the  heavenly  Lord  (Rom.  14 :  9),  and  we,  if  faithful, 
shall  soon  bear  the  image  of  the  heavenly  Lord  (spiritual 
bodies),  as  we  now  still  bear  the  image  of  the  earthly  lord, 
Adam  (human  bodies). 

Remember  Paul's  case — In  order  that  he  might  be  one 
of  the  apostles,  he  must  be  a  witness — must  see  the  Lord 
after  his  resurrection.  He  was  not  one  of  those  who  saw 
the  manifestations  of  resurreClion  and  presence  during  the 
forty  days,  hence  he  was  given  a  special  glimpse  of  the  Lord. 
But  he  saw  him,  not  as  did  the  others — not  veiled  in  flesh 
and  garments  of  various  forms.  And  the  merest  glance  at  the 
unveiled  glorious  person  of  our  Lord  caused  him  to  fall  to 
the  ground  blinded  with  a  glory  far  ''above  the  brightness 
of  the  sun  at  noon-day :"  from  which  blindness,  to  restore 
him  to  even  partial  sight  required  a  miracle.  (A(5ls9  :  17, 
18.)  Did  not  Paul  see  the  Lord  as  he  is — a  spiritual  being  ? 
And  did  not  our  Lord  during  the  forty  days  appear  as  he 
was,  i.  e.,  as  he  had  been  previously,  for  the  special  pur- 
poses and  reasons  already  pointed  out?     There  is  no  room 


134  The  Tune  is  at  Hand. 

to  doubt  this.  But  the  Lord  had  an  obje6l  in  appearing  to 
Paul  thus,  just  as  he  had  and  served  another  obje6l  by  ap- 
pearing differently  to  the  others.  This  obje6l  Paul  shows, 
saying:  ''Last  of  all  he  was  seen  of  me  also — as  by  one 
BORN  BEFORE  THE  DUE  TIME."  (i  Cor.  1 5  :  8 — literal  ren- 
dering.) As  the  resurre6lion  of  our  Lord  was  his  birth 
from  the  dead,  to  the  full  perfe6lion  of  spiritual  being  (Col. 
I  :  18;  Rom.  8:  29),  so  the  resurre6tion  of  the  Church,  the 
body  of  Christ,  is  here  and  elsewhere  referred  to  as  a  birth. 
In  our  birth  or  resurrection  as  spirit  beings,  we  shall  see  the 
Lord  as  he  is,  just  as  Paul  saw^  him ;  but  we,  being  cha?iged 
or  born  then,  as  spirit  beings,  will  not  be  stricken  down 
nor  blinded  with  the  sight  of  our  Lord's  glorious  person. 
Paul's  statement  means  that  he  saw  him  as  we  shall  see  him 
— ^^as  he  is :''  he  saw  him  as  all  the  body  of  Christ  shall 
see  him,  but  before  the  due  time,  before  he  was  born 
from  the  dead,  and  therefore  before  able  to  endure  it ; — yet 
^^ as""  each  one  so  born  shall  in  due  time  see  him. 

Moses,  coming  down  from  the  mount  to  communicate  to 
Israel  the  Law  Covenant,  was  a  type  of  the  greater  Law- 
giver and  Mediator  of  the  Nev/  Covenant,  who  at  his  second 
advent  shall  come  forth  to  rule  and  bless  the  world.  Moses 
typified,  therefore,  the  entire  Church,  of  which  our  Lord  is 
the  Head.  Moses'  face  was  caused  to  shine,  so  that  the 
people  could  not  look  at  him,  and  he  must  thereafter  wear 
a  veil,  as  a  type  of  the  spiritual  glory  of  Christ,  an  illustra- 
tion of  the  point  we  are  now  examining.  Christ  has  the 
real  glory  and  brightness,  the  express  image  of  the  Father's 
person,  and  w^e  shall  be  like  him,  and  no  man  can  behold 
that  glory ;  hence  whatever  manifestcUion  of  the  Law-giver 
there  will  be  to  the  world  when  the  glory  of  the  Lord  shall  be 
revealed,  the  glory  of  the  spiritual  persons  cannot  be  seen. 
They  will  speak  through  the  veil — under  the  cover.  This,  as 
well  as  more,  was  meant  by  Moses  veil. — Exod.  34:  30-33. 


Ma7iner  of  the  Second  Advetit.  135 

As  we  give  the  matter  careful  study,  we  come  more  and 
more  to  recognize  the  divine  wisdom  displayed  in  the  man- 
ner of  revealing  the  resurre6lion  of  our  Lord  to  the  apos- 
tles, that  they  should  be  thoroughly  satisfied  and  reliable 
witnesses,  and  that  the  meek  of  the  world  might  be  able 
to  receive  their  testimony  and  believe  that  God  raised  our 
Lord  from  the  dead — that  they  might  recognize  him  as  the 
one  that  was  dead,  but  is  now  alive  forevermore,  and,  be- 
lieving, might  come  unto  God  by  him.  And  as  we  con- 
sider him  under  the  leadings  of  the  holy  Spirit  of  truth, 
our  minds  expand  and  we  see  him  no  longer  the  man  Christ 
Jesus,  but  the  Lord  of  glory  and  power,  partaker  of  the 
divine  nature.  And  thus  we  know  him,  for  whose  coming 
and  kingdom  the  Church  has  so  earnestly  prayed  and  longed. 
And  no  one  properly  recognizing  his  great  exaltation  can 
expedl  at  his  second  coming  the  man  Christ  Jesus  in  the 
body  of  flesh  prepared  for  sacrifice  and  wounded  and  given 
in  death  as  our  ransom.  Nor  should  we  expecfl  that  at  his 
second  coming  he  would  ^'  appear,"  or  manifest  himself,  in 
various  flesh  and  bone  forms  to  the  world — that  was  needful 
for  those  early  witnesses,  but  not  so  now.  He  will,  as  we 
shall  see,  manifest  his  second  presence  very  differently. 

From  what  we  have  seen  regarding  spirit  beings  and  their 
manifestations  in  times  past,  it  is  evident  that  if  our  Lord 
were  to  manifest  himself  at  his  second  advent  either  by 
opening  men's  eyes  to  behold  his  glory,  as  he  did  with 
Paul  and  Daniel,  or  by  assuming  a  human  body,  it  would 
be  detrimental  to  the  plan  revealed  in  his  Wcrd.  The  effe6l 
of  appearing  in  glory  to  the  world,  their  eyes  being  mirac- 
ulously wrought  upon  to  enable  them  to  see  him,  would  be 
almost  to  paralyze  them  with  the  overwhelming  sight,  while 
to  appear  as  a  man  would  be  to  lower  the  standard  of  dig- 
nity and  give  a  lower  than  the  true  estimate  of  the  divine 
nature  and  form.     As  neither  would  seem  to  be  necessary 


136  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

or  advisable  now,  we  cannot  presume  that  either  of  these 
methods  will  be  adopted. 

On  the  contrary,  we  should  expe6l  that  the  Ckrist  would 
be  manifest  in  the  flesh  of  mankind  in  the  same  manner  that 
when  the  Lord  was  ''  rnade  flesh  "  and  dwelt  awong  men, 
God  was  manifest  in  his  flesh.  Human  nature,  w^ien  perfecSt 
and  in  harmony  with  God,  is  a  likeness  of  God  \a  the  flesh ; 
hence  the  originally  perfe6t  Adam  was  a  likeness  of  God, 
and  the  perfect  man  Christ  Jesus  was  also ;  so  that  he  could 
say  to  the  disciple  Philip,  who  asked  to  see  the  Father,  ^'He 
that  hath  seen  me  hath  seen  the  Father  " — he  hath  seen  the 
likeness  of  God  in  the  flesh,  ''God  manifest  in  the  flesh." 

So,  too,  mankind  in  general,  as  its  members  come  grad- 
ually back  to  the  long-lost  image  of  God,  will  be  fleshly 
images  and  likenesses  of  the  Father  and  of  the  Christ.  At 
the  very  beginning  of  the  Millennium,  as  we  have  seen, 
there  will  be  samples  of  perfe61;  manhood  before  the  world 
(Vol.  L,  pages  287-293):  Abraham,  Isaac  and  Jacob,  and 
the  holy  prophets,  already  tried  and  approved,  will  be  the 
"princes"  among  men,  the  exponents  and  representatives 
of  the  spiritual,  invisible  kingdom.  In  these  Christ  will  be 
manifested — in  their  flesh — even  as  the  Father  was  manifested 
in  his  flesh.  And  as  "whosoever  will"  reaches  perfe6lion 
and  comes  into  full  harmony  with  the  will  of  Christ,  every 
such  one  will  be  an  image  of  God  and  of  Christ,  and  in 
each  of  these  Christ  will  be  manifested. 

Because  created  in  God's  moral  image,  the  perfe6l  man, 
fully  consecrated,  will  be  able  to  appreciate  perfedlly  th6 
holy  Spirit  and  Word  of  God ;  and  the  glorified  Church 
will  dire6l  him.  No  doubt,  too,  visions  and  dire6l  reve- 
lations, and  general  communication  between  the  spiritual 
kingdom  and  its  earthly  representatives  and  exponents,  will 
be  much  more  free  and  general  than  similar  communica- 
tions ever  were  before — more  after  the  order  of  the  com- 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  i;57 

munions  of  Eden,  before  sin  brought  condemnation  and 
separation  from  God's  favor  and  communion. 

Nothing,  then,  either  in  reason  or  in  Scripture,  demands 
that  our  Lord  shall  at  his  second  advent  appear  in  various 
bodies  of  flesh  and  bones.  That  such  a  procedure  is  not 
essential  is  evident  from  the  success  of  Satan's  kingdom, 
which  operates  through  human  beings  as  agents.  Those  who 
partake  of  the  spirit  of  evil  and  error  represent  the  great 
unseen  prince,  most  fully.  He  is  thus  manifest  in  their 
flesh,  though  himself  a  spirit  being,  invisible  to  men. 

The  Christ  ''changed,"  made  partakers  of  the  divine  na- 
ture, shall  be  spirit  beings  as  truly  as  is  Satan,  and  equally 
invisible  to  men.  Their  operations  will  be  similiar  in  man- 
ner, though  diredlly  opposite  in  chara61;er  and  results ;  their 
honored  agents,  not  bound  and  made  slaves  by  ignorance 
and  weakness,  as  are  most  of  the  servants  of  Satan,  but 
made  perfe6l,  and  ''free  indeed,"  willa6l  intelligently  and 
harmoniously,  from  choice  and  from  love;  and  their  ap- 
pointments will  be  rewards  of  righteousness. 

Our  Lord's  presence  will  be  manifested  to  the  world hy  ex- 
hibitions of  "  power  and  great  glory,"  not,  however,  merely 
to  the  natural  sight,  but  to  the  eyes  of  their  understanding, 
as  they  shall  open  to  an  appreciation  of  the  great  changes 
which  the  new  Ruler  shall  effedl.  His  presence  and  right- 
eous authority  will  be  recognized  in  both  the  punishments 
and  the  blessings  that  will  flow  to  mankind  from  his  reign. 

It  has  long  been  generally  believed  that  distress  and 
trouble  come  as  punishments  for  evil  doing,  upon  the  wicked. 
This  seeming  to  be  a  natural  and  proper  law,  people  in 
general  have  accepted  it,  thinking  that  it  should  be  so, 
even  if  it  is  not ;  yet  the  hard  fa6ls  of  experience  agree 
with  the  Bible,  that  in  the  past  it  has  been  the  godly  who 
have  oftenest  suffered  afflictions  and  persecutions.  (2  Tim. 
3  :  12.)     But  in  the  "  Day  of  Trouble,"  the  period  of  forty 


138  The   Time  is  at  Hajid. 

years  introducing  Messiah's  reign,  this  order  will  begin  to  be 
reversed.  In  that  day,  evil  powers  are  to  be  overthrown, 
and  righteousness,  established  by  a  gradual  process,  shall 
speedily  work  out  a  corresponding  retribution  to  evil-doers, 
and  blessings  to  them  that  do  good — ''Tribulation  and 
anguish  upon  every  soul  of  man  that  doeth  evil,  .  .  .  but 
glory,  honor  and  peace  to  every  man  that  worketh  good" — 
in  that  ''  day  of  wrath  and  revelation  of  the  righteous  judg- 
ment of  God,  who  will  render  to  every  man  according  to 
his  deeds."  (Rom.  2:9,  10,  6,  5.)  And  since  there  is  so 
much  that  is  wrong  now,  the  retribution  will  be  very  heavy 
at  first,  making  a  ''time  of  trouble  such  as  was  not  since 
there  was  a  nation."  Thus,  in  vengeance,  and  trouble,  and 
WTath  upon  the  nations,  will  the  Lord  reveal  to  the  world 
the  fa6t  of  the  change  of  dispensations,  and  the  change  of 
rulers.  And  thus,  "  When  the  judgments  of  the  Lord  are 
in  the  earth,  the  inhabitants  of  the  world  will  learn  right- 
eousness." (Isa.  26:  5-1 1.)  They  will  learn  that  under 
the  new  order  of  things  right-doers  are  to  be  exalted  and 
evil-doers  restrained  and  punished.  For  clear  prophetic 
testimony  relative  to  this  kingdom  and  its  operation  on 
behalf  of  the  humble,  the  upright,  the  poor,  the  needy  and 
the  oppressed,  and  its  overthrow  of  monopolies  and  every 
system  of  injustice  and  oppression,  and  the  general  equal- 
ization of  human  affairs,  read  carefully  Psalm  72:  1-19; 

Our  King  will  thus  reveal  himself  gradually  :  some  will 
discern  the  new  Ruler  sooner  than  others,  but  ultimately 
"every  eye  shall  see  \Jiorao — discern]  him."  (Rev.  i  :  7.) 
But  "he  cometh  with  clouds;"  and  while  the  clouds  of 
trouble  are  heavy  and  dark,  when  the  mountains  (kingdoms 
of  this  world)  are  trembling  and  falling,  and  the  earth  (or- 
ganized society)  is  being  shaken,  disintegrated,  melted,  some 
will  begin  to  realize  what  we  now  proclaim  as  already  at 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  139 

hand — that  the  great  day  of  Jehovah  has  come ;  that  the 
foretold  day  of  trouble  and  wrath  upon  the  nations  is  be- 
ginning ;  and  that  Jehovah's  Anointed  is  taking  to  him- 
self his  great  power  and  beginning  his  work,  of  laying 
justice  to  the  line  and  righteousness  to  the  plummet.  (Isa. 
28:  17.)  And  '^he  must  reign  until"  he  shall  have  put 
down  all  authorities  and  laws  on  earth,  contrary  to  those 
which  control  in  heaven. 

As  the  trouble  increases,  men  will  seek,  but  in  vain,  for 
prote6lion  in  the  ''dens"  and  caves,  the  great  rocks  and 
fortresses  of  society  (Free  Masonry,  Odd  Fellowship,  and 
Trades  Unions,  Guilds,  Trusts,  and  all  societies  secular  and 
ecclesiastical),  and  in  the  mountains  (governments)  of  earth ; 
saying,  *'  Fall  over^  [cover,  prote6l]  and  hide  us  from  the 
face  of  him  that  sitteth  on  the  throne,  and  from  the  wrath 
of  the  Lamb;  for  the  great  day  of  his  wrath  is  come." — 
Rev.  6 :  15-17. 

The  idolatry  of  money  in  which  the  whole  world  has 
gone  mad,  and  which  is  to  have  so  prominent  a  place  in 
the  trouble,  causing  not  only  anxiety  for  its  accumulation, 
but  also  for  its  preservation,  is  to  be  completely  overthrown, 
as  shown  in  Isa.  2  :  8-21 ;  Ezek.  7  :  17-19. 

The  great  day  of  trouble  will  be  recognized,  and  from  its 
storm  all  will  seek  prote6lion,  though  few  will  recognize  the 
judgments  of  the  Lord  then  abroad  in  the  world  as  the  re- 
sult oihS.'i,  presence  J  the  setting  up  of  his  authority,  and  the 
enforcement  of  his  laws.     In  the  end,  however,  all  shall 

*  The  Greek  word  epi,  here  used,  is  generally  translated  on,  but  has 
also  the  significance  of  over  and  about,  and  is  so  translated  many  times  in 
the  common  version.  The  thought  is  that  of  protedlion,  not  of  destruc- 
tion. The  common  view  of  this  passage,  that  it  teaches  that  wicked 
men  will  get  faith  enough  to  pray  for  literal  mountains  to  fall,  is  absurd. 
The  real  fulfilment  is  already  beginning :  the  great,  the  rich,  and  no  less 
the  poor,  are  seeking  to  the  mountains  and  rocks  and  caves  for  shelter 
from  the  darkening  storm  of  trouble  which  all  see  is  gathering. 


140  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

recognize  [''^<?^"]  the  King  of  glory  ;  and  all  who  then  love 
righteousness  will  rejoice  to  obey  him  and  conform  them- 
selves fully  to  his  just  requirements. 

That  will  be  a  time  of  retribution  upon  all  who  by  fraud 
or  force,  sometimes  in  the  name  of  law  and  under  its 
san6lion,  have  unrighteously  grasped  the  rights  or  property 
of  others.  The  retribution,  as  we  have  seen,  will  come 
fro?n  the  Lord,  through  the  uprising  of  the  masses  of  the 
people.  In  their  distress,  loth  to  part  with  a  dollar  or  an 
acre,  or  an  assumed  right  or  dignity  long  enjoyed  and  long 
undisputed,  yet  seeing  the  approaching  retribution,  many 
will  seek  the  covering  of  the  hitherto  pov/erful  organiza- 
tions— civil,  social  and  ecclesiastical — to  promote  and 
shield  their  interests,  feeling  that  alone  they  must  fall.  But 
these  shall  not  be  able  to  deliver  them  in  the  day  of  the 
Lord's  anger.  The  approaching  conflict  and  retribution 
will  cause  all  the  families  of  the  earth  to  wail ;  for  it  will  be 
a  time  of  trouble  such  as  was  not  since  there  was  a  nation — 
no,  nor  ever  shall  be  again.  It  will  be  ''because  of  him'' 
that  they  will  wail ;  because  of  his  judgments  producing  in 
a  natural  way  the  great  trouble ;  because  the  Lord  ariseth 
to  shake  terribly  the  earth,  and  to  destroy  its  corruptions. 
(Isa.  2:21.)  So  far-reaching  will  be  the  judgments  and  the 
trouble  that  none  shall  escape.  Ultimately  every  eye  shall 
discern  the  change,  and  recognize  that  the  Lord  reigneth. 
The  trouble  might  be  greatly  lessened  could  men  see  and 
promptly  a6l  upon  principles  of  equity,  ignoring  and  re- 
linquishing all  unjust  privileges  of  the  past,  even  though 
legalized ;  but  this,  selfishness  will  not  permit  until  the 
trouble  shall  break  and  overthrow  the  proud,  humble  the 
powerful  and  exalt  the  meek. 

But  not  until  the  great  day  of  trouble  is  about  closing — 
not  until  the  Gentile  kingdoms  are  ground  to  powder  and 
utterly  removed,  no  place  being  found  for  them  (A.  D. 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent,  T41 

1914,  as  shown  in  the  preceding  chapter) — not  until  great 
Babylon  is  utterly  overthrown  and  her  influence  over  the 
world  broken — will  the  great  mass  of  mankind  come  to 
realize  the  true  state  of  the  case.  Then  they  will  see  that 
the  great  trouble  through  which  they  will  have  passed  was 
that  symbolically  termed  ''The  battle  of  the  great  day  of 
God  Almighty"  (Rev.  16:  14);  that  in  proportion  as 
they  have  aided  error  and  wrong,  they  have  been  battling 
against  the  law  and  forces  of  the  new  empire  and  the  new 
Ruler  of  earth;  and  that  in  proportion  as  their  tongues, 
and  pens,  and  hands,  and  influence,  and  means,  v/ere  used 
to  support  the  right  and  the  truth  on  any  subje6l,  they 
had  been  to  that  extent  fighting  on  the  Lord's  side. 

Some  will  learn  the  significance  of  the  trouble  more 
quickly  than  others,  because  more  teachable.  And  during 
all  the  trouble  there  will  be  in  the  world  those  who  will 
bear  witness  to  its  cause,  declaring  the  Lord's  presence  and 
the  setting  up  of  his  kingdom  which  is  in  opposition  to 
the  powers  of  darkness  to  be  the  real  cause  of  the  trouble 
and  shaking  and  overturning  of  society,  showing  that  all 
who  oppose  truth  and  righteousness  are  the  enemies  of  the 
new  kingdom,  and  that  unless  they  quickly  surrender  they 
must  soon  suffer  ignominious  defeat.  Yet  the  masses  will 
be  heedless  of  wise  counsel,  as  they  have  always  been,  until 
completely  humbled  under  the  iron  rule  of  the  new  king- 
dom, only  at  last  realizing  the  folly  of  their  course. 

The  true  teacher  and  light  bearer  (Matt.  5  :  14),  the  true 
Church,  the  body  of  Christ,  is  not  to  be  left  in  darkness  to 
learn  of  her  Lord's  presence  by  the  manifestations  of  his 
wrath  and  power,  as  the  v/orld  will  learn  of  it.  For  her 
enlightenment  special  provision  has  been  made.  By  the 
sure  word  of  prophecy,  which  shines  as  a  light  in  a  dark 
place,  she  is  clearly  and  definitely  informed  just  what  to 
expedl.    (2  Pet.  1:19.)     Through  the  prophetic  word,  she 


142  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

shall  not  only  be  shielded  from  discouragement,  and  ena- 
bled to  overcome  the  besetments,  snares  and  stumbling- 
stones  so  prevalent  in  ^'the  evil  day,"  and  thus  to  stand 
approved  of  God,  but  she  becomes  the  light-bearer  and  in- 
strudlor  of  the  Avorld.  The  Church  is  thus  enabled  to  point 
out  to  the  world  the  cause  of  the  trouble,  to  announce  the 
presence  of  the  new  Ruler,  to  declare  the  policy,  plan  and 
obje6l  of  the  new  dispensation,  and  to  instru61;  the  world 
as  to  the  wisest  course  to  pursue  in  view  of  these  things. 
And  though  men  will  not  give  heed  to  the  instrudlion 
until  the  lesson  of  submissioii  has  been  forced  upon  them 
by  the  trouble,  it  will  greatly  aid  them  then  in  learning  the 
lesson.  It  is  to  this  mission  of  the  ''  feet,"  or  last  member? 
of  the  Church,  who  will  declare  upon  the  mountains  (king' 
doms)  the  reign  of  Christ  begun,  that  Isa.  52:7  refers. 

SEEMINGLY    CONFLICTING    SCRIPTURES. 

There  are  some  statements  of  Scripture  with  reference  to 
the  manner  of  the  Lord's  return  and  appearing  which,  until 
critically  examined,  appear  to  be  contradi6tory  to  each 
other.  And  no  doubt  they  have  for  centuries  served  the 
divine  purpose  of  concealing  the  truth  until  the  due  time  for 
it  to  be  understood ;  and  even  then,  from  all  except  the  spe- 
cial class  of  consecrated  ones  for  whom  it  was  intended. 

For  instance,  our  Lord  said,  '^  Behold,  I  come  as  a  thief;' ' 
and,  ^'As  it  was  in  the  days  of  Noah,  so  shall  it  be  also 
in  the  days  of  the  Son  of  man  [the  days  of  his  presence\  : 
They  did  eat,  they  drank,  they  married  wives,  they  were 
given  in  marriage,"  '^and  knew  ;2^/ until  the  flood  came." 
''And  when  Jesus  was  questioned  of  the  Pharisees  when 
the  Kingdom  of  God  should  come,  he  answered  them  and 
said,  The  Kingdom  of  God  cometh  not  with  observation"*^ 
\inarginal reading,  ''not  with  outward  show"]. — Rev.  16: 
15  ;  Luke  17  :  26,  27,  20;  Matt.  24:  38,  39, 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  143 

These  scriptures  plainly  state  and  illustrate  the  manner  of 
the  Lord's  coming.  They  show  that  he  will  be  present 
unseen,  doing  a  work  of  which  the  world  for  a  time  will  be 
entirely  unaware.  His  arrival  must  therefore  be  in  a  quiet 
manner,  unobserved,  and  entirely  unknown  to  the  world, 
just  **as  a  thief"  would  come,  without  noise  or  other  dem- 
onstration to  attra6l  attention.  As  in  the  days  of  Noah 
the  world  went  on  with  its  affairs  as  usual,  not  in  the  least 
disconcerted,  and  without  the  slightest  faith  in  the  preach- 
ing of  Noah  with  reference  to  the  coming  flood,  so  in  the 
early  part  of  the  Day  of  the  Lord,  the  world,  having  no 
faith  in  the  announcement  of  his  presence  and  of  the  imx- 
pending  trouble,  will  go  on  as  usual,  giving  no  heed  what- 
ever to  any  such  preaching  until,  in  the  great  flood  of 
trouble,  the  old  world — the  old  order  of  things — goes  down, 
passes  away,  preparatory  to  the  full  establishment  of  the 
new  order,  the  Kingdom  of  God  under  the  whole  heavens. 
— ''As  it  was  in  the  days  of  Noah,  so  shall  it  be  also  in  the 
days  \oi  \}[i^ presence^  of  the  Son  of  man." 

On  the  other  hand,  we  find  scriptures  which  at  first  sight 
seem  to  be  in  dire6l  confli6l  with  these ;  as,  for  instance : 
"The  Lord  himself  shall  descend  fron  heaven  with  d. shout ^ 
with  the  voice  of  the  Archangel,  and  with  the  trump  of 
God." — "The  Lord  Jesus  shall  be  revealed  from  heaven 
with  his  mighty  messengers,  in  flaming  fire,  taking  ven- 
geance on  them  that  know  not  God,  and  that  obey  not  the 
gospel  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ." — "They  [the  world] 
shall  see  the  Son  of  man  coming  in  the  clouds  of  heaven 
with  power  and  great  glory." — "Behold,  he  cometh  with 
clouds,  and  every  eye  shall  see  him.^'' — i  Thes.  4:16;  2  Thes. 
1:7,8;  Matt.  24:30;  Rev.  1:7. 

As  seekers  after  truth,  it  will  not  do  for  us  to  say,  in 
view  of  these  passages,  that  the  majority  of  them  seem  to 
favor  whatever  view  we  incline  to  prefer,  and  then  to  ignore 


144  ^^  Time  is  at  Hand. 

the  others.  Until  we  have  a  view  of  the  matter  in  which 
every  Bible  statement  finds  a  reasonable  representation,  we 
should  not  feel  sure  that  we  have  the  truth  on  the  subjecSl. 
One  statement  of  God  is  as  true,  and  as  firm  a  foundation 
for  faith,  as  a  hundred.  And  it  would  be  wiser  to  seek  for 
a  harmonious  understanding  than  to  arrive  at  a  conclusion 
or  adopt  a  theory  based  on  a  one-sided  interpretation,  and 
thus  to  deceive  ourselves  and  others. 

Christians  generally  make  no  effort  to  harmonize  these 
statements,  and  therefore  their  ideas  are  one-sided  and  in- 
corredl.  The  last  group  of  statements  is  just  as  positive  as 
the  first,  and  apparently  teaches  the  very  reverse  of  a  quiet, 
unobserved,  thief-like  manner  in  the  Lord's  coming  and 
presence.  In  addition  to  these  statements,  we  are  referred 
to  two  other  illustrations  of  the  manner  of  his  coming,  viz. : 
"This  same  Jesus,  which  is  taken  up  from  you  into  heaven, 
shall  so  co7ue,  in  like  manner  as  ye  have  seen  him  go  into 
heaven,"  and,  *'As  the  lightning  cometh  out  of  the  east, 
and  shineth  even  unto  the  west,  so  shall  also  the  coming  of 
the  Son  of  man  be."  (A(5ls  i  :ii ;  Matt.  24:27.)  To  reach 
a  corre6l  conclusion,  these  also  must  be  given  due  weight. 

In  our  examination  of  the  subjedl  we  should  note  that 
while  our  Lord  stated,  as  a  positive  fa6l,  that  his  kingdom 
would  be  established  without  outward  show,  and  that  his 
coming,  his  presence,  would  be  as  a  thief,  requiring  close, 
attentive  watching  to  apprehend  and  discern  it,  all  of  the 
above  texts  generally  cited  as  proof  of  an  outward,  visible 
manifestation  are  in  highly  figurative  language,  except  the 
one  which  says  that  he  will  come  in  like  manner  as  he  went 
away.  The  symbolic  must  always  bend  in  interpretation  to 
the  plainer,  more  literal  statements,  as  soon  as  their  sym- 
bolic chara6ler  is  recognized.  Whenever  a  literal  inter- 
pretation would  do  violence  to  reason,  and  also  place  the 
passage  in  dire^l:  antagonism  to  plain  statements  of  Script- 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent  145 

ure,  such  passage  should  be  considered  figurative,  and  its 
interpretation  as  a  symbol  should  be  sought  in  harmony 
with  obviously  plain  and  literal  passages,  and  with  the  general 
chara6ler  and  obje6l  of  the  revealed  plan.  By  recognizing 
and  thus  interpreting  the  symbols  in  this  case,  the  beautiful 
harmony  of  all  the  statements  is  manifest.  Let  us  now 
examine  them  and  see  how  perfe6lly  they  agree  with  the 
statements  which  are  not  symbolic. 

{a)  '■'■  The  Lord  himself  shall  descend  from  heaven  with  a 
shout^  with  the  voice  of  the  Archangel,  and  with  the  trump 
of  God. "  (i  Thes.  4:16.)  The  voice  and  the  trumpet  here 
mentioned  correspond  in  every  way  with  the  same  figures 
used  in  Rev.  11  :  15-19 — "The  seventh  z.ng'&X sounded ;  and 
there  were  great  voices  in  heaven,  saying.  The  kingdom  of 
this  world  is  become  the  kingdom  of  our  Lord,  and  of 
his  Christ,  and  he  shall  reign  forever  and  ever.  .  .  .  And 
the  nations  were  angry,  and  thy  wrath  is  come,  and  the 
time  of  the  dead,  that  they  should  be  judged, ' '  etc.  The  same 
events  are  referred  to  in  Daniel's  prophecy  : — "And  at  that 
time  shall  Michael  [Christ]  stand  up  [assume  control],  the 
great  Prince,  .  .  .  and  there  shall  be  a  time  of  trouble 
such  as  never  was  since  there  was  a  nation,  .  .  .  and  many 
of  them  that  sleep  in  the  dust  of  the  earth  shall  awake." 
And  Paul  adds  to  his  mention  of  the  voices  and  the  trum- 
pet the  statement,  "And  the  dead  in  Christ  shall  rise  first.'* 
In  2  Tim.  4 :  i  he  further  states  that  Christ  shall  judge  the 
quick  (the  living)  and  the  dead,  at  this  time  of  his  appear- 
ing and  kingdom  ;  and  the  beginning  of  this  judgment  of 
the  living  nations  is  everywhere  described  as  the  greatest 
time  of  trouble  the  world  has  ever  known.— Dan.  12:  i. 

Thus  Paul,  John  and  Daniel  evidently  refer  to  the  same 
time,  the  time  of  our  Lord's  appearing,  and  the  establish- 
ment of  his  kingdom  in  the  midst  of  a  great  time  of 
trouble,  and  to  the  events  preceding  and  introducing  it.    The 

10  B 


146  The  7 me  is  at  Hand. 

same  result  is  shown  by  each  writer  to  follow  the  standing 
up  of  Michael,  the  voices  and  the  trumpet :  namely,  trouble 
and  wrath  upon  the  nations  and  the  resurre6lion  of  the  dead. 
Next,  mark  the  figure  used: — 

''With  a  shout." — The  Greek  word  here  translated 
^^^ovX''  iskeleusma,  which  sigmfiQsashotif  of  encouragement. 
A  shout  implies  a  public  message  designed  for  the  ears,  not  of 
a  few,  but  of  a  mixed  multitude.  It  is  generally  designed 
either  to  alarm  and  terrify  or  to  assist  and  encourage.  Or  it 
may  have  the  one  effe6t  upon  one  class,  and  the  reverse  effect 
upon  another,  according  to  circumstances  and  conditions. 

The  aspe6t  of  affairs  in  the  world  for  the  past  fifteen 
years  very  strikingly  corresponds  with  this  symbol,  in  the 
outbursts  of  world-wide  encouragement  for  all  men  to  wake 
up  to  a  sense  of  their  rights  and  privileges  as  men,  and 
to  consider  their  mutual  relationships,  the  principles  upon 
which  they  are  based  and  the  ends  which  they  should  ac- 
complish. Where  on  the  face  of  the  earth  is  the  civilized 
nation  that  has  not  heard  the  shout,  and  is  not  influenced 
by  it !  The  entire  civilized  world  has,  in  the  past  few  years, 
been  studying  political  economy,  civil  rights  and  social 
liberties  as  never  before  in  the  annals  of  history ;  and  men 
are  encouraging  each  other,  and  being  encouraged,  as  never 
before,  to  probe  these  subjects  to  the  very  foundation.  The 
shout  of  encouragement  started  by  the  increase  of  knowledge 
among  men  has  already  encircled  the  earth,  and  under  its 
influence  men  are  banding  themselves  together,  encouraged 
and  assisted  by  men  of  brain  and  genius,  to  contend  and 
strive  for  both  real  and  fancied  rights  and  liberties ;  and 
as  their  organizations  increase  and  multiply,  the  shout 
grows  louder  and  longer,  and  will  by  and  by  result  as  fore- 
told, in  the  great  time  of  trouble  and  tumult  of  angry 
nations.  This  result  is  graphically  described  by  the  Prophet 
^ — **The  noise  of  a  multitude  in  the  mountains  [kingdoms] 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  147 

like  as  of  a  great  people;  a  tumultuous  noise  of  the  king- 
doms of  nations  gathered  together :  the  Lord  of  hosts 
mustereth  the  host  of  battle." — Isa.  13:4. 

"The  Voice  of  the  Archangel" — is  another  striking 
symbol  of  similar  import.  The  name  "archangel"  signi- 
fies chief  messenger ;  and  our  anointed  Lord  himself  is  Jeho- 
vah's Chief  Messenger — the  "  Messenger  of  the  Covenant." 
(Mai.  3:1.)  Daniel  refers  to  the  same  personage,  calling 
him  Michael,  which  name  signifies  who  as  God — an  ap- 
propriate name  for  him  who  is  "the  express  image  of  the 
Father's  person,"  and  the  representative  of  his  authority 
and  power.  The  voice  of  the  Archangel  represents  Christ's 
authority  and  command.  This  symbol,  then,  represents 
Christ  as  taking  control,  or  beginning  his  reign  and  issuing 
his  commands,  his  ofticial  orders,  announcing  the  change  of 
dispensation  by  the  enforcement  of  the  laws  of  his  kingdom. 

The  same  thought  is  difi"erently  expressed  by  Daniel,  when 
he  says.  Then  shall  Michael,  the  great  Prince,  ''stand up.'' 
To  stand  up  signifies  to  assume  authority,  to  give  commands. 
^Qt  "  ariseth,''  Isa.  2:19,  21.  Another  illustration  of  this 
symbol  is  from  David,  who  says  of  Christ  prophetically, 
' '  He  uttered  his  voice ;  the  earth  melted. ' '  The  great  time 
of  trouble  will  be  precipitated,  and  the  earth  (organized  so- 
ciety) will  melt,  or  disintegrate,  under  the  change  of  ad- 
ministration going  into  effe6t  when  the  new  King  utters 
his  voice  of  command.  At  his  command,  systems  of  error, 
civil,  social  and  religious,  must  go  down,  however  old  or 
firmly  entrenched  and  fortified  they  may  be.  The  sword 
out  of  his  mouth  shall  cause  the  havoc :  The  truth  on  every 
subje6l,  and  in  all  its  varied  aspe6ts,  shall  judge  men,  and, 
under  his  power  and  overruling,  shall  cause  the  overturn- 
ing of  evil  and  error  in  all  their  thousand  forms. 

"  The  Trump  of  God." — T\rany  seem  thoughtlessly  to 
entertain  the  idea  that  this  trumpet  will  be  a  literal  sound 


148  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

on  the  air.  But  this  will  be  seen  to  be  an  unreasonable  ex- 
pectation, when  it  is  noticed  that  Paul  here  refers  to  what 
the  Revelator  designates  ''The  Seventh  Trumpet,"  the 
"Last  Trump"  in  a  series  oi  symbolic  trumpets.  (Rev. 
11:15;  I  Cor.  15:52.)  The  proof  that  these  references  are 
to  the  same  trumpet  is  found  in  the  record  of  the  events 
conne6led  with  each.  Paul  mentions  the  resurre6lion,  and 
the  establishment  of  the  Lord's  Kingdom,  as  connedled 
with  "the  trump  of  God,"  and  the  Revelator  mentions  the 
same  with  even  greater  minuteness.  The  propriety  of  calling 
the  "seventh,"  or  "last  trump,"  the  "trump  of  God,"  is 
evident,  too,  when  we  remember  that  the  events  mentioned 
under  the  preceding  six  trumpets  of  Revelation  refer  to 
humanity's  doings,  while  the  seventh  refers  specially  to  the 
Lord's  work,  and  covers  the  "  Day  of  the  Lord. ' '  Since  the 
six  preceding  trumpets  were  symbols — and  this  is  generally 
admitted  by  commentators  and  students  who  make  any 
claim  as  expositors  of  Revelation — it  would  be  a  violation 
of  reason  and  common  sense  to  expe6l  the  seventh,  the 
last  of  the  series,  to  be  a  literal,  audible  sound  on  the  air. 
And  not  only  so,  but  it  would  be  out  of  harmony  with  the 
Lord's  general  methods,  as  well  as  with  those  statements 
of  Scripture  indicating  the  secrecy  of  his  coming ;  for  a 
thief  never  sounds  a  trumpet  to  announce  his  arrival. 

The  seven  trumpets  of  Revelation  are  all  symbolic,  and 
represent  seven  great  periods  of  time  and  their  events.  The 
examination  of  these  we  leave  for  a  subsequent  volume. 
Suffice  it  here  to  say  that  we  find  ourselves  to-day  in  the 
midst  of  the  very  events  which  mark  the  sounding  of  the 
seventh  trumpet.  The  great  voices,  the  increase  of  knowl- 
edge, the  angry  nations,  etc.,  taken  in  conne6lion  with 
time-prophecies,  establish  this  as  a  fa6l.  Many  events  are 
yet  to  transpire  before  this  seventh  or  last  trumpet  ceases 
to  sound ;  as,  for  instance,  the  rewarding  of  the  saints  and 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  149 

prophets,  the  resurre6lion  of  all  the  dead,  etc.  In  fa<5l,  it 
covers  the  entire  period  of  the  Millennial  reign  of  Christ, 
as  indicated  by  the  events  which  are  to  transpire  under  it. 
— Rev.  10:7;   II  :i5,  18. 

Thus  we  find  the  ^'  shout,''  the  ^^  voice  of  the  Archangel'^ 
and  ^^the  tru7np  of  God''  all  symbols,  and  now  in  process 
of  fulfilment.  Note  carefully,  too,  the  fa(5l  that  each  of  the 
three  prophecies  just  referred  to  (Dan.  12:1;  Rev.  11:15; 
I  Thes.  4:16)  declares  the  \.Q)t6.'^  presence  at  the  time  when 
the  events  mentioned  transpire.  They  were  foretold  for 
the  very  purpose  of  indicating  the  manner  in  which  his 
invisible  p7'esence  would  be  manifested  to  those  who  have 
faith  in  the  word  of  prophecy.  Paul  says,  *'  The  Lord  shall 
^(fi-^^;^^  with  [literally /«,  or  ^z/nVzg-]  a  shout,"  voice,  trumpet, 
etc. ;  John  says  that  the  kingdoms  of  this  world  become 
his,  during  the  time  of  these  events;  and  Daniel  says,  ^'At 
that  time  shall  Michael,  the  great  Prince  [Christ],  stand  up ' ' 
(ht presefit^  and  take  to  himself  his  great  power.  If,  there- 
fore, we  can  recognize  the  shout,  the  voices  and  the  sound- 
ing of  the  great  trumpet,  we  should  expedl  them  as  indi- 
cations, not  that  the  Lord  will  come  soon,  but  rather  that 
he  has  com6  and  is  now  present,  and  that  the  harvest  work 
of  gathering  the  wheat  and  burning  the  tares  is  already 
under  way.  This  we  shall  soon  see  is  abundantly  proved 
by  time-prophecies.  Yet  it  is  not  to  the  natural  vision,  but 
only  to  the  eye  of  faith,  through  the  sure  word  of  proph- 
ecy, that  his  presence  and  work  can  be  discerned. 

Just  here  another  fa6t  should  not  be  overlooked,  namely, 
that  the  "Shout,"  the  ''Voice  of  the  Archangel,"  and  the 
"Trump  of  God,"  as  above  explained,  are  all  instrumental- 
ities for  the  accomplishment  of  the  harvest  work  of  the 
Gospel  age.  If,  therefore,  we  see  not  only  the  meaning  of 
these  symbols,  but  the  foretold  results  a6lually  taking  place, 
we  have  additional  proof  both  that  we  have  rightly  inter- 


150  The  Time  is  at  Hand, 

preted  the  symbols,  and  that  we  are  now  in  this  period 
called  the  '^harvest,"  in  which  the  Gospel  age  and  the  Mil- 
lennial age  lap — the  one  closing  and  the  other  opening. 
Many  will  need  no  aid  in  tracing  a  separating  work  now 
going  on  between  the  truly  consecrated  and  the  merely 
nominal  Christians.  Many  can  see  the  symbolic  fire  already 
under  way,  and  can  discern  the  *' shout"  of  the  people,  the 
command  of  the  new  King  Immanuel  and  the  events  called 
the  ''seventh  trumpet,"  and  the  ''clouds"  of  trouble,  in 
which  the  Lord  comes,  and  from  and  in  which  his  power  is 
to  be  manifested — subduing  all  things  unto  himself. 

We  have  already  (Vol.  I.,  p.  237)  called  attention  to  the 
fa(5l,  that  the  recognition  of  the  harvest  work  in  a6lual  proc- 
ess is  proof  of  the  Lord's  presence,  since  he  declared  that 
he  would  be  the  chief  reaper  and  diredtor  of  the  entire  work, 
and  that  this  would  be  his  first  work. — "Behold,  a  white 
cloud,  and  upon  the  cloud  one  sat  like  unto  a  Son  of  man, 
having  on  his  head  a  golden  crown,  and  in  his  hand  a 
sharp  sickle.  .  .  .  And  he  that  sat  on  the  cloud  thrust  in 
his  sickle  on  the  earth;  and  the  earth  was  reaped." — "In 
the  time  of  the  harvest  /  will  say  to  the  reapers,  gather" 
etc.  (Rev.  i4':i4,  16;  Matt.  13:30.)  The  harvest  work 
will  occupy  forty  years  for  its  full  accomplishment,  ending 
with  A.  D.  1 91 4.  Its  various  features  will  be  accomplished 
gradually,  but  all  of  its  days  are  "  days  of  the  Son  of  Man  " — - 
days  of  our  Lord's  presence  and  power — recognized  in  the 
end  by  all,  but  at  first  only  by  the  class  specified  by  the 
Apostle — "Ye,  brethren — not  in  darkness." 

"In  flaming  fire." — The  next  of  these  symbolic  state- 
ments can  be  readily  understood,  if  the  meaning  of  the  sym- 
bols, fire,  etc.,  already  explained  (Vol.  I.,  p.  317),  be  borne 
in  mind.  It  reads,  "  The  Lord  Jesus  shall  be  revealed  from 
heaven  with  his  mighty  angels,  in  flaming  fire,  taking  venge- 
ance on  them  that  know  not  God,  and  that  obey  not  the 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  151 

gospel  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ. ' ' — 2  Thessalonians  i :  8. 

Expressed  literally,  we  understand  this  to  signify  that 
in  his  day  (the  Millennial  age)  our  Lord's  presence  will  be 
revealed  or  manifested  to  the  world  from  his  position  of 
spiritual  control  (''heaven"),  in  the  wrath  and  punishment 
then  visited  upon  evil  and  evil-doers.  It  will  be  consum- 
ing wrath,  as  indicated  by  the  symbol,  fire,  and  will  leave 
neither  root  nor  branch  of  evil  systems,  error,  oppression, 
or  wilful  sinners;  and  all  the  proud,  and  all  evil  doers, 
shall  be  burned  up  as  stubble  in  that  Millennial  day.  In  its 
beginning — in  this  ' '  harvest ' '  period — this  fire  will  burn 
very  fiercely,  consuming  pride  and  evil,  now  of  such  rank 
growth.  Happy  those  who  will  surrender  their  pride  and 
evil  to  be  destroyed,  that  they  themselves  be  not  destroyed 
also  (in  the  "second  death"),  as  some  resisters  will  evi- 
dently be,  during  the  Millennial  age.  It  is  of  this  time 
that  we  read,  ''  Behold,  the  day  cometh  that  shall  burn  as  an 
oven;  and  all  the  proud,  yea,  and  all  that  do  wickedly,  shall 
be  stubble :  and  the  day  that  cometh  shall  burn  them  up, 
saith  the  Lord  of  hosts,  that  it  shall  leave  them  neither  root 
nor  branch." — Mai.  4:1. 

The  **  mighty  angels,"  messengers,  or  agents  of  his  power, 
are  various,  and  may  properly  be  understood  as  applying  to 
and  including  all  the  various  agencies,  animate  and  inani- 
mate, which  shall  be  used  by  our  Lord  in  the  overthrow  of 
the  evil  systems  of  the  present,  and  in  the  chastisement  of 
evil-doers. 

While  the  wrath  or  vengeance  of  the  Lord  is  thus  to  be 
expressed  in  flaming  fire,  in  consuming  trouble,  such  as 
never  before  was  known — so  general  and  wide-spread,  and 
so  destrudlive  of  evil — righteousness  and  the  righteous  will 
begin  to  be  favored.  And  as  these  dealings  become  more 
and  more  apparent,  men  will  begin  to  draw  the  infer- 
ence that  a  new  power  has  taken  control  of  human  affairs; 


152  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

and  thus  the  presence  of  our  Lord  as  King  of  kings  shall 
be  revealed  to  the  world.  ''He  shall  be  revealed  in  flaming 
fire,  taldng  vengeance  [both]  on  them  that  know  not  God 
[who  are  not  really  acquainted  with  God,  but  who  neverthe- 
less fail  to  obey  the  light  of  conscience,  which  all  to  some 
extent  possess],  and  [also  on  those  who,  while  knowing  God, 
yet]  obey  not  the  Gospel  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ. ' ' 

Under  the  chastisements  and  increasing  light  and  favor- 
able opportunities  of  the  Millennial  day,  all  will  be  brought 
to  such  a  clear  knowledge  of  the  truth  and  the  way  of 
righteousness  as  to  be  without  the  excuse  of  ignorance,  or 
of  inability  to  obey  the  truth ;  and  those  who  persistently 
continue  enemies  of  God  and  righteousness  shall  be  pun- 
ished with  lasting  destrufiion  [a  destru6lion  from  which 
there  shall  be  no  resurredtion]  from  the  presence  of  the 
Lord  and  from  the  glory  of  his  power. 

"In  power  and  great  glory." — The  next  statement  is 
to  the  effe6l  that  the  world  vv'ill  see  the  Son  of  man  coming, 
before  his  kingdom  is  fully  set  up  or  his  joint-heirs  are  all 
gathered  and  exalted  with  him.  And,  seeing  his  coming, 
all  the  tribes  of  the  earth  will  mourn — ''  They  shall  see  the 
Son  of  man  coming  with  power  and  great  glory." 

Already  the  world  sees  the  clouds  of  trouble  gathering 
and  darkening ;  they  realize  that  a  power  is  now  at  work  in 
the  affairs  of  men,  with  which  they  cannot  cope ;  the  near 
future,  from  the  present  outlook,  is  dark  and  ominous  to  all 
who  have  sufficient  intelligence  to  mark  the  trend  of  events. 
Thinking  men  observe  the  persistency  with  which  ques- 
tions of  right  and  wrong,  justice  and  injustice,  are  forced 
upon  their  .consideration,  demanding  an  expression  of 
their  individual  principles.  Many  recognize  the  glory 
and  power  of  earth's  new  Ruler,  yet  because  clouds  and 
darkness  are  round  about  him  they  do  not  recognize  the 
King  himself.     Men  see  the  clouds,  and  therefore  see  him 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent  153 

coming  in  the  clouds  with  power  and  great  glory  [the  glory 
of  power  and  justice],  but  they  do  not  recognize  him.  Not 
until  the  clouds  have  let  fall  hail  stones  and  coals  of  fire 
(Psa.  18  :  12,  13)  to  batter  down  men's  pride,  and  selfish- 
ness, and  prejudices,  and  consume  these,  will  the  clouds 
disappear,  and  reveal  the  full  majesty  and  glory  of  Christ's 
presence.  If  men  would  consider,  and  hearken  to  the  voice 
of  the  Lord,  which  now  diredts  the  course  of  justice,  and 
warns  of  impending  retribution,  the  great  disasters  of  the 
near  future  would  be  averted  ;  but  "God  speaketh  once,  yea, 
twice,  yet  man  perceiveth  it  not.  .  .  .  Then  he  openeth 
the  ears  of  men  [in  the  thunder  tones  of  "the  day  of 
trouble"]  and  sealeth  their  instru6lion,  that  he  may  with- 
draw man  from  his  [own]  purpose,  and  hide  pride  from  man. ' ' 

"Behold,  he  cometh  with  clouds,"  and  in  due  time 
"every  eye  shall  see  [discern]  him,"  shall  recognize  his 
presence,  power  and  authority ;  and  all  must  submit  to  it, 
whether  willing  or  unwilling,  until  the  loosing  of  Satan 
for  a  little  season,  in  the  close  of  the  Millennium,  when 
after  full  experience  their  willingness  or  unwillingness  will 
be  fully  tested,  and  the  unwilling  will  be  destroyed — the 
second  death,  symbolically  called  the  lake  of  fire. — Rev.  21:8. 

Thus  seen,  all  of  these  symbolic  explanations  of  the 
manner  of  our  Lord's  coming  accord  perfe6tly  with  the 
plain  statements  which  declare  that  his  presence  will  be  a 
secret  for  a  time,  known  only  to  those  watching. 

IN    LIKE    MANNER. 

What,  now,  is  taught  by  the  statement  of  the  angel  at  the 
time  of  our  Lord's  departure — A6ts  i  :  11 — "This  same 
Jesus  which  is  taken  up  from  you  into  heaven  shall  so  come, 
in  like  manner,  as  ye  have  seen  him  go  into  heaven"  ? 

A  careful  examination  of  this  text  will  manifest  its  har- 
mony with  the  forgeoing.     Many  seem  to  think  the  passage 


154  '■^'^''<^  Twie  is  at  Hand. 

reads,  As  you  see  the  Lord  ascend  into  heaven,  so,  in  like 
manner,  you  shall  see  him  come  again.  Such  should  rea-d  it 
again  and  again,  until  they  note  the  fad  that  it  does  not 
say  that  those  who  saw  him  go  will  see  him  come,  nor  that 
any  one  else  will  see  him  come.  What  it  does  say  is,  that 
the  7na7iner  of  his  coming  will  be  like  the  fnanner  of  his 
going.  What,  then,  was  the  manner  of  his  going?  Was  it 
with  great  splendor,  and  with  great  demonstration?  Was 
it  with  trumpet  sound  and  voices  and  a  great  shout  rending 
the  air,  and  the  Lord's  person  shining  in  supernatural  glory 
and  brightness?  If  so,  we  should  expe6l  his  coming  again 
to  be  ^'  in  like  fnanner^  On  the  other  hand,  was  it  not 
as  quietly  and  secretly  as  was  possible,  consistent  with  his 
purpose  of  having  thoroughly  convinced  witnesses  of  the 
fa61;  ?  None  saw  him,  or  knew  of  the  fa6l,  except  his  faithful 
followers.  His  statement  (John  14:19),  ''Yet  a  little  while 
and  the  world  seeth  me  no  more,"  has  never  yet  been  dis- 
proved ;  for  none  but  the  brethren  saw  even  his  manifesta- 
tions after  his  resurre6tion,  and  no  others  witnessed  his 
ascension.  And  in  like  manner  as  he  went  away  (quietly, 
secretly,  so  far  as  the  world  was  concerned,  and  unknown 
except  to  his  followers),  so,  in  this  manner,  he  comes  again. 
And  as  when  he  went  away  he  lifted  up  his  hands  and 
blessed  them,  so,  when  he  comes  again,  it  is  that  their  joy 
may  be  full,  as  he  said:  "I  will  come  again,  and  receive 
you  unto  myself;  "I  will  see  you  again,  and  your  heart 
shall  rejoice,  and  your  joy  no  man  taketh  from  you." — 
Luke  24:  50,  51  ;  John  14:  3  5   16:  22. 

The  angel  seemed  also  to  give  special  emphasis  to  the 
fa<5t  that  the  coming  again  would  be  the  coming  of  this 
very  "  same  Jesus^' — the  same  one  who  left  the  glory  which 
he  had  with  the  Father  before  the  world  was,  and  became 
man — became  poor  that  we  might  be  made  rich ;  the  same 
Jesus  that  died  on  Calvary ;  the  same  Jesus  that  arose  a 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  155 

quickening  spirit  the  third  day;  the  same  Jesus  that  had 
manifested  his  change  during  the  forty  days — this  same 
Jesus  now  ascended  up  on  high.  Yes,  it  is  the  same  Jesus  who 
has  experienced  two  changes  of  nature — first  from  spirit  to 
human,  and  then  from  human  to  divine.  These  changes  of 
nature  have  not  destroyed  his  individuality.  His  identity 
was  preserved,  as  the  angel  thus  assures  us,  whether  the 
philosophy  of  that  fa6l  be  understood  or  not ;  and  though 
we  shall  know  him  no  more  after  the  flesh  (as  a  man),  but 
should  remember  his  exaltation,  that  he  is  now  of  the  divine, 
spiritual  nature,  and  should  anticipate  his  coming  in  har- 
mony with  this  change  and  exaltation,  yet  we  may  remember 
that  he  is  the  same  loving  Jesus ,  and  not  changed  in  this 
respe6l.  It  is  "this  same  Jesus,"  who,  though  present  forty 
days  after  his  resurre6tion,  was  seen  of  the  disciples  only, 
and  by  them  but  briefly,  who  in  his  second  presence  will 
be  as  invisible  to  the  world  as  during  the  forty  days  pre- 
ceding his  ascension.  We  must  remember  that  he  does 
not  come  to  give  himself  as  a  sacrifice,  and  hence  that  he 
has  no  further  use  for  a  human  body  prepared  for  sacrifice. 
(Heb.  10:  5.)  That  is  all  over  now:  he  dies  no  more,  but 
now  comes  to  rule  and  bless  and  uplift  the  redeemed  race. 
Our  Lord  furnished  us  a  most  beautiful  illustration  of  the 
manner  in  which  his  presence  will  be  revealed,  when  he 
said,  "As  the  bright-shining  emerges  from  the  east,  and 
illuminates  even  unto  the  west,  so  will  be  the  presence  of 
the  Son  of  man."  (Matt.  24:  27.)  That  most  translations 
of  this  verse  are  faulty  in  using  the  word  lightning,  where 
sunlight  is  meant,  is  evident;  for  lightning  flashes  do  not 
come  out  of  the  east  and  shine  unto  the  west.  They  just 
as  frequently  come  from  other  quarters,  and  rarely,  if  ever, 
flash  clear  across  the  heavens.  The  Lord's  illustration,  and 
the  only  one  which  will  comport  with  his  words,  is  the  sun's 
brightness,  which  does  invariably  emerge  from  the  east  and 


156  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

shine  even  unto  the  west.  The  Greek  word  astrape,  here 
used,  is  thus  shown  to  be  improperly  translated  in  this 
text,  and  also  in  the  account  of  the  same  words  by  Luke 
(17:  24).  Another  instance  of  the  use  of  this  word  asti'ape 
by  our  Lord  is  found  in  Luke  11:36,  where  it  applies 
to  the  brightness  of  a  candle,  and  in  the  common  ver- 
sion is  rendered  ''bright-shining. "  Incorre6l  ideas  of  the 
manner  of  our  Lord's  coming  and  revealing,  firmly  fixed 
in  the  minds  of  translators,  led  them  into  this  error  of 
translating  astrape  by  the  word ' '  lightning. ' '  They  supposed 
that  he  would  be  revealed  suddenly,  like  a  flash  of  light- 
ning, and  not  gradually,  like  the  dawning  sunlight.  But 
how  beautiful  is  the  figure  of  sunrise,  as  illustrating  the 
gradual  dawning  of  truth  and  blessing  in  the  day  of  his 
presence.  The  Lord  associates  the  overcomers  with  himself 
in  this  figure,  saying,  ' '  Then  shall  the  righteous  shine  forth  as 
the  Sun  in  the  Kingdom  of  their  Father. ' '  And  the  Proph- 
et, using  the  same  figure,  says,  *'The  Sun  of  righteousness 
shall  arise  with  healing  in  his  beams."  The  dawning  is 
gradual,  but  finally  the  full,  clear  brightness  shall  thoroughly 
banish  the  darkness  of  evil,  ignorance,  superstition  and  sin. 
An  imperfe6l  translation  of  the  word  parousia  has  further 
tended  to  obscure  the  sense  of  this  passage.  In  the  Em- 
phatic Diaglott  and  in  Prof.  Young's  translation  it  is  rendered 
prese7ice ;  in  Rotherham's  it  is  arrival ;  while  in  the  com- 
mon version  it  is  rendered  coming.  And  though  the  text 
of  the  Revised  Version  retains  this  last  erroneous  render- 
ing— comifig — yet  in  the  marginal  reading  it  acknowledges 
*^ presence''  to  be  the  true  definition  of  the  Greek.  The 
Greek  word  parousia  invariably  signifies  personal  presence, 
as  having  come,  having  arrived ;  and  it  should  never  be 
understood  as  signifying  to  be  on  the  way,  as  the  English 
word  coming  is  generally  used.  The  text  under  considera- 
tion therefore  teaches  that  as  the  sunlight  gradually  dawns, 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  157 

so  shall  \^Q  presence  of  the  Son  of  man  be  gradually  man- 
ifested or  revealed. 

Together  with  this  illustration,  our  Lord  coupled  words 
of  caution  to  guard  us  against  certain  errors  which  would 
be  advanced  about  the  time  of  his  second  advent,  calculated 
to  lead  his  Church  astray.  *^  Behold,  I  have  told  you  before. 
Wherefore,  if  they  shall  say  unto  you.  Behold,  he  is  in  the 
desert  \  go  not  forth :  behold,  he  is  in  the  secret  chambers ; 
believe  it  not.  For  as  the  bright  shining  [sun]  cometh  out 
of  the  east  and  [gradually]  shineth  even  unto  the  west,  so 
shall  be  X\i& presence  of  the  son  of  man."  Thus  does  our 
Lord  put  us  on  guard  against  two  errors  rapidly  growing  in 
our  day.  One  is  the  claim  that  our  Lord  will  come  in  the 
flesh,  in  the  wilderness  or  desert  of  Palestine;  and,  so  be- 
lieving, many  have  gone  thither,  and  are  waiting  to  see 
Jesus  in  the  flesh,  with  the  scars,  as  when  crucified.  Ex- 
pe6ling  him  as  he  was,  and  not  *'as  he  is,"  they  seriously 
err,  and  blind  themselves  to  the  truth,  as  did  the  Jews  at 
the  first  advent.  These  false  expedlations  lead  this  class  to 
interpret  literally  the  statement  of  the  prophet  (Zech.  14:4), 
*^  His  feet  shall  stand  in  that  day  upon  the  Mount  of  Olives," 
etc.  ^^  Blinded  by  false  expe6tations,  they  do  not  see  that 
the  "feet"  in  this  passage  are  figurative,  as  truly  as  in 
Psa.  91  :  12  j  Isa.  52:7;  Psa.  Z\6',  no :  i ;  Eph.  6:15; 
Deut.  2)Ci''?i')  ^"^^  i^^  many  other  passages.  If  they  knew 
tvhat  to  expe6l,  they  would  know  not  to  go  to  Jerusalem 
to  look  for  the  7na7i  Christ  Jesus ;  for  the  highly  exalted 
king  comes  as  the  sunlight,  making  his  presence  and  in- 
fluence felt  the  world  over.     Wherefore,  "Go  not  forth." 

"If  they  shall  say.  Behold,  he  is  in  the  secret  chambers; 
believe  it  not."  Spiritism,  ever  ready  to  deceive  by  coun- 
terfeits, and  ever  ready  to  use  advanced  truths  as  a  gar- 
ment of  light  (2  Cor.  11:13,   14),   has  not   hesitated  to 

*  We  leave  the  examination  of  this  prophecy  for  another  occasion. 


158  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

claim  that  we  are  in  a  period  of  dispensational  change,  the 
dawning  of  a  glorious  age.  Among  other  such  things, 
some  of  them  even  teach  that  Christ  is  present,  and,  we 
doubt  not,  ere  long  they  will  give  seances  at  which  they 
will  claim  to  show  him  in  the  secret  chambers.  Should  the 
error  present  itself  in  this  form,  or  any  other,  let  us  remem- 
ber our  Lord's  words  and  repudiate  all  such  claims  as  false, 
knowing  that  not  thus  will  he  reveal  his  presence,  but  **as 
the  sunlight,"  emerging  gradually — ''the  Sun  of  righteous- 
ness shall  arise  with  healing  in  his  beams." 

OUR  lord's  parousia  in  the  harvest. 

The  Greek  is  a  very  exa6l  language :  a  fa6l  which  greatly 
enhances  its  value  in  giving  exa6t  expression  to  truth.  Thus, 
for  instance,  in  our  common  English  Bibles,  the  word  come 
is  used  to  translate  thirty-two  Greek  words,  each  of  which 
has  a  fine  shade  of  difference.  Instances: — ephistemi s\g- 
nifies  to  overtake,  as  in  Luke  21:34 — "-come  upon  [over- 
take] you  unawares;"  sunerchomai  signifies  to  gather,  or 
come  together,  as  in  i  Cor.  11  :  18 — "■  coine  together  in  the 
church;"  proserchomai  signifies  to  approach,  or  come  to- 
ward, as  in  Heb.  4:  16 — "Let  us  therefore  coitie  boldly;" 
heko  signifies  to  arrive,  or  have  come,  or  caitie,  as  when  the 
a6tion  of  coming  is  completed,  as  in  John  2:4 — ''Mine 
hour  is  not  yet  come ;"  enistemi  signifies  to  be  present,  and  is 
so  translated,  except  in  two  instances  where  it  should  be  so 
rendered:  2  Tim.  3  :  i — "  Perilous  times  shall  cotne'' — be 
present;  and  2  Thes.  2  :  2 — "That  the  day  of  Christ  is  at 
hand'' — present.  Parousia,  too,  signifies  presence,  and 
should  never  be  translated  co7ni'ng,  as  in  the  common  English 
Bible,  where  it  is  twice  rendered  properly,  presence.  (2  Cor. 
10:  10;  Phil.  2:  12.)  The  ''Emphatic  Diaglott,''  a  very 
valuable  translation  of  the  New  Testament,  renders  pa  ror/sia 
properly,  presence,  in  almost  every  occurrence  of  the  word. 


/ 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent,  159 

The  two  Greek  words,  heko  and  pai'ousia,  and  their  use 
in  the  New  Testament,  are  what  we  desire  to  notice  at  pres- 
ent, and  particularly  the  latter  of  these;  because  a  corre6t 
appreciation  of  their  significance  sheds  light  upon  the  man- 
ner of  our  Lord's  return,  through  passages  in  which  they 
occur,  while  the  common  but  erroneous  translation  beclouds 
the  very  point  it  should  illuminate.* 

With  the  corre6t  thought  as  to  the  meaning  of  parousia 
in  mind — not  that  of  coming,  as  being  on  the  way,  but 
presence,  as  after  arrival — let  us  examine  some  passages  in 
which  the  word  is  used.  And  from  these  we  will  learn  that 
presence  does  not  necessarily  imply  sight,  but  that  it  is  ap- 
plicable also  to  things  present  but  unseen .  Thus,  for  instance, 
angels,  spirit  beings,  can  be  present  with  us,  yet  unseen, 
as  our  Lord  yvSiS  present  in  the  world  and  often  Avith  the 
disciples  during  the  forty  days  after  his  resurrection,  without 
being  seen  of  the  world,  or  by  his  disciples  except  on  the 
few  brief  occasions  already  referred  to.  Those  days  were 
days  of  his  parousia  (presence),  as  much  as  the  preceding 
thirty-three  and  a  half  years  had  been. 

In  the  conversation  previous  to  the  question  of  Matt, 
24:3,  our  Lord  had  foretold  the  destru(5lion  of  the  temple, 
and  the  reje6tion  of  Israel  after  the  flesh  until  a  time  when 
they  would  gladly  recognize  him  as  their  Messiah  and  say, 
"Blessed  is  he."  He  had  told  his  disciples  that  he  would 
go  away,  and  come  again  and  receive  them  unto  himself. 
He  called  their  day  the  "  harvest,"  or  end  of  that  age,  and 
he  had  told  them  of  a  future  "  harvest "  at  the  time  of  his 

*The  yfoxAparotisia  occurs  twenty-four  times  in  the  Greek  Testament, 
and  is  only  twice  in  the  English  com.  ver.  (2  Cor.  io:io;  Phil.  2:12) 
corre(flly  ira.nh\aX.tdi presence.  The  other  occurrences,  in  which  it  is  mis- 
translated coming,  are  as  follows  : — Matt.  24 :  3, 27, 37, 39 ;  I  Cor.  15  :23  ; 
16:  17;  2  Cor.  7:6,7;  Phil.  1 :  26;  I  Thes.  2  :  19  ;  3  :  13  ;  4:  15  ;  5  :  23; 
.2  Thes.  2:  I,  S,  9;  James  5:  7,  8;  2  Pet.  i  :  16;  3:4,  I2j  t  John  2:  28, 


1 60  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

second , presence  (Matt.  9  :  37,  38;  13  :  39,  40.)  Doubtless 
remembering  that  few  recognized  him  as  the  Christ  at  his 
first  advent,  they  wanted  to  know  how  he  might  be  surely 
recognized  at  his  second  advent — expe6ling  probably  that 
his  second  advent  would  occur  in  their  day.  Hence  their 
inquiry,  '^  What  shall  be  the  sign  [indication]  of  thy  parou- 
sia  [presence]    and  of  the  end  of  the  age?" 

Because  of  their  disposition  to  mix  the  closing  events  of 
the  Jewish  age,  or  harvest,  in  which  they  already  were,  with 
the  then  future  ''harvest,"  or  end  of  the  Gospel  dispensa- 
tion, our  Lord  gave  quite  a  detailed  account  of  events 
which  must  intervene,  indicating  a  lapse  of  a  considerable 
period  between,  yet  giving  no  clear  idea  of  its  length ; 
for  even  he  did  not  then  know  how  long  it  would  be. — 
Mark.  13:132. 

Our  Lord's  reply  in  verses  i  to  14  covers  the  entire  Gos- 
pel age  ;  and  his  words  in  verses  15  to  22  have  a  double  ap- 
plication— literally  to  the  close  of  the  Jewish  age,  and 
figuratively  to  the  end  of  this  Gospel  age,  of  which  the 
Jewish  age  was  a  shadow.  Verses  23-26  contain  words  of 
warning  against  false  Christs,  and  in  verse  27  he  reaches 
their  question  regarding  his  parousia,  and  declares  [prop- 
erly translated],  ''As  the  bright  shining  [the  sunlight]  com- 
eth  out  of  the  east  and  shineth  even  unto  the  west,  so  shall 
X\iQ paroiisia  [the  presence]  of  the  Son  of  man  be."  The 
sunlight  becomes  present  instantly,  yet  noiselessly;  and  it 
is  first  discerned  by  those  who  are  first  awake. 

Leaving  other  intermediate  features  of  our  Lord's  dis- 
course for  examination  in  their  appropriate  place,  we  note 
his  second  reference  to  their  question  regarding  hisparou- 
sia  in  verses  37  and  39.  He  says,  "As  the  days  of  Noah, 
so  shall  also  the  parousia  [presence]  of  the  Son  of  man 
be."  Notice,  that  the  comparison  is  not  between  the  com- 
ing of  Noah  and  the  coining  of  our  Lord,  nor  between  the 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  i6i 

coming  oi  the  flood  and  the  coming  oi  our  Lord.  The  com- 
ing oi  Noah  is  not  referred  to  at  all ;  neither  is  the  coming  of 
our  Lord  referred  to ;  for,  as  already  stated,  parousia  does 
not  mean  coming,  but  presence.  The  contrast,  then,  is  be- 
tween the  time  of  the  presence  of  Noah  among  the  people 
'^before  the  flood,"  and  the  time  of  the  presence  of  Christ 
in  the  world,  at  his  second  advent,  before  the  fire — the  ex- 
treme trouble  of  the  Dayof  the  Lord  with  which  this  age  ends. 
And  though  the  people  were  wicked  in  Noah's  day,  before 
the  flood,  and  will  be  wicked  in  the  time  of  our  Lord's  pres- 
ence, before  the  hot  fire  of  trouble  comes  upon  them,  yet 
this  is  not  the  point  of  comparison  or  likeness  to  which  our 
Lord  refers;  for  wickedness  has  abounded  in  every  age. 
The  point  of  comparison  is  stated  clearly,  and  is  readily 
seen  if  we  read  critically:  The  people,  except  the  mem- 
bers of  Noah's  family,  were  igiiorant  of  the  coming  storm, 
and  unbelieving  as  to  the  testimony  of  Noah  and  his  family, 
and  hence  they  ^'knew  not;''  and  this  is  the  point  of  com- 
parison. So  shall  also  the  presence  of  the  Son  of  man  be. 
None  but  those  of  the  family  of  God  will  believe  here : 
others  will  '-'  know  not,"  until  society,  as  at  present  organ- 
ized, begins  to  melt  with  the  fervent  heat  of  the  time  of 
trouble  now  impending.  This  is  illustrated  by  the  words, 
''As  in  the  days  that  were  before  the  flood,  they  were  eating, 
drinking  and  marrying  [Luke  (17  :  28)  adds  ''planting  and 
building"],  until  the  day  Noah  entered  into  the  ark,  and 
knew  not,  ...  so  shall  also  the  parousia  [the  presence] 
of  the  Son  of  man  be."  In  the  time  of  the  presence  of 
the  Son  of  man,  therefore,  the  world  will  go  on  with  its 
eating,  drinking,  planting,  building  and  marrying — not 
mentioned  as  sinful  doings,  but  as  indicative  of  their  igno- 
rance of  his  prese?tce,  and  of  the  trouble  that  will  prevail  in 
the  world.  This,  then,  is  our  Lord's  answer  to  the  question 
of  the  disciples — What  shall  be  the  sign  [indication]  of  thy 


1 62  The  Time  is  at  Hand, 

[parousia]  presence  and  of  the  end  or  harvest  of  the  age  ? 
In  substance,  he  says :  There  will  be  no  sign  for  the  worldly 
masses ;  they  will  not  know  of  my  presence  and  the  new 
dispensational  changes.  Only  the  few  will  know,  and  they 
will  be  taught  of  God  (in  a  way  not  here  explained),  before 
there  is  any  sign  (indication),  which  the  worldly  could 
discern. 

Luke's  account  of  this  same  discourse  (Luke  17:26-29), 
though  not  in  the  same  words,  is  in  perfe6l  accord.  Luke 
does  not  use  the  word />arousia,  but  he  expresses  this  exa6l 
thought,  saying :  ''As  it  was  in  the  days  of  Noe,  so  shall  it 
be  also  in  the  days  of  the  Son  of  man^'' — in  the  days  of  his 
presence.  Not  before  his  days,  nor  after  his  days,  but  in 
{during)  his  days,  the  world  will  be  eating,  drinking,  mar- 
rying, buying,  selling,  planting  and  building.  These  Script- 
ures, then,  clearly  teach  that  our  Lord  will  hQ  present  in  the 
end  of  this  age,  entirely  unknown  to  the  world,  and  unseen 
by  them. 

Though  there  shall  never  be  another  y7<?<?^/  to  destroy  the 
earth  (Gen.  9:11),  it  is  written  that  the  whole  earth  shall 
be  devoured  with  the  fire  of  God's  jealousy  (Zeph.  Z'-^^'i 
— not  the  literal,  physical  earth  in  either  case,  but  the  ex- 
isting order  of  things  in  both  cases :  in  the  first  instance  ac- 
complished by  drowning  all  the  people  except  Noah's  fam- 
ily ;  in  the  last,  by  burning  all  except  the  family  of  God 
in  the  symbolic  fire — the  great  trouble  of  the  Day  of  the 
Lord.  The  faithful  children  of  God  shall  be  counted  worthy 
to  escape  all  those  things  coming  on  the  earth  (Luke  21  \'^(i)', 
not  necessarily  by  being  taken  away  from  the  earth,  but  pos- 
sibly by  being  rendered  fire-proof,  as  in  the  typical  illustra- 
tion of  the  three  Hebrews  who  walked  in  the  midst  of  the 
fiery  furnace  heated  seven  times,  on  whose  garments,  even, 
was  not  the  smell  of  fire  ;  because  one  like  unto  the  Son  of 
God  was  present  with  them. — Dan.  3:19-25. 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  163 

Next  we  will  notice  scriptures  which  teach  that  many  in 
the  Church  will,  for  a  time,  be  ignorant  of  the  Lord's  pres- 
ence, and  of  the  ''harvest "  and  ending  of  this  age,  while 
he  is  adlually  present,  and  the  harvest  work  in  progress. 

The  closing  verses  of  Matt.  24,  from  verse  42  on,  are 
very  significant.  In  verse  37  our  Lord  had  shown  that  the 
world  would  not  know  of  the  parousia  of  the  Son  of  man ; 
and  now  he  cautions  his  professed  disciples  that,  unless  on 
their  guard,  they  will  be  similarly  in  darkness  relative  to 
his  parousia.  He  says,  "Watch,  therefore;  for  ye  know 
not  what  hour  your  Lord  doth  come  [erchomai — arrive]." 
If  people  were  expe6ling  a  thief  at  a  definite  time,  they 
would  stay  awake  so  as  not  to  be  taken  unawares :  so  you 
should  be  ever  awake,  always  ready,  and  always  watching 
for  the  first  evidence  of  my  parousia.  In  reply  to  your 
question,  "  When  shall  these  things  be?"  I  merely  tell  you 
to  watch  and  be  ready,  and  when  I  arrive,  when  I  2iu\ pres- 
ent, I  will  communicate  the  facfl  to  all  who-  are  watching 
and  faithful,  and  they  only  will  have  any  right  to  know. 
All  others  should  and  must  be  in  outer  darkness,  and  must 
learn  with  and  as  the  world — through  trouble. 

Who,  then  [in  the  "harvest"],  is  a  faithful  and  wise 
servant  whom  his  Master  shall  make  *  ruler  over  his  house- 
hold, to  give  them  meat  in  due  season?  Blessed  that  serv- 
ant whom  his  Master  on  coming  [erchomai — when  he  ar- 
rives'] shall  find  so  doing.  Verily,  I  say  unto  you,  he  shall 
make  him  ruler  over  all  his  goods  "  — all  the  vast  storehouse 
of  precious  truth  shall  be  opened  to  such  faithful  servants, 
to  arm  and  supply  and  feed  the  entire  household  of  faith. 

But  if  the  servant's  heart  is  not  right,  he  will  say.  My 
Master  tarries  [has  not  arrived],  and  may  smite  [oppose 
and  contradi(ft]  his  fellow  servants  [those  who  differ  with 
him ;  those,  therefore,  who  are  declaring  the  opposite — My 

*  Sinaitic  and  Vatican  MSS.  read  "  shall  make." 


1 64  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

Lord  does  not  tarry,  but  has  come,  is  present.']  Such  may 
eat  and  drink  with  the  intemperate  [become  intoxicated 
with  the  spirit  of  the  world],  but  the  Master  of  that  serv- 
ant will  come  [Greek,  heko — will  have  arrived]  in  a  day  not 
expe6led,  and  in  an  hour  in  which  that  servant  is  7iot  aware^ 
and  will  cut  him  off  [from  being  one  of  the  servants  privi- 
leged to  hand  meat  in  due  season  to  the  household],  and 
will  appoint  him  his  portion  with  the  hypocrites.  [Though 
not  a  hypocrite  but  a  genuine  servant,  he  must,  because 
unfaithful  and  overcharged,  have  his  portion  with  the  hypo- 
crites in  the  perplexity  and  trouble  coming  upon  Babylon.] 
*'  There  shall  be  weeping  and  gnashing  of  teeth." 

The  foregoing,  carefully  examined,  clearly  teaches 
that  in  the  end  of  this  age  there  will  be  one  class  denying 
that  the  Lord  is  present  (not  denying  that  he  will  come 
sometime,  but  that  he  has  come),  and  smiting  or  harshly 
opposing  those  fellow  servants  who  must  therefore  be  teach- 
ing the  opposite — that  the  Lord  has  come.  Which  is  the 
faithful,  truthful  servant,  and  which  the  one  in  error,  is 
clearly  stated  by  our  Lord.  The  faithful  one  whom  he 
finds  giving  seasonable  *'  meat  "  will  be  exalted  and  given 
fuller  stewardship  over  the  storehouse  of  truth,  with  in- 
creased ability  to  bring  it  forth  to  the  household,  while 
the  unfaithful  one  will  be  gradually  separated  and  drawn 
into  closer  and  closer  sympathy  with  the  mere  professors  or 
hypocrites.  And  note  the  fa6t  that  the  unfaithful  is  thus 
cut  off,  or  separated,  at  a  time  of  which  he  is  7iot  aware — 
in  the  harvest  time — while  his  Lord  is  really  present  un- 
known to  him,  searching  for  and  gathering  his  jewels. — 
Matt.  13:30;  Psa.  50:5;   Mai.  3:17;   Matt.  24:31. 

We  particularize  here,  merely  to  show  that,  in  answer  to 
the  question  of  the  disciples  about  signs  and  evidences  of 
his  ^tQond.  presence,  our  Lord  taught  that  neither  the  world 
nor  the  unfaithful  servants  would  be  aware  of  it,  until  the 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  165 

intense  fire  of  trouble  is  at  least  commenced.  And  the 
faithful  evidently  will  see  him  present  merely  by  the  eye 
of  faith — through  the  Scriptures  written  aforetime  for  their 
learning,  to  be  apprehended  as  they  become  due.  Present 
truths  on  every  subje6l  are  parts  of  "  his  goods"  and  treas- 
ures new  and  old  which  our  Lord  had  laid  up  for  us  and 
now  freely  gives  us. — Verses  45  to  47. 

While  thus,  by  foretold  indications,  the  Lord  made  am- 
ple preparation  to  enable  the  Church  to  recognize  his  pres- 
ence when  due,  though  they  should  not  see  him  with  the 
natural  eye,  he  also  carefully  warned  us  against  deceptions 
which  should  arise — deceptions  which  should  appear  so 
plausible  as  to  deceive  the  very  ele(5l,  if  it  were  possible. 
But  it  is  not  possible,  because  all  the  ele6t  give  earnest  heed 
to  the  warning,  and  studiously  acquaint  themselves  with 
the  foretold  indications  of  his  presence,  and  are  watching 
for  their  fulfilment.  Those  otherwise  minded  are  not  of 
the  ele6l  class.  Only  the  overcomers  are  to  reign  with  the 
Lord.  These  deceptions,  as  will  be  shown  in  a  succeeding 
chapter,  are  already  in  existence,  and  are  deceiving  many. 
But,  thank  God,  the  eledt  are  forewarned  and  forearmed, 
and  shall  neither  be  deceived  nor  disheartened.  Though 
clouds  and  darkness  are  round  about  him,  they  recognize 
his  presence,  and  rejoice  that  their  deliverance  draweth 
nigh.  If  any  man  should  say  unto  you,  Lo,  here  is  Christ, 
or  there  [in  any  particular  place],  believe  it  not.  And  if 
they  shall  say  unto  you,  Behold,  he  is  in  the  desert,  go  not 
forth :  behold  he  is  in  the  secret  chambers,  believe  it  not ; 
for  as  [like]  the  bright  shining  sunlight,  which  gradually 
dawns  upon  and  fills  the  earth,  so  shall  his  presence  be. 
(Matt.  24:23,  26,  27.)  It  will  be  manifested  as  foretold, 
by  the  dawning  light  of  truth — truth  on  every  subjed,  as 
we  now  see  it  so  rapidly  and  gloriously  unfolding.  A  few 
years  more,  and  the  Sun  of  righteousness  will  have  fully 


1 66  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

risen  with  healing  in  its  beams  to  bless  and  raise  up  the 
death-stricken  world. 

In  view  of  the  evidences  presented  in  this  and  the  pre- 
ceding and  following  chapters,  we  have  no  hesitation  in 
announcing  the  heart-cheering  intelligence,  that  the  har- 
vest of  the  Gospel  age  is  upon  us,  and  that  the  Master  is 
again  present  as  the  Chief  Reaper — not  in  the  flesh,  as  in 
the  Jewish  harvest,  but  in  power  and  great  glory,  as  the 
'Hiighly  exalted,"  divine  Christ  whose  glorious  body  is  now 
''the  express  image  of  the  Father's  person,"  though  his 
glorious  person  is  graciously  vailed  from  human  sight.  He 
is  inaugurating  his  reign  of  righteousness;  his  sickle  of 
truth  is  separating;  he  is  gathering  together  into  oneness 
of  heart  and  mind  the  ripe  first-fruits  of  spiritual  Israel; 
and  soon  that  ele6t  ''body"  complete  shall  rule  and  bless 
the  world. 

This  announcement  is  here  made,  in  order  that  as  we 
proceed  the  reader  may  have  the  clearer  idea  of  what  the 
time-prophecies  most  particularly  indicate,  when  it  shall  be 
shown  that  the  harvest,  and  all  its  attendant  events,  are 
now  chronologically  due,  and  coming  to  pass  as  foretold. 

Thus  seen,  these  time-prophecies  and  all  this  particularity 
of  instru6lion  with  reference  to  the  manner  and  the  attend- 
ing circumstances  of  the  Lord's  appearing  were  not  given 
to  alarm  the  world,  nor  to  satisfy  idle  curiosity,  nor  to 
awaken  a  sleeping  nominal  church ;  but  they  were  given  in 
order  that  those  who  are  not  asleep,  and  not  of  the  world, 
but  who  are  awake,  consecrated  and  faithful,  and  earnest  stu- 
dents of  their  Father's  plan,  may  be  informed  of  the  sig- 
nificance of  transpiring  events,  and  not  be  in  darkness  on 
a  subje6l  and  with  regard  to  events  in  no  other  way  discern- 
ible with  certainty — the  harvest,  the  presence  of  the  great 
Reaper,  the  threshing  and  sifting  of  the  true  wheat,  the 
bundling  and  burning  of  the  tares  in  the  time  of  trouble,  etc. 


Manner  df  the  Second  Advent.  167 

SCOFFING    FORETOLD. 

The  Apostle  Peter  describes  how  some  of  the  unfaithful 
servants  and  hypocrites  will  scoff  during  the  presence  of  the 
Lord,  even  as  they  scoffed  in  the  days  of  Noah.  (2  Pet. 
3:3,  4,  10,  12.)  Notice  that  the  Apostle  wrote  to  the 
Church,  and  that  the  scoffers  he  describes  are  /;/  the  nom- 
inal church  and  professedly  interested  in  the  Lord's  work 
and  plan,  and  believers,  therefore,  that  he  will  come  some 
time.  The  scoffing  described  is  on  the  very  subject  here 
noticed,  and  such  as  we  hear  and  shall  hear  from  professed 
Christians,  whenever  the  subje6l  of  the  Lord's  presence 
and  harvest  work,  etc.,  is  presented.  Christians  generally, 
until  they  investigate  the  subjedt,  have  such  ideas  of  literal 
manifestations  of  fire,  trumpets,  voices,  etc.,  and  of  seeing 
the  Lord  descending  through  the  air,  a  shining  body  of 
flesh,  that  when  they  hear  of  his  iww'isWAq presefice,  without 
taking  time  to  investigate  a  subje6l  upon  which  they  feel 
so  sure,  busied  with  worldly  plans,  and  intoxicated  with 
the  spirit  of  the  world,  they  will  dismiss  the  matter  quickly 
as  unworthy  of  investigation. 

It  is  to  this  class  of  professed  Christians  that  the  Apostle 
refers,  saying,  ''  In  the  last  days  [in  the  closing  years  of  the 
Gospel  age — in  the  ''harvest  "]  shall  come  scoffers,  walking 
after  their  own  desires  [plans,  theories,  etc.],  asking,  IVJiere 
is  the  promise  of  his  presence  [^parousia]  ?  for  ever  since  the 
fathers  fell  asleep,  all  things  continue  as  at  present  from  the 
beginning  of  creation."  When  referred  to  our  Lord's 
statement  (Matt.  24:  37-39;  Luke  17  -.26)  that  in  his  daySj 
in  the  days  of  his  presence^  things  would  indeed  continue 
as  before;  and  that,  as  in  Noah's  day,  men  would  be  eating, 
drinking,  marrying,  planting  and  building;  and  that,  as 
then,  the  world  would  know  not  of  his  presence,  and  read 
not  the  signs  of  the  speedy  and  great  changes  just  at  hand. 


1 68  7%e  H?7ie  is  at  Hand. 

they  are  too  busy  to  consider  the  testimony  carefully,  and 
only  continue  to  scoff. 

Ah !  says  Peter,  they  forget  the  great  change  which 
occurred  in  the  days  of  Noah;  and  then,  under  the  symbol 
of  fire,  he  describes  the  overwhelming  flood  of  trouble 
which  shall  shortly  overtake  the  whole  world,  utterly  over- 
throwing all  civil  and  ecclesiastical  rule  [the  heavens]  and 
melting  the  entire  social  fabric  [the  earth]  —  producing 
anarchy  and  social  chaos  until  the  new  heavens  [ruling 
powers — the  Kingdom  of  God]  shall  be  fully  established, 
as  well  as  a  new  earth  [society  organized  on  a  new  and 
better  basis,  of  love,  equality  and  righteousness].  The 
Apostle  then  reminds  us  (verse  8)  that  this  Day  of  the  Lord's 
presence,  for  which  the  Church  has  long  hoped  and  looked, 
is  a  thousand-year  day — the  Millennium  of  Christ's  reign. 

In  verse  lo  he  assures  us  that  ^'the  Day  of  the  Lord 
will  arrive  [Greek,  heko'\  as  a  thief  ^  *  [unobservedly,  quiet- 
ly :  it  will  be  present,  while  some  are  scoffing  and  smiting 
tbose  fellow-servants  who  declare  the  truth].  The  Apostle 
then  exhorts  the  saints  to  separateness  from  the  world ;  that 
they  be  not  swallowed  up  by  politics,  money-getting,  etc., 
but  that  they  set  their  affe6lions  on  higher  things.  He  says, 
Seeing  that  in  God's  plan  present  earthly  conditions  are 
only  temporary  and  will  soon  give  place  to  the  better  order, 
what  manner  of  persons  ought  we  to  be,  in  respe6t  to  holy 
condudl  and  piety? — ^^  looking  for  the  presence  \_parousid\ 
of  the  Day  of  God" — watching  for  the  evidences  (signs) 
to  prove  that  it  has  come. 

And,  thanks  be  to  God,  his  provision  is  so  abundant 
that  all  those  of  piety,  who  are  looking  for  that  day,  will 
know  of  it  before  the  full  bursting  forth  of  the  fire  of  wrath. 
Through  Paul  he  assures  us  that  none  of  the  children  of 
the  light  will  be  left  in  darkness,  that  that  day  should  come 

*  Old  Manuscripts  omit  here  the  words,  "  z«  the  night." 


Manner  of  the  Secofid  Advent.  169 

upon  them  unawares,  (i  Thes.  5:4.)  Hence,  though  we 
are  already  in  the  day  of  the  Lord's  presence,  and  in  the 
beginning  of  the  great  fire  of  trouble,  we  see  that  it  is  even 
as  shown  us  in  symbol  (Rev.  7:1,  2) — the  storm  is  held  in 
check  until  the  faithful  servants  of  God  are  *' sealed  in  their 
foreheads:  "  /.  e.,  until  such  are  given  an  intelle6tual  ap- 
preciation of  the  time,  presence,  etc.,  which  will  not  only 
comfort  them,  and  shield  them,  but  also  be  a  mark,  seal  or 
evidence  of  their  sonship,  as  indicated  by  our  Lord  when 
he  promised  that  the  holy  Spirit  should  show  to  the  faithful 
"things  to  coined — John  16  :  13. 

Some  take  Peter's  statement  literally,  that  ''the  heavens 
being  on  fire  shall  be  dissolved  and  pass  away  with  a  great 
noise;"  and  also  the  Revelator's  description  of  the  same 
events,  by  a  very  similar  symbol,  ''The  heaven  departed  as 
a  scroll  when  it  is  rolled  together."  It  would  seem,  how- 
ever, that  one  glance  upward  at  the  myriad  gems  of  night 
shining  through  millions  of  miles  of  space,  with  nothing 
between  to  roll  away,  or  to  take  fire,  should  be  argument 
enough  in  one  moment  to  convince  such  that  they  had 
erred  in  supposing  these  statements  to  be  literal — should 
convince  them  that  their  expectation  of  a  literal  fulfilment 
is  absurd  in  the  extreme. 

So,  then,  God  veiled  from  mankind  under  figures  of  trum- 
pets, voices,  fire,  etc,  information  (which  was  not  for  the 
worldly  to  know,  but  only  for  the  "little  flock"  of  conse- 
crated saints)  regarding  the  harvest,  the  Lord's  presence, 
his  spiritual  kingdom,  etc.;  and  yet  he  arranged  them  so  that, 
in  due  time,  they  would  speak  clearly  and  emphatically  to 
the  class  for  whom  he  intended  the  information.  As  at  the 
first  advent,  so  to  a  similar  consecrated  class  it  may  now  be 
said,  in  the  time  of  the  second  advent — "Unto  you  it  is 
given  to  know  the  mysteries  of  the  kingdom  of  God ;  but 
unto  them  that  are  without,  all  these  things  are  done  in 


1 70  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

parables  " — in  figures  and  dark  sayings — in  order  that,  even 
though  having  the  Bible  before  them,  others  than  the  con- 
secrated may  not  really  see  and  understand. — Mark  4:11,12. 
The  world  is  not  ignorant  of  the  unprecedented  events 
and  circumstances  of  the  present  time,  and  their  increasing 
noteworthiness  with  every  passing  year  ;  but  not  seeing 
the  grand  outcome,  these  only  fill  their  minds  with  dark 
forebodings  of  evil.  As  foretold,  they  are  in  fear,  looking 
forward  to  those  things  that  are  coming  on  the  earth ;  for 
already  the  powers  of  the  heaven  (the  present  ruling  pow- 
ers) are  being  shaken. 

CONNECTING    THE    PROPHETIC    CHAIN. 

In  the  preceding  chapter  we  presented  evidence  shov/ing 
that  the  *' Times  of  the  Gentiles,"  or  their  lease  of  domin- 
ion, will  run  fully  out  with  the  year  A.  D.  191 4,  and  that  by 
that  time  they  will  all  be  overturned  and  Christ's  Kingdom 
fully  established.  That  the  Lord  must  be  present,  and  set 
up  his  Kingdom,  and  exercise  his  great  power  so  as  to  dash 
the  nations  to  pieces  as  a  potter's  vessel,  before  A.  D.  191 4, 
is  then  clearly  fixed  ;  for  it  is  '^  in  the  days  of  these  kings' ' — 
before  their  overthrow — /.  e.,  before  A.  D.  1914 — that  the 
God  of  heaven  shall  set  up  his  Kingdom.  And  IT  shall 
break  in  pieces  and  consume  all  these.  (Dan.  2  :  44.)  And 
in  harmony  with  this,  we  see  all  about  us  evidence  of  the 
beginning  of  the  smiting,  shaking  and  overturning  of  the 
present  powers,  preparatory  to  the  establishment  of  the  king- 
dom *' which  cannot  be  moved" — the  strong  government. 

The  next  chapter  will  present  Bible  evidence  that  1874 
A.  D.  was  the  exa6l  date  of  the  beginning  of  the  "Times  of 
Restitution,"  and  hence  of  our  Lord's  return.  Since  that 
date  he  has  been  verifying  his  promise  to  those  in  the  proper 
attitude  of  watchfulness —  "Blessed  are  those  servants  whom 
the  Lord  when  he  cometh  shall  find  watching :  Verily,  I 


Manner  of  the  Second  Advent.  i^t 

say  unto  you,  that  he  shall  gird  himself,  and  make  them 
to  sit  down  to  meat,  and  will  come  forth  and  serve  them." 
(Luke  12  137.)  Even  so,  he  has  opened  unto  us  the  Scrip- 
tures, showing  us  truth  concerning  his  present  glorious  na- 
ture, the  obje6l,  manner  and  time  of  his  coming,  and  the 
chara6ter  of  his  manifestations  to  the  household  of  faith  and 
to  the  world.  He  has  drawn  our  attention  to  the  prophe- 
cies which  definitely  locate  us  on  the  stream  of  time,  and 
has  shown  us  the  order  of  his  plan  of  operations  in  this 
harvest  time.  He  has  shown  us,  first  of  all,  that  it  is  a 
harvest  of  the  saints,  a  time  for  their  full  ripening,  and  for 
their  separation  from  the  tares  ;  and  secondly,  that  it  is  a 
time  for  the  world  to  reap  its  whirlwind  harvest — for  the 
reaping  of  the  vine  of  the  earth,  and  the  treading  of  its 
fruitage  in  the  winepress  of  the  wrath  of  Almighty  God. 
He  has  shown  us  that  both  of  these  ripenings  (Rev.  14:1-4, 
18-20)  will  be  completed  in  a  period  of  forty  years,  end- 
ing with  the  year  A.  D.  1914. 

But  while  the  reader  is  thus  informed  of  what  will  be 
proved  in  succeeding  chapters,  he  must  not  expert  to  have 
passages  of  Scripture  pointed  out  in  which  these  matters 
and  these  dates  are  plainly  written.  On  the  contrary,  he 
must  bear  in  mind  that  all  these  things  have  been  hidden 
by  the  Lord,  in  such  manner  that  they  could  not  be  under- 
Stood  or  appreciated  until  the  due  time  had  come,  and 
then  only  by  his  earnest,  faithful  children,  who  esteem 
truth  as  more  precious  than  rubies,  and  who  are  willing  to 
seek  it  as  men  search  for  silver.  Truth,  like  silver,  must 
be  not  only  mined,  but  also  refined,  separated  from  dross, 
before  its  value  can  be  appreciated.  The  things  here  stated 
in  few  words  will  be  proved  point  by  point ;  and  while 
many  may  prefer  to  take  a  statement  without  the  trouble  of 
verifying  it  from  the  Scriptures,  this  will  not  be  the  case 
with  the  real  truth-seeker.    He  must,  so  far  as  possible,  make 


iys  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

every  point,  argument  and  proof  his  own,  dire(^  from 
God's  Word,  by  tracing  all  the  connecflions,  and  thus  con- 
vincing himself  of  the  truthfulness  of  the  account  presented. 
Though  the  Lord  provides  it,  and  the  servants  bring 
forth  the  ''  meat  in  due  season  for  the  household,"  yet  each, 
to  be  strengthened  thereby,  must  eat  for  himself. 


"Mine  eyes  can  see  the  glory  of  the  coming  of  the  Lord ; 
He  is  trampling  out  the  winepress  where  His  grapes  of  wrath  are  stored ; 
I  see  the  flaming  tempest  of  His  swift-descending  sword. 
Our  King  is  marching  on. 

"I  can  see  His  coming  judgments,  as  they  circle  all  the  earth, 
The  signs  and  groanings  promised,  to  precede  a  second  birth; 
I  read  His  righteous  sentence  in  the  crumbling  thrones  of  earth. 
Our  King  is  marching  on. 

"The  'Gentile  Times'  are  closing;  for  their  kings  have  had  their  day; 
And  with  them  sin  and  son'ow  will  forever  pass  away ; 
For  the  tribe  of  Judah's  ^Lion '  now  comes  to  hold  the  sway. 
Our  King  is  marching  on. 

"The  seventh  trump  is  sounding,  and  our  King  knows  no  defeat: 
He  will  sift  out  the  hearts  of  men  before  His  Judgment  Seat. 
Oh,  be  swift,  my  soul,  to  welcome  Him,  be  jubilant,  my  feet. 
Our  King  is  marching  on." 


CHAPTER  VI. 

EARTH'S  GREAT  JUBILEE. 

"  fHE  Times  of  Restitution  of  All  Things  "  Foretold  by  Moses.— The  Date 
OF  Their  Beginning  Indicated.— They  Cannot  Begin  Until  the  Great 
Restorer  Has  Come.— Evidence  from  the  Law.— Corroborative  Testi- 
mony FROM  THE  Prophets.- Logical  Conclusions  Drawn  from  These  as 
Separately  and  Unitedly  Considered.— Harmony  of  Present  Indications. 

T^ERILY  I  say  unto  you,  Till  heaven  and  earth  pass, 
one  jot  or  one  tittle  shall  in  no  wise  pass  from  the 
Law,  till  all  hQ/ulfilled.'' — Matt.  5  :  i8. 

It  is  only  when  we  recognize  the  typical  chara6ler  of 
God's  dealings  with  Israel  that  we  can  rightly  appreciate 
the  wonderful  history  of  that  people,  or  understand  why 
their  history,  in  preference  to  that  of  all  other  nations,  is  so 
particularly  recorded  by  the  Prophets  and  the  New  Testament 
writers.  In  them,  as  the  New  Testament  writers  show, 
God  has  given  striking  illustrations  of  his  plans,  both  for 
the  Church  and  for  the  world.  Their  Tabernacle  service, 
so  minutely  prescribed  in  the  divinely  given  Law,  with  its 
bleeding  beasts  and  all  its  peculiar  appointments,  their  festi- 
vals and  holy  days,  their  Sabbaths,  and  all  their  ceremonies, 
as  types  pointed  forward  to  antitypes,  larger,  higher  and 
grander  far  than  those  shadows.  And  the  Apostle  Paul 
assures  us  that  those  antitypes  will  be  laden  with  blessings 
for  mankind,  when  he  says  that  the  Law  foreshadowed ' '  good 
THINGS  to  come''  (Heb.  10:1;  S.i  ,  Col.  2:17);  while 
our  Lord,  in  the  above  expression,  assures  us  that  all  the 
good  things  foreshadowed  are  sure  of  fulfilment. 

However,  in  considering  types,  we  should  carefully  avoid 
the  error  of  many  well-meaning  people,  who,  when  they 

173 


1 74  The  Time  is  at  Hand, 

begin  to  see  that  there  are  significant  types  in  the  Script- 
ures, run  to  the  extreme  of  treating  every  Bible  chara6ler 
and  incident  as  typical,  and  are  thus  led  into  error  by  mere 
curiosity  and  ingenuity.  On  no  such  unsafe  ground  do  we 
build  when  examining  the  ceremonies  of  the  Jewish  Law, 
given  specially  as  types  and  declared  by  the  apostles  to  be 
such.  Nor  can  we  afford  to  let  these  types  pass  without 
due  consideration  and  careful  study  of  the  lessons  they 
teach,  any  more  than  we  can  afford  to  spend  time  in  spec- 
ulating, and  in  building  faith  upon  mere  conje6lure. 

When  our  Lord  said  that  not  one  jot  or  tittle  of  the  Law 
should  pass  away  until  fulfilled,  he  referred  not  only  to  the 
fulfilling  of  its  covenant  obligations  for  all  under  that  Law 
Covenant,  finishing  its  hold  upon  them,  by  meeting  its 
demands  against  them  in  full  with  his  own  life,  but  he 
meant  more  than  this  :  He  meant,  further,  that  all  the 
blessings  expressed  in  it  typically  would  also  be  sure  of  fulfil- 
ment upon  an  antitypical  scale.  In  all  the  Jewish  ceremo- 
nies, God  caused  no  type  to  be  made  which  will  prove 
meaningless,  or  pass  unfulfilled ;  and  the  observance  of  all 
types  was  kept  up  until  their  fulfilment  at  least  begafi.  All 
types  must  be  continually  repeated  until  their  antitypes  ap- 
pear ;  for  the  keeping  of  a  type  is  not  the  fulfilling  of  it. 
The  fulfilling  is  reached  where  the  type  ceases,  being  dis- 
placed by  the  reality,  the  antitype. 

Thus,  for  instance,  the  slaying  of  the  paschal  lamb  was 
fulfilled  in  the  death  of  Christ,  the  "Lamb  of  God,"  and 
there  began  the  special  blessing  upon  the  antitypical  first- 
born, the  believers  of  the  Gospel  age.  The  blessing,  fore- 
shadowed in  that  type,  is  not  yet  completely  fulfilled,  though 
the  fulfilment  began  with  the  death  of  Christ,  our  Passover 
Lamb.  In  like  manner,  every  ceremony  prescribed  in  the 
Law  proves  to  be  full  of  typical  significance.  And  the  par- 
ticularity with  which  the  observance  of  every  detail  of  the 


Earth's  Great  Jubike.  175 

types  was  enforced  throughout  the  Jewish  age  gives  em- 
phasis to  our  Lord's  words  quoted  above — that  every  mi- 
nute particular,  every  jot  and  tittle,  must  be  as  particularly 
fulfilled  as  it  was  carefully  enforced  in  the  ceremonies  of 
the  Law. 

In  this  chapter  we  propose  to  examine  that  typical  feature 
of  the  Mosaic  Law  known  as  the  Jubilee,  and  to  show  that 
it  was  intended  to  foreshadow  the  great  Restitution,  the 
recovery  of  mankind  from  the  fall,  to  be  accomplished  in 
the  Millennial  age ;  that  in  its  chara6ter  it  was  an  illustra- 
tion of  the  coming  Restitution  ;  and  that  in  the  manner  of 
its  reckoning  it  furnishes  time  regulations  which,  when 
understood  and  applied,  indicate  clearly  the  time  for  the 
beginning  of  the  antitype,  the  ''Restitution  of  all  things." — 
A6ls  3:19-21. 

Since  the  Jubilee  was  a  part  of  the  Law,  and  since  re- 
peating does  not  fulfil  it,  and  since  our  Lord  declared  that 
the  type  could  not  pass  away  without  fulfilment ;  and  more- 
over, since  we  know  that  no  such  restitution  of  all  things 
as  that  foretold  ''by  all  the  holy  prophets  since  the  world 
began,"  and  prefigured  in  this  type,  has  ever  yet  occurred, 
we  know  that  it  must  be  fulfilled  in  the  future. 

Israel's  jubilee  year. 

The  year  of  Jubilee  was  a  Sabbath  of  rest  and  refreshing, 
both  to  the  people  and  to  the  land  which  God  gave  them. 
It  was  the  chief  of  a  series  of  Sabbaths  or  rests.  -'"^  They  had 
a  Sabbath  day  every  seventh  day ;  and  once  every  year 
these  typical  Sabbath  days]  reached  a  climax — /.  e. ,  a  cycle 
of  seven  of  these  Sabbaths,  thus  marking  a  period  of  forty- 
nine  days  (7x7  =  49),  was  followed  by  z.  Jubilee  day,  the 
fiftieth  day  (Lev.  23:15,  16),  known  among  the  Jews  as 
Pentecost.     It  was  a  day  of  rejoicing  and  thanksgiving. 

*  The  word  "  Sabbath  "  signifies  rest. 


176  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

The  Sabbath  _y<?^r  occurred  every  seventh  year.  In  it  the 
land  was  allowed  to  rest  and  no  crops  were  to  be  planted. 
A  climax  of  these  Sabbath  [rest]  years  was  reached  in  the 
same  manner  as  the  Pentecost  or  fiftieth  day-Sabbath. 
Seven  of  the  Sabbath  years,  embracing  a  period  of  seven 
times  seven  years,  or  forty-nine  years  (7x7=:  49),  consti- 
tuted a  cycle  of  Sabbath  years ;  and  the  year  following, 
the  Fiftieth  Year,  was  the  Year  of  Jubilee. 

Let  us  examine  the  account  of  it  and  mark  its  fitness  as 
an  illustration  of  the  great  millennium  of  restitution. 

When  Israel  came  into  Canaan,  the  land  was  divided 
among  them  by  lot,  according  to  their  tribes  and  families. 
Success  thereafter  might  increase,  or  adversity  decrease,  their 
individual  possessions,  as  the  case  might  be.  If  a  man  be- 
came involved  in  debt,  he  might  be  obliged  to  sell  a  part 
or  even  all  of  his  property,  and  with  his  family  go  into 
servitude.  But  God  made  a  bountiful  provision  for  the 
unfortunate  :  He  arranged  that  such  adverse  circumstances 
might  not  continue  forever,  but  that  all  their  accounts — 
credits  and  debts — must  be  reckoned  only  to  the  Jubilee 
Year,  when  all  must  be  freed  from  old  encumbrances,  etc., 
to  make  a  fresh  start  for  the  next  term  of  fifty  years.  * 

Thus  every  fiftieth  year,  counting  from  the  time  of  their 
entrance  into  Canaan,  was  to  Israel  a  year  of  Jubilee,  a 
time  of  rejoicing  and  restitution,  in  which  broken  families 
were  re-united  and  lost  homesteads  were  restored.  No 
wonder  that  it  was  called  a  Jubilee.  If  property  had  been 
sold  for  debt,  it  was  to  be  considered  merely  as  a  grant  of 

*  A  somewhat  similar  arrangement  under  a  Bankrupt  Law  has  been 
found  expedient  in  our  day  and  land,  thus  endorsing  the  principle  then 
enunciated.  Nor  does  it  follow,  that  a  cancellation  of  debt  every  fifty 
years,  and  the  Jewish /^;-w,  would  serve  us  better  than  the  methods  of  to- 
day;  for  in  their  case,  the  time,  circumstances,  etc.,  were  not  specially  for 
themselves,  their  convenience,  and  their  circumstances,  but  specially  as  pro- 
phetic figures  and  lessons  relating  to  God's  plan  in  its  future  developqaen;^. 


Earth! s   Great  Jubilee.  177 

such  property  until  the  Jubilee  year ;  and  the  price  it  would 
bring  if  sold  depended  on  whether  the  coming  Jubilee  was 
near  or  far  distant. 

The  account  of  this  observance  is  found  in  Leviticus  25. 
Verses  10  to  15  read  thus:  *'Ye  shall  hallow  the  fiftieth 
year,  and  proclaim  liberty  throughout  all  the  land,  unto 
all  the  inhabitants  thereof.  It  is  a  Jubilee  unto  you,  and 
ye  shall  return  every  man  unto  his  posession,  and  ye  shall 
return  every  man  unto  his  family.  .  .  .  And  if  thou  sell 
aught  to  thy  neighbor,  or  buyest  aught  of  thy  neighbor's 
hand,  ye  shall  not  oppress  one  another.  According  to 
the  number  of  years  after  the  Jubilee  thou  shalt  buy  of  thy 
neighbor,  and  according  unto  the  number  of  years  of  the 
fruits  he  shall  sell  unto  thee.  According  to  the  multitude 
of  the  years  thou  shalt  increase  the  price  thereof,  and  ac- 
cording to  the  fewness  of  the  years  thou  shalt  diminish  the 
price  of  it." 

This  arrangement  provided  by  God  through  their  leader 
and  typical  mediator,  Moses,  though  itself  a  blessed  boon, 
foreshadowed  a  still  greater  blessing  which  God  had  in 
view — the  release  of  all  mankind  from  the  debt  of  sin  and 
its  bondage  and  servitude,  through  Christ  our  Lord,  the 
greater  Mediator  and  Deliverer,  whom  Moses  typified. 
(Deut.  18  :i5.)  It  was  thus,  in  types,  that  Moses  wrote  of 
Christ  and  the  blessings  to  come  through  him  (John  5  146; 
I  :45) — the  Great  Restitution  and  Jubilee  to  come  to  all 
the  race,  now  groaning  under  the  bondage  of  corruption 
and  slavery  to  Sin. 

If  the  shadow  brought  happiness  and  joy  to  the  typical 
people,  the  substance,  the  real  restitution,  will  fcause  bound- 
less joy  and  will  indeed  be  a  grand  Jubilee  to  all  people 
— all  the  world,  including  Israel,  being  typified  by  that  peo- 
ple, even  as  their  priesthood  represented  the  Church,  the 
"royal  priesthood."     Even  if  we  wep.  not  definitely  in- 

.2    B 


1 78  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

formed,  what  would  be  more  reasonable  than  to  surmise 
that  the  same  infinite  love  which  provided  for  the  tempo- 
rary welfare  of  Israel,  a  "stiff-necked  generation,"  would 
much  more  make  provision  for  the  lasting  welfare  of  the 
whole  world,  which  God  so  loved  as  to  redeem  while  yet 
sinners?  And  here  it  may  be  well  to  note  what  will  be 
more  fully  shown  hereafter,  that  while  in  one  aspe<5l  the 
Israelites  were  typical  of  the  believers  of  the  Gospel  age, 
in  another  they  represented  all  who,  in  any  age,  shall  be- 
lieve God  and  accept  his  leading.  And  in  this  chara6ter  we 
are  now  viewing  them.  Their  covenant,  sealed  with  the 
blood  of  bulls  and  goats,  was  typical  of  the  New  Covenant, 
sealed  with  the  precious  blood  of  Christ,  under  which  the 
reconciling  of  the  world  shall  be  effe6led  in  the  next  age, 
as  well  as  the  reconciling  of  the  Church  in  the  present  time. 
Their  day  of  atonement  and  its  sin-offerings,  though  in  type 
to  that  people,  and  for  their  sins  only,  typified  the  ''better 
sacrifices"  and  the  ad;ual  atonement  ^^for  the  sins  of  the 
whole  world''  But  note  that  the  Jubilee  applied  not  to 
Israel's  priesthood  (typical  of  the  Gospel  Church),  but  to 
the  others  only ;  for  the  priesthood  was  given  no  possessions, 
and  hence  could  neither  lose  any  nor  have  any  restored. 
The  Jubilee  was  for  all  the  people  except  the  priestly  tribe, 
and  hence  typifies,  not  those  blessings  which  are  to  come  to 
the  Church,  the  ''Royal  Priesthood,"  but  the  restitution 
blessings — earthly  blessings — in  due  time  to  come  to  all 
those  who  become  believers  in  and  followers  of  God. 

The  teaching  of  this  type  is  in  perfe(51;  accord  with  what 
we  have  learned  in  our  examination  of  the  divine  Plan  of 
the  Ages.  It  points  unmistakably  to  "  The  Times  of  Resti- 
tution of  all  things,  spoken  by  the  mouth  of  all  the  holy 
prophets  since  the  world  began."  Moses  was  one  of  the 
prophets ;  and  here  particularly  he  speaks  to  us  of  the 
coming  restitution  of  man's  first  estate  and  liberty,  long 


Earth '  s   Great  JubiUe.  179 

lost,  sold  under  sin.  By  the  failure  of  our  first  parents  all 
was  lost :  all  rights  were  forfeited,  and  all  became  slaves  to 
the  tyrant  Sin  and  were  unable  to  free  themselves.  The 
family  circle  has  been  sadly  broken  by  the  bondage  of  cor- 
ruption— death.  Thank  God  for  the  promised  time  of  re- 
lease! The  Jubilee  is  at  hand,  and  soon  the  captives  of 
Death  and  slaves  of  Sin  shall  have  back  their  first  estate, 
perfe6t  manhood,  and  their  first  inheritance,  the  earth — 
the  gift  of  God  through  Jesus  Christ,  the  mediator  and 
ratifier  of  the  New  Covenant. 

While  in  the  typical  Jubilee  Year  many  restored  liber- 
ties and  blessings  were  at  once  entered  upon,  yet  probably 
most  of  the  year  was  required  to  straighten  out  affairs  and 
get  each  one  fully  installed  again  in  all  his  former  liberties, 
rights  and  possessions.  So,  too,  with  the  antitype,  the  Mil- 
lennial age  of  Restitution.  It  will  open  with  sweeping  re- 
forms, with  the  recognition  of  rights,  liberties  and  posses- 
sions long  lost  sight  of;  but  the  work  of  completely  re- 
storing (to  the  obedient)  all  that  was  originally  lost  will 
require  all  of  that  age  of  restitution — a  thousand  years. 

It  is  certain  that  no  antitype  of  the  Jubilee  answering 
to  the  features  of  this  type  has  yet  occurred ;  and,  on  the 
strength  of  our  Lord's  assertion,  we  are  equally  sure  that 
the  type  could  not  pass  away  unfulfilled:  '*It  is  easier  for 
heaven  and  earth  to  pass,  than  for  one  tittle  of  the  Law  to 
fail. ' '  (Luke  16:17.)  But,  apparently,  this  feature  of  the  Law 
has  failed.  As  a  matter  of  fa6t,  the  type,  which  was  observed 
regularly  every  fiftieth  year  as  long  as  the  Israelites  were 
in  their  own  land,  has  not  been  observed  since  their  cap- 
tivity in  Babylon.  Apparently,  therefore,  this  feature  of 
the  Law  did  ''pass  away"  without  even  beginning  a  fulfil- 
ment. What  shall  we  answer  in  the  face  of  this  apparent 
contradiction  of  the  Lord's  statement?  But  is  it  really  so? 
or  can  any  antitype  of  the  Jubilee  be  found,  beginning  where 


i8o  The  Time  is  at  Hand, 

the  last  observance  of  the  typical  Jubilee  ended?  Yes,  n^e 
answer ;  a  clearly  defined  antitype  had  its  beginning  at  that 
exa6t  point,  and  on  a  larger  and  grander  scale,  as  antitypes 
always  are.  We  see,  by  a6lual  fulfilment,  that  the  cycles^ 
as  well  as  the  Jubilee  Years  in  which  they  culminated,  were 
included  in  the  type ;  and  that  the  same  method  by  which 
the  typical  Jubilee  was  pointed  out  (by  multiplying)  was  to 
be  observed  in  calculating  the  time  for  the  antitype — Earth's 
Great  Jubilee.  When  the  last  typical  Jubilee  had  been  ob- . 
served  and  had  passed  away,  the  great  cycle  began  to  county 
count,  the  close  of  which  will  usher  in  the  antitypical  Jubilee 
or  Restitution  age. 

We  have  already  referred  to  the  method  of  counting  the 
Sabbaths — that  the  multiplying  of  the  Sabbath  or  seventh 
day  by  seven  (7x7  =  49)  pointed  out  Pentecost,  the  Jubi- 
lee Day  which  followed ;  and  the  multiplying  of  the  seventh 
year  by  seven  (7x7  =  49)  made  the  cycle  which  pointed 
out  and  led  to  the  fiftieth  or  Jubilee  Year.  And  the  same 
system  carried  out  would  indicate  that  to  reach  the  great 
antitype  which  we  seek  we  should  in  like  manner  square 
the  Jubilee — /.  <f.,  multiply  the  fiftieth  year  by  fifty.  That 
is  to  say,  the  antitypical  cycle,  by  the  method  of  multiply- 
ing here  taught  us,  should  be  reckoned  by  multiplying  the 
typical  Jubilee  or  fiftieth  Sabbath  year  by  fifty,  just  as  in 
reaching  it  we  multiplied  the  seventh  year  Sabbath  by 
seven. — Lev.  25:2-13. 

Following  this  divinely  indicated  method  of  reckoning, 
wonderful  results  open  before  us,  which  assure  us  that  we 
have  the  corre6l  key  and  are  using  it  as  was  intended  by 
him  who  formed  this  treasure-casket.  Fifty  times  fifty  years 
gives  the  long  period  of  twenty-five  hundred  years  (50  x  50 
=  2500),  as  the  length  of  that  great  cycle,  which  began  to 
count  when  Israel's  last  typical  Jubilee  ended,  and  which 
must   culminate   in   the   great   antitypical    Jubilee.      We 


Earth's   Great  Jubike.  iSl 

know  that  such  a  cycle  must  have  begun  to  count  where 
the  type  ceased  ;  because,  if  not  one  jot  or  tittle  of  the  Law 
could  pass  away  without  a  fulfilment  at  least  commencing, 
then  the  Jubilee  type,  which  was  far  more  than  a  jot  or 
tittle,  indeed  a  large  and  important  feature  of  the  Law, 
would  not  have  been  permitted  to  pass  away  until  the  right 
time  for  its  antitype  to  begin.  That  the  antitype  of  the 
Jubilee  did  not  in  any  sense  begin  when  the  Israelites  ceased 
to  observe  it,  is  evident ;  hence  that  a  grand  cycle  began  to 
count  then,  we  may  be  certain.  The  new,  long  cycle 
began  there,  though  Israel  and  all  the  world  are  ignorant 
both  of  the  facSt  that  a  great  cycle  has  been  counting  and 
also  of  the  great  antitypical  Jubilee  by  which  it  will  be 
terminated.  We  are  not  to  look  for  the  great  Jubilee  of 
Jubilees  to  begin  after  this  cycle,  but  as  the  antitype  to  take 
the  place  of  the  fiftieth  or  last  Jubilee  of  the  cycle.  An 
antitype  i\Q\Qr  follows  its  type  but  takes  its  place  upon  the 
same  date.  Hence  the  2500th  year,  which  would  be  the 
great  50th  Jubilee,  must  be  the  antitype,  the  real  Jubilee  or 
Restitution.  But  instead  of  being  a  year,  as  in  the  type, 
it  will  be  larger ;  it  will  be  the  beginning  of  the  great  thous- 
and-year Jubilee — the  Millennium.  Just  so  it  has  been  in 
the  fulfilment  of  every  type  in  which  time  was  a  feature. 
Thus  the  Pentecostal  outpouring  of  the  holy  Spirit  came 
upon  the  typical  day  of  Pentecost — or  fiftieth  day.  Christ, 
our  Passover-sacrifice,  died  in  the  same  night  in  which  the 
typical  lamb  was  appointed  to  be  killed — a  day  before  or  a 
day  after  would  not  answer.  So  here,  not  the  year  after  nor 
the  year  before  the  2500th,  or  closing  of  the  typical  cycle, 
would  do;  but  that  very  year,  beginning  Odober,  1874, 
must  have  begun  the  antitype  or  Restitution  times. 

The  observance  of  the  type  could  not  cease  until  the  great 
cycle  (50  X  50)  began  to  count.  The  important  point  to  be 
ascertained,  then,  is  the  exa(^  date  when  the  last  typical 


i82  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

Jubilee  was  observed  by  Israel.  With  that  date  definitely 
established,  it  becomes  a  very  simple  matter  to  count  the 
great  cycle  of  fifty  times  fifty  or  twenty-five  hundred  years,  and 
thus  locate  definitely  the  date  of  the  beginning  of  the  great 
Jubilee  of  Earth — the  ''Times  of  Restitution  of  all  things." 

But  we  must  look  for  beginnings  only  of  this  stupendous 
work  of  restoring  all  things.  The  first  few  days  in  the  typ- 
ical Jubilee  Year  would  see  comparatively  little  accom- 
plished ;  and  so  we  must  expe(5l  in  the  first  few  years  in  the 
dawning  of  the  great  Millennial  Jubilee  to  see  but  little 
accomplished.  The  first  work  in  the  typical  Jubilee  Year 
would  naturally  be  a  searching  out  of  former  rights  and 
possessions  and  the  ascertaining  of  present  lacks.  Trac- 
ing the  parallel  of  this,  we  should  expe6l  in  the  antitype 
just  what  we  now  see  going  on  all  about  us ;  for,  as  will 
shortly  be  shown,  we  have  already  entered  upon  the  great  anti- 
typical  Jubilee  period,  and  have  been  in  it  since  Ocftober, 
A.  D.  1874.  What  do  we  see  about  us?  We  see  investiga- 
tion on  the  part  of  the  people  of  their  original,  God-given  in- 
heritance, and  their  present  lacks,  rights,  etc.,  many  in 
ignorance  and  selfishness  claiming  what  others  have ;  and 
the  attempt  to  hold  on  to  as  much  as  possible  on  the  part 
of  those  who  have  possession — causing  disputes,  contro- 
versies, strikes  and  lock-outs,  with  more  or  less  justice  and 
injustice  on  both  sides,  which  must  finally  be  left  to  Christ's 
adjudication,  as  disputes  under  the  Law  were  settled  by 
Moses,  and  after  his  death  by  those  who  sat  in  Moses'  seat. 
(Matt.  23 :  2.)  With  these  fixed  conclusions  and  expec- 
tations, let  us  seek  the  date  which  God  evidently  hid  for 
us  in  this  type,  "that  we  might  know  the  things  freely 
given  unto  us  of  God,"  now  due  to  be  understood. 

We  have  no  dire^  Bible  record  of  Israel's  observance  of 
their  typical  Jubilees  which  would  show  which  was  the  last 
one  observed.     We  fix  upon  the  date  for  the  Jubilee  imme- 


Earth^s  Great  Jubilee.  183 

diately  preceding  the  Babylonian  captivity  and  seventy 
years  desolation  of  their  land,  as  the  last  one,  for  two  rea- 
sons :  First,  It  could  not  have  been  this  side  of  that  deso- 
lation, because  there,  surely,  the  /^'/^  ceased,  ''passed  away ;" 
for  the  land  being  desolate  seventy  years  and  the  people  in 
captivity  in  a  foreign  land,  a  Jubilee  must  have  been  due 
somewhere  in  the  midst  of  those  seventy  years  and  must 
have  gone  unobserved.  A  glance  is  sufficient  to  show  that  the 
commands  and  provisions  relative  to  the  Jubilee  Year  could 
not  be  complied  with  while  they  as  a  nation  were  in  cap- 
tivity and  the  land  was  desolate.  Hence  we  say  the  type 
either  passed  away  then,  or  before  that  interruption :  it  could 
not  be  this  side  of  it.  And  whenever  the  observance  of  the 
type  ceased,  the  cycle  of  the  great  antitype  must  have  begun 
to  count.  One  such  failure  to  observe  the  type  would  indicate 
that  the  type  had  ceased  and  that  the  cycle  leading  to  the 
antitype  had  begun.  Besides,  never  since  the  Babylonian 
captivity  has  Israel  had  full  control  of  the  land :  they  and 
their  land  have  ever  since  been  subjedl:  to  Gentile  dominion. 
Secondly,  In  every  captivity  previous  to  that  one,  God 
evidently  delivered  them  from  their  enemies  in  time  to  get 
back  into  their  own  land  to  celebrate  the  Jubilee  Year,  and 
thus  to  perpetuate  it  as  a  type  until  the  right  time  for  the 
great  (50  x  50)  cycle  to  begin  counting;  for  their  previous 
captivities,  though  frequent,  it  seems  never  lasted  longer 
than  forty  years,  thus  permitting  them,  according  to  the 
Jubilee  arrangement,  to  go  free  and  to  receive  back  every 
man  his  inheritance  every  Jubilee  Year.  Besides,  when  we 
shall  shortly  show  that,  reckoned  from  the  beginning  of  the 
seventy  years  desolation  under  Babylon,  the  great  cycle 
ends  with  the  year  A.  D.  1875,  it  will  be  manifest  to  all 
that  it  could  not  have  commenced  at  an  earlier  date, 
prior  to  that  Babylonian  captivity ;  for  if  we  place  it  even 
one  Jubilee  earlier,  it  would  locate  the  termination  of  the 


1 84  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

cycle  lilty  years  earlier  than  A.  D.  1875,  namely  A.  D.  1825  ; 
and  surely  no  Jubilee  age  of  restitution  began  with  that 
year. 

Satisfied  thus  that  the  last  typical  Jubilee,  from  which 
the  great  (50x50)  cycle  counts,  was  not  earlier,  and  could 
not  be  since  the  captivity  in  Babylon,  and  hence  that  the  one 
immediately  preceding  that  captivity  was  the  last  typical 
Jubilee  Year,  and  that  at  its  close  the  great,  silent  cycle 
began  to  count,  we  proceed  to  locate  the  exa6l  time  of 
that  last  typical  Jubilee,  thus  : — 

The  system  of  year  Sabbaths  being  identified  with  their 
land,  Canaan,  and  their  inheritance  in  it,  the  first  cycle  of 
forty-nine  years,  leading  to  the  first  Jubilee,  should  begin 
to  count  from  the  time  they  entered  Canaan.  This  reason- 
able inference  is  made  positive  by  the  Lord's  words — 
''When  ye  come  into  the  land  which  I  give  you,  then  shall 
the  land  keep  a  Sabbath  [observe  the  Sabbath  system] 
unto  the  Lord :  Six  years  shalt  thou  sow  thy  field,  and  six 
years  shalt  thou  prune  thy  vineyard  and  gather  in  the  fruit 
thereof;  but  in  the  seventh  year  [from  entering  the  land] 
shall  be  a  Sabbath  of  rest  unto  the  land."  So,  then,  the 
cycle  of  seven  times  seven,  or  forty-nine  years  (7x7  =  49), 
began  to  count  at  once,  and  the  fiftieth  year  after  entering 
Canaan  was  the  first  typical  Jubilee.  * 

*  Some  have  suggested  that  as  there  were  six  years  consumed  in  war 
before  the  division  of  the  land  was  finished,  therefore  the  counting  of  the 
Jubilee  cycles  did  not  begin  until  then.  But  no,  the  land  was  entered 
upon  when  they  crossed  over  Jordan,  and  the  command  reads,  *'  When 
ye  come  into  the  land,"  and  not,  When  ye  have  divided  the  land.  It 
was  divided  parcel  by  parcel  duiing  the  six  years,  but  they  did  not  get 
possession  of  all  of  it  during  those  years,  nor  for  an  indefinite  time  after- 
ward— until  the  enemies  were  driven  out,  which  in  some  cases  was  never 
done.  (See  Joshua  iS:2,  3;  17:12,  13;  23:4,  7,  13,  15.)  Hence,  had 
they  waited  for  full  possession  before  beginning  to  count  the  cycles, 
they  would  never  have  begun. 


Earth's  Great  Jubike.  185 

It  will  be  seen,  by  reference  to  the  table  of  Chronology, 
that  969  years  elapsed  between  the  entering  of  Canaan  and 
the  seventy  years  desolation. 

To  the  division  of  the  land,        ...  6  years. 

Period  of  the  Judges,     .         .  .  .  450     ^' 

Period  of  the  Kings,  .       .  .  .  •      513      '* 


Total       ....  969      *^ 

We  may  know  how  many  Jubilees  they  had  observed  up 
to  that  time  by  dividing  969  years  by  50.  There  are  19 
fifties  in  969,  showing  that  number  of  Jubilees,  and  the 
remaining  19  years  show  tliat  their  nineteenth,  which  was 
the  last  of  the  typical  Jubilees,  occurred  just  nineteen  years 
before  the  beginning  of  the  seventy  years  of  desolation  of 
the  land  while  they  were  in  captivity  in  Babylon,  and  nine 
hundred  and  fifty  years  after  entering  Canaan. 

There,   then,  just  nineteen  years  before  the  ''seventy 
years  desolation"  of  their  land,  at  the  close  of  their  last 
Jubilee — the  nineteenth — the  great  cycle  of  2500  years 
(50  X  50=:  2500)  bega7i  to  count;  and  it  becomes  a  very 
simple  matter  to  reckon  where  those  2500  years  terminated, 
and  consequently  where  the  twenty-five  hundreth  year,  the 
beginning  of  the  great  antitypical  Jubilee,  began.     Thus : — 
From  the  last  or  nineteenth  Jubilee  to  the  be- 
ginning of  the  desolation  of  the  land,        .  19  years. 
Period  of  the  desolation,        .          ...      70 
From  the  restoration  of  Israel  by  Cyrus,  to 
the  date  known  as  A.  D.  (Anno  Domini — 
the  year  of  our  Lord),    .         .         .         .         536 


Hence,  from  their  last  Jubilee  to  A.  D.  i,     .  625 
The  number  of  years  since  A.  D.  i,  necessary 

to  complete  the  cycle  of  2500  years,          .  1875 

From  the  last  observed  Jubilee — Total,        .  2500 


CHRONOLOCxICAL 
TABLE. 

SEE  PAGE  184. 


Jubilee  type  dates  from  en- 
tering Canaan: — 
To  the  division  of 

the  land,      .      .         6  yrs. 

Period  of  Judges,  450    " 

«        "    Kings,  513    " 

To  the  desolation,  969    " 

19  Jubilees,      =  950    " 


Remainder: 


19  yrs. 


From  last  Jubilee  to 

the  desolation,         19  yrs. 
Period  of  desolation, 

and    captivity  of 

all  iu    Babylon,     70    " 
From    Restoration 

to  Iheir  land  by 

Cynis,toA.D.  I,  536   " 
From  year  A.  D.  I 

to    A.  D.    1875 

(Jewish  time,  be- 
ginning 061. 1 874),  1 874  •* 

2499  yrs- 


Thus,  the  year  w^hich  be- 
gan Odlober  1874  was  the 
2500th  year,  but  since  the 
antitype  is  larger  than  the 
type — looo  years  instead  cf 
one  year — 1875  (beginning 
0(51.  1874),  instead  cf  being 
a  Jubilee  year,  was  the  first 
of  the  1000  years  of  Jubilee. 


H 

a 

td 

r 
w 

> 

K; 


> 


Earth's  Great  Jubilee.  187 

Thus  we  find  that  the  twenty-five  hundredth  year  began 
with  the  beginning  of  the  year  A.  D.  1S75,  which  in  Jew- 
ish civil  time,  by  which  this  is  reckoned  (Lev.  25:9),  be- 
gan about  06lober,  1874.  So,  then,  if  the  great  Jubilee 
were  to  be  only  a  year,  like  its  type,  it  would  have  com- 
menced 0(5lober,  A.  D.  1874,  at  the  end  of  2499  years,  and 
would  have  ended  October,  A.  D.  1875.  ^^t  this  is  not 
the  type,  but  the  reality :  it  was  not  a  Jubilee  Year,  but 
the  antitypical  Thousand  years  of  Restitution  of  all  things, 
which  commenced  06lober,  A.  D.  1874. 

Thus  we  see  that  not  only  did  Israel's  Jubilee  clearly 
and  forcibly  prefigure  the  great  ''Times  of  Restitution 
OF  ALL  THINGS  which  God  hath  spoken  by  the  mouth  of 
all  the  holy  prophets  since  the  world  began,"  but  that 
also  the  manner  of  its  reckoning  just  as  clearly  indicates 
the  date  of  the  beginning  of  Earth's  Great  Jubilee.  If  we 
fail  to  accept  these  conclusions,  we  see  no  other  alternative 
than  that  this  type  passed  away  without  fulfilment,  notwith- 
standing the  most  positive  assertions  of  our  Lord  that  it 
could  not — that  it  would  be  easier  for  heaven  and  earth  to 
pass  than  for  one  jot  or  tittle  of  the  Law  to  pass  away 
without  reaching  a  fulfilment.  (Matt.  5  :  18.)  We  accept 
the  fa6ls  thus  divinely  indicated,  however  astounding  the 
conclusions  which  we  must  reasonably  draw  therefrom. 

But  what  are  the  reasonable  conclusions  from  these  Bible 
teachings?  Let  us  consider  what  must  follow,  from  the 
standpoint  of  reason,  and  then  see  if  any  other  scriptures 
will  either  warrant  or  contradi6l  those  conclusions.  First, 
we  infer  that  when  the  ''Times  of  Restitution"  are  due 
to  begin,  the  presence  of  the  Great  Restorer  is  also  due. 
This  would  be  a  very  reasonable  inference,  but  it  amounts 
to  much  more  than  inference  when  it  is  indorsed  by 
the  Apostle's  positive  inspired  statement,  that  "  When 
the  [appointed']  times  of  refreshing  shall  come   from  the 


1 88  The  Ti7ne  is  at  Hand. 

presence*  of  the  Lord  [Jehovah],  .  .  .  he  shall  send  Jesus 
Christ,  which  before  was  preached  unto  you,  whom  the 
heaven  must  retain  until  the  times  of  restitution  of  all 
THINGS,  which  God  hath  spoken  by  the  mouth  of  all  his  holy 
prophets  since  the  world  began." — A(5ts  3:19-21. 

On  the  strength  of  this  inspired  statement  alone,  we  have 
clear  evidence  of  the  fa(5l  that  our  Lord's  second  advent 
was  due  when  the  Times  of  Restitution  were  due  to  begin, 
viz.,  in  0(?tober,  A.  D.  1874,  as  marked  by  the  Jubilee  ar- 
rangement. It  seems  evident,  indeed,  that  the  Jubilee,  like 
all  other  things  of  that  dispensation,  was  arranged  "for 
our  admonition  \our  instrudtion]  upon  whom  the  ends  of 
the  ages  are  come."  (i  Cor.  10:11.)  One  thing  seems 
clear — if  they  do  not  profit  us,  they  have  been  thus  far  al- 
most profitless ;  for  the  Scriptures  inform  us  that  the  Jews 
new Qx  fully  and  properly  observed  the  type,  even  during  the 
first  nineteen  Jubilees.  (Lev.  26 :35.)  They  no  doubt  found 
it  almost  impossible  to  restrain  their  love  of  wealth.  It, 
like  all  prophecies  and  types,  was  no  doubt  arranged  to 
cast  light  when  and  where  needed  on  the  path  of  the  just 
— to  guide  the  *'  feet  "  of  the  body  of  Christ. 

*  The  word  here  xQn6.Gxed  presence  is  noi  parousia,  hut  prosopon  ;  and 
apo  prosopon,  rendered  from  the  presence,  does  not  signify  as  a  result  of 
presence,  but  rather  out  from  the  face  of  The  thought  is  common  to  us, 
and  was  much  more  common  in  eastern  countries  long  ago :  To  show  the 
face  was  a  mark  of  favor,  while  to  turn  the  back  was  a  mark  of  disfavor. 
Thus  of  our  Lord  at  his  first  advent  it  was  written,  "  We  hid  as  it  were 
our  faces  from  him,' '  i.  e.,  we  were  ashamed  of  and  would  not  acknowledge 
him.  Thus,  too,  Jehovah  "would  not  look  upon  sin,"  and  hid  his  face 
from  sinners.  Now,  however,  since  the  ransom  has  been  given,  Jehovah 
waits  to  be  gracious,  until  the  appointed  time  Then  he  will  no  longer  dis- 
regard men  and  treat  them  as  sinners,  turning  his  back  upon  them,  but  will 
send  them  refreshment  from  his  face,  his  favor,  and  will  send  Jesus,  his 
agent  in  the  restitution  of  all  things.  We  have  the  same  thought  in  our 
hymns :  "Show  thy  reconciled  face ;"  and  "Show  thy  face  and  all  is  bright." 


Earth' s   Great  Jubilee.  189 

Now  call  to  mind  what  was  shown  in  the  preceding  chap- 
ter concerning  the  manner  of  our  Lord's  return  and  appear- 
ing, lest  you  stumble  here  because  of  erroneous  ideas  on 
that  point.  Remember,  that  "As  the  days  of  Noah  were, 
so  shall  also  the  presence  [Greek,  paronsia\  of  the  Son  of 
man  be ;  for  as  in  the  days  that  were  before  the  flood  they 
.  .  .  knew  not,  ...  so  shall  also  the  presence  of  the  Son 
of  man  be."  (Matt.  24:37-39.)  Remember,  also,  what 
we  have  already  gathered  from  the  inspired  teaching — that 
only  those  faithfully  watching  unto  the  sure  word  of  proph- 
ecy, and  loving  and  looking  for  his  appearing,  will  be  able 
to  discern  his  presence,  until  he  makes  it  manifest  to  the 
world  ''in  flaming  fire,  taking  vengeance" — in  the  great 
time  of  trouble.  The  fa6l,  then,  that  his  presence  is  not 
known  and  generally  recognized  by  the  world,  or  even 
among  Christians,  is  no  argument  against  this  truth.  The 
world  has  no  faith  in  prophecy,  and  of  course  cannot  see 
anything  in  its  light.  And  lukewarm  Christians  (and  such 
are  the  large  majority)  are  paying  no  attention  to  the 
"sure  word  of  prophecy;"  and  many  who  profess  to  be 
watching  are  reading  the  prophecies  through  the  colored 
glasses  of  old  and  long  cherished  errors,  and  with  their 
eyes  miserably  crossed  by  prejudice.  All  such  should  go 
to  the  Great  Physician  for  some  of  the  "eye  salve"  of 
meekness  (Rev.  3:18),  and  forever  discard  the  colored 
glasses  of  the  traditions  of  men,  and  all  theories  of  their 
own  and  of  others  which  will  not  harmonize  with  every 
testimony  of  God's  Word. 

But  neither  the  world's  ignorance  and  unbelief  nor  the 
lukewarm  indifference  and  prejudice  of  the  great  majority 
of  professed  Christians  shall  prove  stumbling  blocks  to 
God's  ele6t — to  those  who  in  simple,  child-like  faith  accept 
the  testimony  of  his  blessed  Word.  Such  cannot  stumble ; 
nor  is  it  possible  that  they  should  be  deceived.     By  their 


1 90  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

faith  and  God's  leading  such  will  overcome  all.  Fear  not, 
precious  Jewels  of  the  Lord's  own  choosing  :  lift  up  your 
heads  and  rejoice,  knowing  that  your  deliverance,  your  ex- 
altation and  glory,  draweth  nigh. — Luke  21  :  28;  12:  32. 

Another  reasonable  expedtation,  if  the  Times  of  Resti- 
tution a6tually  began  with  06lober,  A.  D.  1874,  and  if  our 
Lord's  second  presence  was  then  due,  would  be,  that  those 
watching  should  see  some  distinguishable  indications  of 
what  the  Scriptures  explain  to  be  the  first  work  of  his  pres- 
ence, viz.,  the  harvesting  of  the  fruit  of  the  Gospel  age, 
the  gathering  together  of  his  ele6l  (in  mental  association 
and  spiritual  communion),  and  at  least  some  preparatory 
steps  toward  the  establishment  of  Christ's  Kingdom.  Some 
of  these  evidences  we  have  already  briefly  hinted  at;  but 
there  is  so  much  to  be  observed  on  this  point  that  we  must 
leave  its  consideration  for  a  subsequent  chapter.  The  har- 
vest of  the  Church  is  indeed  upon  us ;  the  wheat  is  being 
separated  from  the  tares;  and  affairs  in  the  world  are  rap- 
idly shaping  themselves,  making  ready  for  the  permanent 
establishment  of  the  Redeemer's  Kingdom.  The  foretold 
signs,  in  the  exadt  manner  and  order  of  their  predi6lion, 
are  made  clearly  manifest  to  those  watching ;  but  this  we 
leave  for  the  present — because  we  wish  first  to  bring  other 
prophetic  testimonies  to  view.  Suffice  it  to  say  here  that 
the  sickle  in  the  '^harvest"  of  this  age,  as  in  the  Jewish 
''harvest,"  is  the  truth;  and  that  the  ''messengers"  who 
use  the  sickle  now  are  disciples  or  followers  of  the  Lord, 
though  many  of  them  now,  as  then,  realize  but  slightly  the 
magnitude  of  the  work  in  which  they  are  engaged. 

PROPHETIC  EVIDENCES 
CORROBORATIVE. 

While  the  forgoing  evidence  is  strong  and  clear  just  as 
it  stands,  we  now  present  prophetic  testimony  which  proves 


Earth's  Great  Jubilee,  191 

that  we  began  counting  the  Great  Cycle  (50  x  50)  at  the 
right  point.  Our  Heavenly  Father  knew  the  fear  and  trem- 
bling with  which  our  faith  would  grasp  these  exceeding 
great  and  precious  promises,  and  hence  he  has  doubled  the 
already  strong  cord  of  evidence,  furnished  in  the  Law,  by 
additional  testimony  through  the  prophet.  And  our  dear 
Redeemer  and  Lord,  who  hands  us  this  cord,  and  whose 
presence  this  testimony  points  out  to  us,  as  he  comes  to 
us  in  the  early  dawn  of  the  Millennial  Day,  seems  to  say, 
as  he  once  said  to  Peter  (Matt.  14:  25-32),  *'0  thou  of 
little  faith,  wherefore  didst  thou  doubt?"  Learn  that  I  am 
a  spirit  being,  no  longer  visible  to  human  sight.  I  thus  re- 
veal myself  by  the  lamp  of  the  Word  to  the  eyes  of  thine 
understanding,  that  as  in  coming  days  I  shall  walk  upon 
the  stormy  sea  of  the  world's  unparalleled  trouble,  thou 
needst  not  fear,  but  '^Be  of  good  cheer."  Remembering 
that  it  is  I,  be  not  afraid. 

This  truly  marvelous  prophetic  corroboration,  which  we 
now  proceed  to  consider,  lay  hidden  in  its  own  simplicity 
until  the  appreciation  and  application  of  the  Jubilee  type, 
as  above,  gave  it  significance. 

The  seventy  years,  usually  referred  to  as  the  seventy  years 
captivity  in  Babylon,  is  Scripturally  styled  the  ^^ seventy 
years  desolation  of  the  land.''  This  desolation  God  had 
predi6ted  by  Jeremiah  the  Prophet,  thus : — ''And  this  whole 
land  shall  be  a  desolation,  and  .  .  .  shall  serve  the  king 
of  Babylon  seventy  years."  (Jer.  25:11.)  ''Thus  saith 
the  Lord,  that  after  seventy  years  be  accomplished  at  Bab- 
ylon, I  will  visit  you,  and  perform  my  good  word  toward 
you,  in  causing  you  to  return  to  this  place."  (Jer.  29:10.) 
In  2  Chron.  36:17-21  the  fulfilment  of  this  prophecy  is 
recorded ;  and  the  reason  why  it  was  just  seventy  years, 
and  why  it  was  made  completely  desolate,  is  stated  thus : 
"  He  brought  upon  them  the  king  of  the  Chaldees  [NebU' 


192  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

chadnezzar,  king  of  Babylon],  .  .  .  and  them  that  had 
escaped  from  the  sword  carried  he  away  to  Babylon,  where 
they  were  servants  to  him  and  his  sons  until  the  reign  of  the 
kingdom  of  Persia :  to  fulfil  the  word  of  the  Lord  by  the 
mouth  of  Jeremiah,  until  the  land  had  enjoyed  her  Sabbaths ; 

for  AS    LONG  AS  SHE    LAY  DESOLATE  SHE   KEPT   SaBBATH,  tO 

fulfil  threescore  and  ten  [70]  years. ' ' 

From  this  we  see  that  Israel  had  failed  to  observe  prop- 
erly the  Sabbatic  years,  of  which  the  Jubilees  were  the 
chief.  It  certainly  was  a  severe  test  of  obedience  toward 
the  Heavenly  King,  to  a  people  so  notably  avaricious,  to 
be  commanded  to  let  the  land  rest,  to  restore  to  former 
owners  lands  acquired  and  possessed  for  years,  and  to  re- 
store to  servants  their  liberty — especially  when  obedience 
was  only  commanded,  and  not  summarily  enforced  by  com- 
pulsion. God  had  forewarned  them,  through  Moses,  that  if 
they  were  disobedient  to  the  laws  to  which  as  a  nation  they 
had  pledged  themselves,  he  would  punish  them  for  it.  In  the 
same  chapter  in  which  ^  tells  them  of  the  punishment  oi  seven 
times  under  Gentile  rule,  he  tells  them,  also,  that  if  they 
would  negle6l  the  year  Sabbaths  he  would  punish  them  for 
it  by  desolating  their  land.  (And,  as  a  matter  of  fa6l,  the 
seventy  years  desolation  was  also  the  beginning  of  the  seven 
Gentile  Times,  as  already  shown.)  The  Lord's  threatening 
reads  thus:  ''Your  land  shall  be  desolate  and  your  cities 
waste.  Then  shall  the  land  enjoy  her  Sabbaths,  as  long  as 
it  lieth  desolate  and  ye  be  in  your  enemies  land,  .  .  .  because 
it  did  not  rest  in  your  Sabbaths  when  ye  dwelt  upon  it." 
—Lev.  26:34,  35,  43. 

God  permitted  for  a  while  their  half-hearted  and  half- 
way obedience,  but  finally  removed  them  entirely  from  the 
land,  made  it  desolate,  without  an  inhabitant,  and  gave  it 
the/z^//  number  o(  Its  Jubilee  Years — not  only  for  those  they 
had  imperfe6lly  observed,  but  also  for  the  entire  future 


Earth's   Great  Jicbilee.  193 

number  which  would  elapse,  according  to  his  arrangement, 
before  the  antitypical  Jubilee,  the  Restitution  or  Millen- 
nial age,  would  be  due. 

And  since  the  entire  number  of  typical  Jubilees,  designed 
to  precede  the  antitype,  is  thus  proved  to  be  seventy,  we 
are  thus  furnished  another  means  of  calculating  when  the 
antitype  is  due  to  begin.  The  calculating  of  this  pro- 
phetic statement  of  the  entire  number  of  Jubilees  is  simple 
and  easy;  and,  as  we  should  expe6t,  its  results  ag7'ee  ex- 
a^ly  with  those  already  obtained  by  the  method  of  count- 
ing furnished  by  the  Law. 

The  entire  number  being  seventy,  and  nineteen  of  these 
having  been  observed  in  a  half-hearted  way  by  Israel  before 
the  desolation,  it  follows  that  the  remaining  fifty-one 
(70  — 19=  51)  mark  the  period  from  the  last  Jubilee  which 
Israel  imperfedlly  observed,  down  to  the  great  antitype. 
But  here  note  a  difference  in  the  manner  of  counting.  Un- 
der the  Law  reckoning,  we  counted  the  future  as  well  as 
the  past  cycles  of  forty-nine  years  with  the  fiftieth  or  Jubi- 
lee Year  added;  for  the  Law  shows  things  as  they  would 
have  been,  had  Israel  carried  them  out  properly.  But  proph- 
ecy records  things  just  as  they  will  adlually  occur.  We 
are  now  examining  the  prophetic  statement,  remember,  and 
hence  should  now  reckon  these  cycles  as  they  have  occ2irred 
— cycles  of  forty-nine  years,  without  Jubilees;  for  Israel 
did  not  observe  a  Jubilee  since  their  nineteenth  one.  The 
first  nineteen  cycles  had  Jubilee  Years,  but  the  fifty-one 
since  have  had  none;  hence  we  must  reckon  fifty-one  cycles 
of  forty -nine  years  each,  or  2499  years  (49x51=2499), 
from  the  last  typical  Jubilee  observed  by  Israel  to  the  anti- 
type. This  calculation,  though  entirely  distindl  from  the 
other,  ends  exadlly  as  shown  by  the  Law  method  of  reckon- 
ing previously  examined — Odlober,  A.  D.  1874. 

Let  us  state  this  last  proof  in  another  form,  for  the  beue- 

13  B 


1 94  "^^^^   Thne  is  at  Hand. 

fit  of  some,  thus  : — The  full  number  of  Jubilee  cycles  which 
God  had  ordained  was  seventy,  as  shown  by  the  plain 
statements  relative  to  the  reason  for  the  seventy  years  deso- 
lation of  their  land.  This  was  to  include  those  that  Israel  had 
observed  in  an  unsatisfa6lory  manner,  which  we  have  seen 
were  nineteen,  as  well  as  all  the  cycles  to  follow,  up  to  the 
antitype.  We  will  now  reckon  all  these  from  their  com- 
mencement on  entering  Canaan,  and  see  where  they  end. 
1 9  Cycles  with  Jubilees  added  (5  o  years  each)  =  950  years. 
51  Cycles  without  Jubilees  (49  years  each)     r=r  2499     *' 


70  Cycles,  therefore,  cover  a  period  of  3449     *' 

This  period  of  3449  years,  reckoned  from  the  entering  of 
Canaan,  ends  as  the  foregoing,  Odiober,  A.  D.  1874,  thus: — 
From  entering  Canaan  to  division  of  the  land,  6  years. 
Period  of  the  Judges  to  Saul  the  king,     .  .    450      '* 

Period  of  the  kings,  .  .  .  .         5^3      " 

Period  of  the  desolation,       .  .         .         .       70      '' 

From  the  restoration  to  A.  D.,  .         .  53^      " 

Total  number  of  years  before  the  date  

known  as  A.  D.,         .....    1575      " 

Years  since  A.  D. ,  to  complete  above 
period  of  3449  years,  are  1874  full  years, 
which  would  end  (Jewish  time)  06lober,    .     .    1874     *' 

The  period  of  the  70  cycles,  as  shown 
above,  from  the  beginning  of  the  Jubi- 
lee system,  on  entering  Canaan,  until 

the  antitype,  the  Great  Jubilee,  or  Times 

of  Restitution,  began,  061.,  A.  D.  1874,   .     .    3449  years. 

The  logical  conclusion,  if  these  matters  are  accepted  as  of 
divine  arrangement,  is  easily  drawn.  And  if  not  divinely 
arranged,  whence  came  they  ?  We  do  not  put  them  into 
the  inspired  Word  :  we  merely  find  them  there  in  all  their 
simplicity  and  beguty,  m^d,  like  all  the  other  precious  ^nd 


CHRONOLOGICAL 
TABLE. 

—  SEE  PAGE  194. — 

From  entering  Canaan: — 
To  the  division  of 

tiie  land,  .  .  6  years. 
Period  of  Judges,  450     " 

"       "    Kings,  513     " 

To  tlie  Desolation,  969     " 
19  Jubilees,    =    950  years. 

19  years. 
Thus  tlieir  last  Jubilee  was 
observed  19  years  before  the 
Desolation. 


H 

X 

M 

M 

M 

VO 

r* 

r 

X 

w 

S' 

0 

11 

0 

0 

vO 

<—)   "^ 

0 

0 

f     a 

<-n 

w    0 

H^ 

0 

r   2 

w 

^ 

M     H 

> 

M     K 

C/5 

" 

19  yrs. 
70    " 


Period  since  last  Jubilee 

Ijefore  the  "Desola- 
tion" as  above. 

Years  of  Desolation, 

From  the  Restora- 
tion by  Cyrus  to 
A.  D.  I,     ,     .     . 

Years  from  A.  D.  I 
to  A.  D.  1874, 
Oa.  loth  (the 
end  of  year — 
Jewish  time),    . 


536 


[874 


2499  yrs. 


51  cycles  (without  Jubi- 
lees) as  they  acflually  occurred 
and  were  mep.tioned  in  proph- 
ecy, 49  years  each=  2499 
years. — Or,  total  years  from 
entering  Canaan  to  Ocflober 
1874  =  3449  years. 

The  Period  of  19  cycles 
and  Jubilees  (950  years)  and 
5 1  cycles  alone  (2499  years) 
-,=  3449  years. 


X  <^  2 

n    g  ^ 

s  §  S 

Pi    n  f-< 

'^'    «  M 

§    g  « 

^^  § 

M     O  C« 

2   •«  W 

o   H  o' 

^  ^  w 

§    n  > 

.     S  O 

>  f^  O 
f  ^ 

r   G  K) 

X    5  VO 

i  ^g 

I  ^  ^ 

O   M  w 


Ht 


oct.,  a.  d.  1874,  date  of  beginning  of 
Earth's  Great  Jubilbr. 


196  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

rich  food  from  the  storehouse,  which  our  Lord  is  now  serv- 
ing us  according  to  his  promise  (Luke  12:37),  this  is  nour- 
ishing ''strong  meat  " — not  especially  intended  for  ''  babes 
in  Christ,"  but  for  those  more  developed,  "  who  have  their 
senses  exercised"  (Heb.  5  :  14)  to  discern  and  appreciate 
this  meat  now  in  "  due  season."  If  not  of  divine  arrange- 
ment and  intended  for  our  instrudlion,  how  and  why  come 
the  double  proofs,  matching  and  corroborating  each  other 
so  perfedlly  ?  To  convince  yourself  of  their  divine  arrange- 
ment, notice  that  in  no  other  place  and  way  can  these 
seventy  years  of  Sabbaths  in  desolation  be  made  to  har- 
monize with  the  (50x50)  cycle  of  the  Great  Jubilee.  Try 
it.  Prove  it.  Suppose  either  a  mistake,  or  a  change  of 
one  of  the  nineteen  Jubilees  kept  by  Israel :  Suppose  that 
eighteen  (one  less)  or  twenty  (one  more)  had  elapsed  be- 
fore the  seven/y years  desolatio?i  began.  Calculate,  and  you 
will  see  that  these  two  lines  of  evidence,  which  so  perfe6tly 
unite  in  the  testimony  that  1875  (beginning  October,  A.  D. 
1874)  is  the  dateof  the  beginningof  the Timesof  Restitution, 
and  the  date,  therefore,  from  which  we  may  know  that  the 
heavens  no  longer  retain  our  Lord,  the  great  Restorer,  can- 
not be  luiited  elsewhere,  without  doing  violence  to  them- 
selves, to  the  chronology,  and  to  other  prophecies  yet  to  be 
examined. 

If  these  time-prophecies  teach  anything,  it  is  that  the 
Great  Jubilee,  the  Times  of  Restitution  of  all  things,  has 
begun,  and  that  we  are  already  in  the  dawn  of  the  Millen- 
nial age,  as  well  as  in  the  ''harvest "  of  the  Gospel  age — 
which  ages  lap  one  upon  the  other  for  forty  years — the  "day 
of  \v^i«,th."  We  are  already  fourteen  years  into  this  forty- 
year-day  of  wrath  ;  and  preparations  for  the  struggle  are  pro- 
gressing rapidly.  The  coming  twenty-six  years,  at  the  pres- 
ent momentum,  will  be  quite  sufficient  for  the  accomplish- 
ment of  "  all  things  written." 


Earth's   Great  Jubilee.  197 

Let  no  reader  hastily  conclude  that  there  are  no  evidences 
of  Restitution  about  us,  nor  that  the  Sun  of  Righteousness 
is  not  already  gilding  the  watch  towers  of  Zion  and  en- 
lightening the  world.  Let  him,  on  the  contrary,  refle(5l  that 
we  are  already  in  the  day  when  the  hidden  things  are  being 
made  manifest ;  and  let  him  remember  that  the  first  work 
of  Restitution  is  properly  a  breaking  down  of  the  old  and 
decaying  strudture  which  stands  in  the  place  which  the 
new  is  to  occupy.  Remember  that  the  first  work  of  the 
tenderest  physician  is  often  to  open  the  wounds,  and  to 
cleanse  and  amputate  according  to  the  necessities  of  the 
patient,  in  order  to  make  thorough  work  of  the  healing. 
That  such  service  causes  pain  and  is  seldom  appreciated  by 
the  patient  at  the  time,  none  need  be  told ;  and  so  it  is 
with  the  work  of  the  great  Physician,  the  Restorer,  the 
Life-giver  :  He  wounds  to  heal,  and  the  trouble  and  sifting 
in  the  Church  and  the  world  are  but  the  lancing  and 
cleansing  needful,  and  a  most  important  part  of  the  Resti- 
tution work. 

In  the  type,  the  Trumpet  of  Jubilee  was  to  be  sounded 
when  the  Jubilee  Year  began,  to  proclaim  liberty  throughout 
all  the  land,  unto  all  the  inhabitants  thereof.  (Lev.  25  :  10.) 
The  antitype  is  ushered  in  with  the  sounding  of  the  (sym- 
bolic) '-Seventh  Trumpet,"  the  ''Trump  of  God,"  the 
"Last  Trump."  It  is  indeed  the  great  trumpet:  it  an- 
nounces liberty  to  every  captive ;  and  while  at  first  it  means 
the  surrender  of  many  expired  claims  and  privileges,  and  a 
general  time  of  disturbance  and  unsettling  of  usages,  habits, 
etc.,  its  full  import,  when  rightly  appreciated,  is  ''good 
tidings  of  great  joy  which  shall  be  unto  all  people. ' ' 

In  the  early  commotion,  each  one  who  hears  the  Jubilee 
Trumpet  of  the  new  dispensation  is  forcibly  struck  by  some 
one  of  its  many  features  and  heeds  no  other.  One  sees  the 
propriety  of,  and  calls  for,  governmental  reforms,  the  aboli* 


198  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

tion  of  standing  armies  and  their  burdensome  tax.  An- 
other calls  for  the  abolition  of  titled  aristocracy  and  the 
recognition  of  every  man  by  his  manly  qualities.  Others  call 
for  the  abolition  of  landlordism,  and  demand  that  landhold- 
ing  shall  be  as  at  first,  according  to  necessity,  and  ability 
and  willingness  to  use.  Others  call  for  temperance  reform, 
and  by  prohibitory  and  other  laws,  by  Law  and  Order  So- 
cieties, seek  to  chain  this  great  evil,  and  begin  to  restrain 
men  who  for  the  love  of  money  would  ensnare,  enslave 
and  destroy  fellow  men,  and  who,  fastening  their  fangs  in- 
to their  weaknesses,  would  fatten  and  luxuriate  upon  their 
blood.  Others  form  Humane  and  Anti-Cruelty  Societies, 
to  prevent  those  who  have  the  ability  from  injuring  the 
weak  and  dependent.  Others  form  societies  for  the  sup- 
pression of  vice  and  of  demoralizing  literature.  Others  form 
Anti-Adulteration  Societies  to  examine  into  adulterations 
of  food,  and  to  expose  and  prosecute  and  punish  those 
who  for  love  of  greater  gain  adulterate  food  and  make  it 
even  injurious  to  health.  Laws  are  ena(?l:ed  for  the  protec- 
tion of  the  lives  and  the  health  of  the  people.  Miners  must 
have  pure  air,  no  matter  what  the  cost ;  they  must  have  two 
ways  of  escape  in  case  of  fire.  Working  people,  powerless 
to  help  themselves  or  to  choose  their  places  of  work,  are 
cared  for  by  the  public  laws.  They  can  no  longer  be  paid 
when  the  employer  may  please,  and  in  store-orders,  but  the 
law  now  demands  that  pay-day  shall  be  at  least  every  two 
weeks  and  in  cash.  They  can  no  longer  be  crowded  into 
buildings  where  in  case  of  fire  they  would  be  liable  either 
to  burn  to  death  or  to  maim  themselves  for  life  by  jumping; 
for  '* fire-escapes"  are  compulsory,  and  for  any  death  or 
injury  traceable  to  carelessness  on  the  part  of  the  employer, 
he  is  held  responsible,  and  is  punishable,  either  by  fines, 
damages  or  imprisonment.  Wealthy  corporations,  such  as 
own  railroad  and  steam-ship  lines,  are  compelled  to  care  for 


EartJCs  Great  Jubilee.  199 

the  lives  and  interests  of  the  people,  the  poor  as  well  as  the 
rich.  These  reforms  are  the  results  of  the  awakening  of 
the  people  by  the  Jubilee  Trump  of  knowledge  and  liberty, 
and  are  not  traceable  to  pure  benevolence  on  the  part  of 
the  more  favored  class.  For  though  all  in  the  favored  or 
wealthy  class  who  are  benevolent,  and  such  as  love  right- 
eousness, can  and  do  rejoice  in  these  beginnings  of  reform, 
others,  and  the  majority,  regretfully  yield  from  necessity. 
True,  such  laws  and  arrangements  are  not  yet  perfe6led, 
nor  are  they  universal ;  b'  .t  the  beginnings  noticed  rejoice 
our  hearts,  and  give  evidence  of  what  may  be  expedled  in 
the  exalting  of  the  humble  and  lowly,  and  the  abasing 
of  the  proud,  when  the  Jubilee  regulations  are  fully  in  op- 
eration. All  these  things  are  parts  of  the  reform  commo- 
tion ushering  in  Earth's  Great  Jubilee ;  and  though  much 
has  been  demanded,  and  much  has  been  gradually  conceded, 
yet  kings,  and  emperors,  and  queens — political,  social,  ec- 
clesiastical and  financial — will  not  submit  to  the  great  level- 
ing process  of  this  Jubilee  or  Restitution  age  without  a  great 
and  severe  struggle,  such  as  the  Scriptures  point  out  as  just 
before  us,  and  which,  though  severe,  is  unavoidable,  and  will 
work  out  ultimate  good. 

The  spirit  of  ''  liberty  throughout  all  the  land  "  is  indeed 
sometimes  carried  to  an  unreasonable  extent  by  the  ignorant 
and  the  hot-headed ;  and  yet  it  is  all  part  of  the  great  un- 
avoidable Jubilee  excitement,  occasioned  by  the  ignorance 
and  oppression  of  the  past.  None  but  the  Lord's  ''  little 
flock  "  is  fully  and  correctly  informed  as  to  the  grand  scope 
of  the  Restitution.  These  see  the  minor  changes,  the 
straightening  out  of  the  lesser  affairs  of  men,  but  they  see 
also  what  can  be  seen  from  no  other  standpoint  than  God's 
Word — that  the  great  enslaver.  Sin,  is  to  be  shorn  of  his 
power,  that  the  great  prison-house  ot  Death  is  to  be  opened 
and  a  release  presented  to  each  prisoner,  signed  in  the 


20O  The  Time  is  at  Hand!. 

precious  blood  of  the  Lamb  of  God  which  taketh  away  the 
sin  of  the  world,  the  great  Redeemer  and  Restorer.  Glad 
tidings  indeed  it  shall  be  to  all  people,  not  only  to  the 
living,  but  also  to  all  that  are  in  their  graves.  Before  the 
end  of  this  great  Jubilee  every  human  being  may  go  entirely 
free — may  get  back  to  man's  first  estate,  *'very  good,"  re- 
ceiving back  through  Christ  all  that  was  lost  in  Adam. 


THE  SEVENTH  TRUMPET. 


**  Blow  ye  the  Trumpet,  blow 
The  gladly  solemn  sound; 
Let  all  the  nations  know, 

To  earth's  remotest  bound, 
The  Jubilee  of  Earth  is  come, 
Returning  ransomed  sinners  home. 

"Jesus,  our  great  High-Priest, 
Hath  full  atonement  made. 
Ye  weary  spirits,  rest ; 

Ye  mournful  souls,  be  glad. 
The  Jubilee  of  Earth  is  come, 
Returning  ransomed  sinners  home. 

"  Ye  who  were  sold  for  naught, 

Whose  heritage  was  lost, 

May  have  all  back  unbought, 

A  gift  at  Jesus'  cost. 
The  Jubilee  of  Earth  is  come, 
Returning  ransomed  sinnei-s  home. 

"  The  Seventh  Trumpet  hear, 
The  news  of  heavenly  grace ; 
Salvation  now  is  near ; 

Seek  ye  the  Savior's  face. 
The  Jubilee  of  Earth  is  come. 
Returning  ransomed  sinners  home." 


CHAPTER  VII. 

THE  PARALLEL  DISPENSATIONS. 

The  Jewish  Age  a  Type  of  the  Gospel  Age.— Remarkable  Parallelism  or 
Correspondency  Between  the  Two  Dispensations. — Yet  They  are  Dis- 
tinct.— Superiority  of  the  Christian  Epoch,  the  Antitype.— Fleshly 
and  Spiritual  Israel  Contrasted. — Prominent  Parallels  Examined. — 
Time  Parallels  Specially  Noticed.— Period  of  Fleshly  Israel's  Favor.— 
Time  of  Their  Cutting  Off  from  Favor. — The  Period  of  Disfavor  Shown 
from  Prophecy  to  be  Equal  to  the  Period  of  Favor.— Apostolic  Testi- 
mony that  Their  Period  of  Disfavor  is  the  Period  for  the  High  Call- 
ing OF  Spiritual  Israel. — The  Length  of  the. Gospel  Age  thus  Shown  In- 
directly BUT  Clearly. — Harmony  of  the  Bible  Chronology,  Jubilee  Tes- 
timony, Gentile  Times,  and  Other  Prophecies  with  the  Lessons  of  Thesb 
Parallels  Unanswerable,  Conclusive  and  Satisfying. 

TN  previous  chapters  the  fa6t  has  been  referred  to,  that 
•*•  God's  dealings  with  the  nation  of  Israel  were  of  a  typ- 
ical chara6ler ;  yet  few  have  any  adequate  conception  of 
how  fully  this  was  the  case.  It  has  doubtless  been  observed 
by  many  that  the  apostles,  particularly  Paul,  in  instru6ling 
the  Christian  Church,  frequently  refer  to  some  striking 
features  of  type  and  antitype  in  the  Jewish  and  Christian 
dispensations.  But  a  closer  attention  to  the  Apostle's 
teachings  will  show  that  he  does  not  only  make  use  of  a  few 
illustrations  drawn  from  the  Jewish  economy,  but  that  in  his 
close  reasonings  he  calls  up  the  whole  Jewish  system  as 
divinely  instituted  (ignoring  entirely  the  ''traditions  of 
the  elders,"  which  were  no  part  of  that  system),  and  shows 
that  in  all  its  features  it  was  typical  of  the  then  dawning 
Christian  dispensation,  mapping  out  most  clearly  the  course 
of  the  Christian  Church  in  the  Gospel  age,  as  well  as  point- 
ing out  its  glorious  work  in  the  Millennial  age. 


202  The   Time  is  at  IIa?id. 

Many  presume  that  tlie  Jewish  and  Christian  ages  are 
really  one,  and  that  God  has  been  sele6ling  the  Christian 
Church  from  the  very  beginning  of  human  existence.  This 
is  a  serious  mistake,  which  beclouds  and  hinders  the  corre6l 
and  clear  apprehension  o^  many  truths.  Jesus  was  the 
head  and  forerunner  of  the  Christian  Church,  which  is  his 
body  (Eph.  5  :  23;  Col.  i :  24);  consequently  none  preceded 
him  as  members  of  the  Church.  Had  any  preceded  him, 
he  could  not  properly  be  styled  t\\Q  forerunner.  The  ''high 
calling"  to  become  joint-sacrificers,  and  finally  joint-heirs 
with  him,  was  not  made  known  in  other  ages.  (Eph.  3:2, 
5,  6.)  Good  men  who  lived  and  died  prior  to  the  adual 
payment  of  our  ransom  by  the  precious  blood  knew  noth- 
ing of  this  ''high  calling."  And  since  the  gifts  and  callings 
of  God  are  unmerited  favors,  no  injustice  is  done  to  those 
of  other  ages,  in  not  offering  them  the  same  favor.  The 
call  and  favor  to  tliose  of  past  ages,  as  they  will  also  be  to 
those  of  the  coming  age,  were  to  earthly  honors,  and  earthly 
glory,  and  everlasting  life  as  earthly  (human)  beings;  while 
the  call  and  favor  of  the  Gospel  age  are  to  heavenly  honors 
and  glory,  to  a  change  of  iiature  from  human  to  divine, 
and  to  power,  honor  and  dominion  in  heaven  and  in  earth, 
as  joint-heirs  and  co-workers  with  Christ.  And  since  the 
Church  thus  called  out,  separated  from  the  world,  and  de- 
veloped during  this  age,  is  in  the  age  to  come  to  be  the 
agent  of  Jehovah  in  the  full  execution  of  his  great  plan  of 
the  ages — a  plan  which  compasses  the  interests  not  only 
of  humanity,  but  of  all  creatures  in  heaven  and  in  earth—- 
wonderful  have  been  the  preparations  made  in  the  ages  past 
for  their  training  and  instru6lion.  And  no  less  wonderful 
has  been  the  care  with  which  these,  called  to  be  heirs  of 
divine  glory,  have  during  this  age  been  trained,  disciplined, 
guided  and  prote6led  through  the  long,  difficult,  narrow 
way,  first  opened  up  by  their  Lord  and  Forerunner,   in 


Parallel  Dispensations,  203 

whose  footprints  they  are  directed  to  tread — as  he  set  the 
example. — i  Pet.  2  :  21. 

Our  Lord  spent  the  three  and  a  half  years  of  his  minis- 
try in  gathering  out  from  Israel,  and  in  training  and  in- 
structing, the  few  disciples  who  should  form  the  nucleus  of 
the  Christian  Church.  When  about  to  leave  them  alone 
in  the  world  he  gave  them  the  promise  of  the  holy  Spirit, 
which,  during  the  entire  age,  should  guide  the  Church  into 
all  truth,  and  show  them  things  to  come,  and  bring  freshly 
to  remembrance  what  he  had  taught — which  promise  began 
to  be  verified  at  Pentecost.  It  is  also  written  that  the  an- 
gels are  all  ministering  spirits  sent  forth  to  minister  to 
these  heirs  of  this  great  salvation  (Heb.  i  :  14),  and  that  our 
Lord's  special  care  is  over  them,  even  to  the  end  of  the 
age.  (Matt.  28  :  20.)  All  the  writings  of  the  apostles  are 
addressed  to  the  Church,  and  not  to  the  world,  as  many 
seem  to  think ;  and  they  are  full  of  special  instructions, 
encouragements  and  exhortations,  needful  only  to  the 
saints  who  during  this  age  are  walking  in  the  narrow 
way.  And  our  Lord's  revelation,  which  God  gave  him 
after  he  had  passed  into  glory,  he  sent  and  signified  \sign- 
ified — told  in  signs,  symbols,  etc.]  to  his  Church,  through 
his  servant  John.  (Rev.  1:1.)  We  are  also  told  that  the 
prophecies  given  aforetime  by  holy  men  of  old  were  given, 
not  for  themselves,  nor  for  others  of  their  day  and  age,  but 
exclusively  for  the  instruction  of  the  Christian  Church. — 
I  Pet.  1:12. 

In  this  chapter  we  purpose  to  show  that  the  whole  Jewish 
nation,  during  that  entire  age,  was  unwittingly  engaged,  un- 
der God's  direction,  in  furnishing  for  our  instruction  a  typ- 
ical view  of  the  entire  plan  of  salvation  in  all  its  workings, 
even  as  we  have  just  seen  its  Jubilees  pointing  out  the  final 
consummation  of  the  plan  in  the  blessing  of  all  the  families  of 
the  earth.    It  is  by  our  drawing  upon  this  storehouse  of  truth, 


ao4  The  Time  is  at  Itand. 

so  abundantly  and  specially  provided  for  the  Church,  that 
the  Spirit  of  God  feeds  us  and  leads  us  gradually  into  a 
more  and  more  nearly  complete  understanding  of  his  plan,  as 
rapidly  as  that  knowledge  becomes  needful  to  us.  And  from 
this  great  storehouse  God  is  now  supplying  much  of  the 
special  light  and  food  needful  to  us  in  this  "harvest "  time 
at  the  consummation  of  the  age.  Since  such  has  been  God's 
care  and  abundant  provision  for  the  Christian  Church  above 
all  other  people  of  past  and  future  ages,  how  important  in 
his  estimation  must  that  knowledge  be  to  us,  and  how 
eagerly  should  we  avail  ourselves  of  it. 

While  we  will  not  in  this  chapter  or  volume  enter  into  a 
detailed  examination  of  the  typical  features  of  God's  deal- 
ings with  Israel,  as  set  forth  in  the  Tabernacle,  and  Temple, 
and  ordinances  and  sacrifices,  etc.,  we  do  now  invite  close 
attention  to  some  of  the  marked  and  prominent  outlines  of 
correspondency  between  the  Jewish  and  Christian  dispensa- 
tions as  type  and  antitype ;  for  all  that  the  Christian  Church 
a6lually  experiences  and  accomplishes,  the  Jewish  Church 
prefigured.  And  many  of  these  features  of  correspondency 
are  parallel  not  only  in  chara6ter,  but  also  in  their  rela- 
tive time  of  occurrence.  Even  in  their  national  history, 
and  in  the  history  of  many  particular  individuals  of 
that  nation,  we  find  correspondencies  marked  by  the 
Scriptures.  Some  of  these.  Christian  thinkers  have  long 
noticed,  and  others  have  been  entirely  overlooked.  Here 
a  beautiful  and  fruitful  field  of  thought  and  study  opens 
before  us. 

Paul  designates  the  Jewish  Church  "Israel  after  the  flesh,'* 
and  the  Christian  Church  ''The  Israel  of  God."  (i  Cor. 
lo:  i8;  Gal.  6:  i6.)  We  may  thefore  properly  designate 
them  Fleshly  Israel  and  Spiritual  Israel.  The  higher  plane 
of  the  spiritual  house  is  also  pointed  out  by  the  Apostle 
when  he  describes  Fleshly  Israel  as  a  house  [family]  of 


Parallel  Dispensations,  205 

servants,  and  Spiritual  Israel  as  a  house  of  sons.  (Heb. 
3:5,  6  ;  Rom.  8 :  14.)  The  fleshly  house  was  the  honored 
servants  of  the  spiritual  house  in  various  ways,  but  chiefly  in 
that  they  unconsciously,  under  God's  arrangement,  furnished 
pantomime  illustrations  of  spiritual  things,  which,  if  studied 
and  heeded,  greatly  bless  and  enlighten  the  house  of  sons. 

In  both  cases  there  have  been  a  Nominal  Israel  and  a  Real 
Israel,  in  God's  estimation,  though  to  men  they  have  ap- 
peared as  one ;  the  nominal  and  the  real  not  being  clearly 
distinguishable  until  the  end  or  harvest  time  of  their  re- 
spe6live  ages,  when  the  truth  then  due  and  brought  to  light 
accomplishes  the  separation,  and  makes  manifest  which  are 
of  the  real  and  which  of  the  merely  nominal  Israel.  Of 
the  fleshly  house  Paul  said,  **They  are  not  all  Israel  which 
are  [nominally]  of  Israel"  (Rom.  9:6);  and  our  Lord 
recognized  the  same  fa6l  when  of  Nathaniel  he  said,  "Be- 
hold an  Israelite  indeed^  in  whom  is  no  guile,"  and  also 
when  in  the  time  of  harvest  he  separated  the  real  from  the 
nominal,  and  called  the  former  valuable  wheat,  and  the 
latter  mere  chaff — though,  comparatively,  the  wheat  was 
only  a  handful,  and  the  chaff  included  nearly  all  of  that 
nation.  In  a  similar  proportion,  and  under  a  similar  figure, 
the  nominal  and  the  real  members  of  Spiritual  Israel  of  the 
Gospel  age  are  pointed  out ;  and  their  separation,  too,  is 
in  the  time  of  harvest — in  the  end  of  the  Gospel  age.  Then 
only  the  wheat — a  comparatively  small  number,  a  "  little 
flock" — will  be  separated  from  the  masses  of  nominal 
Spiritual  Israel,  while  the  great  majority,  being  tares  and 
not  real  wheat,  will  be  reje6led  as  unworthy  of  the  chief 
favor  to  which  they  were  called,  and  will  not  be  counted 
among  the  Lord's  jewels. — Rom.  9:27;  11:5;  Luke 
12:32;  Matt.  3:12;  13:24-40. 

The  head  of  the  fleshly  house  was  Jacob,  sumamed  Is- 
rael (a  prince) ;  and  through  his  twelve  eons  he  founded 


2o6  The  Time  is  at  Hand, 

the  house  which  bore  his  name,  the  House  of  Jacob,  the 
House  of  Israel.  So  with  the  Spiritual  House :  its  founder, 
Christ,  established  it  through  the  twelve  apostles ;  and  this 
house  also  bears  the  name  of  its  founder — The  Church  of 
Christ.  In  point  of  time,  God  called  Fleshly  Israel  first ; 
but  in  point  of  favor,  and  in  time  of  realization,  Spiritual 
Israel  comes  first.  Thus  the  first  becomes  last,  and  the 
last  first.  (Luke  13:30.)  The  Scriptures  clearly  mark 
these  two  houses  of  Israel  as  being  the  fleshly  seed  of 
Abraham  and  the  spiritual  seed  of  Jehovah — the  Heavenly 
Father  whom  Abraham  typified. 

Some  are  blinded  to  important  truths  by  the  supposition 
that  the  expression,  ''both  the  houses  of  Israel,"  refers  to 
the  two  divisions  of  Fleshly  Israel,  after  the  split  in  the 
days  of  Solomon's  son,  Rehoboam.  Such  need  only  be 
reminded  that  after  the  captivity  in  Babylon,  upon  their 
restoration  to  Palestine,  all  Israelites  of  all  the  tribes  then 
captives  in  all  the  universal  domain  of  Medo-Persia,  includ- 
ing the  land  of  Syria  or  Babylonia,  were  given  liberty  to 
return  to  their  own  land  if  they  chose.  (Ezra  i  :  1-4.) 
Many  of  the  faithful  Israelites  of  all  the  tribes,  who  had 
respe6l  to  the  promises  of  God  associated  with  the  holy  land 
and  the  holy  city,  returned  to  the  various  cities  of  Pales- 
tine. The  tribe  of  Judah,  the  principal  tribe,  in  which 
was  vested  the  kingly  office,  and  in  whose  territory  Jerusa- 
lem, the  chief  city,  was  located,  naturally  took  a  leading 
part  in  its  rebuilding ;  but  after  that  return  from  Babylon, 
Israel  was  no  more  a  divided  nation,  but  dwelt  together  as 
at  first,  as  one  people,  and  were  known  by  the  one  original 
name,  Israel. — See  Neh.ii  :  i,  20  ;  Ezra  2  :  70. 

This  is  further  emphasized  in  the  New  Testament.  The 
Lord  and  the  apostles  speak  of  Fleshly  Israel  as  one.  Paul 
says  that  /j-r<z^/ sought,  but  that  only  a  ''remnant"  was  found 
worthy.  (Rom.  10:1-3;  9:27;  11:5-12,  20-25;  A(5ls  26:7.) 


Parallel  Dispensations.  207 

Our  Lord  said  that  he  was  ''sent  to  [all]  the  lost  sheep  of  the 
[one]  house  of  Israel ;"  yet  when  he  would  not  permit  his  dis- 
ciples to  go  outside  of  Palestine  to  seek  them  (Matt.  10:5,6; 
15  :  24),  it  is  evident  that  those  living  in  Palestine  repre- 
sented all  Israel.  Peter,  too,  speaks  of  fleshly  Israel  as  one 
house ;  and  addressing  the  people  at  Jerusalem  he  said, 
*  *  Let  all  the  house  of  Israel  know, ' '  etc.  James  also  speaks 
of  the  twelve  tribes  as  one  people.  (Acts  2:36;  Jas.  1:1.) 
Many  of  all  the  tribes  dwelt  in  Palestine,  and  many  of  all 
the  tribes  dwelt  in  surrounding  nations.  Thus  Paul  met 
and  preached  to  Israelites  in  nearly  every  city  which  he 
visited  in  Asia  Minor  and  Italy,  but  they  were  always 
recognized  as  one  nation,  spiritual  Israel  being  the  only 
other  Israel. 

God  has  made  special  covenants  or  promises  to  both  these 
houses  of  Israel.  The  promises  to  the  fleshly  house  were  all 
earthly,  while  those  to  the  spiritual  house  are  all  heavenly. 
Though  the  promises  to  the  fleshly  house  were  (and  still 
are)  grand  and  precious,  the  promises  to  the  spiritual  house 
are  chara6lerized  as  "better  promises,"  and  ^'■exceeding 
great  and  precious  promises."  (Heb.  "^-.d',  2  Pet.  1:4.) 
To  the  fleshly  house  it  was  said,  "  If  ye  will  obey  my  voice 
indeed,  and  keep  my  covenant,  then  ye  shall  be  a  peculiar 
treasure  unto  me  above  all  people  ;  for  all  the  earth  is  mine. 
And  ye  shall  be  unto  me  a  kingdom  of  priests,  and  a  holy 
nation."  And  though  all  Israel  answered  and  said,  ''All 
that  the  Lord  hath  spoken  we  will  do"  (Exod.  19:5-8), 
and  then  failed  to  keep  their  covenant,  yet  the  faithful 
among  them,  who  earnestly  endeavored  in  their  weakness  to 
keep  it,  will  in  the  Millennial  age  be  "princes  in  all  the 
earth''  members  of  the  earthly  phase  of  the  Kingdom  of 
God. — See  Vol.  I.,  chapter  xiv. 

To  the  spiritual  house,  on  the  contrary,  it  is  said,  "Ye 
are  built  up  a  spiritual  house ^  a  holy  priesthood,  to  offer  up 


2o8  The   Time  is  at  Hand, 

sacrifices*  acceptable  to  God  by  Jesus  Christ.  ...  Ye  are 
a  chosen  generation,  a  royal  priesthood,  a  holy  nation,  a 
peculiar  people,  that  ye  should  show  forth  the  praises  of 
him  who  hath  called  you  out  of  darkness  into  his  marvel- 
ous light ;  which  in  time  past  were  not  a  people,  but  are 
flow  THE  People  of  God." — i  Pet.  2  :  5,  9,  lo. 

Fleshly  Israel  had  by  God's  appointment  a  Tabernacle 
made  with  hands,  which  was  typical  both  in  itself  and  in 
all  its  services.  (Heb.  9:1,  2,  9,  10.)  But  Spiritual  Israel 
has  ''the  true  [the  antitypical]  Tabernacle,  which  the  Lord 
pitched  and  not  man."  (Heb.  8:2.)  For  the  services  of 
the  typical  Tabernacle  a  typical  priesthood  was  ordained, 
of  which  Aaron  was  the  head,  which  offered  typical  sacri- 
fices for  the  sins  of  the  typical  people,  and«accomplished 
a  typical  cleansing  or  justification  each  year.  The  anti- 
typical  Tabernacle  has  its  priesthood,  which  offers  up  better 
sacrifices  (Heb.  9  :  23),  which  a6lually  and  forever  cancel 
the  sins  of  the  whole  world.  And  of  this  priesthood  our 
Lord  Jesus  is  the  head  priest — the  High  Priest  of  our  pro- 
fession [or  order] — the  Church  which  is  his  body  being  the 
under-priests.  The  entire  nominal  church  is  not  this  priest- 
hood— but  the  true  Church,  the  faithful  in  Christ  Jesus,  who 
follow  the  footsteps  of  our  great  High  Priest  in  sacrifice. 

Another  marked  feature  of  this  correspondency  as  type 
and  antitype,  noted  in  the  Scriptures,  is  that  both  the 
houses  of  Israel  (fleshly  and  spiritual)  were  carried  away 
captives  into  Babylon.  This  will  be  more  clearly  seen 
when  in  a  succeeding  chapter  we  come  to  view  ''  Babylon  the 
Great,  the  Mother  of  Harlots. ' '  (Rev.  17:5,6.)  We  merely 
notice  here  the  correspond-ence.     Fleshly  Israel  was  taken 

*  The  word  spiritual  before  sacrifices  in  this  text  (verse  5)  is  omitted 
in  the  oldest  Greek  manuscript — the  Sinaitic.  The  corre<fitness  of  this 
omission  is  evident  when  we  refledl  that  not  spiritual  things  are  sacri- 
ficed, but  earthly  or  human  privileges,  rights,  etc. 


Parallel  Dispensations.  209 

captive  into  literal  Babylon,  which  was  built  upon  the  literal 
river  Euphrates,  while  in  the  Gospel  age  mystic  or  figura- 
tive Babylon,  which  carried  away  captive  Spiritual  Israel,  is 
portrayed  as  sitting  upon  the  mystic  Euphrates.  In  the 
type,  the  golden  vessels  of  the  Temple  were  carried  away 
and  profaned  by  literal  Babylon :  in  the  antitype,  the  pre- 
cious, divine  (golden)  truths,  pertaining  to  the  service  of  the 
true  Temple,  the  Church  ( i  Cor.  3:16,17;  Rev.  3:12),  were 
far  removed  from  their  proper  places,  perverted  and  misap- 
plied by  mystic  Babylon.  Literal  Babylon  being  built  upon 
the  river  Euphrates,  which  materially  contributed  to  its 
wealth  and  resources,  its  overthrow  was  accomplished  by 
the  turning  aside  of  those  waters.  So  mystic  Babylon  sits 
upon,  is  supported  by,  many  waters  (peoples,  nations),  and 
its  fall  is  predi6ted,  through  the  turning  aside  of  its  sup* 
porters  and  sustainers,  the  people. — Rev.  16:  12. 

TIME  PARALLELS 

MEASURING 

SHADOW  AND  SUBSTANCE — TYPE  AND    ANTITYPE. 

We  now  come  to  the  consideration  of  that  most  wonder- 
ful feature  of  this  typical  correspondency,  viz.,  the  time 
element,  which  in  every  instance  sustains  and  corroborates 
the  dates  indicated  by  the  Jubilees,  the  Chronology,  and 
the  foretold  close  of  Gentile  Times.  And  it  is  for  this  pur- 
pose particularly  that  this  subjedl  is  here  introduced — that 
the  force  of  this  wonderful  parallelism  may  increase  and 
confirm  the  faith  of  God's  children  in  the  time  element  of 
his  plan,  as  it  was  evidently  intended  to  do. — Heb.  9:9, 
23;  10:  1. 

Of  all  the  prophecies  and  time-proofs  there  is  none  more 
striking  and  convincing  than  this  one.  The  lesson  it 
teaches  is  startling  because  of  its  very  simplicity,  and  car- 
ries convidlion  to  the  hearts  of  the  humble.  Not  only 
were  Fleshly  Israel  and  its  ceremonies  typical,  but  the  Jew- 


2IO  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

ish  age  was  typical  of  the  Gospel  age.  They  are  of  exa6lly 
the  same  length,  and  correspond  to  each  other  ;  so  that,  see- 
ing and  appreciating  the  Jewish  age,  its  length,  and  the 
peculiarities  of  its  harvest  or  close,  we  may  know  the  exa6l 
length  of  the  Gospel  age,  its  antitype,  and  may  under- 
stand what  to  look  for,  and  when,  in  the  harvest  of  the  Gos- 
pel age.  But  let  us  now  proceed  to  show  this ;  for  though 
we  might  take  it  for  granted  on  general  principles,  and  say 
that  as  the  various  features  of  the  Jewish  system  corre- 
spond to  those  of  the  Gospel  age,  so  too  the  time  should 
correspond,  yet  God  has  not  left  us  thus  to  infer  this,  but 
has  clearly  though  indire<5lly  told  us  so. 

Paul  tells  us  that  God  has  cast  off  the  fleshly  house  from 
favor,  during  the  time  of  the  sele6lion  of  the  spiritual 
house ;  and  that  when  the  spiritual  house  has  been  selecSled, 
then  God's  favor  will  return  to  the  fleshly  house.  He  says : 
''I  would  not,  brethren  [brethren  of  the  Church,  or  spiritual 
Israel],  that  ye  should  be  ignorant  of  this  mystery,  lest  ye 
should  be  wise  in  your  own  conceits,  that  blindness  in  part 
is  happened  to  Israel  [natural,  or  fleshly]  until  the  fulness 
of  the  Gentiles*  be  come  in.  As  it  is  written  :  There  shall 
come  out  of  Zion  the  [promised]  Deliverer  [the  Christ — 
our  Lord,  the  head,  and  the  remnants  or  faithful  few,  of 
both  the  nominal  houses  of  Israel,  which  shall  compose  his 
body,  the  Church]  and  shall  turn  away  ungodliness  from 

*  None  should  confound  this  "  Fulness  of  [or,  from  out  of]  the  Gen- 
tiles" with  the  "Times  of  the  Gentiles,"  mentioned  heretofore.  The 
"  Times  of  the  Gentiles,"  as  has  been  shown,  are  the  period  of  time  during 
which  the  Gentiles  are  permitted  to  rule  the  world;  while  the  "Ful- 
ness of  the  Gentiles"  refers  to  ihafull  number  to  be  sele6led  out  from 
among  the  Gentiles,  to  complete  the  Gospel  Church — who,  with  the 
'*  remnant "  seleded  from  among  the  Israelites  (which  would  include  the 
apostles),  shall  constitute  the  Church  of  Christ,  the  Holy  Nation,  the 
Royal  Priesthood,  the  Kingdom  of  God,  to  whom  the  kingdom  and 
dominion  of  earth  shall  be  committed. 


Parallel  Dispensations.  211 

Jacob.  And  so  all  Israel  shall  be  saved  (for  this  is  my 
covenant  unto  them)  when  I  shall  take  away  their  sins.  As 
concerning  the  gospel  [the  high  calling  of  this  age],  they 
are  enemies  [cast  off]  for  your  sakes  [that  you  may  have 
the  preference  and  inherit  the  choicest,  the  spiritual  parts 
of  the  promises]  ;  but  as  touching  the  eledlion  [by  which 
they  were  chosen  to  receive  special  earthly  favors  from 
God,  promised  to  their  father  Abraham  and  his  natural 
seed],  they  are  beloved  for  the  fathers'  sakes;  for  the  gifts 
and  calling  of  God  are  not  things  to  be  repented  of." 
What  God  has  promised  is  sure  of  fulfilment.  Knowing 
the  end  from  the  beginning,  Jehovah  never  made  a  cov- 
enant which  he  would  need  or  wish  to  break. 

In  this  prophecy  the  Apostle  gives  an  intimation  of  the 
length  of  the  Gospel  age,  by  showing  that  it  began  with 
the  casting  off  of  Fleshly  Israel,  and  that  it  will  end  with 
their  restoration  to  favor.  Placing  the  statements  of  Paul 
and  Peter  (Rom.  11  :  27  and  A6ls  3  :  19,  20)  together,  we 
learn  that  the  time  for  the  return  of  favor  to  Israel  will  be 
in  the  beginning  of  the  Times  of  Restitution,  at  the  second 
advent  of  our  Lord.  Paul  says  the  return  of  favor  to  that 
people  will  be  when  God  shall  take  away  their  sins,  which 
Peter  says  he  will  do  in  the  times  of  refreshing  or  restitu- 
tion which  shall  come  when  our  Lord  comes  the  second 
time,  when  the  heavens  no  longer  retain  him. 

The  date  of  our  Lord's  second  advent,  and  the  dawn  of 
the  Times  of  Restitution,  we  have  already  shown  to  be 
A.  D.  1874.  We  should  expe6l,  therefore,  to  see  some  marks 
of  God's  returning  favor  to  Fleshly  Israel  shortly  after  A.  D. 
1874,  as  one  of  the  first  features  of  restitution  work.  And, 
surely  enough,  we  do  see  favor  beginning  to  return  to  them. 
And  every  fresh  evidence  of  the  removal  of  Israel's  blind- 
ness, and  of  divine  favor  toward  them,  is,  when  measured 
by  the  Apostle's  words,  a  fresh  proof  that  the  Gospel  age  is 


212  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

closing  and  that  the  ''little  flock"  is  about  complete. 
But  we  have  further  proof  which  furnishes  us  with  the  exact 
date  when  favor  should  begin  to  return  to  Israel.  Thus  far 
we  have  merely  seen  that  the  measure  of  Fleshly  Israel's 
cast  off  condition  is  the  measure  of  the  time  of  special 
favor  to  others,  for  the  calling  of  other  people  (Gentiles) 
to  be  joint-heirs  with  Christ,  which  call  ends  in  the  be- 
ginning of  the  Times  of  Restitution ;  but  not  (other  proph- 
ecies show)  at  the  very  beginning  of  it. 

But  pause  a  moment — let  there  be  no  misunderstanding 
on  this  point :  When  the  call  to  the  high  privilege  of  be- 
coming members  of  the  Church,  the  bride  and  joint-heir 
of  Christ,  ceases,  it  by  no  means  signifies  that  all  of  those 
already  called  are  sure  to  be  counted  worthy,  and  therefore 
to  be  chosen  ;  for  ''  Many  are  called,  but  few  are  chosen,^ ^ 
because  only  a  few  of  the  called  ones  comply  with  the  con- 
ditions of  the  call.  Nor  does  it  imply  that  those  not  there- 
after called  to  that  ''high  calling"  will  be  offered  no  other 
favors.  The  fa61;  is,  that  when  this  "high  calling"  ceases, 
it  is  because  the  great  Designer  of  the  plan  of  the  ages  has 
almost  completed  that  part  of  his  plan  intended  to  be  ac- 
complished in  the  Gospel  age — viz.:  the  selection  of  the 
Gospel  Church,  the  bride  of  Christ.  All  men  were  not 
called  to  that  high  honor.  We  are  specially  informed  that 
God's  design  was  to  sele6l  for  this  purpose  only  a  limited 
number,  a  "little  flock,"  as  compared  with  the  mass  of 
mankind.  After  enough  have  been  called  and  the  time  for 
calling  ends  and  it  is  no  longer  proper  to  extend  this  call 
to  others,  it  will  still  be  possible  for  those  already  called, 
who  have  accepted  the  call,  to  make  their  calling  and  ele6lion 
sure,  by  faithfulness  to  their  covenant  of  entire  consecra- 
tion to  God,  even  unto  death  ;  and  it  will  still  be  possible  for 
these  to  fail  of  so  doing.  This  call,  which  must  end  when 
enough  have  been  invited  from  which  to  complete  the 


Parallel  Dispensations.  213 

favored  '^  little  flock,"  the  body  of  Christ,  is  far  from  being 
the  limit  of  God's  love  and  favor  and  calling.  Its  end  will 
merely  close  the  heavenly  or  '■ '  high  calling. ' '  For  where  this 
call  ends,  where  this  door  of  opportunity  and  favor  closes, 
another  door  begins  to  swing  open — the  door  of  opportu- 
nity to  enter  the  highway  of  holiness,  and  to  go  up  thereon 
— not  to  the  divine  nature,  to  which  the  Gospel  Church 
was  called,  but  to  everlasting  life  and  perfe6tion  as  human 
beings. — See  Vol.  I.,  chapters  x.  and  xi. 

But  now  for  the  exa<^  date  of  the  return  of  favor  to  Israel, 
which  marks  the  exa6l  end  of  the  heavenly  call — from 
which  date  Israel  will  begin  gradually  to  see,  and  to  have 
increasing  evidences  of  returning  divine  favor,  and  from 
which  date  also  God's  call  to  heavenly  honors  will  cease, 
and  only  these  already  called  will  be  privileged  to  win  that 
prize  by  faithfulness  to  the  close  of  life:  — 

Fleshly  Israel,  like  Spiritual  Israel,  was  called  of  God 
to  be  his  peculiar  people,  a  peculiar  treasure  unto  him 
above  all  other  people  (the  one  an  earthly  treasure,  and  a 
type  of  the  other,  which  is  a  heavenly  treasure).  Separa- 
ted from  the  world,  they  were  the  recipients  of  special 
favor  from  God  for  eighteen  hundred  and  forty-five  (1845) 
years.  This  period  began  with  the  beginning  of  their 
national  life,  at  the  death  of  Jacob,  the  last  of  the  patri- 
archs, when  they  were  first  recognized  as  a  nation,  and 
called  ''The  Twelve  Tribes  of  Israel,"  a  national  name. 
See  Gen.  49 :  28  ;  46 13  ;  Deut.  26 : 5.  These  eighteen  hun- 
dred and  forty-five  years  of  national  life  and  favor  ended 
with  their  rejecStion  of  Messiah — A.  D.  t^i — when,  five  days 
before  his  crucifixion,  he  presented  himself  to  them  as  their 
king,  and,  not  being  received,  declared,  "  Yoiir  house  is  left 
unto  you  desolate.''  (Matt.  23  :  38.)  This,  the  end  of  their 
favor,  was  the  point  of  their  fall,  which  continued  for  thirty- 
seven  (37)  years,  and  ended  A.  D.  70  in  the  total  destruc- 


214  "if^^   Time  is  at  Hand. 

tion  of  their  national  polity,  as  well  as  of  their  city,  temple, 
etc.  It  should  be  noted,  however,  that  God  continued  his 
favor  to  individuals  of  that  nation,  after  the  nation,  as  a 
nation,  had  been  cut  off;  for  the  gospel  call  was  confined 
to  individuals  of  that  nation  for  three  and  a  half  years  after 
Pentecost,  after  the  death  of  Christ — not  reaching  Corne- 
lius, the  first  Gentile  so  favored  (A(?ts  lo),  until  that  time. 
This  was  the  full  end  of  the  seventy  weeks  of  favor  prom- 
ised through  Daniel,  as  it  had  been  written,  '■'■  He  shall  con- 
firm the  covenant  with  many  for  one  week. '  *  That  seven- 
tieth week  of  years  began  at  our  Lord's  baptism  ;  his  cross, 
as  predidled,  marked  its  middle;  and  favor  was  confined 
to  Fleshly  Israel  until  its  close. 

During  their  long  period  (1845  years)  of  national  favor, 
during  which  other  nations  were  ignored,  Israel  had  chas- 
tisements and  blessings  combined.  But  even  their  chas- 
tisements for  sins  were  evidences  and  elements  of  God's 
favor  and  fatherly  care  over  them.  He  sent  trouble  upon 
them,  and  frequently  allowed  them  to  be  carried  away  into 
captivity,  when  they  forgot  and  disobeyed  him ;  yet  when 
they  repented  and  cried  unto  the  Lord  he  always  heard  and 
delivered  them.  The  entire  history  of  that  people,  as  re- 
corded in  Exodus,  Joshua,  Judges,  Chronicles  and  Samuel, 
attests  the  fadl  that  God  did  not  long  hide  his  face  from 
them,  and  that  his  ear  was  ever  open  unto  their  repentant 
cry — down  to  the  day  their  house  was  left  desolate.  Even 
on  that  day,  God  was  forgiving  them  more  than  ever,  and 
had  sent  them  the  long-promised  Messiah,  the  Deliverer, 
in  the  person  of  our  Lord,  his  Son.  The  unfitness  of  that 
nation  longer  to  be  his  special  treasure,  or  in  any  measure 
to  represent  God's  Kingdom  on  earth,  was  manifested  in 
their  reje6lion  of  the  holy,  harmless,  undefiled  one,  and 
their  desire  of  a  murderer  in  his  stead. 

Thus,  because  of  their  unfitness,  the  day  of  their  greatest 


Parallel  t)ispensattonL  il^ 

favor  '^ecame  the  day  of  their  reje6lion  and  fall  from  favor. 
And  he  great  favor  of  becoming  joint-inheritors  with 
Mes'  dh,  which  Israel,  except  the  faithful  '^remnant'''  (Isa. 
1:9  10  :  22,  23  ;  Rom.  9:28,  29  ;  11:  5),  thus  missed  by 
the:_  blindness  and  hardness  of  heart,  was  offered  to  be- 
lieving Gentiles :  not  to  Gentile  nations,  but  to  justified 
believers  of  every  nation — though  the  favor  was  at  first,  for 
three  and  a  half  years,  confined  exclusively  to  believers  of 
the  nation  of  Israel,  Blinded  as  a  people  by  national  prej- 
udices, the  great  prize  which  they  were  offered  first,  but  of 
which  they  were  unworthy,  goes  to  a  holy  nation,  a  peculiar 
people,  composed  of  a  worthy  "remnant"  of  their  nation, 
with  others  called  out  from  Gentile  nations,  whom  in  their 
arrogant  pride  they  once  despised  as  *'  dogs."  And  God's 
promised  favor  will  not  return  to  them  as  a  people,  to  re- 
move their  blindness,  and  to  lead  them  as  a  first-fruits  of  the 
nations  into  earthly  blessings,  until  the  full  number  of  the 
* 'peculiar  people  "  have  been  called  from  the  Gentiles — until 
the  fulness  of  the  Gentiles  be  come  into  this  higher  favor. 
Thus,  as  Paul  declared  (Rom.  11:7),  Fleshly  Israel  did 
not  obtain  that  for  which  they  sought,  viz.,  the  chief  favor. 
Supposing  the  chief  favor  to  be  the  earthly  blessings,  and 
in  their  pride  of  heart  claiming  that  chief  blessing  as  their 
natural  birth-right,  and  as  further  merited  by  their  works, 
they  blindly  stumbled  over  and  reje6led  it  as  d.  favor  through 
Christ.  As  David  had  foretold,  their  table — so  bountifully 
spread  with  the  rich  promises  and  blessings  offered  them 
through  C'nrist — became  'a  snare,  and  a  trap,  and  a  stum- 
bling olock,  and  a  recompense  unto  them,"  because  of 
their  hardness  of  heart.  (Rom.  11:9,  10;  Psa.  69:22-28.) 
Christ,  who  came  to  redeem  and  who  would  have  exalted 
them  to  a  position  of  glory  beyond  their  ability  to  desire 
or  imagine,  was  to  their  pride  ''  a  stone  of  stumbling  and  a 
rock  of  offence."— Rom.  9  :  32,  n  ;  Isa.  8:14. 


2i6  The   Time  is  at  Hand, 

Yet  the  blindness  of  Israel  was  only  a  "blindness  in 
part,"  and  not  a  total  loss  of  sight;  for  the  testimony  of 
the  Law,  the  prophets  and  the  apostles  was  open  to  all, 
whether  Jew  or  Gentile ;  and  during  the  Gospel  age  any 
Jew  who  would  resolutely  brush  away  the  films  of  prejudice 
and  pride,  and  humbly  and  thankfully  accept  the  favor  of 
God  with  his  Gentile  brother,  might  do  so.  Yet  few  have 
ever  been  able  to  do  so ;  and  no  favor  will  be  granted,  and 
no  special  effort  to  convince  them  as  a  nation  of  the  truth, 
or  to  overcome  their  prejudices,  will  be  exerted,  until  the 
fulness  of  the  Gentiles  has  come  in ;  or,  in  other  words, 
until  Spiritual  Israel  is  complete. 

Since  their  rejedlion  of  Messiah — since  their  house  was 
left  desolate — Israel  has  had  no  marks  of  God's  favor.  Even 
Jews  themselves  must  admit  that  their  tears  and  groans  and 
prayers  have  gone  unanswered ;  and,  as  foretold  by  their 
prophets,  they  have  been  "a  by- word  and  a  hissing"  unto 
all  nations.  Though  formerly  God  heard  their  prayers, 
and  marked  their  tears,  and  returned  them  to  their  own 
land,  and  continually  favored  them,  since  then  he  heeds 
them  not  and  shows  them  7io  favor.  Since  they  said,  ''  His 
blood  be  upon  us  and  upon  our  children,"  theirs  has  been 
one  continuous  chastisement :  they  have  been  scattered  and 
persecuted  among  all  nations,  as  foretold.  These  are  the 
fadts  as  all  may  read  them  on  the  pages  of  history.  Now 
let  us  turn  to  the  prophets  and  see  how  particularly  these 
facSls  were  foretold,  and  what  the  same  prophets  have  to 
say  concerning  their  future. 

Through  the  prophet  Jeremiah  (chapter  xvi.),  after  tilling 
Israel  how  they  had  forsaken  him,  the  Lord  says  :  "  There- 
fore will  I  cast  you  out  of  this  land  into  a  land  that  ye 
know  not,  neither  ye  nor  your  fathers ;  and  there  shall  ye 
serve  other  Gods  [rulers]  day  and  night,  where  I  will  not 
show  you  favor y  (Verses  9-13.)     These  days  came  when 


Parallel  Dispensations.  217 

they  reje(5ted  Messiah.  How  literally  this  threat  has  been 
fulfilled  all  may  judge,  and  they  themselves  must  admit. 
This  prophecy  cannot  refer  to  any  of  their  previous  cap- 
tivities to  surrounding  nations — Syria,  Babylon,  etc.  Such 
an  inference  is  guarded  against  in  the  expression,  ''Into  a 
land  which  ye  know  not,  neither  ye  nor  your  fathers. ' ' 
Abraham  came  from  Ur  of  the  Chaldees — Babylonia — and 
Jacob  from  Syria.  (Deut.  26:5.)  Israel's  dispersion  among 
all  nations  since  the  close  of  their  1845  years  of  favor,  and 
no  other  of  their  captivities,  fits  this  pointed  expression — 
a  land  which  ye  and  your  fathers  have  not  known.  So  then 
this,  together  with  the  no  favor,  positively  marks  this 
prophecy  as  relating  to  Israel's  present  dispersion  among 
all  nations. 

But  though  he  cast  them  off  from  all  favor  for  a  while, 
God  will  not  leave  them  cast  off  forever,  but  says — Jer.  16: 
13-15:  ''Behold,  the  days  come,  saith  the  Lord,  that  it 
shall  no  more  be  said,  The  Lord  liveth,  that  brought  up 
the  children  of  Israel  out  of  the  land  of  Egypt ;  but.  The 
Lord  liveth,  that  brought  up  the  children  of  Israel  from  the 
land  of  the  north  [Russia,  where  nearly  one  half  of  the 
Hebrew  race  resides],  and  from  all  the  lands  whither  he  had 
driven  them :  and  I  will  bring  them  again  into  their  land 
that  I  gave  unto  their  fathers.'* 

We  might  multiply  quotations  from  the  prophets  and 
apostles  concerning  the  final  return  of  God's  favor  to  Jacob, 
or  Israel  after  the  flesh,  after  the  sele6lion  of  the  full  num- 
ber for  "the  body  of  Christ"  from  the  Gentiles,  but  the 
r.tuJent  can  do  so  by  the  use  of  a  Concordance  or  a 
Reference  Bible.  Among  the  very  pointed  references  to 
this  favor  to  be  restored  to  Israel,  in  the  New  Testament,  is 
that  by  James,  Ads  15  :  14-16,  and  by  Paul,  Rom.  11  :  26. 
But  first,  they  must  drink  the  very  last  dregs  of  their  chas- 
tisement ;  and  thus  it  is  expressed  in  this  remarkable  proph- 


21^  The  7ime  is  at  Hand. 

ecy  (verse  i8) ;  ''And  first  [before  the  favor  will  come]  I 
will  recompense  their  iniquity  and  their  sin  double.'"  The 
Hebrew  word  here  rendered  "double"  is  mishnehy  and 
signifies  a  second  portion,  a  repetition.  Thus  understood, 
the  Prophet's  declaration  is,  that  from  the  time  of  their  be- 
ing cast  off  from  all  favor  until  the  time  of  their  return  to 
favor  would  be  a  repetition,  or  dtipltcatwn  iii^tpiie,  of  their 
previous  history,  during  which  time  they  had  enjoyed 
divine  favor. 

As  shown  in  the  accompanying  diagram,  the  period  of 
their  favor,  from  the  commencement  of  their  national  ex- 
istence at  the  death  of  Jacob,  down  to  the  end  of  that 
favor  at  the  death  of  Christ,  A.  D.  ^yZ^  "^^^  eighteen  hun- 
dred and  forty-five  (1845)  y^3.rs ;  and  there  their  ''  double  " 
(jnishneli) — the  repetition  or  duplication  of  the  same  length 
of  time,  eighteen  hundred  and  forty-five  (1845)  years,  witJi- 
oui  favor — began.  Eighteen  hundred  and  forty-five  years 
since  A,  D.  2)Z  shows  A.  D.  1878  to  be  the  end  of  their  period 
of  disfavor.     A.  D.  ^t'h  P^^^  1845:=  A.  D.  1878. 

All  these  prophetic  points  in  the  past  are  clearly  marked, 
and  we  should  expe6t  some  evidence  of  God's  returning 
favor  to  Fleshly  Israel  ("  Jacob  ")  in  or  about  A.  D.  1878. 
This  we  do  find,  in  the  fa6t  that  the  Jew  is  now  permitted 
privileges  in  Palestine  denied  him  for  centuries  past.  And 
it  was  in  that  very  year — 1878  A.  D.,  when  their  '■^double^^ 
was  full,  and  God's  favor  Avas  due  to  return  to  that  people — 
that  the  ''  Berlin  Congress  of  Nations  "  was  held,  in  which 
Lord  Beaconsfield  (a  Jew),  then  Prime  Minister  of  En- 
gland, was  the  central  figure  and  took  the  leading  part. 
There  England  assumed  a  general  protectorate  over  the 
Asiatic  provinces  of  Turkey,  among  which  is  Palestine  ; 
and  the  Turkish  governm.ent  amended  its  laws  relating  to 
aliens,  which  greatly  ameliorated  the  condition  of  the  Jews 
then  residing  in  Palestine,  as  well  as  partially  opened  the 


"  BOTH  THE  HOUSES  OP  ISRAEL.'* 


-TIME    PARALLELS. 


:^ 


►-1  ^ 


« 

a 

H 

hJ 

[i, 

w 

O 

<; 

w 

(^ 

b< 

o 

o 

< 

8 

•< 

W 

< 

P^. 

Q 

•"■ 

hJ 

di 
^ 

W 
K 
H 

< 

Ul 

OJ 

o 

o 

< 
s 

H 

u 

<J 

H 

•< 

< 

« 

^ 

*"> 

fe 

Ph 

w 

H 

o 

c 

►J 

o 

K 

fi 

u 

w 

Pm 

THE  KING 

+- 

^- 

CAME  IN. 

ISRi 

VEL 

Fa 

LLS. 

Days 

OF 

Vb 

LU 

NGEAN 

CH. 
22. 

KB  21  : 

A  Time  of 

Trouble 

AND 

FINAL 

Ov 

ERTHROW.         1 

B.C. 

1813. 


A.D. 

29. 

A.D. 

33- 

A.D. 

36. 


A.D. 
33- 


A.D. 

1874. 


A.D. 

187B. 


A.D. 
1881. 


A.D. 

70. 


A.D. 

1915. 


THE  KING 
C.\ME  IN. 


Babylon  Falls. 


DAN.  12  :  I. 

"A  Time  of 

Trouble  such 

as  was  not 

since  there  was 

A  NATION." 


Parallel  Dispensations.  221 

door  for  others  to  locate  there,  with  the  privilege  of  hold- 
ing real  estate.  Previously,  the  Jew  was  but  ''a  dog,"  to 
be  cuffed,  kicked  and  abused  by  his  Mohammedan  ruler, 
and  was  denied  the  most  ordinary  privileges  of  existence, 
in  the  land  sacred  to  him  with  memories  of  the  past,  and 
with  promises  touching  the  future. 

At  the  same  time  that  the  door  to  Palestine  thus  opened 
before  them,  a  fierce  persecution  arose  in  Roumania  and 
Germany,  and  specially  in  Russia,  where  it  still  continues 
— increasingly.  By  one  regulation  after  another  they  have 
been  despoiled  of  rights  and  privileges  by  these  governments, 
as  well  as  mobbed  by  their  neighbors,  until  they  are 
being  compelled  to  leave  in  large  numbers.  But  this  per- 
secution is  doubtless  a  favor  also,  as  it  will  tend,  and  has 
already  tended,  to  cause  them  to  look  toward  Jerusalem 
and  the  covenants,  and  to  remind  them  that  they  are  heirs 
of  certain  rich  earthly  promises. 

But  we  must  remember  that  the  year  A.  D.  1878  was  but 
the  turning  point  of  returning  favor  to  Fleshly  Israel. 
We  have  already  learned,  from  our  study  of  ^'The  Times 
of  the  Gentiles, ' '  that  Jerusalem  and  its  people  will  continue 
to  be  trodden  down — controlled  and  oppressed  by  the  Gen- 
tiles— ''until  the  Times  of  the  Gentiles  be  fulfilled,"  and 
hence,  though  favor  was  due  and  began  in  A.  D.  1878,  the  Jew 
will  not  be  received  back  m\.o  full  favor  MntA  A.  D.  1914. 
Thus  their  rise  again  to  favor  will  be  gradual,  as  was  their  fall 
from  it.  It  is  remarkable,  too,  that  these  two  periods  of  their 
falling  and  rising  are  of  exadlly  the  same  length — the  falling 
was  gradual,  with  increasing  momentum,  for  thirty-seven 
years,  from  A.  D.  33,  Avhere  their  national  favor  ceased,  to 
A.  D.  70,  where  their  national  existence  ended,  the  land  was 
desolated  and  Jerusalem  totally  destroyed.  History  thus 
marks  the  beginning  and  ending  of  their  fall,  while  proph- 
ecy marks  both  ends  of  their  rising — 1878  and  1914 — show- 


22  2  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

ing  an  exa6l  parallel  of  thirty-seven  years.     This  is  a  further 
part  of  their  mishneh  (' '  double  ")  mentioned  by  the  prophet. 

Though  the  turning  points  of  the  Jewish  and  Gospel  ages 
are  thus  clearly  marked  at  A.  D.  2,2>  ^^<^  A.  D.  1878  respec- 
tively, by  Israel's  reje6lion  and  returning  favor,  yet  the 
work  of  each  of  these  ages  laps  over  upon  the  age  succeed- 
ing it.  Thus  the  turning  point  of  the  Jewish  age  being 
reached,  their  age  thereafter  was  lapped  upon  by  the  open- 
ing Gospel  age,  just  as  their  returning  favor,  which  is 
one  of  the  opening  features  of  the  Millennial  age,  laps 
over  upon  the  close  or  harvest  of  the  Gospel  age.  For 
thirty-seven  years  (from  A.  D.  t^-^,  the  end  of  their  national 
favor,  to  A.  D.  70,  their  complete  overthrow)  Israel,  except 
the  faithful  remnant,  was  falling,  and  the  believing  Gentiles 
were  rising — the  Jewish  age  was  ending  and  the  Gospel  age 
was  beginning;  and  for  thirty-seven  years  (from  A.  D.1878 
to  A.  D.  1914)  the  Gospel  age  is  ending,  and  woes  are  pre- 
paring and  coming  upon  so-called  Christendom,  except  the 
faithful  remnant,  while  the  restitution  work  for  Israel  and  all 
people  is  preparing.  That  is  to  say,  the  dates  A.  D.  T^^f  ^^<^ 
A.  D.  1878  mark  when  the  work  of  the  respe6live  new  ages 
began,  though  the  work  of  harvesting  the  preceding  age,  and 
destroying  the  refuse,  was  allowed  to  continue  thirty-seven 
years  into  the  new,  in  both  cases.  Thus  the  lap  of  the  dispen- 
sations, as  well  as  the  end-marks  of  each,  is  clearly  defined. 

A  double  work  belongs  to  each  of  these  lapping  periods : 
the  pulling  down  of  the  old  and  the  establishment  of  the 
new  arrangement  01  dispensation.  And  as  the  Jewish  age 
and  people  were  but  the  types  or  shadows,  we  must  expe6t 
the  results  here  to  be  much  more  extensive  than  there ;  and 
so  we  shall  find  thim.  This  twofold  work  is  shown  in 
the  statement  of  the  prophet  Isaiah — '^  For  (i)  the  day  of 
vengeance  is  in  my  heart,  and  (2)  the  year  of  my  redeemed 
is  come."— Isa,  63  :  4. 


Parallel  Dispensations.  223 

Nor  is  it  a  cunningly  devised  correspondency,  arranged 
to  suit  the  fa6ls ;  for  many  of  these  parallels,  and  other  truths, 
were  seen  from  prophecy,  and  were  preached  as  here  pre- 
sented, several  years  prior  to  A.  D.  1878 — that  year  being 
announced  as  the  time  of  returning  favor  to  Israel,  before 
it  came,  and  before  any  event  marked  it  so.  The  author 
of  this  volume  published  these  conclusions  drawn  from 
Scripture,  in  pamphlet  form,  in  the  spring  of  A.  D.  1877. 

The  testimony  could  scarcely  be  stronger,  and  yet  be 
kept  secret  until  the  present  due  time  for  knowledge  to  be 
increased,  and  for  the  wise  [in  truly  heavenly  teaching]  to 
unders.tand.  The  exa6t  year  of  Israel's  reje6tion — yes,  even 
the  very  day — we  know ;  that  they  were  to  have  a  niishneh 
or  double,  the  Prophet  explicitly  declares  ;  that  this  parallel 
period  is  eighteen  hundred  and  forty-five  years  long,  and 
that  it  ended  A.  D.  1878,  we  have  shown  clearly,  we  think; 
and  that  it  was  marked  by  favor  is  an  indisputable  fa(5l.  And 
bear  in  mind,  too,  that  it  is  since  the  end  of  their  *' double" 
that  Prof.  Delitzsch  has  published  his  Hebrew  translation  of 
the  New  Testament,  which  is  already  in  the  hands  of  thou- 
sands of  Hebrews  and  awakening  much  interest.  And 
further,  remember  that  the  greatest  Christian  movement 
among  the  Hebrews  since  the  days  of  the  apostles,  headed 
by  Rabinowitsch  and  others,  is  now  in  progress  in  Russia. 
And  it  had  its  start  about  as  long  a  time  after  A.  D.  1878, 
where  Israel's  '■^double ' '  ended,  as  the  time  of  the  awakening 
among  the  Gentiles  was  after  Israel's  rejection  in  A.  D.  ^;;^. 

Now  call  to  mind  the  Apostle's  words  which  show  clearly 
that  they  were  cast  off  from  divine  favor,  and  from  earthly 
COVENANTS,  STILL  THEIRS,  until  the  fulucss  or  complete 
number  from  the  Gentiles  has  come  in — until  the  end  of  the 
Gospel  call — and  then  you  will  see  that  1878  is  a  marked 
date,  of  deep  interest  to  Spiritual  Israel — no  less  important 
than  to  Fleshly  Israel 


224  ^^^  Time  is  at  Hand. 

However,  as  none  but  our  Lord  Jesus  knew  the  import 
of  the  end  of  the  Law  age  and  the  beginning  of  the  Gos- 
pel age  (even  the  apostles  knew  only  in  part  and  saw  dimly 
until  after  Pentecost),  so  we  can  now  expe6l  only  the  body 
of  Christ,  anointed  with  the  same  spirit,  to  see  clearly  the 
ending  of  the  Gospel  age  and  its  weighty  import.  The 
poor  Jews  and  many  professed  Christians  do  not  even  yet 
know  of  the  great  dispensational  change  which  occurred 
at  the  first  advent — the  ending  of  the  Jewish  age  and  the 
opening  of  the  Gospel  age.  And  likewise  now,  few  know, 
or  will  come  to  know,  until  outward  evidences  prove  it  to 
their  natural  sight,  that  we  are  now  in  the  end  or  ''harvest " 
of  the  Gospel  age,  and  that  A.  D.  1878  marked  so  important 
a  point  as  it  did.  Nor  was  it  intended  that  others  than  the 
faithful  few  should  see  and  know,  and  not  be  in  darkness  with 
the  world — "To  you  it  is  given  to  know,"  said  our  Lord. 

But  some  perhaps  may  say,  Though  Jeremiah  was  truly 
a  prophet  of  the  Lord,  whose  testimony  as  to  the  ^hnishneh ' ' 
or  duplication  of  Israel's  experiences  should  be  respected, 
we  should  consider  the  evidence  still  stronger  if  another 
prophet  had  mentioned  the  same  thing.  To  such  we  reply 
that  the  statement  of  one  reliable  prophet  is  good  and  suffi- 
cient ground  for  faith,  and  that  many  of  the  notable  proofs 
at  the  first  advent  were  foretold  by  only  a  single  prophet ; 
nevertheless,  God,  who  is  rich  in  mercy  and  very  pitiful, 
considered  our  weakness  of  faith,  and  has  answered  the 
prayer  of  our  hearts  in  advance,  providing  more  than  the 
one  testimony. 

Turn  now  to  Zechariah's  prophecy  (9  :  9-12).  In  pro- 
phetic vision  he  walks  beside  Jesus  as  he  rides  into  Jerusa- 
lem— A.  D.  33 — five  days  before  his  ciucrfixion  (John 
12  :  1-12),  and  to  the  people  the  Prophet  cries,  *' Rejoice 
greatly,  O  daughter  of  Zion  !  Shout,  O  daughter  of  Jerusa- 
lem !     Behold,  thy  king  cometh  unto  thee  !  He  is  just,  and 


Parallel  Dispensations ,  225 

having  salvation  :  lowly,  and  riding  upon  an  ass. ' '  Mark 
the  clear  fulfilment  of  these  words — Matt.  21:4-9,  43  i 
John  12:12-15;  Luke  19:40-42.  Every  item  was  ful- 
filled, even  to  the  shouting.  When  the  people  shouted 
Hosanna !  the  Pharisees  asked  Jesus  to  rebuke  them,  but 
be  refused,  saying,  "If  these  should  hold  their  peace,  the 
stones  would  immediately  cry  out. ' '  Why  ?  Because  it  had 
been  prophesied  that  there  would  be  a  shout,  and  every  item 
of  prophecy  must  be  fulfilled.  Let  this  particularity  of  detail 
in  prophetic  fulfilment  give  us  confidence  in  the  further 
statements  of  this  and  other  prophets. 

After  briefly  noting  the  evil  consequences  to  follow  a 
reje6lion  of  their  king  (Zech.  9  :  10),  the  Prophet,  speaking 
for  Jehovah,  addresses  them  thus  (verse  12)  :  "Turn  you  to 
the  strong  hold  [Christ],  ye  prisoners  of  hope  :  even  io-day 
do  I  declare  that  I  will  render  double  unto  thee."  The 
word  double,  here,  is  the  same  word  used  by  Jeremiah — 
^^mishneh ' ' — a  repetition,  or  another  equal  portion.  Israel 
had  for  years  been  under  the  Roman  yoke,  but  they  were 
"prisoners  of  hope,"  hoping  for  a  coming  king  who  would 
deliver  them  and  exalt  them  to  the  promised  dominion  of 
earth.  Now  their  king,  their  strong  tower,  had  come,  but 
so  meek  and  lowly  that  they  in  their  pride  of  heart  could 
not  recognize  him  as  such  a  deliverer.  And  much  more 
they  were  Sin's  prisoners,  and  this  Deliverer  purposed  this 
greater  release  also.  Our  Lord  had  been  with  them  three  and 
a  half  years,  fulfilling  the  Scriptures  in  their  midst,  and 
now  came  the  last  and  final  test — would  they  receive  him, 
the  Lord's  Anointed,  as  their  king?  The  foreknowledge  of 
God,  that  they  would  rejedl  Messiah,  is  shown  by  the 
Prophet's  words — "Even  to-day  do  I  declare  that  I  will 
render  double  unto  thee. ' ' 

This  prophecy  not  only  leaves  no  doubt  about  there  be- 
ing a  double — a  duplication  of  chastisement   added   to 


226  Tlie  Time  is  at  Hand. 

Israel's  experience  because  of  their  rejection  of  Messiah — 
but  it  also  marks  the  exaB  day  when  it  began,  and  makes  the 
conclusions  drawn  from  Jeremiah's  prophecy,  and  fixed  by 
our  Lord's  words,  "Your  house  is  left  unto  you  desolate," 
doubly  strong,  exa6l  and  clear. 

Call  to  mind  our  Lord's  words  at  this  time  and  in  this 
conne6lion — ''  O  Jerusalem,  Jerusalem,  that  killest  the 
prophets  and  stonest  them  which  are  sent  unto  thee,  how 
often  would  I  have  gathered  thy  children  together,  even  as 
a  hen  gathereth  her  chickens  under  her  wings,  and  ye  would 
not.  Behold  !  yotir  house  is  left  unto  you  desolate ;  for  I 
say  unto  you.  Ye  shall  not  see  me  henceforth  till  ye  shall 
say  [from  the  heart],  Blessed  is  he  that  cometh  in  the  name 
of  the  Lord."  (Matt.  23  :  37-39.)  Also  we  read  that  on 
the  last  day  of  their  test,  "  when  he  was  come  near  [riding 
on  the  ass],  he  beheld  the  city  and  wept  over  it,  saying. 
If  thou  hadst  known,  even  thou,  at  least  in  this  thy  day,  the 
things  which  belong  unto  thy  peace  !  But  now  [henceforth] 
they  are  hid  frof?i  thine  eyes.''  (Luke  19:41,  42.)  Thank 
God,  now  that  their  ' '  double  ' '  is  complete,  we  can  see  that 
their  blindness  is  beginning  to  be  turned  away.  And  this 
gives  joy  to  the  saints  on  their  own  account,  too,  for  they  real- 
ize that  the  glorification  of  the  Body  of  Christ  draweth  nigh. 

But  our  loving  Father,  who  evidently  wished  to  settle 
and  to  establish  our  hearts  beyond  doubt,  upon  the  small 
point  which  decides  and  proves  so  much,  has  sent  us  word 
concerning  Israel's  '^double''  by  another  of  his  most  honored 
servants — the  Prophet  Isaiah. 

This  prophet  takes  his  standpoint  down  at  this  end,  at 
the  time  when  the  "double"  (jnishneh)  has  been  fulfilled 
— A.  D.  1878;  and,  addressing  us  who  now  live,  he  gives  us 
God's  message,  saying  :  "  Comfort  ye,  comfort  ye  my  peo- 
ple, saith  your  God.  Speak  ye  comfortably  to  Jerusalem, 
§1)4  cjvy  unto  h^r  that  h^r  appointed  tim?  is  ciccomplished^ 


Parallel  Dispensations.  227 

that  her  iniquity  is  pardoned  ;  for  she  hath  received  of  the 
Lord's  hand  double*  for  all  her  sins." — Isa.  40  :  i,  2.  See 
marginal  reading. 

The  student  of  prophecy  should  notice  that  the  prophets 
vary  their  standpoints  of  utterance,  sometimes  speaking  of 
future  things  as  future,  and  sometimes  assuming  a  position 
future  and  speaking  from  that  assumed  standpoint ;  as,  for 
instance,  Isaiah,  speaking  of  our  Lord's  birth,  assumes  to 
stand  by  the  manger  where  the  babe  Jesus  lay,  when  he  says, 
"Unto  us  a  child  is  born,  unto  us  a  son  is  given,  and  the 
government  shall  be  upon  his  shoulders,"  etc.  (Isa.  9:6.) 
The  Book  of  Psalms  cannot  be  read  intelligently  unless 
this  principle  be  recognized.  No  better  illustration  of  this 
principle  of  different  prophetic  standpoints  can  be  given 
than  the  three  prophecies  relating  to  Israel's  ''  double"  al- 
ready noticed.  Jeremiah  foretold  that  the  days  would  come 
when  God  would  scatter  them  among  all  nations,  and  that, 
when  they  have  received  ''  double,"  he  would  gather  them 
again  by  a  more  mighty  display  of  power  on  their  behalf 
than  when  they  came  out  of  Egyptian  bondage.  Zechariah 
speaks  as  though  living  at  the  time  of  Christ's  offering  him- 
self to  Israel  as  their  king,  and  tells  us  that  there,  in  that 
very  day,  their  "  double ' '  began  to  count.  Isaiah  stands  be- 
side us  in  A.  D.  1878,  and  calls  our  attention  to  the  fa6l  that 
God  had  a  fixed  or  appoi7ited  time  for  favoring  Israel  already 
arranged,  and  that  this  fixed  time  was  after  a  double,  or  coun- 
terpart, of  their  previous  favor ;  and  he  tells  us  that  we  should 
now  give  to  Israel  this  comforting  message  that  her  double  is 
complete — her  appointed  time  accomplished.  It  would  be 
difficult  indeed  to  decide  which  of  these  three  prophecies  is 
strongest  or  most  important.  They  are  each  important,  and 
each  would  be  strong  alone ;  but  combined  they  are  a  three- 

*  The  Hebrew  word  here  translated  "double"  is  kep/iel,  which  sig- 
nifies double,  in  the  sense  of  a  thing  having  been  folded- in  the  middle 


228  The  Time  is  at  Hand, 

fold  cord  of  wonderful  strength  to  the  humble,  studious, 
trustful  children  of  God. 

The  force  of  these  prophetic  utterances  is  increased  when 
we  remember  that  these  prophets  not  only  lived  and  wrote 
hundreds  of  years  apart,  but  that  they  wrote  things  entirely 
contrary  to  Jewish  expe(5lation.  Surely  faithless  and  sloiv 
of  heart  to  believe  all  that  God  has  spoken  by  the  prophets 
are  those  who  cannot  see  in  this  clear  and  harmonious  tes- 
timony the  finger  and  dealings  of  God. 

If  any  should  obje6l,  that  the  Berlin  Congress  and  its 
a6tions  were  not  a  sufficiently  marked  beginning  of  God's 
returning  favor  to  Israel,  we  reply  that  it  was  a  far  more 
marked  return  of  favor  than  was  our  Lord's  a6lion  upon 
riding  into  Jerusalem  a  mark  of  disfavor.  Neither,  at  the 
time  of  its  occurrence,  was  recognized  as  a  fulfilment  of 
prophecy.  And  to-day  there  are  thousands  more  who  know 
of  the  fulfilment  of  the  double  than  up  to  Pentecost  knew 
that  the  double  began  back  there.  Thus  we  see  that  the 
child  that  Simeon  said  was  set  for  the /^// and  rising  again 
of  many  in  Israel  (Luke  2  :  34)  proved  t\\QfaIi  or  stone  of 
stumbling  to  Fleshly  Israel  as  a  nation ;  and  we  have  seen 
how,  as  the  Head  and  Captain  of  Spiritual  Israel,  he  is  to 
be  the  Deliverer,  to  raise  up  again  the  fleshly  house,  and  to 
restore  all  things  after  their  ** appointed  time,"  their 
''double,"  is  complete;  and  now  we  see  the  double  com- 
plete and  favor  to  Israel  beginning.  As  we  note  these  ful- 
filments of  our  Father's  Word,  our  hearts  may  well  sing, 
**  How  firm  a  foundation,  ye  saints  of  the  Lord, 
Is  laid  for  your  faith  in  his  excellent  Word." 

While  thus  noting  Israel's  fall  from  favor  and  their  con- 
sequent loss,  and  the  cause  of  all  this,  let  us  not  forget  that 
in  this  also  they  foreshadowed  nominal  Spiritual  Israel,  and 
that  the  same  prophets  have  foretold  the  stumbling  and  fall 
of  doth  the  houses  of  Israel — ' '  He  shall  be  for  a  stone  of 


Parallel  Dispensations,  229 

stumbling  and  for  a  rock  of  offence  to  both  the  "houses  of 
Israel." — Isa.  8  :  14. 

Just  as  truly  as  there  was  a  casting  off  and  fall  of  nominal 
Fleshly  Israel,  as  we  have  seen,  there  is  also  to  be  a  casting 
off  and  fall  of  nominal  Spiritual  Israel,  the  nominal  Gospel 
Church,  and  for  similar  reasons.  The  casting  off  and  fall  of 
the  one  are  just  as  vividly  portrayed  in  the  Scriptures  as  those 
of  the  other.  And  just  as  surely,  also,  as  a  remnant  of  Fleshly 
Israel  was  saved  from  the  blindness  and  fall  through  meek- 
ness and  faith,  even  so  also  a  similar  remnant  of  nominal 
Spiritual  Israel  shall  be  saved  from  the  blindness  and  fall 
of  the  nominal  mass  in  the  "harvest  "  or  close  of  this  age. 
Thus  the  last  members  of  the  true  Church,  the  body  of 
Christ,  are  to  be  separated  from  the  nominal  church — to  be 
joined  to  the  Head,  glorified.  These  (the  remnant  sele6ted 
from  Fleshly  Israel  at  its  fall,  and  the  faithful  few  of  the 
Gospel  age,  including  the  living  remnant  at  its  close)  alone 
constitute  the  true  '-'Israel  of  God."  These  are  the  Ele6t 
— ^justified  by  faith  in  Christ's  redemptive  work,  called  to 
joint-sacrifice  and  joint-heirship  with  Christ,  chosen  through 
belief  of  the  truth  and  san(5lification  by  the  spirit  of  truth, 
and  faithful  even  unto  death.  With  the  completion  of  the 
sele6lion  of  this  company,  in  the  harvest  of  this  age,  quite 
a  commotion  may  be  expedled  among  the  wheat  and  tares ; 
for  many  divine  favors,  specially  granted  because  of  the 
faithful  few,  will  be  withdrawn  from  the  nominal  mass, 
when  the  little  flock,  for  whose  development  they  were 
granted,  has  been  completed. 

We  should  expe6t  that  the  order  here  would  be,  as  in  the 
typical  Jewish  harvest,  a  separating  work,  fulfilling  the 
words  of  the  Prophet,  "Gather  my  sai^its  together  unto  me, 
those  that  have  made  a  covenant  with  me  by  sacrifice." 
(Psa.  50 :  5.)  And  as  A.  D.  33  marked  the  giving  over  of 
the  nominal  Jewish  house,  as  a  system,  to  disfavor,  disrup- 


230  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

tion  and  overthrow,  so  the  corresponding  date,  A.  D.  1878, 
marked  the  beginning  of  the  disfavor,  disruption  and  over- 
throw of  the  nominal  Spiritual  Israel,  of  which  we  shall 
have  more  to  say  in  succeeding  chapters. 

MATHEMATICAL    DEMONSTRATION. 

Assuming  that  the  foregoing  evidence  is  conclusive  and 
satisfa6lory,  we  now  proceed  to  demonstrate  chronologic- 
ally :  First,  that  the  Jewish  age,  from  the  death  of  Jacob 
to  where  their  house  was  left  desolate  when  their  double 
or  second  part  began  to  count,  was  eighteen  hundred  and 
forty-five  (1845)  y^a-rs  long;  and  second,  that  the  double 
ended  in  A.  D.  1878,  and  favor  was  due  to  begin  there 
— proving  thus  the  close  of  the  Gospel  age  favors. 

The  second  point  really  requires  no  demonstration  ;  for 
it  being  a  fa6l  that  our  Lord  died  in  A.  D.  "t^-t^,  it  becomes 
an  easy  matter  to  add  eighteen  hundred  and  forty-five  years 
to  A.  D.  -iyTy,  and  find  the  year  A.  D.  1878  to  be  the  year 
in  which  favor  to  Israel  was  due  to  begin,  provided  we  can 
prove  our  first  proposition,  that  the  period  of  Israel's  wait- 
ing for  the  fulfilment  Of  God's  promises  imder  his  favor 
was  a  period  of  eighteen  hundred  and  forty-five  years. 

The  length  of  this  period  is  fully  set  forth  in  the  chapter 
on  Chronology  except  one  item,  namely,  the  period  from 
the  death  of  Jacob  to  the  coming  out  of  Egypt.  This 
period  was  rather  peculiarly  hidden,  or  covered,  until  re- 
cently ;  until  it  was  noticed  the  length  of  the  Jewish  age 
was  not  known ;  and  without  it  the  double  of  it  could  not 
have  been  measured,  even  if  the  prophecies  regarding  the 
double  had  been  noticed  and  understood.  The  Chro- 
nology runs  smoothly  until  Jacob's  death,  but  from  that 
date  until  the  coming  out  of  Egypt,  there  is  no  full  record. 
Various  snatches  here  and  there  are  given,  but  no  conne6led 
thread  by  which  we  could  surely  know.     It  was  for  this 


Parallel  Dispensations,  23? 

reason  that  at  this  point  in  the  table  of  Chronology  we 
were  compelled  to  look  to  the  New  Testament.  There  we 
received  aid  from  the  inspired  Apostle,  who  gave  us  the 
conne6ling  link.  We  thus  learned  that  it  was  a  period  of 
four  hundred  and  thirty  (430)  years  from  the  Covenant,  at 
the  death  of  Terah,  Abraham's  father,  to  Israel's  exodus 
from  Egypt. 

We  find  the  hidden  period  between  the  death  of  Jacob 
and  Israel's  coming  out  of  Egypt,  exadlly,  by  first  calculat- 
ing the  period  from  the  death  of  Terah  to  the  death  of 
Jacob,  and  then  dedudling  that  number  of  years  from  the 
four  hundred  and  thirty  years,  the  period  from  Terah' s 
death  to  the  exodus  from  Egypt.     Thus : — 

Abraham  was  seventy-five  (75)  years  old  when  the  Cov- 
enant was  made  with  him,  at  the  death  of  Terah  (Gen. 
12:4),  and  Isaac  was  born  twenty-five  (25)  years  after. 
(Gen.  21:5.)     Hence — 
From  the  Covenant  to  the  birth  of  Isaac, 
From  Isaac's  to  Jacob's  birth  (Gen.  25  :26), 
From  Jacob's  birth  to  his  death  (Gen.  47  :  28), 

Total  years  from  the  Abrahamic  Covenant 
to  Jacob's  death,     ..... 

From  the  Covenant  to  the  day  Israel  left  Egypt 

(Exod.  12  :  41),  at  the  Passover,      .         .         430      '* 
From  this  dedu6t  the  period  from  the  Cov- 
enant to  Jacob's  death,       .         .         .         .     232      '* 

The  period  from  Jacob's  death  to  the  Ex-      

odus,  therefore,  was        .  .         .         .  198      " 

Thus  all  difficulty  relative  to  the  length  of  Israel's  na- 
tional existence  is  cleared  away.  The  hidden  period  from 
Jacob's  death  to  the  Exodus  was  no  doubt  purposely  con- 
cealed, until  due  to  be  seen.  To  this  we  now  add  the  periods 
presented  in  the  Chronological  Table,  as  follows  • — 


•      25  y 
.     60 

ears. 

<  ( 

.    147 

(( 

232 

<{  ' 

198  years. 

40 

<• 

.     6 

450 

513 

70 

536 

23 i  The  Time  ts  at  Hand. 

Period  from  Jacobus  death  to  the  Exodus, 

Israel  in  the  wilderness,     . 

To  the  division  of  Canaan,  . 

Period  of  the  Judges, 

**  "      Kings,      .... 

"  "       Desolation, 

From  the  the  first  year  of  Cyrus  to  A.  D.  i, 
Total  years  from  Jacob's  death  to  our  Anno 

Domini, 1813      ** 

From  A.  D.  i  to  the  crucifixion,  at  the  Pass- 
over in  the  spring  of  A.  D.  33 — full  years, 

Jewish  ecclesiastical  time,  *        .         .         .       32      ** 
Total  period  of  Israel's  waiting  for  the  king- 

dom,  under  divine  favor  and  recognition,         1 845  years. 

To  find  the  measure  of  their  double^  when  favor  was  due 
and  began  toward  them,  and  when  therefore  it  began  to 
depart  from  the  nominal  Spiritual  Israel,  we  count  eighteen 
hundred  and  forty-five  (1845)  years  from  the  Spring  of 
A.  D.  33,  and  obtain  the  date  of  the  Passover,  A.  D.  1878. 
Their  rising  again  from  A.  D.  1878  to  A.  D.  1915  (the 
closing  of  Gentile  Times),  under  the  favor  of  the  King 
whom  they  reje6led,  and  whom  by  that  time  they  will  rec- 
ognize, corresponds  in  length  with  their  thirty-seven  years 
of  falling,  from  the  day  their  house  was  left  desolate^  A.  D. 
33,  until  their  utter  overthrow  as  a  people,  A.  D.  70. 

We  have  already  examined  many  striking  parallels  be- 
£-vVcen  the  Jewish  age  shadow,  or  type,  and  the  Gospel  age 
substance,  or  antitype,  and  here  we  have  just  proved  an- 
other :  The  length  of  the  two  ages  corresponds  exa^ly — the 
Gospel  Church  being  called  during  Israel's  ^'mishneh^^  or 
double  of  disfavor.     And  while  other  correspondencies  are 

*  The  Jewish  ecclesiastical  3/ear  dated  from  the  Spring;  and  the  Pass- 
over occurred  on  the  15th  day  of  the  first  month  of  each  new  (ecclesias- 
tical) year. 


Paraliel  Dispensations.  2^3 

striking,  especially  so  are  the  closing  features  of  the  two 
ages — their  '*  harvests,"  their  reapers,  their  work  and  the 
time  devoted,  all  serve  to  give  us  clear  outlines  of  the  clos- 
ing work  to  be  accomplished  in  the  harvest  which  is  the 
end  of  this  age.  Notice  carefully  the  correspondencies  of 
these  two  harvests,  as  we  shall  briefly  recapitulate : — 

REVIEW   OF   HARVEST   PARALLELS. 

The  Jewish  age  ended  with  a  ''  harvest,"  our  Lord  and  the 
apostles  doing  the  work  of  reaping  fruit,  the  seed  of  which 
had  been  sown  by  Moses  and  the  prophets.  "Lift  up  your 
eyes  (said  Jesus),  and  look  on  the  fields,  for  they  are  white 
already  to  harvest. "  "I  send  you  forth  to  reap  that  where- 
on ye  have  bestowed  no  labor:  other  men  labored,  and 
ye  are  entered  into  their  labors."  (John  4:  35-38.)  The 
end  of 'the  Gospel  age  is  also  called  a  harvest — "The 
harvest  is  the  end  of  the  world  "  (age).  "  In  the  time  of 
harvest,  I  will  say  to  the  reapers,  Gather  first  the  tares  and 
bind  them  in  bundles,  .  .  .  but  gather  the  wheat  into  my 
barn." — Matt.  13:39,  30. 

John  foretold  the  work  and  effedl  of  the  Jewish  harvest, 
saying  (Matt.  3:12),  "Whose  fan  is  in  his  hand,  and 
he  will  thoroughly  purge  his  floor,  and  gather  his  wheat 
[Israelites  indeed]  into  the  garner  [the  Christian  Church] ; 
but  he  will  burn  up  the  chaff  [the  refuse  of  the  nation]  with 
unquenchable  fire" — (a  trouble  which  consumed  them 
nationally).  Here  was  the  baptism  of  the  holy  Spirit  and 
of  fire — the  holy  Spirit  coming  upon  the  "  Israelites  indeed' ' 
at  Pentecost,  and  the  fire  of  trouble  upon  all  others,  during 
the  thirty-seven  years  fol) owing  their  rejedion.  (Matt. 
3:11.)  In  that  trouble  Israel  as  a  nation  was  destroyed, 
but  not  as  individuals.  The  Revelator  tells  of  the  harvest- 
ing of  this  age  with  a  sharp  sickle  of  truth,  because  the 
time  to  reap  is  come,  and  shows  a  double  work,  part  of 


234  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

which  relates  to  the  vine  of  the  earth,  as  distinguished  from 
the  true  vine  of  the  Father's  planting,  Christ  Jesus  and  his 
members  or  branches.  (John  15:  1-6.)  The  harvest  of 
this  age  is  said  to  be  of  wheat  and  tares  (Matt.  13  :  24-30, 
36-39)  :  that  of  the  Jewish  age  was  called  one  of  wheat  and 
chaff.  And  as  the  chaff  predominated  largely  there,  the 
analogy  and  parallelism  so  marked  in  every  other  feature 
implies  that  the  tares  will  be  much  more  abundant  than 
the  wheat  in  this  harvest. 

The  Jewish  harvest,  in  all  a  period  of  forty  years,  began 
with  our  Lord's  ministry  and  ended  with  nominal  Israel's 
reje6lion  and  overthrow,  and  the  destru6lion  of  their  city, 
accomplished  by  the  Romans,  A.  D.  70.  And  the  harvest  of 
this  age  began  with  the  presence  of  our  Lord  at  the  begin- 
ning of  Earth's  Great  Jubilee,  in  1874,  as  shown  in  chap- 
ter vi.,  and  ends  with  the  overthrow  of  Gentile  power,  in 
A.  D.  1 91 4,  likewise  a  period  of  forty  years — another  of 
the  wonderful  parallels  of  the  two  ages. 

While  the  Jewish  harvest  began  with  our  Lord's  ministry, 
and  God's  favor  departed  from  their  nominal  system  three 
and  a  half  years  later,  and  was  followed  by  thirty-seven 
years  of  trouble  upon  that  system,  yet  special  favor  con- 
tinued to  individuals  of  that  nation,  and  the  call  to  the 
high  position  of  joint-heirship  with  Christ  was  given  to 
them  exclusively  for  three  and  a  half  years  after  our  Lord's 
reje6lion  by  them  and  of  them — thus  verifying  the  promise 
to  Daniel  (Dan.  9;  27),  that  favor  would  be  shown  to  his 
people  to  the  full  end  of  the  seventieth  week,  in  the  midst 
of  which  Messiah  was  cut  off.  This  promise  was  fulfilled  to 
all  the  true  wheat,  while  the  system  which  held  that  wheat 
v/as  condemned  and  cast  off  in  the  midst  of  the  week. 
The  harvesting  of  the  wheat  of  the  Jewish  age  lasted  for 
several  years,  beginning  with  our  Lord's  ministry,  though 
all  the  special  favor  ceased  three  and  a  half  years  after  the 


Parallel  Dispensations,  235 

death  of  Christ.  The  trouble  (fire)  upon  that  nation  began 
to  tindle  early,  but  dM  not  reach  its  terrible  fury  until 
the  wheat  of  that  nation  had  been  about  all  garnered. 

Similar  periods  are  marked  in  the  harvest  of  this  age  now 
closing,  corresponding  to  the  features  of  that  harvest.  The 
fall  of  A.  D.  1874,  where  the  Jubilee  cycles  point  out  that 
our  Lord  was  due  to  be  present,  corresponds  to  the  time  of 
his  baptism  and  anointing  by  the  holy  Spirit  when  he  be- 
came Messiah  the  Prince  (Dan.  9  :  25),  and  began  his  work 
of  reaping  the  Jewish  harvest.  The  Spring  of  A.  D.  1878 
(three  and  a  half  years  after)  corresponds  to  the  date  at 
which  our  Lord  assumed  the  office  of  King,  rode  on  the  ass, 
cleansed  the  temple  of  its  money-changers,  and  wept  over 
and  gave  up  to  desolation  that  nominal  church  or  king- 
dom ;  and  it  marks  the  date  when  the  nominal  church  systems 
were  "spewed  out"  (Rev.  3:16),  and  from  which  time 
(A.  D.  1878)  they  are  not  the  mouth-pieces  of  God,  nor  in 
any  degree  recognized  by  him.  And  the  three  and  a  half 
years  following  the  Spring  of  A.  D.  1878,  which  ended  Octo- 
ber, A.  D.  1 88 1,  correspond  to  the  three  and  a  half  years  of 
continued  favor  to  individual  Jews  in  the  last  half  of  their 
seventieth  week  of  favor.  As  in  the  type  that  date — three 
and  a  half  years  after  the  death  of  Christ — marked  the  end  of 
all  special  favor  to  the  Jew  and  the  beginning  of  favor  to  the 
Gentiles,  so  we  recognize  A.  D.  1881  as  marking  the  close  of 
the  special  favor  to  Gentiles — the  close  of  the ' '  high  calling, ' ' 
or  invitation  to  the  blessings  i)eculiar  to  this  age — to  be- 
come joint-heirs  with  Christ  and  partakers  of  the  divine 
nature.  And,  as  we  have  seen,  this  marks  a  great  move- 
ment among  the  Jewish  people  toward  Christianity,  known 
as  the  "Kishenev  Movement."  And  now  trouble  is  impend- 
ing over  nominal  Christendom,  but  the  storm  is  stayed  until 
the  wheat  is  garnered,  until  God's  messengers  seal  his  serv- 
ants in  their  foreheads  (intelledls)  with  the  truth— Rev.  7  .-3. 


236  Tlie  Titne  is  at  Hand. 

The  features  of  this  harvest  corresponding  to  those  of  the 
Jewish  harvest  have  been  very  marked  also  as  regards  the 
preaching  done.  In  the  first  three  and  a  half  years  of  the 
Jewish  harvest,  the  Lord  and  the  disciples  had  for  their  spe- 
cial text  time,  and  the  fact  of  Messiah's  prese?ice.  Their 
proclamation  was,  ''  The  time  is  fulfilled,"  the  Deliverer  has 
come.  (Mark  1:15;  Matt.  10:7.)  So  it  was  in  this  harvest 
also:  up  to  A.  D.  1878  the  time  prophecies  and  the  fa6l  of  the 
Lord's  presence,  substantially  as  here  presented,  though 
less  clearly,  was  our  message.  Since  then  the  work  has 
widened,  and  the  view  of  other  truths  has  become  brighter 
and  clearer;  but  the  same  fa6ts  and  scriptures,  teaching  the 
same  time  and  prese?ice,  stand  unchallenged  and  incontro- 
vertible. As  the  favor  which  was  continued  to  individual 
Israelites,  after  their  house  nominal  was  cut  off  from  favor, 
was  not  intended  to  convert  and  reform  their  nominal 
church  system,  nor  granted  in  hope  of  changing  their  chaff 
into  wheat,  but  was  intended  merely  to  separate  and  gar- 
ner every  grain  of  ripe  wheat,  so  in  this  harvest  the  object  of 
the  continued  and  abounding  favor  (of  the  light  of  truth)  of 
the  present  is  not  designed  to  convert  whole  sects  or  to  work 
national  reforms,  but  on  the  contrary  to  separate  completely 
the  wheat  class  from  the  tare  class.  They  have  grown  to- 
gether side  by  side  for  centuries,  and  a///;-<f,  all-wheat  se6t 
has  been  unknown ;  but  now  in  the  harvest  the  separation 
must  come,  and  the  strain  will  be  terrible.  It  will  mean, 
in  many  instances,  the  uprooting  of  earthly  friendships 
and  the  sundering  of  many  tender  ties;  and  the  truth 
will  do  the  separating.  The  Lord's  predi6tion  as  to  the 
"har\'est"  at  the  first  advent  will  be  true  again  in  the 
present  harvest.  (See  Matt.  10:35-38  ;  Luke  12  :  51-53.) 
As  there  the  truth  set  the  father  against  the  son,  the 
daughter  against  the  mother,  and  the  mother-in-law  against 
the  daughter-in-law,  so  again,  a  man's  foes  shall  oftenest 


Parallel  Dispensations.  237 

be  they  of  his  own  household.  This  cannot  be  avoided. 
They  who  love  peace  more  than  the  truth  will  be  tested,  and 
they  who  love  truth  supremely  will  be  accepted  and  ap- 
proved as  the  *'overcomers' ' — just  as  in  the  Jewish  ^'  harvest. ' ' 

In  the  Jewish  ''  harvest  "  the  messengers  chosen  and  sent 
forth  as  heralds  of  the  King  and  of  the  Kingdom  at  hand 
were  humble,  untitled  men,  and  those  who  opposed  the  mes- 
sage were  the  Chief  Priests,  Scribes,  Pharisees  and  Do61;ors 
of  Divinity ;  and  as  we  should  expe6l  we  find  it  here  :  the 
blindest  are  the  leaders  of  the  blind,  who,  like  their  Jewish 
types,  ''^«<?z£/«^///;^ //;//<?  of  their  visitation." — Luke  19:44. 

The  presence  was  one  of  the  main  points  of  testing  there, 
and  the  cross  was  the  other.  John  the  Baptizer  cried  to 
them,  "  There  standeth  one  aniong you  whom  ye  know  not. ' ' 
Yet  only  the  Israelites  indeed  were  able  to  realize  the  fa(5l 
of  Messiah's  presence ;  and  of  these  many  stumbled  over 
the  cross;  for  though  willing  to  accept  Messiah  as  a 
Deliverer,  their  pride  made  them  unAvilling  to  receive  him 
ssKedeemer,z\so.  So  here,  likewise,  \he  presence  o(  Christ, 
the  "harvest"  in  progress,  and  the  reje6lion  of  the  nom- 
inal mass  of  professors,  stumble  many;  and  the  great  De- 
liverer, for  whose  coming  and  kingdom  many  have  prayed  (as 
did  the  Jews),  they  are  unready  to  acknowledge.  Again  it 
is  true,  "  There  standeth  one  among  you  whom  ye  know 
not."  And  again  the  cross  of  Christ  becomes  a  test  and 
a  stone  of  stumbling  or  trial  as  none  could  have  expe6led  ; 
and  many,  many  are  now  falling  over  it,  saying,  We  will 
accept  Christ  as  our  Deliverer,  but  reje6t  him  as  our  Re- 
deemer or  Ransomer. 

Surely  all  who  will  consider  the  matter  carefully  must 
acknowledge  that  the  evidence  that  our  Lord  is  now  pres- 
ent (a  spirit  being,  and  hence  invisible)  is  greater  and  clearer 
than  the  evidence  which  the  Jew  had  of  his  presence  in 
the  flesh  at  the  iirst  advent.     And  not  only  are  the  pro- 


238  The  Time  is  at  Hand, 

phetic  evidences  of  the  Lord's  presence  now  more  full, 
complete  and  numerous,  but  the  signs  of  the  times  every- 
where about  us,  showing  the  harvest  work  in  progress, 
are  much  more  apparent  and  convincing,  to  those  whose 
eyes  are  anointed  (Rev.  3  :  18),  than  were  the  circumstances 
of  the  first  advent,  when  our  Lord  Jesus,  with  a  handful  of 
followers,  through  much  opposition  and  under  many  unfa- 
vorable conditions,  announced,  ''The  //;;/^  is  fulfilled  ; 
repent  and  believe  the  good  tidings  " — Messiah  has  come, 
the  Messenger  of  the  great  Jehovah,  to  fulfil  to  you  all 
the  promises  made  to  the  fathers.  What  wonder  that  only 
the  humble  minded  ones  could  accept  of  the  humble  Naz- 
arene  as  the  great  Deliverer,  or  of  the  humble,  untitled 
men  with  him  as  part  of  his  chosen  cabinet — as  those  who 
were  to  be  princes  under  him.  Only  the  few  could  see 
in  the  one  who  rode  on  the  ass  and  wept  over  Jerusalem 
the  great  King  of  whom  Zechariah  had  prophesied  that 
Zion  would  receive  him  as  King  with  shoutings  of  joy. 

At  his  first  advent  he  humbled  himself,  taking  the  form 
and  nature  of  man  (Heb.  2:9,  15),  thereby  to  accom- 
plish our  redemption  by  giving  himself  as  our  ransom 
price.  He  is  now  highly  exalted,  and  dieth  no  more ;  and 
at  his  second  advent,  clothed  with  all  power  (Phil.  2  :  9), 
he  will  exalt  his  ''body,"  and  then  bestow  upon  the  world 
the  blessing  of  restitution  which  he  purchased  for  them  at 
his  first  advent  with  his  own  precious  blood.  Remember, 
he  is  no  longer  flesh,  but  a  spirit  being,  and  will  shortly 
change,  and  glorify  as  his  members  and  joint-heirs,  all  his 
faithful  followers. 

To  the  Jewish  house  Jesus  presented  himself  in  three 
chara6ters — as  Bridegroom  (John  3  :  29),  Reaper  (John 
4:  35,  38)  and.King  (Matt.  21  :  5,  9,  4).  To  the  Christian 
house  he  presents  himself  in  the  same  three  chara6lers. 
(3  Cor,  n  ;  2}  Eev,  14: 14,  15  ;  17  ;  14.)     To  the  Jewish 


Parallel  Dispensations,  239 

house  he  came  as  Bridegroom  and  Reaper  in  the  beginning 
of  their  harvest  (the  beginning  of  his  ministry) ;  and  just 
before  his  crucifixion  he  presented  himself  as  their  King, 
exercising  kingly  authority  in  pronouncing  judgment  against 
them,  in  leaving  their  house  desolate,  and  in  the  typical  a6l 
of  cleansing  their  temple.  (Luke  19  :  41-46  ;  Mark  11:15- 
17.)  Just  so  it  has  been  in  this  harvest :  Our  Lord's  pres- 
ence as  Bridegroom  and  Reaper  was  recognized  during  the 
first  three  and  a  half  years,  from  A.  D.  1874  to  A.  D.  1878. 
Since  that  time  it  has  been  emphatically  manifest  that  the 
time  had  come  in  A.  D.  1878  when  kingly  judgment  should 
begin  at  the  house  of  God.  It  is  here  that  Rev.  14  :  14-20 
applies,  and  our  Lord  is  brought  to  view  as  the  Reaper 
crowned.  The  year  A.  D.  1878,  being  the  parallel  of  his 
assuming  power  and  authority  in  the  type,  clearly  marks  the 
time  for  the  actual  assuming  of  power  as  King  of  kings,  by 
our  present,  spiritual,  invisible  Lord — the  time  of  his  taking 
to  himself  his  great  power  to  reign,  which  in  the  prophecy 
is  closely  associated  with  the  resurre6lion  of  his  faithful, 
and  the  beginning  of  the  trouble  and  wrath  upon  the  na- 
tions. (Rev.  11:17,  18.)  Here,  as  in  the  type,  judg- 
ment begins  with  the  nominal  church,  in  condemning  to 
destru6lion  the  nominal  systems  (not  the  people),  outwardly 
representing  the  true  Church — "  the  body."  Here  also  is 
the  cleansing  of  the  true  temple,  the  true  Church,  the  body 
of  Christ — the  consecrated  class,  (i  Cor.  3:16;  Rev. 
3:  12.)  This  consecrated  or  temple  class  in  the  nominal 
church  stands  related  to  the  nominal  church,  as  a  whole, 
as  the  literal  temple  stood  related  to  the  holy  city  Jerusa- 
lem, as  a  whole.  After  the  city  was  given  up  the  temple 
was  cleansed:  so  now  the  temple  class  must  be  cleansed : 
every  selfish,  carnal  thought  and  all  worldliness  must  be 
cast  out,  that  the  temple  may  be  clean,  the  dwelling  place 
of  God'3  holy  Spirit— the  temple  of  the  living  God. 


24©  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

The  special  work  since  A.  D.  1878  has  been  the  proclama- 
tion of  the  King's  command,  *'  Comt  out  of  her  [Babylon]^ 
my  people,  that  ye  be  not  partakers  ot  her  sins,  and  that  ye 
receive  not  of  her  plagues."  (Rev.  .3:4.*)  "  Depart  ye,  de- 
part ye;  go  ye  out  from  thence;  touch  no  unclean  thing ;  go 
ye  out  of  the  midst  of  her ;  be  ye  [the  royal  Priesthood] 
clean,  that  bear  the  vessels  of  the  Lord." — Isa.  52:11. 

Another  marked  point  of  similarity  accompanying  the 
first  and  second  advents  is  the  prevailing  sense  of  the  need 
of  a  deliverer,  and  a  wide-spread  impression  among  the 
nations  that  deliverance  must  in  some  way  soon  come — 
the  ideas  of  some  even  approximating  the  truth  of  the 
matter.  But  in  each  case  only  a  few  are  able  to  recognize 
the  Deliverer  and  enlist  under  his  banner  in  the  service  of 
the  truth.  In  the  Jewish  harvest,  there  was  a  going  forth 
of  many  to  meet  the  Lord  when  all  men  '^  were  in  expedla- 
tion  "  of  him  (Luke  3  :  15),  at  the  time  of  his  birth,  thirty 
years  before  his  anointing  as  Messiah  at  the  beginning  of 
his  ministry;  and  so  there  was  a  corresponding  expedlation 
and  movement  on  the  part  of  many  (afterward  called  Ad- 
ventists)  led  mainly  by  a  Baptist  brother  named  William  Mil- 
ler, in  this  country,  and  by  Mr.  Wolff  and  others  in  Europe 
and  Asia.  This  culminated  in  the  year  A.  D.  1844,  just  thirty 
years  before  A.  D.  1874,  when  Christ  the  Bridegroom  and 
Reaper  a(5lually  came,  as  shown  by  the  Jubilee's  teaching. 
In  this  we  find  another  striking  time-parallel  between  these 
ages;  for  those  thirty  years  corresponded  exa6tly  to  the 
thirty  years  from  the  birth  of  the  babe  Jesus  unto  Messiah  the 
Anointed — baptized,  and  introduced  as  Bridegroom  and 
Reaper,  at  the  age  of  thirty. — Matt.  3:11;  John  3  :  29. 

In  both  cases  there  was  a  disappointment  and  a  tarrying- 
time  of  thirty  years,  during  which  all  slumbered,  and  only 
a  few  in  each  case  awakened  at  the  proper  time  to  a  realiza- 
tion of  Messiah's  presence.     The  great  nominal  mass  in 


Parallel  Dispensations.  241 

both  houses  fail  to  recognize  the  visitation,  because  over- 
charged and  lukewarm,  negledting  the  command  to  take 
heed  and  watch.  Thus  will  be  fulfilled  the  predidion  by  the 
Prophet — "'  He  shall  be  for  a  stone  of  stumbling  and  for 
a  rock  of  offence  to  both  the  houses  of  Israel."  (Isa.  8  :  14.) 
The  fleshly  house  stumbled  because  they  had  made  void  the 
law  of  God  through  giving  attention  to  traditions  (Mark 
7  :  9,13),  and  so  had  not  a  proper  conception  of  the  manner 
and  obje(5l  of  the  first  advent.  For  that  reason  they  weie 
unprepared  to  receive  him  in  the  way  he  did  come,  and  so 
stumbled  over  him  and  his  v/ork  of  sacrifice.  The  mass  of 
nominal  spiritual  Israel  are  now  stumbling  over  the  same 
rock,  and  for  the  same  reason.  They  are  blinded  by  the  tra- 
ditions of  men  and  sectarian  prejudices  which  hinder  a  prop- 
er enlightenment  by  the  Word  of  God ;  consequently  they 
have  not  a  proper  conception  of  the  manner  or  obje6l  of 
the  Lord's  second  advent.  And  here  also  the  cross  of 
Christ,  the  do6trine  of  the  ransom,  is  becoming  a  test  to  all. 
It  is  worthy  of  careful  notice,  too,  that  neither  house  would 
stumble  or  fall  over  a  rock  not  present.  The  Rock  is  now 
present,  and  nominal  systems  are  stumbling,  falling  and 
being  broken  to  pieces ;  while  now,  as  at  the  first  advent, 
the  'Tsraelites  indeed"  are  individually  recognizing  and  ac- 
cepting the  Rock,  and  by  climbing  upon  this  truth  are  being 
lifted  spiritually  far  above  the  stumbling,  reje6ling  masses. 

Those  who  have  the  eyes  of  their  understanding  enlight- 
ened do  not  stumble ;  but  as  they  climb  upon  the  Rock, 
from  its  higher  standpoint  they  see  much  more  clearly  both 
the  past  and  the  future  of  the  divine  plan — some  things  not 
possible  to  utter,  relative  to  the  coming  glory  of  the  Churcn 
and  the  gala-day  of  earth.  They  who  put  their  trust  in 
the  Lord  shall  never  be  confounded. 

The  full  force  of  this  parallelism  is  not  obtained  unless 
it  is  noticed  that  the  Jubilee  cycles  and  the  Gentile  Times 

i6  -^ 


242  Tlie  Time  is  at  Hand, 

mark  the  periods  which  correspond  so  exacSlly  with  these  in 
the  Jewish  parallels.  It  is  not  an  imagination  that  the  Jew- 
ish and  Christian  ages  are  type  and  antitype — the  apostles 
and  prophets  testify  to  their  correspondency.  Nor  do  we 
rely  merely  on  the  parallels  in  proof  of  the  harvest  work 
of  the  Christian  dispensation  now  in  progress :  this  harvest, 
as  already  shown,  is  otherwise  marked — both  its  beginning 
and  its  close.  The  Jubilee  cycles  prove  that  our  Lord  Jesus 
was  due  to  be  present  and  begin  the  restitution  work  in 
the  fall  of  1874  A.  D.  And  the  Parallelism  above  referred 
to  shows  that  date  (1874)  to  correspond  exadlly  with 
the  anointing  of  Jesus  as  the  Messiah,  at  the  beginning  of 
the  Jewish  ''harvest,"  at  the  first  advent.  The  ''Gentile 
Times ' '  prove  that  the  present  governments  must  all  be 
overturned  before  the  close  of  A.  D.  191 4;  and  the  Paral- 
lelism above  shows  that  this  period  corresponds  exacSlly  with 
the  year  A.  D  70,  which  witnessed  the  completion  of  the 
downfall  of  the  Jewish  polity.  A  reasonable  question,  then, 
in  view  of  all  this,  is,  Are  these  time-correspondencies  mere 
accidents,  or  are  they  of  the  same  divine  ordering  which 
we  have  seen  arranged  the  other  affairs  of  the  fleshly  house 
as  shadows  of  the  realities  of  this  dispensation  ? 

No,  they  are  not  accidental :  undoubtedly  the  same  all- 
wise  One  who  taught  us  through  the  Chronology  that  six 
thousand  years  from  Adam's  creation  ended  with  A.  D.  1872, 
and  that  the  seventh  thousand,  the  Millennial  age,  began 
there;  who  through  the  Jubilee  cycles  taught  us  that 
the  Lord  would  be  present  and  the  Times  of  Restitution  be- 
gin in  the  fall  of  1874;  and  who  through  the  Times  of  the 
Gentiles  showed  us  that  we  must  not  expedl  these  things  to 
be  done  in  haste,  but  by  seemingly  natural  means  covering 
a  period  of  forty  years,  has  in  these  Parallel  Dispensations 
marked  by  Israel's  "double"  given  us  evidence  which  not 
pniy  itself  teaches  clearly  the  Lord's  presence,  the  harvest 


Parallel  Dispensations,  243 

and  the  restitution  (beginning  with  favor  to  fleshly  Israel), 
but  at  the  same  time  furnishes  2l  proof  oi  \\iQ  correctness  of 
the  other  prophetic  evidences  and  of  the  Chronology. 
For  be  it  distin6lly  noticed  that  if  the  Chronology,  or  any 
of  these  time-periods,  be  changed  but  one  year,  the  beauty 
and  force  of  this  parallelism  are  destroyed.  For  instance,  if 
the  Chronology  be  altered  but  one  year,  more  or  less — 
if  we  add  one  year,  say  to  the  period  of  the  Kings  or  the 
Judges,  or  if  we  make  it  one  year  less — it  would  spoil  the 
parallelism.  If  we  should  add  one  year  it  would  make  the 
first  of  Israel's  periods  1846  years  long,  and  the  double  or 
other  half  of  it  Avould  thus  be  thrown  one  ye aj-  later,  while, 
on  the  contrary,  by  such  a  change  of  the  Chronology  the 
Jubilee  cycles  would  be  thrown  one  year  earlier,  /.  e.,  A.  D. 
1873  ^  ^^^  ^^  would  make  the  6000  years  end  in  A.  D.  1871, 
while  the  Gentile  Times  would  not  be  affe6led  by  it  at  all. 
All  can  see  that  the  harmony  or  parallelism  would  thus  be 
utterly  destroyed.  Or,  if  one  year  should  be  dedu6ted  from 
the  Chronological  reckoning  the  confusion  would  be  just 
as  great,  the  changes  to  the  several  periods  being  in  an  oppo- 
site direction.  Thus  these'various  time-prophecies  corrob- 
orate each  other,  while  the  parallelism  of  the  two  dispensa- 
tions clinches  their  testimony. 

It  will  be  noticed  by  those  at  all  familiar  with  the  calcu- 
lations usually  made  by  "Second  Adventists  "  and  others, 
relative  to  the  prophetic  periods,  etc.,  that  this  method  of 
dealing  with  these  subjeds  is  very  different  from  theirs. 
They  usually  attempt  to  make  all  prophecies  end  at  some 
one  date.  Their  erroneous  expectations  lead  them  to  this. 
They  expe6t  that  a  few  moments  will  witness  the  entire 
program  which  will  really  occupy  a  thousand  years — the 
Lord's  coming,  the  resurre6lion,  and  the  judgment  of  the 
world.  And  their  expectation  concerning  those  few  mo- 
ments is  that  they  close  by  the  burning  up  of  the  world. 


244  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

To  appreciate  and  accept  the  prophecies  which  point  out 
various  dates  for  various  steps  in  God's  great  plan,  they 
would  need  first  to  understand  the  *'  Plan  of  the  Ages  "  and 
the  true  manner  of  the  Lord's  second  advent.  But  the 
great  majority  are  too  much  blinded  by  their  theories  and 
prejudices  to  do  this.  Their  attempts  to  apply  prophecy 
to  their  false  expe6lations  often  lead  to  twisting,  stretching 
or  whittling,  according  to  the  necessities  of  the  case,  in  the 
endeavor  to  get  all  the  prophecies  to  terminate  at  some  one 
date.  These  friends  should  awake  to  their  error  in  this  di- 
re6lion ;  for  one  after  another  their  expe6tations  have  failed, 
while  we  and  they  know  that  some  of  the  prophecies  they 
have  used  cannot  be  stretched  into  the  future,  but  are  in  the 
past,  and  are  now  abandoned  by  them.  They  are  fulfilled, 
but  differently  from  what  they  expe6led,  and  they  know  it  not. 

On  the  contrary,  the  prophecies  here  presented,  and 
those  yet  to  be  considered,  are  unstrained,  and  without 
twisting  or  whittling.  We  simply  present  them  as  we  find 
them  in  God's  Word ;  and,  having  corre6t  expedlations  from 
God's  great  ''  Plan  of  the  Ages,"  it  is  easy  for  those  see- 
ing it  clearly  to  note  how  the  various  prophetic  chains  fit 
to  it  and  measure  it.  They  mark  it,  some  at  one  important 
point  and  some  at  another ;  and  to  such  as  see  this  much, 
this  parallelism  of  the  Jewish  and  Christian  dispensations 
shows  and  proves  beyond  reasonable  doubt  the  corre6lness 
of  all  the  others. 

The  statement  of  the  time-periods  of  God's  plan,  fur- 
nished in  the  prophecies,  is  very  similar  to  an  archite6l's 
specifications ;  and  the  parallels  of  the  Jewish  dispensation 
resemble  his  outline  drawings.  Suppose  we  had  an  archi- 
te6l's  specifications  for  a  house,  without  any  drawings,  and 
were  to  sit  down  and  make  a  drawing  from  the  specifica- 
tions, and  afterward  should  receive  from  the  archite6l  his 
outline  drawings  of  the  prospe6live  building — if  a  compari- 


Parallel  Dispensations.  245 

son  of  it  with  our  own  sketch,  made  from  the  specifications, 
showed  all  the  angles  and  measures  exadlly  alike,  we  should 
be  doubly  assured  as  to  our  corredt  understanding  of  the 
specifications.  So  here,  the  drawing,  the  type  or  shadow 
of  the  Gospel  age  furnished  us  in  the  Jewish  age,  and  the 
correspondence  of  prophecies  and  events  with  those  fore- 
shadowings,  give  us  as  strong  assurance  of  the  corredness 
of  our  conclusions  as  could  be  asked,  while  we  still  ''walk 
by  faith  and  not  by  sight." 

Other  prophetic  testimonies  yet  to  be  examined  will  also 
be  found  in  perfe6l  accord  with  these  parallels.  One  of 
them,  the  Days  of  Daniel,  points  out  a  great  blessing  upon 
the  consecrated  who  would  be  living  in  A.  D.  1875  ^"^ 
onward — a  blessing  surely  being  fulfilled  in  the  grand  un- 
folding of  the  truths  of  God's  Word  since  that  time.  To 
him  be  the  praise  who  hath  called  us  out  of  darkness  into 
his  marvelous  light  ! 

The  reader's  attention  is  dire<5led  to  the  Table  of  Cor- 
*"espondencies  following,  which  will  well  repay  careful  study. 


From  the  Death  of  Jesus  to  A.  D.  1878,  the  Pe- 

FOLLOWED  BY  THE  EXALTATION  OF  A  FAITHFUL  FeW, 


0     K 


CO 

O 

< 
CO 

a. 

CO 


CO 

o 

Q 


..  o 

r.  <: 

2  > 


o  ^  H  M 


s^* 

s 
s 

ID 

a 
S 

00 
00 

0« 

00 

0 

H 

•"> 

z 

Pi 

Q 

H 

H 

0 

s 

C/3 

Q 

5 

p4 

Pi 

k" 

c 
erf 

g 

< 

< 

p-i 

«jj 

u 

IS 

w 

fa 

i 

P3 

h 

0 

W 
H 

o\ 

0 

i; 

0 

H 

CO 

•<*• 

u 

0 
0 

ID 
0 
Q 
fa 

I 

^' 

q"  " 

fc 

« 

K^  ■; 

Ci 

.- 

rt- 

z 

fa 

Pu 

0  " 

C/2 

o^ 

0 

•^   CO 

P^ 

n 

u 
X 

<=i 

10 

0 

m 

f<^ 

0    H 

X 

1 

en 
U 

i 

erf 
w 
H 

0 

H 
>< 

OS 

erf 

0 
> 

0 
fa 

fa 

^ 

5 

M 

S 

s 

W 

> 

fa 

CO 

U 

CO 

£ 

H 

Pi 

< 

t«^ 

!< 

K 

-< 

fa 

0 

fa 

2 

>^ 

;:3 

0 

H 

u 

H 

ffi 

0 

0 

fe 

z 

K 

K 

H 

0 

H 

H 

Q 

fa 

< 

^ 

d 

C 

in 


C/3 


g  ^ 

c/?   X  « 

H    ..  ►^ 

I"  « 

fa ."  g 

O    ov  g 

fa   g  < 

<-  ••  fa 

2  Q 

''.  "A 

«  D 

?,  O 


o 

H 

<: 
-J      fa 


So" 
t:.H  "^  Q 
••  fa~  i^; 
o^  O   ..   < 

X  2  S  cT: 
E2  §  fa 
u      o 


fa  fl     , 

^  f^  l:; 

erf 

fa 


M  fa 

O  CQ 

u  ^ 

<;  w 

O  G 

Prf  Z 

fa  << 

in  ^ 


8  5 

. .     fa 


^hJ 


~    uo  fa 
o  ^Pi 

OS   CO 

X     i-i  c/3 

'^     Prf  "^-J 

«     §  fa 

fa  o 

O  H 


o   <;   o 

fa    Q 


< 

fa" 
fa 
O 

en      . 

<«    00 

fa  H 
H  H 
en    < 

>-  a 

C/5 

•J 
<< 
g 

o 

^ 

fa 
H 


From  the  Death  of  Jacob  to  the  Cross,  the  Pe- 
Followed  by  the  exaltation  of  a  Faithful  Few> 


klOD  OF    fi'AVOR    to    THE    NoMliSTAL    MoUSE    OF    SONS,    1 845    YeARS, 

AND  BY  Casting  off,  Trouble  and  Judgments  upon  the  Others. 


W        ^        «^'"^  5        "^S.        i^r^Soo  «^W 


u. 


3    2    H  K  -8  £?S;;..!i.|s    a  ck  g  .  o  !;  ^^  -  i  « 

Oc/2         H^         KH      bjO^  <^,,H^'^OS5^ci;t-'Q--HS'-' 

2   s  ••  H  .7  <   ^   2  w  g  y  u  j^   ^  ^_^         «■  "n   "^  H  2 


&J 


OK'-'  5  2'-'^,  -^2 


u 


«<  *?    pin      W 


^lOD  OF  P'AVOR  to  the  NOMINAL  HOUSE  OF  SERVANTS,  1 845  YeARS, 

^ND  BY  Casting  off,  Trouble  and  Judgments  upon  the  Others. 


CHAPTER  VIII. 
ELIAS  SHALL  FIRST  COME. 

How  This  Important  Prophecy  Stands  Related  to  the  Second  Advent.— A 
Partial  and  Typical  Fulfilment  in  John  the  Baptist. — The  Real  Ful- 
filment.— The  Vision  on  the  Holy  Mount. — Remarkable  Correspond- 
encies between  Elijah,  the  Type,  and  the  Antitypical  Elijah.— The  Time 
IS  at  Hand. — The  Outlook. — Elijah's  Successor,  Elisha. 

"  Behold,  I  will  send  you  Elijah  the  prophet  before  the  coming  of  the 
great  and  dreadful  day  of  the  Lord.  And  he  shall  turn  the  heart  of  the 
fathers  to  the  children,  and  the  heart  of  the  children  to  their  fathers,  lest 
[z.  e.  or  else]  I  come  and  smite  the  earth  with  a  curse." — Mai.  4:  6. 

TN  considering  the  evidences  of  the  time  being  at  hand 
^  for  the  establishment  of  Messiah's  Kingdom  in  the  earth, 
this  prophecy,  showing  the  priority  of  Elijah's  coming, 
must  not  be  overlooked. 

The  expression  of  our  text  is  peculiar.  The  thought 
seems  to  be  that  Elijah's  work  will  be  to  turn  (/.  e.,  con- 
vert) parents  to  a  humble,  childlike  condition,  and,  after 
making  them  teachable  as  little  children,  to  turn  their  hearts 
from  error,  sin  and  unfaithfulness,  and  lead  them  back  into 
harmony  with  their  "  fathers  "-^a  name  given  by  Hebrevrs 
to  their  faithful  patriarchs  and  prophets. 

Malachi's  prophecy,  the  last  message  sent  by  Jehovah 
to  Israel,  seems  to  have  deeply  impressed  them — especially 
the  last  two  chapters,  which  particularly  refer  to  Messiah's 
coming,  and  to  the  special  trials  which  the  day  of  the 
Lord's  presence  would  bring  with  it.  (See  Mai.  3  :  1-3, 
I2_i8;  4:  1-6.)  Gathering  from  this  that  the  testing 
would  be  peculiar,  they  took  comfort  from  the  last  verses 

249 


^^0  'The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

quoted  above,  which  promised  that  Elijah  the  prophet,  who 
had  once  converted  the  entire  nation  from  the  worship  of 
Baal  back  to  the  worship  of  God,  would  come  again  to 
prepare  them,  before  this  severe  testing  time  which  Mes- 
siah's coming  would  bring. 

This  prophecy  was  ViOt  fulfilled  -dX  the  first  advent  of  our 
Lord — neither  the  portion  which  relates  to  Messiah  nor 
that  which  refers  to  Elijah.  The  reference  of  the  prophecy 
is  evidently  to  the  second  advent ;  to  the  coming  of  the 
''  Messenger  of  the  Covenant "  in  glory  and  power ;  and  to 
the  testing  and  great  trouble  of  the  Day  of  the  Lord  at 
that  time.  However,  Christ's  presentation  to  typical  Israel, 
and  the  great  trouble  which  came  upon  them  as  a  nation 
when  they  reje6ted  him,  was,  as  God  had  foreseen  and  in- 
tended, another  shadow  which  further  illustrated  in  many 
particulars  the  things  presented  in  this  prophecy.  John 
the  Immerser,  in  the  spirit  of  Elijah,  did  a  work  for  Israel 
similar  to  that  of  the  Elijah  promised,  but  failed  of  success; 
and,  as  a  result,  trouble  (a  curse)  upon  that  nation  followed. 
The  real  Elijah  referred  to  by  the  prophet  was  to  do  a  great 
work  for  the  whole  ''earth,"  to  prepare  all  mankind  for 
the  second  advent ;  and  he  will  for  a  time  also  fail  of  suc- 
cess, and  as  a  result  the  great  time  of  trouble  (the  curse) 
will  smite  the  whole  earth. 

The  coming  of  Elijah  mentioned  by  the  prophet  is  ^^ be- 
fore'' this  "•  great  and  dreadful  Day  of  Jehovah."  ^'  And 
since,  as  we  have  just  shown,  the  great  Day  of  Jehovah  be- 
gan in  A.  D.  1874,  will  continue  forty  years,  and  will  end 
with  the  expiration  of  Gentile  Times  in  the  complete  over- 
throw of  worldly  and  Satanic  dominion  in  the  earth,  and 
the  full  investiture  of  Immanuel — Christ  Jesus  and  his 
saints — with  all  power  and  dominion,  it  is  important  for  us 
to  show  here  that  Elijah  has  come.  He  has  failed  to  turn 
*  See  Vol.  I.,  Chapter  xv. 


Elias  Shall  First  Come.  251 

the  hearts  of  the  world  to  childlikeness  and  to  the  [true] 
wisdom  of  the  just ;  and  therefore  the  great  time  of  trouble 
comes,  as  God  foresaw  and  foretold.  In  it,  God  will  teach 
mankind  by  severe  and  bitter  experiences  lessons  they  need 
to  learn  thoroughly,  to  prepare  them  to  gratefully  accept 
the  Christ, — Jehovah's  Messenger  of  the  New  Covenant — 
with  all  the  just  arrangements,  laws,  etc.,  of  that  covenant. 
At  the  first  advent,  as  we  have  just  seen,  many  of  God's 
promises  and  plans  were  carried  out  on  a  small  scale  with 
one  nation,  Israel,  as  an  illustration  of  the  greater,  grander 
realities  to  be  accomplished  at  Christ's  second  coming. 
And  as  the  miracles,  cures,  etc.,  represented  the  greater 
works  of  the  Millennial  age,  and  our  Lord's  riding  on  the 
ass  as  King  represented  his  assuming  the  greater  power, 
majesty  and  honor  at  the  second  advent  as  King  of  kings 
and  Lord  of  lords,  so  ''the  man  Christ  Jesus"  and  his 
little  band  of  disciples  represented  the  Lord  of  Glory 
highly  exalted,  associated  with  the  saints,  his  bride  and 
co-heirs,  at  the  second  advent.  And  thus  John  the  Baptist 
and  his  disciples  engaged  in  the  same  work  with  and  under 
him,  in  attempting  to  convert  Israel  and  to  prepare  them 
to  receive  Messiah,  7'epresented  the  real  Elijah  (the  true 
Christian  church),  whose  work  has  been  to  attempt  the  con- 
version of  the  world  before  the  coming  of  Messiah  to  the 
world — the  spiritual  Lord  of  glory  and  King  of  kings. 
John  the  Immerser,  in  the  spirit  and  power  of  Elijah,  failed 
to  reform  Israel,  and,  as  a  consequence  (Matt.  27:12),  Israel 
rejected  Jesus  in  the  flesh,  and  brought  upon  themselves  a 
great "  day  of  vengeance,^''  trouble  and  wrath.  (Luke  21:22.) 
So,  likewise,  only  on  the  larger  scale,  the  real  and  greater 
Elijah  has  failed  to  convert  and  prepare  the  world  to  re- 
ceive the  King  of  Glory,  and  now,  consequently,  the  great 
day  of  wrath  must  come  upon  the  world,  to  melt  and  mel- 
low and  humble  and  prepare  all  to  cry  out  from  the  heart 


2e;2  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

— Hosannah !  Blessed  is  he  that  cometh  in  the  name  of 
Jehovah ! 

It  is  thus  seen  that  the  Church  in  the  flesh  (the  Christ  in 
the  flesh,  Head  and  body)  is  the  Elijah  or  forerunner  of  the 
Church  in  glory,  Jehovah's  Anointed.  Not  the  nominal 
church,  but  the  really  consecrated  Church,  which  on  the 
other  side  of  the  tomb  will  be  the  great  Anointed  Deliverer, 
— these  constitute  the  Elijah.  Their  mission  is  to  reprove 
error  and  sin,  and  to  point  to  the  coming  Kingdom  of 
glory.  Our  Lord  Jesus  and  the  Apostles,  and  all  the  faith- 
ful in  Christ  Jesus  since,  are  of  this  great  antitypical  Elijah, 
prophet  or  teacher — the  same  class  (Head  and  body)  which 
shall  shortly  compose  the  King  of  Glory.  The  work  in 
which  the  Church  is  now  engaged  is  merely  preliminary  to 
its  future  work,  so  far  as  the  reforming  of  the  world  is  con- 
cerned. In  its  kingly  office  the  Church  shall  accomplish 
for  the  world  what  it  fails  to  do  as  the  Elijah  teacher. 

Let  us  not  be  misunderstood :  We  have  heretofore  shown 
that  God's  plan  does  not  extend  to  the  converting  of  the 
world  during  the  Gospel  age.  He  did  not  intend  it  to  do 
so,  but  merely  designed  the  selecSlion  and  trial  of  the 
Church  now,  and  the  blessing  of  the  world  through  the 
Church,  the  Christ,  in  an  age  to  follow  this.  We  do  not 
contradidl  this  when  we  say  that  the  Elijah  (Christ  in  the 
flesh)  has  tried  to  convert  the  world  and  failed,  except  in 
bringing  about  partial  reforms ;'  for  though  God  knew  and 
foretold  that  our  mission  to  the  world  would  be  largely  a 
failure,  except  in  selecting  a  choice  little  flock,  yet,  knowing 
that  the  effort  would  react  favorably  upon  ourselves,  his 
commission  to  us  through  our  Lord  was  to  try  to  convert 
the  world,  when  he  said,  "Go  ye  into  all  the  world  and 
preach  the  good  tidings  to  every  creature. '  *  Seeing  that  he 
foretold  our  present  failure,  but  our  future  success,  when 
he  shall  glorify  and  endue  us  with  divine  power,  we  are 


Elias  Shall  First  Come.  253 

enabled  to  rejoice  even  while  viewing  the  comparative  fail- 
ure of  the  past  eighteen  centuries,  realizing  that  the  labor 
of  the  true  Elijah  class  has  not  been  in  vain,  but  has  served 
the  divine  purpose  in  developing  the  true  Church  while 
bearing  witness  before  the  world — which  will  profit  it  in 
due  time. 

John  the  Baptist  was  not  a6lually  Elijah  returned  to 
earth,  neither  is  the  Church ;  but  as  it  was  true  of  John, 
that  he  did  an  Elijah  work  to  Israel  (Luke  i  :  17)  to  pre- 
pare them,  and  introduced  the  Lord  in  the  flesh,  so  it  is 
true  of  the  Church — it  does  the  predi6led  Elijah  work  '*  in 
the  spirit  and  power  of  Elijah  "  to  the  world,  and  announces 
our  Lord's  second  advent  in  almost  the  same  words  which 
John  used  at  the  first  advent:  '^ There  standeth  one  among 
you  whom  ye  know  not.  ^  *  *  He  it  is  who,  coming  after 
me,  is  superior  to  me." — John  i  :  26,  27. 

All  could  not  receive  John's  testimony  nor  realize  that 
he  was  forerunner  to  the  King  in  the  flesh.  Had  they  done 
so,  they  would  have  been  prepared  thereby  to  receive  Jesus 
as  their  Messiah.  To  as  many  of  them  as  could  and  did 
accept  John's  message  and  receive  Christ,  to  these  John 
did  do  the  Elijah  work.  As  our  Lord  said  to  them  of  John 
(Matt.  11:14),  *'  If  ye  will  receive  if,  this  is  the  Elias  which 
was  to  come;"  though  John  and  his  work  did  not  complete 
the  predi6lion  concerning  Elijah,  even  as  our  Lord  in  the 
fiesh  did  not  fulfil  all  that  was  predidled  of  Messiah.  He 
was,  to  all  who  could  receive  it,  Jehovah's  Anointed, 
even  before  he  had  finished  his  work  of  sacrifice,  or  had 
been  glorified,  or  had  come  again  in  the  exercise  of  the  great 
office  of  Messiah  or  Deliverer.  John,  at  the  first  advent, 
was  really  a  finishing  out,  in  a  measure,  of  the  type  begun 
in  the  person  and  Avork  of  Elijah ;  and  John's  work  at 
the  first  advent  foreshadowed  the  closing  work  of  the 
Church  at  the  second  advent.     These,  the  feet  of  Christ 


254  ^^^^   Time  is  at  Ha?id. 

in  the  flesh — the  feet  of  Elijah — announce  the  Kingdom. 
(Isa.  52  :  7.)  To  those  who  '' ca7t  receive  it "  we  announce, 
as  at  hand,  the  reign  of  the  Christ  glorified ;  and  likewise 
to  those  who  ''can  receive  if^  we  have  pointed  out  the 
foretold  antitypical  Elijah.  Some,  probably,  will  not  ''re- 
ceive it,"  but  will  still  look  for  some  one  man  to  fulfil 
Malachi's  predictions,  and  will  "  know  not  the  time  of  their 
visitation' '  until  the  great  day  of  trouble  is  burning  as  an  oven. 
It  will  be  seen,  then,  that  the  failure  of  the  Elijah  (the 
Christ  in  the  flesh)  to  convert  and  restore  the  world  was 
as  much  a  foreseen  result  as  was  John's  failure  to  convert 
Israel.  Nevertheless  it  will  be  the  same  Elijah  class,  only 
glorified  and  empowered,  which  will  during  the  Millen- 
nial age  bless  and  teach  the  world  and  restore  all  things,  as 
promised  by  the  mouth  of  all  the  holy  prophets  (A6ls  3:19- 
21);  only  in  the  name  and  likeness  the  Elijah  type  cease? 
with  our  earthly  career.  In  harmony  with  this  were  ouj 
Lord's  words  in  reply  to  his  disciples  who  asked,  ''Why 
then  say  the  scribes  that  Elijah  must  first  come  ? ' '  Ouj 
Lord's  answer  does  not  attempt  a  full  explanation  of  Eli- 
jah's being  a  type  and  John  a  continuation  of  the  same 
while  at  the  same  time  a  shadowy  fulfilment  of  it,  etc. — 
things  which  the  disciples  were  not  then  prepared  to  under- 
stand, and  which  moreover  were  not  then  due  to  be  under- 
stood ;  and  hence,  while  pointing  out  John's  failure  as  a 
partial  fulfilment  of  the  prophecy,  our  Lord  adds,  "Elijah 
truly  shall  ^  come,  and  restore  all  things. ' '  (Matt.  17:11.) 
Evidently  he  had  in  mind  his  own  glorious  work  of  the 
coming  age,  associated  with  his  glorified  "body"  which 
the  Gospel  age  would  sele6l  and  test.  He  was  looking 
beyond  the  vail  to  the  Millennial  age,  and  seeing  the  Elijah 
class  caught  up  in  the  chariots  of  fire  in  power  and  great 
glory — spiritual  exaltation. 

^  Oldest  Manuscripts  omit  fiist. 


Elias  Shall  First  Come.  255 

A  woman  is  the  figure  used  when  the  Church  alone  is 
referred  to,  separate  from  her  Lord  and  Head.  Separate 
and  distin6l  from  her  Lord,  the  Bridegroom,  she  is  an  es- 
poused virgin.  But  in  this  instance  a  man,  Elijah,  is  the 
figure  used,  because  the  work  prefigured  is  not  the  work 
of  the  Church  separate  from  her  Lord,  but  the  one  work 
of  both.  Our  Lord  was  the  Head  and  Forerunner  of  the 
Church  in  the  flesh  (the  Elijah),  as  truly  as  he  is  Head  of  the 
Church  triumphant — the  Christ.  Other  instances  in  which 
a  man  is  the  figure  used,  when  a  joint  work  of  Christ  Jesus 
and  his  body,  the  Church,  is  typified,  are  numerous  :  for  in- 
stance, Aaron  and  all  his  successors  in  the  office  of  Chief 
Priest  represented  the  Lord  and  the  under  priests,  mem- 
bers of  his  body;  Melchisedec  similarly  represented  the 
whole  body  in  glory ;  so  did  Moses,  David  and  Solomon. 
Hence  the  use  of  Elijah  as  a  figure,  in  representing  a  imited 
work  of  Christ  and  the  Church,  is  in  harmony  with  the 
Scripture  usage. 

In  view  of  the  class  which  Elijah  represented,  how  for- 
cibly eloquent  was  that  ^^ vision''  which  the  Lord  showed  to 
the  three  disciples  on  the  mount  of  transfiguration.  (Matt. 
17  :  1-9.)  It  was  a  vision  of  the  coming  Kingdom,  Peter 
tells  us.  (2  Pet.  I  :  16-18.)  Our  Lord,  transfigured,  appeared 
radiant  before  their  eyes,  while  a  figure  of  Moses  repre- 
sented the  Mosaic  or  Law  Dispensation  and  a  figure  of 
Elijah  represented  the  Gospel  or  Christian  Dispensation. 
Both  dispensations  look  toward  and  point  out  and  speak  of 
the  sacrifice  and  sufferings  of  Christ  and  the  glory  to  follow. 

Before  leaving  this  subje6l  we  will  point  out  some  features 
and  incidents  in  the  life  of  the  Prophet  Elijah,  the  type, 
comparing  them  with  the  history  of  the  Church,  the  anti- 
typical  Elijah,  which  will  certainly  astonish  all  who  have 
not  noticed  them  heretofore.  That  the  comparison  may 
])e  readily  seen,  we  will  place  these  in  parallel  columns, 


256  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

ELIJAH.  THE  CHURCH. 


Elijah  was  persecuted  for  fidelity 
to  truth  and  righteousness. 


His  principal  persecutor  was  Jez- 
ebel, the  wicked  queen  of  Israel, 
who  is  mentioned  by  name  as  the 
type  of  the  enemy  of  the  saints. — 
Rev.  2  :  20, 

Jezebel's  persecuting  power  was 
exercised  through  her  husband, 
Ahab,  the  king. 

Elijah  fled  from  Jezebel  and 
Ahab,  into  the  wilderness,  to  a  place 
prepared  of  God,  where  he  was 
miraculously  nourished  '  '^'^' — -^ 
17:5-9- 


•I   Kings 


The  Church  was  persecuted  foi 
fidelity  to  truth  and  righteousness. 

The  principal  persecutor  was  the 
apostate  Church  of  Rome,  which 
claims  to  be  a  "  queen  "  and  ruler 
over  spiritual  Israel. — Rev.  18  '.'j. 


Papacy's  persecuting  power  was 
exercised  through  the  Roman  Em- 
pire, to  which  she  was  ioined. 

The  true  Church  fled  into  the 
symbolic  wilderness — or  condition 
of  isolation — to  her  place,  prepared 
of  God,  where  she  was  sustained. — 
Rev.  12:6,16. 


Elijah  was  *'  three  years  and  six  The  Church  was  three  and  a  half 
months"  in  the  wilderness,  and  dur-  symbolic  years  (a  day  for  a  year — 
ing  that  time  there  was  no  rain,  and  1260  literal  years)  in  the  wilderness 


a  great  famine  was  in  the  land. 
—  James  5:17;  I  Kings  17:7; 
18:2. 


After  the  three  and  a  half  years, 
1260  days,  when  Elijah  returned 
from  the  wilderness,  the  errors  of 
Jezebel's  priests  were  manifested, 
the  true  God  was  honored,  and  co- 
pious rains  followed. — I  Kings  18  : 
41-45- 

The  king  and  the  people  at  first 
rejoiced,  and  Elijah  and  his  God 
were  honored;  but  the  spirit  of  Jeze 
bel  was  unchanged.  She  still  sought 
Elijah's  life,  and  he  was  again  com- 
pelled to  flee  into  the  wilderness. — 
I  Kings  18:40,45,46;  19:1-4. 

Elijah's  career  ended  by  his  being 
taken  from  the  earth. 


condition,  during  which  there  was  a 
spiritual  famine  because  of  the  lack 
of  truth — the  living  water. — Comp. 
Rev.  12:6;  11:3;  Amos  8:  ii. 

At  the  end  of  the  1 260  years  the 
power  of  the  truth  and  its  witnesses 
was  manifested  (A.  I).  1 799)  ;  and 
since  then  the  truth  has  flowed  at 
the  rate  of  millions  of  Bibles  every 
year,  refreshing  the  world  and  bring- 
ing forth  fruit. 

The  Bible  has  brought  such  bless- 
ings that  the  empires  of  earth  rec- 
ognize the  Lord's  hand;  yet  the 
principles  of  Papacy  —  Jezebel — 
in  so-called  Protestant  seds  com- 
pel the  snints  again  to  flee  into  the 
wilderness  condition. 

The  saints  will  be  changed  from 
earthly  to  heavenly  conditions. 


Elias  Shall  First  Cotne.  557 

These  are  striking  coincidences,  and  are  not  accidental. 
And  the  fa6l  that  Elijah  was  to  come  before  the  great  day, 
and  that  now  we  have  found  in  the  Church  the  antitypical 
Elijah  to  whom  Malachi  the  prophet  referred  and  whom  John 
the  Baptist  further  typified,  should  be  esteemed  ajiother  ev- 
idence that  the  time  is  at  hand — that  the  great  Day  of  the 
Lord  has  come.  But,  beyond  this,  there  are  in  this  type 
suggestions,  supported  by  other  scriptures,  designed  to 
guide  and  to  prepare  the  saints  to  a6l  well  their  part,  and  to 
strengthen  and  sustain  them  in  the  stormy  day  just  upon  us. 

We  have  no  desire  to  draw  before  the  mind  a  dark  pidture : 
we  would  prefer  to  think  of  and  point  out  the  glory  to  fol- 
low the  great  day  of  wrath,  and  the  joys  of  the  incoming 
Millennial  Day,  rather  than  the  afilidlions  and  discourage- 
ments of  the  nearer  future  which  precedes  full  sunrise.  But 
it  is  necessary  that  the  saints  should  be  at  least  in  some 
measure  forewarned  of  impending  events,  that  when  such 
come  to  pass  they  may  not  be  alarmed  or  disheartened,  but 
being  fore-armed  may  know  how  to  meet  them;  and  also 
that  they  may  more  fully  appreciate  the  blessings  of  the 
present,  so  as  diligently  to  "work  while  it  is  called ^2.y \ 
for  the  night  [a  much  darker  time  in  comparison  with  the 
present,  called  day]  cometh,  wherein  no  7na?i  can  work.  ' ' 

The  present  little  season,  before  the  storm-cloud  bursts 
upon  the  world,  is  a  most  favorable  time  for  the  work  of  the 
Elijah  class,  and  corresponds  to  the  successful  days  of  both 
Elijah  and  John.  It  is  favorable  for  personal  growth  in 
grace  and  knowledge,  and  also  for  the  spread  of  the  truth — 
the  most  favorable  time  that  has  ever  been  known.  How  the 
early  truth-seekers,  the  Bereans,  for  instance,  would  have 
rejoiced  at  suck  students' -helps  as  we  now  possess,  in  the  way 
of  complete  and  printed  Reference  Bibles,  Concordances, 
Histories,  Cyclopaedias,  Di6tionaries  and  other  valuable 
works  of  reference,  at  prices  within  the  reach  of  all,  and  ac- 

17  B 


258  The   Time  is  at  Hand, 

cessible  to  all  without  price  in  the  public  libraries  of  even 
moderate-sized  towns  \  and  in  addition  to  all  these,  the  in- 
creasing light  of  the  dawning  Millennial  day,  and  the  ability 
of  all  classes  to  read  and  think  intelligently  for  themselves. 
With  such  helps  more  can  be  learned  of  God's  Word  and 
plan  in  a  day  than  it  was  possible  to  learn  in  a  year  in  less  fa- 
\  ored  times.  Nor  has  there  ever  been  a  time  so  favorable  for 
Christian  effort,  or  so  spurring  to  Christian  zeal  and  a6liv- 
ity,  as  this  time  of  the  glorious  harvest  message  of  the  Lord's 
presence  and  the  glad  tidings  of  the  approaching  kingdom. 

If  we  would  travel  from  place  to  place,  to  meet  with  be- 
lievers, we  can  do  as  much  traveling  in  a  v/eek  as  Paul  could 
do  in  a  month  or  more,  and  with  much  more  comfort.  If 
we  would  preach  by  voice,  v/e  can  do  so  with  none  to  mo- 
lest or  make  us  afraid  ;  and  we  live  at  a  time  when  the  mass- 
es of  the  people  can  read  and  write,  which  only  the  very 
few  could  do  in  times  past,  and  v/hcn  the  printed  gospel  is 
cheap,  convenient,  and  often  more  effedlive  than  oral 
sermons.  The  willing  heart  can  do  far  more  thus  than 
Aquila  and  Priscilla  could  do  in  their  way  and  time  with  the 
same  amount  of  effort.  We  can  preach  with  both  the  printed 
and  the  written  page  through  the  agency  of  the  wonderful 
mail  systems  of  our  day,  to  friends  and  strangers  the  world 
over,  and  at  almost  no  cost. 

But  the  Apostle,  referring  to  the  nominal  Church  in  the 
last  days,  asserts  that  "  the  time  will  come  when  they  will 
not  efidure  sound  do6lrine."  (2  Tim.  4:  3.)  While  this  is 
true  now,  in  the  same  sense  that  it  has  been  true  for  centu- 
ries, it  is  to  have  a  more  forcible  and  clear  fulfilment  future. 
It  is  true  now  that  the  Church  nominal  will  not  endure 
preachers  who  ignore  their  creeds  and  "  preach  the  Word," 
the  '-whole  counsel  [plan]  of  God;"  but  having  ''itching 
ears"  they  love  human  speculations  on  evolution,  and  phi- 
\osophies  falsely  so  called,  rather  than,  th^  Word  of  God. 


Elias  Shall  First  Come.  259 

And  yet,  because  they  cannot  hinder  it,  they  endure  the 
sound  do6lrine  to  some  extent — to  an  extent  far  beyond 
what  Rome  in  her  palmy  days  would  have  endured. 

Just  before  the  words  we  have  here  cited,  the  Apostle 
refers  dire6lly  to  the  perilous  times  of  the  last  days  of  this 
age  (2  Tim.  3  :  1-13),  pointing  out  its  high-minded,  pleas- 
ure-loving and  good-despising  chara6leristics,  with  its  form- 
alism, covetousness,  pride  and  unthankfulness;  and  he  de- 
clares that  {in  the  Church),  Evil  men  and  leaders-astray  [from 
the  truth]  shall  grow  worse  and  worse,  deceiving  others,  and 
being  deceived  themselves  by  their  sophistries.  And  since 
the  Apostle  was  thinking  and  writing  specially  about  the 
last  days,  and  not  about  the  middle  ages,  we  are  surely 
justified  in  querying  whether  a  time  may  not  be  but  a  short 
distance  before  us,  in  these  ''last  days,"  when  sound  doc- 
trine will  not  be  e?idured  or  permitted  to  any  degree. 

While  it  is  true  now,  to  a  large  extent,  that  none  are 
permitted  to  buy  or  sell  [trade  in  the  truth]  in  the  common 
marts  or  synagogues,  except  those  who  have  the  mark  of 
the  beast  or  the  number  of  his  name  (Rev.  13  :  17),  yet  tKe 
fully  consecrated  have  learned  that  magnificent  temples  of 
fashion,  called  churches,  are  no  more  necessary  to  the 
preaching  of  the  gospel  now  than  they  Avere  in  the  days 
of  the  Apostles,  and  that  grand  organs  and  trained  choirs 
are  not  necessary  accompaniments  to  attra6l  the  atten- 
tion of  the  people  ;  for  now,  as  in  the.  early  days,  the  com- 
mon people  hear  the  gospel  gladly  on  the  street  corners, 
in  the  market  places,  through  the  mails  and  from  the  printed 
page.  The  question  is,  May  not  this  statement  of  the  Rev- 
elator  mean  still  more  than  is  at  present  experienced  ?  and, 
like  the  Apostle  Paul's  statement,  may  it  not  imply  that  a 
time  will  come,  in  the  last  days,  when  sound  do6lrine  will 
not  be  endured  at  all?  May  not  ours  in  this  respe6l  corre- 
spond somewhat  to  the  experience  of  John  the  Baptist  (the 


26o  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

type),  who  was  shut  up  in  prison  ?  In  other  words,  What  may 
we  expe6l  between  the  present  comparatively  favorable  time 
— though  it  is  not  without  its  difficulties — and  the  coming 
blessed  time  of  unhindered  righteousness?  Will  it  continue 
to  be  as  favorable  as  the  present  for  labor  in  the  vineyard — 
or  more  so,  or  less  so  ?  Let  us  notice  what  these  types  in- 
dicate ;  for  since  our  Lord  has  dire<5led  our  attention  to 
them,  whatever  we  find  in  the  life  and  experience  of  either 
Elijah  or  John  which  seems  to  fit  well  to  the  experience 
of  the  Church,  and  to  the  testimony  regarding  her  future 
earthly  course,  we  are  justified  in  recognizing  as  typical. 

Elijah  was  separated  from  earthly  scenes  by  a  chariot  of 
fire,  representative  of  the  spiritual  glory  and  exaltation 
awaiting,  at  the  end  of  the  earthly  race-course,  those  of  the 
Church  alive  and  remaining  to  the  last  days.  But  we  should 
also  remember  that  it  was  by  a  whirlwind  or  storm  that  he 
was  taken  away  ;  and  a  storm  is  the  symbol  of  trouble,  as 
much  as  the  fiery  chariot  is  a  figure  of  vi6lory  and  glorious 
escape  from  that  trouble. 

John  the  Baptist's  closing  experiences  are  still  more 
clearly  marked  by  the  trouble  feature.  Though  he  was  not 
obeyed  by  the  people  (Matt.  17  :  12),  they  for  a  short  time 
recognized  him  as  a  servant  and  prophet  of  God  (John  5  :35); 
yet  when  he  had  announced  the  presence  of  Messiah  his 
influence  soon  began  to  wane,  as  he  had  testified  it  would 
do,  saying  of  Christ,  ''He  must  increase,  but  I  must  de- 
crease." So  it  must  be  in  the  end  of  this  age :  the  work 
of  the  John  class  (the  Elijah  class)  closes  with  the  an- 
nouncement that  the  Kingdom  of  Heaven  is  at  hand,  and 
that  the  King  is  present.  This  is  now  being  done ;  and  the 
exa6l  words  of  John's  testimony  apply  with  equal  force  at 
this  time  of  the  Lord's  second  advent:  ''There  standeth 
one  among y OIL  [present]  whom  ye  know  not,"  "whose  fan 
is  in  his  hand,  and  he  will  thoroughly  purge  [cleanse]  his 


£itas  Shall  First  Come.  261 

[threshing]  floor,  and  gather  his  wheat  into  the  garner;  but 
he  will  burn  up  the  chaff  with  unquenchable  fire" — the 
great  time  of  trouble. — John  i  :  26  ;   Matt.  3:12. 

As  John  decreased — his  special  work  being  accomplished 
when  his  message  was  delivered — so  the  Church  in  the  flesh 
must  decrease  when  its  last  message  is  given,  until  the  last 
member  has  laid  down  his  consecrated  life,  and  passed  be- 
yond the  veil  into  ''glory,"  thenceforth  to  be  a  member 
of  the  glorious,  reigning  Christ.  As  John  said  that  Jesus 
must  increase,  so  now  that  the  real  kingdom  is  about  to 
be  established  we  can  confidently  say  that  the  King  is  pres- 
ent, and  that  his  kingdom  must  increase  until  it  fills  the 
earth.  And  John's  announcement  of  the  "  harvest "  work 
— the  gathering  of  the  wheat,  and  the  trouble  coming  upon 
the  chaff — also  finds  its  parallel  in  the  present  time. 

John's  liberty  was  restrained  soon  after  the  delivery  of 
his  message,  announcing  \\\q  present  0?ie  and  the  work  be- 
fore him ;  and  he  was  cast  into  prison  because  he  had  re- 
proved the  king  of  improper  union  with  a  woman  (Matt. 
14:4).  And  though  the  faithful  children  of  God  have 
often  pointed  out  that  union  between  the  Church  and  the 
civil  power  is  out  of  order,  being  in  the  Scriptures  termed 
harlotry  (Rev.  17:5),  and  though  in  a  great  measure  the 
world  has  withdrawn  from  the  churches,  the  union  still 
exists,  and  the  Scriptures  seem  to  point  out  that,  in  the  time 
of  trouble  approaching,  the  nominal  churches,  professedly 
virgins  of  Christ,  will  be  on  the  side  of  the  kings  of  the  earth, 
and  united  to  them ;  and  the  true  Church,  like  its  type,  John 
the  Baptist,  will  be  unpopular  and  restrained  of  liberty, 
because  of  faithfulness  in  opposing  and  condemning  error. 

In  John's  case  as  well  as  in  Elijah's  it  was  a  woman  that 
persecuted, — a  king  a6ling  as  her  agent  and  tool :  with  the 
true  Church  it  has  been  in  the  past  that  which  these  sym- 
bolize, and  doubtless  will  be  so  in  the  future — the  nominal 


262  The  Tim 6  is  at  Hand. 

church  represented  by  a  woman  and  civil  government  by 
a  king.  Not  only  does  prophecy  point  out  a  closer  union 
between  these  than  at  present  exists,  but  any  close  observer 
can  see  that  the  principal  lcvc7'  by  which  the  royal  aristoc- 
racy rules  the  masses  is  the  superstition  that  God  appointed 
these  ''great  men,"  though  often  both  M^eak  and  vicious, 
to  rule  over  them ;  and  that  to  rebel  against  tyranny  and 
injustice,  and  to  claim  justice,  liberty  and  equal  rights,  is 
to  oppose  God's  will.  Hence  the  tendency  of  governments 
and  churches  is  toward  open  or  secret  union  for  their  mu- 
tual welfare  in  the  coming  storm. 

Not  only  so,  but  the  coming  struggle  between  the  aris- 
tocracy and  the  masses  of  every  civilized  land  will  be  so 
peculiar,  so  unlike  any  former  experience,  that  moderate, 
conservative,  religiously-inclined  people,  fearing  the  utter 
wreck  of  society  in  chaos  and  anarchy,  will  naturally  pre- 
fer monarchy,  oppression  and  bondage  to  anything  certain 
to  be  worse.  Hence  such  will  affiliate  with  church  and 
empire,  with  wealth  and  aristocracy,  in  the  general  effort 
to  repress  and  prevent  that  irrepressible  conflict — "The 
battle  of  the  great  day  of  God  Almighty." 

Eventually,  probably  the  only  exceptions  to  this  course, 
among  the  lovers  of  peace  and  true  religion,  will  be  those 
to  whom  the  King  of  kings  is  pleased,  through  his  Word, 
to  reveal  his  plans  (John  i6 :  13),  and  who  have  full  con- 
fidence in  his  wisdom  and  love,  as  well  as  in  his  power  to 
make  all  things  work  out  according  to  his  promises.  Only 
such,  among  the  conservative,  order-loving  people,  as  see 
the  part  which  the  coming  social  revolution  must  play  in 
God's  plan,  in  removing  effete  systems  whose  day  is  past, 
and  in  preparing  the  world,  by  a  great  leveling  process,  for 
the  Millennial  reign  of  righteousness,  will  be  able  to  com- 
prehend the  situation  and  to  act  accordingly.  But  these 
will  be  misunderstood,  and  their  endeavors  to  point  out 


Etias  Shall  Pirst  Come.  263 

che  trne  state  of  the  case,  and  the  real  and  only  remedy, 
will  probably  be  interfered  with  by  those  who  do  not  see 
the  grand  outcome,  and  who,  because  unwilling  to  submit 
their  own  wills,  ideas  and  plans,  are  unable  to  see  God's 
plans.  When  repressive,  restrictive  and  coercive  measures 
are  thought  to  be  necessary,  such  measures  will  probably 
include  not  only  labor  organizations  and  the  publications 
which  advocate  their  rights  and  wrongs,  but  also  such  oth- 
ers as  point  out  the  plan  of  God,  and  the  real  cause  and 
only  remedy  for  the  great  distress  of  the  nations.  Yes, 
the  time  is  probably  not  many  years  distant,  when  repres- 
sive measures  may  be  brought  to  bear  against  every  effort 
of  the  saints  to  spread  the  good  news  of  the  coming  king- 
dom, all  on  the  plea  that  the  general  interests  and  the  pub- 
lic welfare  demand  such  a  course. 

Thus  would  be  fulfilled  the  predictions  of  the  Second 
Psalm,  and  probably  in  the  end  with  more  bitterness  than 
can  now  well  be  imagined,  though  it  has  been  partially  ful- 
filled already  upon  the  Head  of  the  body. — Acts  4 :  25-29. 

The  same  necessity  for  restricting  liberty  on  political  and 
social  questions  will  probably  be  supposed  to  apply  equally 
to  freedom  of  expression  on  religious  questions,  which 
really  lie  at  the  foundation  of  all  liberty.  It  would  not  be 
surprising  if  a  ^'strong  government,"  a  monarchy,  would 
some  day  replace  this  present  Great  Republic ;  and  it  is 
entirely  probable  that  one  common  standard  of  religious 
belief  will  be  deemed  expedient  and  will  be  promulgated, 
to  teach  outside  of  Avhich  will  be  treated  and  punished 
as  a  political  offense.  Such  a  persecution  would  not  only 
furnish,  in  the  end  or  harvest  of  this  age,  another  parallel 
to  the  harvest  of  the  Jewish  age  (A6ls  4 :  10-13,  23-30  ;  5  : 
29-41 ;  II  :  19),  but  would  also  give  a  wider  and  deeper 
significance  to  the  words  of  the  Apostles  Paul  and  John 
(2  Tim.  4:3;  Rev.  13:  17),  and  to  the  typical  illustrations  of 


264  The   Tiine  is  at  Hand, 

the  close  of  the  earthly  career  of  the  true  Church,  as  rep- 
resented in  Elijah's  whirlwind  departure  and  John  the 
Baptist's  imprisonment  and  beheading. 

Two  lessons  we  may  draw  from  this  to  advantage,  wheth- 
er future  developments  shall  prove  that  we  have  read  the 
prophetic  testimony  correctly  or  incorrectly ;  and  they  are 
these :  First,  we  should  be  so  prepared,  so  armed  and  so 
thoroughly  furnished  with  the  invincible  truth,  that  perse- 
cution would  move  us  only  to  greater  zeal,  and  not  lead  us 
through  surprise  or  fear  to  lower  our  standard,  nor  to  sur- 
render when  the  kings  of  the  earth  stand  up,  and,  with  the 
religious  rulers  of  the  people,  are  gathered  against  us,  and 
against  the  truths  to  which  God  has  granted  us  the  privilege 
of  witnessing,  as  his  servants  and  ambassadors,  (i  John  3:1.) 
Second,  such  refleiStions  relative  to  the  future,  contrasted 
with  the  privileges  of  the  present,  should  serve  to  stimulate 
every  consecrated  child  of  God  to  make  diligent  use  of  the 
present  grand  harvest  opportunities  and  privileges,  remem- 
bering that  *'  he  that  reapeth  receiveth  wages,"  as  truly  as 
he  that  planted  and  watered,  and  that  now  is  pre-eminently 
a  time  for  gathering  fruit  unto  eternal  life.  The  little  quiet 
of  the  present  favorable  time,  with  its  greater  liberties  and 
advantages  in  every  way,  is  divinely  arranged  in  order  to 
the  sea.l!ng  of  the  true  servants  of  God  in  their  foreheads 
(intellectually,  with  the  truth). — Rev.  7:3. 
"Let  the  'little  while'  between 
In  its  golden  light  be  seen." 

The  Master  saith  :  ''Work  while  it  is  called  day ;  for  the 
n^'ght  Cometh,  when  no  man  can  work."  "  Labor  not  for 
the  meat  that  perisheth,  but  for  that  which  endureth  unto 
everlasting  life." 

So,  then,  in  the  present  due  time,  we  see  that  Elijah  the 
prophet  came,  as  foretold,  before  the  great  and  notable  day 
of  the  Lord.     And  we  hear  his  closing  testimony,  like  that 


EUas  Shall  First  Come.  265 

of  John,  saying,  ''There  standeth  one  among  you  whom 
ye  know  not" — whose  fan  is  in  his  hand,  and  he  will  thor- 
oughly cleanse  his  threshing-floor  :  he  will  gather  his  wheat 
into  the  garner,  and  burn  up  the  tares  [as  tares — not  as 
men]  with  unquenchable  fire  in  the  great  time  of  trouble — 
the  curse,  which  must  needs  come  to  prepare  the  way  of 
the  Great  King  of  kings.  He  must  increase,  but  the  Eli- 
jah must  decrease  and  finally  be  entirely  restrained.  Not 
only  do  we  hear  this  testimony  from  a  few  of  the  Elijah 
class  now,  but  every  one  who  is  of  the  Elijah  class  will  ere 
long  be  found  proclaiming  this  message  and  engaging  in 
the  Elijah  work.  Such  only  as  are  thus  faithful  will  be  of 
the  glorified  Elijah,  and  permitted  to  share  in  the  work  of 
restitution  of  all  things  which,  during  the  Millennium,  will 
be  a  grand  success.  A  depth  of  significance  is  found  in  the 
meaning  of  the  name  Elijah.  It  signifies  God  [mighty- 
one]  of  Jehovah.  It  is  thus  a  fitting  name  for  the  Lord's 
Anointed,  whose  grand  work  will  be  to  restore  all  things 
which  God  hath  spoken  by  the  mouth  of  all  his  holy  proph- 
ets since  the  world  began. 

Concluding  this  subject,  we  notice  briefly  the  fa6l  that 
in  the  close  of  the  Prophet  Elijah's  career  he  called  Elisha, 
who,  after  sacrificing,  left  all  and  followed  with  Elijah,  and 
became  his  successor  as  prophet  when  Elijah  was  taken 
away  in  the  whirlwind — receiving  his  mantle  of  authority 
and  a  large  degree  of  his  spirit  and  power,  (i  Kings  19  : 
16.)  And  since  Elijah  represented  the  Body  of  Christ  in 
the  flesh — the  overcoming  Church,  a  company,  a  number 
— it  is  but  reasonable  that  we  should  conclude  that  Elisha 
represented  a  class  also ;  a  class  which  will  come  into  deep 
sympathy  with  the  Elijah  class,  and  follow  the  Lord's  lead- 
ing with  it ;  and  yet  a  class  which  will  not  be  expecting 
to  be  glorified.  These  will  be  separated,  by  the  ''whirl- 
wind" of  trouble,  from  the  Elijah  class,  yet  nevertheless 


266  The  Time  is  at  Hand, 

will  retain  an  interest  and  will  receive  a  blessing.  After 
Elijah  was  gone,  Elisha  became  bold  and  powerful,  so  that 
the  theologians  of  that  day  ("sons  of  the  prophets")  said, 
The  spirit  of  Elijah  rests  upon  Elisha  now  ! 

The  meaning  of  the  name  Elisha  is  mighty  deliverer,  and 
the  career  of  Elisha  was  one  of  restitution  work.  This 
doubtless  foreshadows  a  work  by  a  class  which  in  the  future 
will  be  the  active  agents  among  men  in  carrying  on  the  res- 
titution work  in  the  power  of  the  then  glorified  Church. 
Among  other  wonderful  works,  Elisha  healed  the  waters,  so 
that  there  should  not  be  thence  any  more  death  or  barren 
land ;  he  increased  the  poor  widow's  oil  to  cancel  her  debt ; 
he  raised  the  Shunamite's  son  to  life;  and  when  there  was 
famine  in  the  land,  and  the  mess  of  pottage  for  the  theolo- 
gians  (''sons  of  the  prophets")  was  found  to  be  poisoned,  so 
that  none  could  eat  of  it,  Elisha  healed  it  and  made  it  whole- 
some for  food.  He  caused  bread  sufficient  for  only  a  few 
to  more  than  supply  a  large  number.  He  healed  the  lep- 
rosy of  Naaman.  He  was  also  God's  agent  in  the  anoint- 
ing of  Jehu,  at  whose  hands,  according  to  the  word  of  the 
Lord  by  Elijah,  the  royal  family  of  Ahab,  including  Jezebel, 
was  entirely  cut  off,  and  all  her  priests  as  well. — 2  Kings 
2  :  19-22  ;  4  :  1-7,  18-44  ;  5  :  i-^o  '>  9  •  ^-37  ;  10  :  28. 

It  is  not  difficult  to  trace  in  these  works  of  Elisha  what 
bears  a  close  resemblance  to  the  very  restitution  work  which 
may  be  expected  ere  long,  when  the  waters  of  truth  shall 
no  longer  be  brackish  with  error,  being  healed  at  the  very 
spring  by  a  clearer  understanding  of  the  Word  of  God ; 
when  the  poor  shall  be  helped  to  secure  the  oil  of  joy  for 
the  spirit  of  heaviness ;  when  the  dead  shall  be  restored ; 
when  in  the  famine  the  food  (truth)  shall  be  made  whole- 
some and  plentiful ;  and  when  the  powers  and  systems  rep- 
resented by  Ahab  and  Jezebel,  and  all  who  unite  with  them 
against  the  Lord,  shall  be  fully  and  finally  overthrown. 


CHAPTER  IX. 

THE  MAN  OF  SIN— ANTICHRIST. 

Aktichrist  Must  be  Developed,  Revealed  and  Smitten  Before  the  Day  of 
THE  Lord.— A  Contrary  View  of  This  Subject  Considered.— Prophetic 
Delineation.— Antichrist's  Birth.— His  Rapid  Development.— The  His- 
toric Picture  and  the  Bible  Description  Agree. — His  Kingdom  a  Coun- 
terfeit.— His  Head  and  Mouth  Notable.— His  Great  Swelling  Words  of 
Blasphemy.— His  Blasphemous  Teachings.— His  Wearing  Out  of  the 
Saints  of  the  Most  High.— His  Millennial  Reign.— Antichrist  Smitten 
with  the  Sword  of  the  Spirit. — His  Final  Struggle  and  End. 

"  Let  no  man  deceive  you  by  any  means ;  for  that  day  shall  not  come, 
except  there  come  a  falling  away  first,  and  that  Man  of  Sin  be  revealed, 
the  Son  of  Perdition.'' — 2  Thes,  2  :  3. 

TN  VIEW  of  these  pointed  words  of  the  Apostle  Paul, 
^  showing  that  a  chara6ter  which  he  designates  "The  Man 
of  Sin  must  precede  the  coming  of  the  Day  of  the  Lord, 
which  we  have  proved  has  already  begun  to  dawn,  it  is  im- 
portant that  we  look  about,  to  see  if  such  a  chara6ter  has 
yet  appeared.  For  if  such  a  charaaer  as  Paul  and  the 
other  apostles  so  carefully  describe  has  not  yet  come,  the 
above  words  should  be  understood  as  Paul's  veto  to  all  the 
other  testimony  concerning  the  Lord's  presence  and  the 
setting  up  of  his  Kingdom  now.  And  that  veto  must  stand 
as  an  unanswerable  argument  until  this  Man  of  Sin  shall 
be  recognized,  corresponding  in  every  particular  to  the 
prophetic  description. 

It  is  clearly  stated,  not  only  that  this  Man  of  Sin  must 
first  rise,  but  that  he  must  develop  and  prosper,  before  the 

267 


268  The   Time  is  at  Jiand. 

Day  of  the  Lord  comes.  Before  Christ's  day  the  prosperity 
and  influence  of  this  power  will  have  reached  their  climax 
and  will  be  on  the  decline ;  and  it  is  to  be  by  the  bright 
shining  of  the  Lord's  presence  at  his  second  advent  that 
this  Man  of  Sin  shall  be  utterly  destroyed.  These  fore- 
told circumstances  we  must  observe,  in  order  to  see  whether 
this  caution  to  the  Church  in  Paul's  day  is  still  applicable 
in  our  day.  Now,  after  eighteen  centuries,  the  claim  is 
again  made  that  the  day  of  Christ  has  come ;  and  the  im- 
portant question  arises,  Does  anything  which  Paul  said  in 
corre6ting  the  error  of  the  Thessalonians  stand  as  an  ob- 
jet5lion  to  this  claim  now  ? 

From  the  Apostle's  exhortations  to  the  Church,  to  watch 
for  the  Lord's  return,  taking  heed  to  the  sure  word  of  proph- 
ecy, and  from  his  care  in  pointing  out  the  signs  of  Christ's 
presence,  the  chara6ler  of  his  work  at  that  time,  etc.,  it  is 
evident  that  he  was  quite  as  anxious  that  the  Church 
should  be  able  to  recognize  the  Lord's  presence  when  he 
should  come,  as  that  they  should  not  be  deceived  into  the 
error  that  he  had  come,  before  the  time  of  his  presence. 
A  fall  into  the  latter  error,  in  the  early  part  of  the  age, 
exposed  those  who  embraced  it  to  the  deceptions  of  the 
Antichrist  principle  which  was  even  then  working ;  while  a 
failure  to  recognize  the  Day  of  the  Lord,  and  his  presence 
in  the  day  when  his  presence  is  due,  exposes  those  failing 
to  recognize  him  to  the  continued  deceptions  and  false 
do6lrines  of  Antichrist,  and  blinds  them  to  the  grand 
truths  and  special  privileges  of  this  day.  Hence  the  Apos- 
tle's anxiety  for  the  Church  at  both  ends  of  the  age,  and 
his  warning — "Let  no  man  deceive  you  by  any  means." 
Hence  also  the  exa6l  description  of  the  Man  of  Sin,  in 
order  that  he  might  be  recognized  in  his  time. 

While  Christians  in  this  end  of  the  age  are  inclined  to 
forget  even  the  promise  of  the  Lord's  return,  and,  when 


The  Man  of  Sin.  269 

they  do  remember  it,  to  think  of  it  only  with  dread  and 
fearful  forebodings,  the  early  Church  looked  for  it  anx- 
iously, and  with  joyful  anticipation,  as  the  fruition  of  all 
its  hopes,  the  reward  of  all  its  faithfulness  and  the  end  of 
all  its  sorrows.  Consequently,  the  believers  of  that  day 
were  ready  to  hearken  diligently  to  any  teaching  which 
claimed  that  the  Day  of  the  Lord  was  either  very  near  or 
present ;  and  hence  they  were  in  danger  of  being  deceived 
on  this  point  unless  they  were  careful  students  of  the  teach- 
ings of  the  apostles  on  the  subject. 

The  Church  at  Thessalonica,  impressed  with  the  errone- 
ous teachings  of  some,  to  the  effe6l  that  the  Lord  had  come 
again,  and  that  they  w^ere  living  in  his  day,  evidently  sup- 
posed that  the  idea  was  in  harmony  "with  Paul's  teaching 
in  his  first  epistle  to  them,  wherein  he  said  (i  Thes.  5  :  1-5) 
that  the  Day  of  the  Lord  would  steal  on  quietly  and  unob- 
servedly,  as  a  thief  in  the  night,  and  that,  though  others 
would  be  in  it  unawares,  the  saints  would  be  in  the  light 
concerning  it.  Learning  of  the  serious  error  into  which 
they  had  fallen,  of  supposing  the  day  of  the  Lord's  pres- 
ence to  have  already  come,  Paul  wrote  them  a  second  epis- 
tle, the  central  thought  of  which  was  the  corre6lion  of  this 
error.  He  says: — "Now  we  beseech  you,  brethren,  con- 
cerning the  coming  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  and  our  gath- 
ering together  unto  him,  that  ye  be  not  readily  agitated  in 
mind  nor  troubled ;  neither  by  spirit,  neither  by  word, 
neither  by  letter  as  from  us,  as  though  the  Day  of  the  Lord 
\enestenii'\  is  present.  Let  no  man  delude  you,  by  any 
means  ;  because  the  falling  away  [apostasy]  must  first  come, 
and  there  must  be  revealed  that  Man  of  Sin,  the  Son  of 
Destruction,  the  Opposer,  exalting  himself  above  all  being 
called  a  god  [mighty  ruler]  or  that  receives  homage — so  as 
to  seat  himself  in  the  Temple  of  God,  openly  displaying 
himself  that  he  is  a  god.     Remember  ye  not  that  while  I 


270  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

was  yet  with  you  I  told  you  these  things  ?  And  now  ye 
know  what  interposes,  in  order  that  he  [Christ]  may  be 
revealed  in  his  own  [due]  season.  But  insubordination  [to 
Christ]  is  already  working,  only  as  a  secret  thing,  until  the 
now  hindering  one  shall  be  out  of  the  way ;  and  tlien  shall 
that  insubordinate  one  be  revealed,  whom  the  Lord  shall 
kill  with  the  spirit  of  his  mouth  and  annihilate  by  the 
bright  shining  of  his  \_parousia\  presence ^  Paul  could 
write  thus  positively  of  the  development  of  the  Man  of  Sin 
before  the  Day  of  the  Lord,  because  of  his  study  of  Dan- 
iel's prophecy,  to  which  our  Lord  also  referred  (Matt.  24 : 
15);  and  probably  because  Paul  himself,  in  his  ''visions 
and  revelations,"  had  been  shown  the  great  havoc  which 
this  chara6ter  would  work  in  the  Church. 

It  should  be  observed  that  Paul  did  not  use  arguments 
such  as  some  to-day  are  disposed  to  use  against  the  claim 
that  the  day  of  the  Lord  has  begun.  He  did  not  say,  O 
foolish  Thessalonians,  do  ye  not  know  that  when  Christ 
comes  your  eyes  shall  behold  him,  and  your  ears  shall  hear 
a  dreadful  sound  o-f  the  trump  of  God  ?  and  that  you  will 
have  further  proof  of  it  in  the  reeling  tombstones  and  the 
rising  saints  ?  Is  it  not  evident  that  if  such  a  criticism  had 
been  proper,  Paul  would  have  been  quick  to  avail  himself 
of  an  argument  so  simple  and  so  easily  grasped?  And 
moreover,  is  not  the  fact  that  he  did  not  use  this  argument 
a  proof  that  such  an  argument  is  not,  and  could  not  be, 
founded  on  the  truth  ? 

From  the  fa6l  that  Paul,  in  his  energetic  effort  to  corre6l 
their  error,  offered  but  this  one  obje<5lion  to  their  claim,  he 
thereby  evidently  endorsed  as  corre6l  their  general  ideas  of 
the  Day  of  the  Lord — that  it  could  be  commenced  while 
many  might  be  in  ignorance  of  it,  that  it  could  come  with- 
out outward  demonstration  to  mark  it.  But  the  only  ground 
of  his  obje(5tiQn  was,  that  there  must  first  come  a  falling 


Tlie  Man  of  Sin.  271 

away,  and,  in  consequence  of  that  falling  away,  the  devel- 
opment of  the  Man  of  Sin — which,  whatever  it  may  be 
(whether  a  single  individual,  or  a  great  Antichrist  system 
which  he  thus  personifies),  must  rise,  flourish  and  begin  to 
decline — before  the  day  of  the  Lord's  presence.  So,  then, 
if  this  one  obje6lion  which  Paul  offered  be  no  longer  in  the 
way — if  we  can  clearly  see  a  charadler  in  actual  existence 
whose  history  corresponds  in  every  particular  to  the  pro- 
phetic description  of  the  Man  of  Sin,  from  the  beginning 
of  his  existence  down  to  the  present  time — then  Paul's  ob- 
je6lion,  which  was  well  taken  in  his  day,  and  his  only  one, 
is  no  longer  a  valid  obje^lion  against  the  present  claim 
that  we  are  living  in  the  Day  of  the  Lord,  the  day  of  the 
Lord's  presence.  And,  further,  if  the  Man  of  Sin  can  be 
readily  distinguished,  if  his  rise,  development  and  decline 
are  clearly  seen,  then  this  fa6l  becomes  another  corrobora- 
tive proof  of  the  teaching  of  the  preceding  chapters,  which 
show  that  we  are  now  in  the  Day  of  the  Lord. 

HIS    PROPHETIC    DELINEATION. 

The  student  of  prophecy  will  find  that  the  Man  of  Sin 
is  distin6lly  noted  throughout  the  sacred  writings,  not  only 
by  giving  a  clear  description  of  his  chara6ler,  but  also  by 
showing  the  times  and  places  of  his  beginning,  prosperity 
and  decline. 

This  chara6ler  is  very  forcibly  delineated  even  in  the 
names  applied  to  it  by  the  inspired  writers.  Paul  calls  it 
''That  Wicked  One,"  ''The  Man  of  Sin,"  "The  Mystery 
of  Iniquity,"  "The  Antichrist,"  and  "The  Son  of  Perdi- 
tion;" the  Prophet  Daniel  calls  it  "  The  Abomination  that 
maketh  desolate"  (Dan.  11  :  31  ;  12:  11);  and  our  Lord 
refers  to  the  same  chara6ter  as  "The  Abomination  of  Des- 
olation, spoken  of  by  Daniel  the  prophet  "  (Matt.  24  :  15), 
and  again  as  a  "Beast"  (Rev,  13  :  1-8).     Thi§  same  char- 


272  The   Time  is  at  Hand- 

adler  was  also  prefigured  by  a  little  horn,  or  power,  out  of 
a  terrible  beast  that  Daniel  saw  in  his  prophetic  vision, 
which  had  eyes,  and  a  mouth  that  spoke  great  things,  and 
which  prospered  and  made  war  with  the  saints,  and  prevailed 
against  them.  (Dan.  7  :  8,  21.)  John  also  saw  and  warned 
the  Church  against  this  chara6ler,  saying,  "Ye  have  heard 
that  Antichrist  shall  come."  He  then  advises  how  to  es- 
cape Antichrist's  influence,  (i  John  2  :  18-27.)  The  book 
of  Revelation,  too,  is  in  large  part  a  detailed  symbolic 
prophecy  concerning  this  same  Antichrist — though  this  we 
shall  merely  glance  at  here,  leaving  its  more  particular  ex- 
amination for  a  succeeding  volume. 

These  various  appellations  and  brief  descriptions  indicate 
a  base,  subtle,  hypocritical,  deceptive,  tyrannical  and  cruel 
chara6ler,  developed  in  the  midst  of  the  Christian  Church  ; 
at  first  creeping  in  and  up  very  gradually,  then  rapidly  as- 
cending in  power  and  influence  until  it  reaches  the  very 
pinnacle  of  earthly  power,  wealth  and  glory — meanwhile 
exerting  its  influence  against  the  truth,  and  against  the 
saints,  and  for  its  own  aggrandizement,  claiming,  to  the 
last,  peculiar  sandtity  and  authority  and  power  from 
God. 

In  this  chapter  we  purpose  to  show  that  this  Man  of  Sin 
is  a  system,  and  not  a  single  individual,  as  many  seem  to 
infer ;  that  as  the  Christ  consists  of  the  true  Lord  and  the 
true  Church,  so  Antichrist  is  a  counterfeit  system  consisting 
of  a  false  lord  and  an  apostate  church,  which  for  a  time  is 
permitted  to  misrepresent  the  truth,  to  pra6tice  deceit  and 
to  counterfeit  the  authority  and  future  reign  of  the  true 
Lord  and  his  Church,  and  to  intoxicate  the  nations  with 
false  claims  and  assumptions. 

We  hope  to  prove,  to  the  satisfa6lion  of  every  conscien- 
tious reader,  that  this  great  apostasy  or  falling  away  men- 
tioned by  Paul  has  come,  and  that  this  Man  of  Sin  has  been 


The  Man  of  Si?i.  27^ 

developed,  has  sat "  in  the  temple  of  God"  (the  real,  not  the 
typical),  has  fulfilled  all  the  predictions  of  the  apostles  and 
prophets  concerning  his  chara6ter,  work,  etc.,  has  been  re- 
vealed, and  now,  since  A.  D.  1799,  is  being  consumed  by 
the  spirit  of  the  Lord's  mouth  (the  truth),  and  will  be  ut- 
terly destroyed  during  this  day  of  the  Lord's  wrath  and  rev- 
elation with  flaming  fire  of  retribution,  already  beginning. 

Without  any  desire  to  treat  lightly  the  opinions  of  others, 
we  nevertheless  feel  it  necessary  to  point  out  to  the  reader  a 
few  of  the  absurdities  connedled  with  the  common  view  con- 
cerning Antichrist,  that  thereby  the  dignity  and  reasonable- 
ness of  the  truth  on  this  subje6l  may  be  properly  estimated, 
in  contrast  with  the  narrow  claim  that  all  which  the  Scrip  'es 
predial  concerning  this  chara6ler  will  be  accomplishet^  oy 
some  one,  literal  man.  This  man,  it  is  claimed,  will  so  charm 
the  whole  world  that  in  a  few  short  years  he  will  secure  to 
himself  the  homage  and  worship  of  all  men,  who  will  be  so 
easily  imposed  upon  as  to  suppose  this  man  to  be  God,  and, 
in  a  rebuilt  Jewish  temple,  to  worship  him  as  the  Almighty 
Jehovah.  All  this  is  to  be  done  at  lightning  speed, — three 
and  a  half  years,  say  they,  misinterpreting  the  symbolic 
time,  even  as  they  misinterpret  the  symbolic  ''man." 

Tales  of  fi(5lion  and  the  most  absurd  imaginations  of  child- 
hood furnish  no  parallel  to  the  extreme  views  of  some  of 
God's  dear  children  who  are  stumbling  over  a  ///<?r^/ inter- 
pretation of  Paul's  language,  and  thereby  blinding  them- 
selves and  others  to  many  precious  truths,  which,  because 
of  error  on  this  subje6l,  they  are  unprepared  to  see  in  an 
unprejudiced  light.  No  matter  how  much  we  may  sympa- 
thize with  them,  their  "  blind  faith"  forces  a  smile  as  they 
seriously  tell  over  the  various  symbols  of  Revelation  which 
they  do  not  understand,  misapplying  them  literally  to  their 
wonderful  ma?z.  In  this,  the  most  skeptical  age  the  world 
has  ever  known,  he  will,  they  claim,  in  the  short  space  of 


2  74  ^^^^  Time  is  at  Hand. 

three  and  a  half  years,  have  the  whole  world  at  his  feet, 
worshiping  him  as  God,  while  the  Caesars,  Alexander,  Na- 
poleon, Mahomet  and  others  sailed  through  bloody  seas  and 
spent  many  times  three  and  a  half  years,  without  accomplish- 
ing the  one  thousandth  part  of  what  is  claimed  for  this  vian. 

And  yet  those  conquerors  had  all  the  advantages  of  dense 
ignorance  and  superstition  to  aid  them,  while  to-day  we 
live  under  conditions  most  unfavorable  to  such  a  develop- 
ment of  deceit  and  fraud  :  in  a  day  when  every  hidden  thing 
is  being  manifested  as'  never  before  ;  in  a  day  when  fraud 
of  the  sort  claimed  is  too  preposterous  and  ridiculous  for 
consideration.  Indeed,  the  tendency  of  our  day  is  toward 
a  lack  of  respe6l  for  men,  no  matter  how  good,  talented 
and  able,  or  what  offices  of  trust  and  authority  they  may 
occupy.  To  such  an  extent  is  this  true,  as  never  before, 
that  it  is  a  thousand  times  more  likely  that  the  whole  world 
will  deny  that  there  is  any  God,  than  that  they  will  ever 
worship   a  fellow  human  being  as  the  Almighty  God. 

One  great  obstacle  to  many,  in  considering  this  subjedl, 
is  the  contra6led  idea  generally  entertained  of  the  mean- 
ing of  the  word  god.  They  fail  to  note  that  the  Greek 
theos  {god')  does  not  invariably  refer  to  Jehovah.  It  signifies 
a  mighty  one,  a  ruler,  and  especially  a  religious  or  sacerdotal 
ruler.  In  the  New  Testament,  theos  is  seldom  used  except 
in  referring  to  Jehovah,  because,  in  their  d'scourses,  the 
apostles  spoke  rarely  and  little  of  the  false  systems  of  relig- 
ion, and  hence  seldom  noticed  their  sacred  rulers  or  gods ; 
yet  in  the  following  texts  the  word  god  (theos)  is  used  to 
refer  to  others  than  the  one  supreme  being,  Jehovah — viz. : 
John  10:34,35  ;  Aas  7:40,  43;   :^7:23;   i  Cor.  8:5. 

Recognizing  the  breadth  of  the  Greek  word  theos,  it  will 
be  seen  at  once  that  the  Apostle's  statement  concerning 
Antichrist — that  he  will  seat  himself  in  the  temple  of 
God,  showing  himself  to  be  a  god — does  not  of  necessity 


The  Man  of  Sin.  275 

mean  that  Antichrist  v/ill  attempt  to  exalt  himself  above 
Jehovah,  nor  even  that  he  will  attempt  to  take  Jehovah's 
place.  It  simply  implies  that  this  one  will  exhibit  himself 
as  a  religious  ruler,  claiming  and  exercising  authority  over 
and  above  all  other  religious  rulers,  even  to  the  extent  of 
exalting  himself  in  the  Church,  which  is  the  true  Temple  of 
God,  and  there  claiming  and  exercising  lordly  authority 
as  its  chief  or  authorized  ruler.  Wherever  in  the  Greek  the 
word  thcos  is  used  in  any  sentence  where  its  meaning  would 
be  ambiguous,  it  then  is  preceded  by  the  Greek  article,  if  it  re- 
fers to  Jehovah;  as  if  in  English  we  vrere  to  say  the  God.  In  the 
texts  above,  Avhich  refer  to  other goA?,,  and  in  this  text  (2  Thes. 
2:4),  which  refers  to  Antichrist,  there  is  no  such  emphasis. 

With  this  seen  clearly,  a  great  stumbling-block  is  removed, 
and  the  mind  is  prepared  to  look  for  the  right  things  as  ful- 
filments of  this  predi6lion  :  not  for  an  Antichrist  claiming 
to  be  Jehovah  and  demanding  worship  as  such,  but  for  one 
claiming  to  be  the  chief,  supreme  religious  teacher  in  the 
Church;  who  thus  attempts  the  usurpation  o£«.l;he  authority 
of  Christ,  the  divinely  appointed  Head,  Lord  and  Teacher. 

Strangely  enough,  too,  they  who  take  this  literal  view  of 
the  Man  of  Sin  are  generally  those  who  are  believers  in  the 
Lord's  premillennial  coming,  who  are  looking  for  and  ex- 
pedling  the  Lord  to  come  ''at  any  inoine7it  7iow.'"  Why 
cannot  all  see  the  Apostle's  meaning,  when  he  positively 
declares  that  the  Day  of  the  Lord  (the  Day  of  his  presence) 
cannot  come  and  should  not  be  expe6ted  until  after  the 
Man  of  Sin  has  been  revealed?  It  required  over  forty  years 
to  build  the  former  Jewish  temple,  and  it  would  surely  re- 
quire at  least  ten  to  twenty  years  to  build,  with  more  than 
former  magnificence,  the  new  temple  at  Jerusalem,  where 
they  expe6t  a  literal  Man  of  Sin  to  be  installed  and  wor- 
shiped as  God.  Why  then  should  those  who  believe  thus 
expe6l  the  Lord  to  come  at  any  moment  now  ?     Such  a  view 


276  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

is  out  of  harmony  with  reason  as  well  as  with  the  Apostle's 
prophecy.  Consistency  demands  that  they  should  either 
give  up  looking  for  the  Lord  at  any  moment,  or  else  give 
up  their  expe<5lation  of  a  future  Man  of  Sin  ;  for  the  Day 
of  the  Lord's  presence  cannot  come  until  the  falling  away 
(the  apostasy)  has  taken  place,  and  until  the  Man  of  Sin 
has  been  developed  and  revealed  out  of  that  apostasy. 

But  when  we  get  a  corre6t  view  of  the  Apostle's  words, 
together  with  corre6l  ideas  of  the  majmer  of  the  Lord's 
coming,  we  find  no  such  discrepancies  and  contradidlions, 
but  a  convincing  harmony  and  fitness.  And  such  a  view 
we  now  present.     Its  Scripturalness  the  reader  must  prove. 

The  various  titles  applied  to  this  system  are  evidently 
symbolic.  They  do  not  refer  as  names  to  a  single  individ- 
ual, but  as  chara6ter  delineations  to  a  corrupt  religious  and 
civil  combination,  developed  within  the  nominal  Christian 
church,  which,  by  its  subtle  opposition  to  Christ,  the  Head, 
and  his  true  Church,  his  body,  well  earns  the  name  Anti- 
christ. Such  a  system  could  fulfil  all  the  predi(5lions  made 
concerning  the  Antichrist,  or  Man  of  Sin,  though  an  in- 
dividual could  not.  It  is  evident,  moreover,  that  this  Anti- 
christ system  is  not  one  of  the  heathen  systems  of  religion, 
such  as  Mohammedanism  or  Brahminism  ;  for  the  Christian 
Church  has  never  been  under  the  control  of  any  such  sys- 
tem, nor  did  any  of  these  systems  originate  in  the  Christian 
Church.  They  now  are,  and  always  have  been,  independ- 
ent of  the  Christian  Church. 

The  system  which  fully  answers  the  description  given  by 
inspiration  must  be  professedly  Christian,  and  must  con- 
tain a  large  majority  of  those  who  claim  to  be  Christians. 
And  it  must  be  one  having  its  start  as  an  apostasy,  or  fall- 
ing away  from  the  true  Christian  faith — an  apostasy,  too, 
which  was  secret  and  stealthy,  until  circumstances  favored  its 
assumption  of  power.   Its  stealthy  beginning  was  in  the  days 


Tlie  Man  of  Sin.  277 

tyf  the  apostles, — in  the  desire  of  some  teachers  to  be  greatest. 

We  need  not  look  long  to  find  a  chara6ter  fitting  all  the 
requirements  perfectly  ;  one  whose  record,  written  by  secu- 
lar historians  as  well  as  by  its  own  deluded  servants,  we 
shall  see  agrees  exadlly  with  the  prophetic  delineations  of 
Antichrist.  But  when  we  state  that  the  one  and  only  sys- 
tem whose  history  fits  these  prophecies  is  Papacy,  let  no 
one  misunderstand  us  to  mean  that  every  Roman  Catholic 
is  a  man  of  sin  ;  nor  that  the  priests,  nor  even  the  popes  of 
the  Church  of  Rome,  are,  or  have  been,  the  Antichrist.  No 
7nan  is  "  the  Antichrist,"  "  the  Man  of  Sin,"  described  in 
prophecy.  Popes,  bishops  and  others  are  at  most  only 
parts  or  members  of  the  Antichrist  system,  even  as  all  of 
the  Royal  Priests  are  only  members  of  the  true  Christ, 
under  Jesus  their  head,  and  in  the  same  manner  that  these 
in  their  present  condition  are  together  the  antitypical 
Elijah,  though  no  one  of  them  is  the  Elijah  or  the  Christ 
foretold.  Notice,  further,  that  the  Church  of  Rome  as  an 
ecclesiastical  system  only  is  not  the  ^'  Ma7i  of  Sin,"  and 
is  never  presented  under  any  figure  of  a  7nafi.  On  the 
contrary,  a  7voinan  is  always  the  symbol  used  for  a  church 
separate  from  its  head  and  lord.  The  true  Church  is  sym- 
bolized by  a  "chaste  virgin,"  while  the  apostate  church, 
which  has  fallen  away  from  primitive  purity  and  fidelity  to 
the  Lord,  is  symbolically  called  "a  harlot."  As  the  true 
"virgin"  Church  continues  to  be  such  to  the  end  of  the 
age,  when  she  is  to  be  united  to  her  Lord  and  take  his 
name — Christ — so  the  apostate  church  was  not  the  Anti- 
christ, or  Man  of  Sin,  until  she  united  with  her  lord  and 
head,  the  pope,  the  claimed  vicegerent  of  Christ,  and  be- 
came a  religious  empire,  falsely  styled  Christendom, — which 
signifies  Christ's  Kingdom. 

Papacy  is  the  name  of  this  false  kingdom  ;  and  it  was  built 
upon  a  misapplied  truth — the  truth  that  the  Church  is  called 


278  The   Time  is  at  Band. 

to  be  kings  and  priests  unto  God  and  to  reign  on  the  earth. 
But  the  time  for  reigning  had  not  yet  come :  the  Gospel 
age  was  not  appointed  for  that  purpose,  but  for  the  selec- 
tion, development,  discipline,  humiliation  and  sacrifice 
of  the  Church,  following  in  the  foot-prints  of  her  Lord 
and  patiently  waiting  and  enduring  until  the  time  ap- 
pointed for  the  promised  exaltation  and  glorious  reign — 
the  Millennial  age. 

The  Lord  foresaw  that  nominal  Christianity  would 
spread  over  the  world,  and  that,  becoming  popular,  it  would 
be  embraced  by  many  who  would  appreciate  the  form  with- 
out entering  into  the  spirit  of  its  institution.  He  foresaw  that 
as  numbers  of  this  sort  would  identify  themselves  with  the 
Church,  the  worldly  spirit,  which  is  the  opposite  of  the 
spirit  of  self-denial  and  self-sacrifice,  would  come  in  with 
them ;  that  selfishness  and  a  desire  to  be  great  and  to  rule, 
thus  coming  in,  would  not  have  long  to  wait  until  they 
could  seize  an  opportunity;  and  that  thus  the  Church 
would  seek  to  dominate  the  world  before  the  time — or, 
rather,  that  the  worldly  element  which  would  enter  the 
Church  would  make  its  influence  felt,  and  in  the  7iame  of 
the  true  Church  would  grasp  the  civil  power  of  earth  which 
God  had  given  over  to  the  Gentiles,  and  which  cannot  pass 
fully  into  the  hands  of  the  true  Church  until  the  close  of 
the  Times  of  the  Gentiles,  A.  D.  1914. 

And  thus  it  a6lually  transpired :  the  nominal  church  be- 
gan to  fall  away  as  it  increased  in  numbers  under  the  teach- 
ing and  example  of  ambitious  men  whose  ideas  grew  more 
and  more  favorable  to  the  power  and  worldly  influence 
which  numbers  and  wealth  brought  with  them.  Gradually 
the  spirit  of  the  Church  became  worldly,  and  the  things  of 
the  world  were  coveted.  The  suggestion  of  ambition  was, — 
If  the  great  Roman  Empire,  with  all  its  power  and  in- 
fluence, its  armies  and  wealth,  were  only  to  support  the 


The  Man  of  Sin.  279 

Church,  how  honorable  and  noble  it  would  then  be  to  be  a 
Christian  !  How  speedily  then  would  heathen  persecu- 
tions cease  !  Then  it  would  be  in  our  power  not  only  to 
overawe  them,  but  to  compel  their  adherence  to  the  Church 
and  cross  and  name  of  Christ.  They  probably  reasoned 
further,  It  evidently  is  not  God's  design  that  the  Church 
should  forever  be  subje6t  to  the  world,  and  persecuted  by  it  : 
the  Apostle's  words,  ''Know  ye  not  that  the  saints  shall 
judge  the  world?"  as  well  as  our  Lord's  promises  that  we 
shall  reign  with  him,  and  the  many  prophecies  which  refer 
to  the  reign  of  the  Church,  indicate  clearly  that  such  is  God's 
plan.  True,  the  Apostle  wrote  that  our  Lord  would  first 
return  and  exalt  the  Church,  and  exhorted  that  we  should 
"■  wait^''  for  the  Lord;  but  (reasoned  they)  several  centuries 
are  now  past,  and  we  see  no  sign  of  the  Lord's  coming. 
We  must  understand  that  the  apostles  were  to  some  extent 
in  error.  To  us  it  seems  clear  that  we  can  and  should  use 
every  means  to  obtain  a  hold  upon  civil  government  and 
conquer  the  world  for  the  Lord.  It  must  be,  too  (they  rea- 
soned),that  the  Church  should  havea  /^<f^<'/ — one  to  represent 
the  absent  Lord  and  to  represent  the  Church  before  the 
world — one  who  would  receive  the  homage  of  the  world, 
exercise  the  authority  of  Christ,  and  rule  the  world  with  a 
rod  of  iron,  as  the  prophet  David  predicted.  Thus  grad- 
ually, by  a  slow  process  of  reasoning  covering  centuries, 
the  real  hope  of  the  Church  for  exaltation  to  rule  and  bless 
the  world — namely,  the  second  coming  of  the  Lord — was 
lost  sight  of,  and  a  new  hope  took  its  place — the  hope  of 
success  without  the  Lord,  under  the  headship  and  lead  of 
a  line  of  popes.  And  thus,  by  collusion,  intriguing  and  ex- 
change of  favors  with  the  world,  the  hope  of  the  Church 
became  a  false  hope,  a  delusive  snare  by  which  Satan  led 
from  one  evil  and  error  to  another,  both  of  doctrine  and 
of  practice. 


28o  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

The  point  at  which  the  apostasy  developed  into  the  "  Man 
of  Sin' '  was  when  the  Papal  hierarchy  exalted  itself  under  the 
headship  of  an  arranged  line  of  popes,  and  claimed  and  at- 
tempted the  rulership  of  earth  in  the  name  of,  and  pretend- 
ing to  be,  Christ's  Millennial  Kingdom.  It  was  a  false, 
fraudulent  claim,  no  matter  how  thoroughly  some  of  its  sup- 
porters believed  it.  It  was  a  fraudulent,  counterieii  Kmg- 
dom,  no  matter  how  sincere  some  of  its  organizers  and 
supporters  may  have  been.  It  was  Antichrist's,  no  matter 
how  much  they  claimed  and  believed  it  to  be  the  true 
Christ's  glory  and  kingdom  and  power  upon  earth.  It  is  a 
mistake  to  suppose  that  to  be  conscientious  is  always  to  be 
right.  Every  system  of  error  doubtless  has  as  many  con- 
scientiously deluded  votaries  as  it  has  hypocrites,  or  more. 
Conscientiousness  is  moral  honesty,  and  it  is  not  dependent 
upon  knowledge.  The  heathen,  misinformed,  conscien- 
tiously worship  and  sacrifice  to  idols;  Saul,  misinformed, 
conscientiously  persecuted  the  saints;  and  so,  too,  many 
papists,  misinformed,  conscientiously  did  violence  to  the 
prophecies,  persecuted  the  true  saints  and  organized  the 
great  system  of  Antichrist.  For  hundreds  of  years  Papacy 
has  not  only  deceived  the  kings  of  the  earth  as  to  its  pow- 
er and  claimed  divine  authority,  and  ruled  over  them, 
but  even  in  the  Church,  God's  Temple,  where  Christ  alone 
should  be  recognized  as  Head  and  Teacher,  it  has  seated 
itself  and  claimed  to  be  the  only  teacher  and  lawgiver;  and 
here  it  has  deceived  all,  except  the  few,  by  its  phenomenal 
success  and  boastful  claims.  ' '  All  the  world  wondered ' ' — 
were  astonished,  deceived,  bewildered — "whose  names  were 
not  written  in  the  Lamb's  book  of  life,"  and  many  whose 
names  are  written  as  saints  of  God  were  seriously  perplexed. 
And  this  deception  is  the  stronger  because  of  the  very 
gradual  formation  of  these  ambitious  designs  and  their  yet 
more  gradual  realization.     It  extended  over  centuries,  and, 


The  Alan  of  Sm.  281 

as  an  ambition,  was  already  secretly  at  work  in  Paul's  day. 
It  was  a  process  of  little  by  little  adding  error  to  error, — 
the  supplementing  of  one  man's  ambitious  declarations  by 
those  of  another  and  another  farther  down  the  stream  of 
time.  Thus,  insidiously,  did  Satan  plant  and  water  the 
seeds  of  error,  and  develop  the  greatest  and  most  influen- 
tial system  the  world  has  ever  known — Antichrist. 

The  name  ''Antichrist"  has  a  twofold  significance.  The 
first  is  against  (J.  e.,  in  opposition  to)  Christ:  the  second 
significance  is  instead  (J.  e.,  a  counterfeit)  of  Christ.  In 
the  first  sense  the  expression  is  a  general  one,  vv-hich  would 
apply  to  any  enemy  opposing  Christ.  In  this  sense  Saul 
(afterward  called  Paul),  and  every  Jew,  and  every  Moham- 
medan, and  all  the  Pagan  emperors  and  people  of  Rome, 
were  antichrists — opposers  of  Christ.  (A6ls  9.4.)  But  it  is 
not  in  this  sense  of  the  word  that  the  Scriptures  use  the  name 
Antichrist.  They  pass  over  all  such  enemies,  and  apply 
the  term  Ajitichrist  in  the  sense  given  above,  as  now  its  sec- 
ondary meaning,  viz., — as  against,  in  the  sense  of  misrep- 
resenting, counterfeiting,  taking  the  place  of  t\\Q  true  Christ. 
Thus  John  remarks,  "Ye  have  heard  that  ///^Antichrist 
shall  come.  Even  now  there  are  many  antichrists. "  ( i  John 
2:18,  19.)  [The  Greek  distinguishes  between  the  special 
Antichrist  and  the  numerous  lesser  ones.]  And  John's 
subsequent  remarks  show  that  he  does  not  refer  to  all  op- 
posers  of  Christ  and  the  Church,  but  to  a  certain  class  who, 
still  professing  to  be  of  the  Christ  body,  the  Church,  had 
left  the  foundation  principles  of  the  truth,  and  were  there- 
fore not  only  misrepresenting  the  truth,  but  were,  in  the 
eyes  of  the  world,  taking  the  place  and  name  of  the  true 
Church — hence  really  counterfeiting  the  true  saints.  John 
says  of  these,  ''They  went  out  from  us,  but  they  were  not 
of  us;  "  they  do  not  represent  us,  even  though  they  may 
deceive  themselves  and  the  world  on  this  subje6l.     In  the 


2^2  The   7'ime  is  at  Hand. 

same  epistle  John  declares  that  those  he  mentions  as  many 
antichrists  have  the  spirit  of  the  Antichrist. 

Here,  then,  is  what  we  should  expe6l,  and  what  we  do 
find  in  Papacy:  not  an  opposition  to  the  name  of  Christ, 
but  an  enemy  pr  opponent  of  Christ  in  that  it  falsely  bears 
his  name,  counterfeits  his  kingdom  and  authority,  and  mis- 
represents his  chara6ter  and  plans  and  do6lrines  before  the 
world — a  most  baneful  enemy  and  opponent  indeed — worse 
far  than  an  outspoken  foe.  And  this  is  true,  be  it  remem- 
bered, even  though  some  of  those  conne6led  with  that  system 
are  conscientiously  astray — * 'deceiving  and  being  deceived." 

With  these  intimations  as  to  the  identity  and  character- 
istics of  the  Man  of  Sin,  and  when,  and  where,  and  under 
what  circumstances,  to  look  for  him,  we  shall  proceed  to  an 
examination  of  some  of  the  historic  evidences,  proving,  we 
think  beyond  reasonable  question,  that  every  prediction 
concerning  the  Antichrist  has  been  fulfilled  in  the  Papal 
system,  in  a  manner  and  to  an  extent  which,  with  the  en- 
lightenment of  this  day  taken  into  account,  all  must  admit 
could  never  be  repeated.  Space  obliges  us  here  to  confine 
ourselves  to  a  mere  outline  of  the  great  mass  of  historic 
testimony.  We  have  also  confined  ourselves  to  historians 
of  recognized  accuracy,  in  many  instances  going  to  Roman 
Catholic  writers  for  their  testimony  or  admissions. 

THE   CIRCUMSTANCES   WHICH    GAVE   BIRTH  TO   THE 

MAN    OF    SIN. 

A  Great  Falling  Away. — We  first  inquire.  Does  his- 
tory record  a  fulfilment  of  Paul's  prophecy  of  a  great  fall- 
ing away  from  the  original  simplicity  and  purity  of  the  doc- 
trines and  life  of  the  Christian  Church,  and  of  the  secret 
working  of  an  iniquitous,  ambitious  influence  in  the  Church, 
prior  to  the  development  of  Papacy,  the  Man  of  Sin — /.  e., 
prior  to  the  recognition  of  a  pope  as  the  head  of  the  Church  ? 


The  Man  of  Sin.  283 

Yes,  very  clearly :  The  Papal  Hierarchy  did  not  come 
into  existence  for  several  centuries  after  the  Lord  and  the 
Apostles  had  founded  the  Church.  And  of  the  interval 
between,  we  read*: — 

*'As  the  church  grew  in  numbers  and  wealth,  costly 
edifices  were  constructed  for  worship ;  t^e  services  became 
more  elaborate ;  sculpture  and  painting  were  enlisted  in  the 
work  of  providing  aids  to  devotion.  Relics  of  saints  and 
martyrs  were  cherished  as  sacred  possessions ;  religious  ob- 
servances were  multiplied ;  and  the  church  under  the  Chris- 
tian emperors  [in  the  fourth  century],  wich  its  array  of 
clergy  and  of  imposing  ceremonies,  assumed  much  of  the 
stateliness  and  visible  splendor  that  belonged  to  the  hea- 
then system  which  it  had  supplanted." 

Says  another,"!"  "Contemporaneously  with  the  establish- 
ment [of  Christianity  as  the  religion  of  the  empire  in  the 
fourth  century]  was  the  progress  of  a  great  and  general  cor- 
ruption ivhich  had  arisen  two  centuries  before.  Superstition 
and  ignorance  invested  the  ecclesiastics  with  a  power  which 
they  exerted  to  their  own  aggrandizement." 

Rapin  observes  that,  ''In  the  fifth  century  Christianity 
was  debased  by  a  vast  number  of  human  inventions ;  the 
simplicity  of  its  government  and  discipline  was  reduced  to 
a  system  of  clerical  power;  and  its  worship  was  oolluted 
with  ceremonies  borrowed  from  the  heathen." 

Mosheim,  in  his  ^^  History  of  Ch?'istianity,^^  traces  the 
falling  away  of  the  Church  from  its  original  simplicity  and 
purity,  step  by  step,  down  to  its  deep  degradation  which 
culminated  in  the  development  of  the  ''Man  of  Sin." 
Whether  or  not  he  recognized  the  Antichrist  does  not  ap- 
pear, but  in  a  masterly  way  he  has  traced  the  workings 
of  the  "Mystery  of  Iniquity,"  in  the  Church,  down  to  the 

*  Fisher's  Universal  History,  page  193. 
t  White's  Universal  History,  page  156. 


284  The   Time  is  at  Hand, 

beginning  of  the  fourth  century — when  his  work  was  sud- 
denly cut  short  by  death.  From  his  excellent  and  volumi^ 
nous  work  our  space  does  not  here  permit  quotations,  but 
we  commend  the  work  entire  as  highly  instru6tive  in  its 
bearing  on  the  subje6l. 

We  quote,  from  Lord's  ''  Old  Roman  World j"  a  brief  and 
pointed  sketch  of  the  Church's  history  during  the  first  four 
centuries,  which  shows  clearly  and  concisely  its  gradual 
decline,  and  its  rapid  degeneracy  after  the  hindrance  re- 
ferred to  by  the  Apostle  was  removed.     He  says  : — 

^^In  the  First  Century  not  many  wise  or  noble  were  called. 
No  great  names  have  been  handed  down  to  us ;  no  philos- 
ophers, or  statesmen,  or  nobles,  or  generals,  or  governors, 
or  judges,  or  magistrates.  In  the  first  century  the  Chris- 
tians were  not  of  sufficient  importance  to  be  generally  perse- 
cuted by  the  government.  They  had  not  even  arrested 
public  attention.  Nobody  wrote  against  them,  not  even 
Greek  philosophers.  We  do  not  read  of  protests  or  apolo- 
gies from  the  Christians  themselves.  They  had  no  great 
men  in  their  ranks,  either  for  learning,  or  talents,  or  wealth, 
or  social  position.  Nothing  in  history  is  more  barren  than 
the  annals  of  the  Church  in  the  first  century,  so  far  as  great 
names  are  concerned.  Yet  in  this  century  converts  were 
multiplied  in  every  city,  and  traditions  point  to  the  mar- 
tyrdoms of  those  who  were  prominent,  including  nearlv  all 
of  the  apostles. 

''/?/  the  Second  Ceiitury  there  are  no  greater  names  than 
Polycarp,  Ignatius,  Justin  Martyr,  Clement,  Melito  and 
ApolloniuS;  quiet  bishops  or  intrepid  martyrs,  who  ad- 
dressed their  flocks  in  upper  chambers,  and  who  held  no 
worldly  rank,  famous  only  for  their  san6lity  or  simplicity 
of  chara6ler,  and  only  mentioned  for  their  sufferings  and 
faith.  We  read  of  martyrs,  some  of  whom  wrote  valuable 
treatises  and  apologies ;  but  among  them  we  find  no  peo- 
ple of  rank.  It  was  a  disgrace  to  be  a  Christian  in  the  eye 
of  fashion  or  power.  The  early  Christian  literature  is 
chiefly  apologetic,  and  the  do6lrinal  chara6ler  is  simple  and 
practical.  There  were  controversies  in  the  Church,  an 
intense  religious  life,  great  a6livities,  great  virtues,  but  no 


The  Man  of  Sin.  285 

outward  confli6ls,  no  secular  history.  They  had  not  as  yet 
assailed  the  government  or  the  great  social  institutions  of 
the  empire.  It  was  a  small  body  of  pure  and  blameless 
men,  who  did  not  aspire  to  control  society.  But  they  had 
attracted  the  notice  of  the  government  and  were  of  suffi- 
cient consequence  to  be  persecuted.  They  were  looked 
upon  as  fanatics  who  sought  to  destroy  a  reverence  for  ex- 
isting institutions." 

[organized  bor  power.] 

"In  this  century  the  polity  of  the  Church  was  quietly 
organized.  There  was  an  organized  fellowship  among  the 
members ;  bishops  had  become  influential,  not  in  society, 
but  among  the  Christians ;  dioceses  and  parishes  were  es- 
tablished ;  there  was  a  distinction  between  city  and  rural 
bishops ;  delegates  of  churches  assembled  to  discuss  points 
of  faith  or  suppress  nascent  heresies;  the  diocesan  system 
was  developed,  and  ecclesiastical  centralization  commenced ; 
deacons  began  to  be  reckoned  among  the  higher  clergy ; 
the  weapons  of  excommunication  were  forged ;  missionary 
efforts  were  carried  on ;  the  festivals  of  the  church  were 
created  ;  Gnosticism  was  embraced  by  many  leading  minds ; 
catechetical  schools  taught  the  faith  systematically;  the 
formulas  of  baptism  and  the  sacraments  became  of  great 
importance ;  and  monachism  became  popular.  The  Church 
was  thus  laying  the  foundation  of  its  futtire  polity  and  power. 

"  The  Third  Ce7itury  saw  the  Church  more  powerful  as 
an  institution.  Regular  synods  had  assembled  in  the  great 
cities  of  the  empire ;  the  metropolitan  system  was  matured ; 
the  canons  of  the  Church  were  definitely  enumerated ; 
great  schools  of  theology  attra6ted  inquiring  minds ;  the 
do6trines  were  systematized  \i.  e.,  defined,  limited,  and 
formulated  into  creeds  and  confessions  of  faith].  Chris- 
tianity had  spread  so  extensively  that  it  must  needs  be 
either  persecuted  or  legalized ;  great  bishops  ruled  the  grow- 
ing church;  great  do6lors  [of  divinity]  speculated  on  the 
questions  [philosophy  and  science  falsely  so  called]  which 
had  agitated  the  Grecian  schools;  church  edifices  were  en- 
larged, and  banquets  instituted  in  honor  of  the  martyrs. 
The  Church  was  rapidly  advancing  to  a  position  which  ex- 
torted the  attention  of  mankind. 


286  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

^^  It  was  not  till  the  Fourth  Century — when  imperial  per- 
secution had  stopped ;  when  [the  Roman  Emperor]  Con- 
stantine  was  converted ;  when  the  Church  was  allied  with 
the  State  ;  when  the  early  faith  was  itself  corrupted  ;  when 
superstition  and  vain  philosophy  had  entered  the  ranks  of 
the  faithful ;  when  bishops  became  courtiers;  when  churches 
became  both  rich  and  splendid ;  when  synods  were  brought 
under  political  influence ;  when  monachists  [monks]  had 
established  a  false  principle  of  virtue ;  when  politics  and 
dogmatics  went  hand  in  hand,  and  emperors  enforced  the 
decrees  of  [church]  councils — that  7ne7i  of  rank  entered  the 
Church.  When  Christianity  became  +he  religion  of  the 
court  and  of  the  fashionable  classes,  it  was  used  to  support 
the  very  evils  against  which  it  originally  protested.  The 
Church  was  not  only  impregnated  with  the  errors  of  Pagan 
philosophy,  but  it  adopted  many  of  the  ceremonies  of  ori- 
ental worship,  which  were  both  minute  and  magnificent. 
The  churches  became,  in  the  fourth  century,  as  imposing 
as  the  old  temples  of  idolatry.  Festivals  became  frequent 
and  imposing.  The  people  clung  to  them  because  they 
obtained  excitement  and  a  cessation  from  labor.  Venera- 
tion for  martyrs  ripened  into  the  introduction  of  images — 
a  future  source  of  popular  idolatry.  Christianity  was  em- 
blazoned in  pompous  ceremonies.  The  veneration  for 
saints  approximated  to  their  deification,  and  superstition 
exalted  the  mother  of  our  Lord  into  an  objecft  of  absolute 
worship.  Communion  tables  became  imposing  altars  typi- 
cal of  Jewish  sacrifices,  and  the  relics  of  martyi's  were  pre- 
served as  sacred  amulets.  Monastic  life  also  ripened  into 
a  grand  system  of  penance  and  expiatory  rites.  Armies  of 
monks  retired  to  gloomy  and  isolated  places,  and  aban- 
doned themselves  to  rhapsodies  and  fastings  and  seif-expia- 
tion.  They  were  a  dismal  and  fanatical  set  of  men,  over- 
looking the  pra6lical  aims  of  life. 

*'The  clergy,  ambitious  and  worldly,  sought  rank  and 
distinction.  They  even  thronged  the  courts  of  princes  and 
aspired  to  temporal  honors.  They  were  no  longer  sup- 
ported by  the  voluntary  contributions  of  the  faithful,  but 
by  revenues  supplied  by  government,  or  property  inherited 
from  the  old  [pagan]  temples.  Great  legacies  were  made 
to  the  Church  by  the  rich,  and  these  the  clergy  controlled. 


The  Man  of  Sin.  287 

These  bequests  became  sources  of  inexhaustible  wealth.  As 
wealth  increased  and  was  intrusted  to  the  clergy,  they  be- 
came indifferent  to  the  wants  of  the  people, — no  longer 
supported  by  them.  They  became  lazy,  arrogant  and  in- 
dependent. The  people  were  shut  out  of  the  government 
of  the  Church.  The  bishop  became  a  grand  personage 
who  controlled  and  appointed  his  clergy.  The  Church  was 
allied  with  the  State,  and  religious  dogmas  were  enforced 
by  the  sword  of  the  magistrate. 

"AN    IMPOSING    HIERARCHY   WAS    ESTABLISHED,    OF 

VARIOUS    GRADES,    WHICH    CULMINATED 

IN    THE    BISHOP   OF    ROME. 

*^The  Emperor  decided  points  of  faith,  and  the  clergy 
were  exempted  from  the  burdens  of  the  state.  There  was  a 
great  flocking  to  the  priestly  offices  when  the  clergy  wielded 
so  much  power  and  became  so  rich ;  and  men  were  elevated 
to  great  sees  [bishoprics],  not  because  of  their  piety  or 
talents,  but  their  influence  with  the  great.  The  mission  of 
the  Church  was  lost  sight  of  in  a  degrading  alliance  with  the 
State.  Christianity  was  a  pageant,  a  ritualism,  an  arm  of 
the  State,  a  vain  philosophy,  a  superstition,  a  formula." 

Thus  the  great  falling  away  from  the  faith,  predi6led  by 
the  Apostle  Paul,  is  an  established  fa6l  of  history.  All  his- 
torians bear  witness  to  it,  even  those  who  approve  the  as- 
sumption of  power  and  eulogize  the  chief  actors  in  the 
scheme.  We  regret  that  our  space  limits  our  quotations  to 
some  of  the  most  pointed  expressions.  The  falling  away, 
covering  a  period  of  centuries,  was  so  gradual  as  to  be  much 
less  noticeable  to  those  who  then  lived  in  its  midst  than  to 
us  who  see  it  as  a  whole ;  and  the  more  deceiving  was  it  be- 
cause every  step  of  organization,  and  every  advance  toward 
influence  and  authority  in  the  Church  and  over  the  world, 
was  taken  in  the  name  of  Christ,  and  professedly  to  glorify 
him  and  fulfil  his  plans  recorded  in  Scripture.  Thus  was 
the  great  Antichrist  developed — the  most  dangerous,  most 
subtle  and  most  persistent  opponent  of  true  Christianity, 
and  the  most  fiendish  persecutor  of  the  true  saints. 


288  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

THE    HINDRANCE    REMOVED. 

The  Apostle  Paul  foretold  that  this  iniquitous  principle 
would  work  secretly  for  a  time,  while  some  opposing  thing 
stood  in  the  way,  until,  the  hindrance  being  removed,  it 
could  have  a  free  course,  and  progress  rapidly  to  the  de- 
velopment of  the  Antichrist.  He  says,  "Only  he  that  now 
hindereth  will  hinder,  until  he  be  taken  out  of  the  way." 
(2  Thes.  2:7.)  What  does  history  have  to  show  in  fulfil- 
ment of  this  predi6lion?  It  shows  that  the  thing  which 
hindered  a  rapid  development  of  Antichrist  was  the  fa6l 
that  the  place  aspired  to  was  already  filled  by  another.  The 
Roman  empire  had  not  only  conquered  the  world  and  given 
it  politics  and  laws,  but,  recognizing  religious  superstitions 
to  be  the  strongest  chains  by  which  to  hold  and  control  a 
people,  it  had  adopted  a  scheme  which  had  its  origin  in 
Babylon,  in  the  time  of  her  greatness  as  ruler  of  the  world. 
That  plan  was,  that  the  emperor  should  be  esteemed  the 
dire6lor  and  ruler  in  religious  as  well  as  in  civil  affairs.  In 
support  of  this,  it  was  claimed  that  the  emperor  was  a  demi- 
god, in  some  sense  descended  from  their  heathen  deities. 
As  such  he  was  worshiped  and  his  statues  adored ;  and  as 
such  he  was  styled  Pout  if  ex  Maxi?nus — /.  e. ,  Chief  Priest 
or  Greatest  Religious  Ruler.  And  this  is  the  very  title 
claimed  by  and  given  to  the  pontiffs  or  popes  of  the  Roman 
Hierarchy  since  this  Antichrist  obtained  ''the  power  and 
seat  and  great  authority"  of  the  former  ruler  of  Rome. — 
Rev.  13:2. 

But  ancient  pagan  Rome  and  Babylon  had  only  a  mere 
skeleton  of  sacerdotal  power  as  compared  with  the  complex 
and  elaborate  machinery  and  contrivances  of  do6trine  and 
pra6tice  of  Papal  Rome,  the  triumphant  successor  to  their 
scheme,  who  now,  after  centuries  of  cunning  and  skill,  has 
its  power  so  intrenched  that  even  to-day,  when  its  power 
is  outwardly  broken  and  it  is  shorn  of  civil  dominion,  it 


7%e  Man  of  Sin.  389 

rules  the  world  and  controls  kingdoms  secretly,  under 
cover,  more  thoroughly  than  the  Roman  emperors  ever 
ruled  the  kings  subordinate  to  them. 

To  their  credit  be  it  recorded  that  not  one  of  the  Roman 
emperors,  as  Pontifex  Maximus  or  Chief  Religious  Ruler, 
ever  exercised  the  tyranny  of  some  of  their  successors  on  the 
Papal  throne.  On  this  point  Gibbon  says:*  ''It  must  be 
allowed  that  the  number  of  Protestants  who  were  executed 
in  a  single  province  and  a  single  XQign,  far  exceeded  t\i2i\.  of 
the  primitive  martyrs  in  the  space  of  three  centuries  and 
of  the  [entire  ]  Roman  empire. ' '  According  to  the  custom 
of  their  day  they  did  favor  the  most  popular  gods,  but 
wherever  their  armies  went,  the  gods  and  worship  of  the 
conquered  people  were  generally  respe(5led.  This  was  illus- 
trated in  Palestine,  in  which,  though  under  Roman  control, 
religious  liberty  and  freedom  of  conscience  were  generally 
respedted  by  the  imperial  Pontifex  Maximus,  who  as  relig- 
ious ruler  thus  showed  his  clemency  toward  the  people,  and 
his  harmony  with  all  the  popular  gods. 

So,  then,  we  see  that  what  hindered  the  early  develop- 
ment of  Antichrist  was  the  facSt  that  the  coveted  seat  of 
spiritual  supremacy  was  filled  by  the  representatives  of  the 
strongest  empire  the  world  had  yet  known  ;  and  that  for  any 
to  have  attempted  an  open  display  of  ambition  in  this  di- 
re6tion  would  have  exposed  them  to  the  wrath  of  the  masters 
of  the  world.  Hence  this  iniquitous  ambition  at  first  worked 
secretly,  disclaiming  any  intent  to  gain  power  or  authority, 
until  a  favorable  opportunity  was  presented — after  the  nom- 
inal Church  had  become  large  and  influential  and  the  im- 
perial power  was  shattered  by  political  dissensions  and  was 
beginning  to  decay. 

The  power  of  Rome  was  rapidly  failing,  and  its  strength 
and  unity  were  divided  among  six  claimants  to  the  imperial 

*Vol.  II.,page85.  """^ 

19 


290  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

honors,  when  Constantine  became  emperor.  And  that,  in 
part  at  least,  he  adopted  Christianity  to  strengthen  and 
unify  his  empire,  is  a  reasonable  supposition.  On  this 
point  history  says:  — 

''Whether  Constantine  embraced  it  [Christianity]  from 
convi6lion  of  its  truth,  or  from  policy,  is  matter  of  dispute. 
Certain  it  is,  that  this  religion,  though  receiving  from  the 
Roman  power  only  silent  obloquy,  or  a6live  persecution, 
had  extended  among  the  people,  so  that  Constantine 
strengthened  himself  in  the  affe6lion  of  the  soldiers  by 
adopting  it.  .  .  .  Worldly  ambition  pointed  to  the  course 
which  the  emperor  pursued  in  declaring  himself  a  Chris- 
tian, and  not  the  spirit  of  Christ,  who  said.  My  kingdom 
is  not  of  this  world.  Constantine  made  it  the  religion 
of  the  empire,  and  thenceforth  we  find  its  influence  sul- 
lied with  earthly  things.  ...  No  particular  bishop  was 
regarded  as  head  of  the  whole  Church,  but  the  emperor 
was  such  in  point  of  fa6l.  In  this  capacity  he  called  the 
Council  of  Nice,  having  in  the  controversy  between  Atha- 
nasius  and  Arius  taken  sides  against  the  latter.  The  council 
agreed  wi/h  the  emperor ^^^ 

''Whatever  advantages  might  be  derived  from  the  ac- 
quisition of  an  imperial  proselyte,  he  was  distinguished  by 
the  splendor  of  the  purple,  rather  than  the  superiority  of 
wisdom  or  virtue,  from  the  many  thousands  of  his  subje6ls 
who  had  embraced  the  do6lrines  of  Christianity  .  .  .  The 
same  year  of  his  reign  in  which  he  convened  the  Council 
of  Nice  was  polluted  by  the  execution  of  his  eldest  son. 
The  gratitude  of  the  Church  has  exalted  the  virtues  and 
excused  the  failings  of  a  generous  patron  who  seated  Chris- 
tianity on  the  throne  of  the  Roman  world. "f 

Here,  then,  under  Constantine' s  reign,  the  opposition  of 
the  empire  to  Christianity  gave  way  to  favor,  and  the  Im- 
perial Pontifex  ]^»Iaximus  became  the  patron  of  ih^  professed 
but  really  apostate  Church  of  Christ  j  and,  taking  her  by 
the  hand,  he  assisted  her  to  a  place  of  popularity  and  splen- 

*  Willard's  Universal  History,  page  163, 
t  Gibbon,  Vol.  II.,  page  269. 


The  Man  of  Sin.  291 

dor  from  which  she  was  able  afterward,  as  the  imperial 
power  grew  weak,  to  put  her  own  representatives  upon  the 
religious  throne  of  the  world  as  Chief  Religious  Ruler — 
Pontifex  Maxinuis. 

But  it  is  a  mistake  to  suppose,  as  many  do,  that  the 
Church  at  this  time  was  a  pure  (virgin)  church,  suddenly 
lifted  into  a  dignity  and  power  which  became  her  snare. 
Quite  the  contrary  is  true.  As  already  stated,  a  great  fall- 
ing away  had  occurred,  from  primitive  purity  and  simplic- 
ity and  freedom  into  creed-bound,  ambitious  fa6lions, 
whose  errors  and  ceremonies,  resembling  those  of  the  pagan 
philosophies,  garnished  with  some  truths  and  enforced  and 
clinched  with  the  doctrine  of  everlasting  torment,  had  drawn 
into  the  church  a  vast  horde,  whose  numbers  and  influence 
became  valuable  to  Constantine  and  were  respe6led  and 
used  accordingly.  No  such  worldly  man  ever  thought  se- 
riously of  espousing  the  cause  of  the  humble,  Christ-like 
'Mittle  flock," — the  truly  consecrated  Church,  whose  names 
are  written  in  heaven.  The  popularity  with  his  soldiers, 
mentioned  by  the  historians,  is  very  different  from  popu- 
larity with  real  soldiers  of  the  cross. 

In  proof  of  this  let  us  here  quote  from  history,  regarding 
the  state  of  religious  society  under  Diocletian,  the  prede- 
cessor of  Constantine,  who,  toward  the  close  of  his  reign, 
believing  that  Christians  had  attempted  to  destroy  his  life, 
became  embittered  against  them  and  persecuted  them  by 
ordering  the  destru6lion  of  Bibles,  the  banishing  of  bishops, 
and  finally  by  decreeing  the  death  of  such  as  opposed  these 
ena6lments.     Gibbon  *  says  of  this  era: — 

''Diocletian  and  his  colleagues  frequently  conferred  the 
most  important  offices  on  those  persons  who  avowed  their 
abhorrence  for  the  worship  of  the  gods,  but  who  displayed 
abilities  proper  for  the  service  of  the  state.  The  bishops 
held  an  honorable  rank  in  their  respective  provinces,  and 

*  Vol.  II.,  pages  53  and  57. 


292  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

were  treated  with  distin6tion  and  respe6t,  not  only  by  the 
people,  but  by  the  magistrates  themselves.  Almost  in  every 
city,  the  ancient  churches  were  found  insufficient  to  con- 
tain the  increasing  number  of  proselytes ;  and  in  their  place 
more  stately  and  capacious  edifices  were  ere6ted  for  the 
public  worship  of  the  faithful.  The  corruption  of  manners 
and  principles,  so  forcibly  lamented  by  Eusebius,  may  be 
considered  as  not  only  a  consequence  but  a  proof  of  the 
liberty  which  the  Christians  enjoyed  and  abused  under  the 
reign  of  Diocletian.  Prosperity  had  relaxed  the  nerves  of 
discipline.  Fraud,  envy  and  malice  prevailed  in  every 
congregation.  The  proselytes  aspired  to  the  episcopal  of- 
fice, which  every  day  became  an  objedl  more  worthy  of 
their  ambition.  The  bishops,  who  contended  with  each 
other  for  ecclesiastical  pre-eminence,  appeared  by  their 
condu(5l  to  claim  a  secular  and  tyrannical  power  in  the 
church ;  and  the  lively  faith  which  still  distinguished  the 
Christians  from  the  Gentiles  was  shown  much  less  in  their 
lives  than  in  their  controversial  writings. 

*'The  story  of  Paul  of  Samosata,  who  filled  the  metro- 
politan see  [bishopric]  of  Antioch  while  the  East  was  in 
the  hands  of  Odenatus  and  Zenobia,  may  serve  to  illustrate 
the  condition  and  character  of  the  times.  [A.  D.  270.] 
Paul  considered  the  service  of  the  church  a  very  lucrative 
profession.  His  ecclesiastical  jurisdi6lion  was  venal  and 
rapacious :  he  extorted  frequent  contributions  from  the 
most  opulent  of  the  faithful,  and  converted  to  his  own  use 
a  considerable  part  of  the  public  revenues.  [It  is  claimed 
by  critics,  says  Gibbon,  that  Paul  held  the  office  of  Im- 
perial Ducenariiis,  or  procurator,  with  an  annual  salary  of 
two  hundred  Sesfe?'tia, — ^77,000.]  By  his  pride  and  lux- 
ury, the  Christian  religion  was  rendered  odious  in  the  eyes 
of  the  Gentiles.  His  council  chamber,  and  his  throne,  the 
splendor  with  which  he  appeared  in  public,  the  suppliant 
crowd  who  solicited  his  attention,  the  multitude  of  letters 
and  petitions  to  which  he  di6lated  his  answers,  and  the 
perpetual  hurry  of  business  in  which  he  was  involved,  were 
circumstances  much  better  suited  to  the  state  of  a  civil 
magistrate  than  to  the  humility  of  a  primitive  bishop. 
When,  he  harangued  his  people  from  the  pulpit,  Paul  af- 
fected the  figurative  style  and  the  theatrical  gestures  of  an 


The  Man  of  Sin.  293 

Asiatic  sophist,  while  the  cathedral  resounded  with  the 
most  extravagant  acclamations  in  the  praise  of  his  divine 
eloquence.  Against  those  who  resisted  his  power,  or  re- 
fused to  flatter  his  vanity,  the  prelate  of  Antioch  was  arrogant, 
rigid  and  inexorable,  but  he  relaxed  the  discipline  and  lav- 
ished the  treasures  of  the  church  on  his  dependent  clergy." 
Thus  under  Constantine's  reign  all  hindrance  was  finally 
removed,  and,  as  we  shall  find,  the  organization  of  Papacy 
— the  church  nominal  under  the  headship  of  the  bishop  of 
Rome  as  pope — was  speedily  effe6ted. 

RAPID    DEVELOPMENT    OF    ANTICHRIST. 

The  rapid  development  of  the  Papal  Hierarchy  after  the 
accession  of  Constantine  is  a  very  remarkable  feature  of  its 
history.  "The  prince  of  this  world  ' '  was  true  to  his  prom- 
ise to  give  power  and  dominion  as  a  reward  for  worshiping 
and  obeying  him.  (Matt.  4:8,  9.)  By  the  edi6l  of  Milan, 
Constantine  gave  legal  security  to  the  possessions  of  the 
Church,  and  Christians  recovered  lands  formerly  forfeited. 
A  second  edi6l,  A.  D.  321,  granted  the  liberty  of  be- 
queathing property  to  the  Church,  while  Constantine  him- 
self set  an  example  of  liberality  and  lavished  wealth  upon 
the  Christian  clergy  unsparingly.  This  example  of  the 
Emperor  was  followed  by  thousands  of  his  subje6ts,  whose 
offerings  during  life  and  whose  bequests  in  the  hour  of  death 
flowed  into  the  ecclesiastical  treasury.     White  says :  * 

''The  church  of  Rome  began  early  to  assume  authority 
over  the  others  [over  the  churches  of  other  cities  and  coun- 
tries,] as  well  from  the  numbers  and  wealth  of  its  con- 
verts as  from  its  position  in  the  capital  city.  Many  cir- 
cumstances concurred  to  augment  the  influence  of  its  bishop, 
although  his  usurpation  and  ambition  were  for  a  time  vig- 
orously repelled.  The  transference  of  the  seat  of  power 
[by  Constantine,  from  Rome  to  Constantinople,  A.  D.  334] 
increased  the  power  of  the  western  church  by  conferring 
the  chief  magistracy  on  the  bishop.     To  this  must  be  added 

*  White's  Universal  History,  page  155. 


294  ^^^^   Time  is  at  Hand. 

the  san(5lion  given  by  Gratian  and  Valentinian  to  the  custom 
of  appeals  to  Rome,  and  the  frequent  pilgrimages  to  the 
tombs  of  St.  Peter  and  St.  Paul  and  other  martyrs.' 

After  the  death  of  Constantine  the  varied  fortunes  of  the 
Roman  Empire  seemed  to  co-operate  for  the  advancement 
of  the  apostate  church  and  the  development  of  Antichrist; 
for  a  union  under  one  head  or  pope,  esteemed  the  represent- 
ative or  vicegerent  of  Christ,  had  not  yet  been  effected. 
The  emperors  succeeding  Constantine,  down  to  Theodo- 
sius,  continued  to  regard  themselves  as  the  heads  of  the 
Church,  in  whom  centered  divine  authority.  Though  no 
one  of  the  eighteen  hundred  bisho[)s  of  the  empire  was  yet 
prepared  to  demaiid  recog7iitio?i  as  the  head,  or  pope,  several 
had  their  eyes  on  that  prize,  and  the  emperors  were  shown 
the  shallowness  of  their  claims  to  the  title  Pontifex  Max- 
imus,  in  the  argument  that  since  they  worshiped  dead  saints 
they  owed  a  similar  respedl  to  their  living  representatives 
— the  bishops.  Nevertheless,  the  emperors  in  their  edi(5ls 
repeatedly  referred  to  the  empire  as  a  divine  hierarchy  and 
to  themselves  as  divine  personages.* 

The  power  and  headship  of  the  bishop  of  Rome  came  on 
apace:  within  fifty  years  from  the  time  Christianity  was 
legally  established,  his  wealth  and  dignity,  as  the  bishop  of 
the  capital  and  chief  city  of  the  world,  were  very  great. 
Ammianus,  a  contemporary  historian,  describing  his  wealth 
and  ostentation,  says,  ''He  surpassed  kings  in  splendor 
and  magnificence,  rode  in  the  stateliest  chariots,  was  ar- 
rayed in  the  finest  attire,  and  was  distinguished  by  his  lux- 
ury and  pride."  The  removal  of  the  seat  of  empire  to 
Constantinople,  the  exposure  of  the  city  of  Rome  to  the 
invasion  of  the  barbarians  from  the  north,  the  continual 
changes  of  generals  and  governors  in  the  now  fast  falling 
empire,  left  the  bishop  of  the  church  at   Rome  the  most 


*  See  Gibbon,  Vol,  ii.,  page  io8. 


The  Man  of  Sin.  295 

permanent  and  most  honored  official  there ;  and  his  grad- 
ually increasing  prestige  was  heightened  as  well  by  the  re- 
moval of  the  rival  splendors  of  the  imperial  court  to  Con- 
stantinople as  by  the  reverence  attaching  to  the  very  name 
of  Rome,  among  all  the  peoples  of  the  world. 

As  an  illustration  of  this,  we  note  that  when,  in  A.  D. 
455,  the  city  of  Rome  was  invaded  and  plundered  by  the 
Vandals,  and  all  around  was  distress  and  desolation,  Leo, 
the  bishop  of  Rome,  improved  the  opportunity  for  impress- 
ing upon  all,  both  barbarians  and  Romans,  his  claim  of 
spiritual  power.  To  the  rude  and  superstitious  barbarians, 
already  greatly  impressed  by  what  they  saw  about  them,  of 
Rome's  greatness  and  wealth,  Leo,  arrayed  in  his  pontif- 
ical robes,  exclaimed:  "Beware!  I  am  the  successor  of 
St.  Peter,  to  whom  God  has  given  the  keys  of  the  kingdom 
of  heaven  and  against  whose  church  the  gates  of  hell  can- 
not prevail ;  I  am  the  living  representative  of  divine  power 
on  the  earth;  I  am  Caesar,  a  Christian  Caesar,  ruling  in 
love,  to  whom  all  Christians  owe  allegiance;  I  hold  in  my 
hands  the  curses  of  hell  and  the  benedi6tions  of  heaven ; 
I  absolve  all  subjects  from  allegiance  to  kings ;  I  give  and 
take  away,  by  divme  right,  all  thrones  and  principali- 
ties of  Christendom.  Beware  how  you  desecrate  the  pat- 
rimony given  me  by  your  invisible  king;  yea,  bow  down 
your  necks  to  me  and  pray  that  the  anger  of  God  may  be 
averted." 

The  veneration  for  the  place  and  name  was  a6lively 
taken  advantage  of  by  the  bishop  of  Rome,  who  soon 
claimed  a  superiority  to  all  other  bishops,  governors  and 
rulers.  Soon  he  claimed  not  only  ecclesiastical  dominion 
of  the  world,  but  also  civil  dominion :  that  the  right  to 
crown  and  uncrown,  to  make  and  degrade  any  and  all  rulers 
of  the  old  Roman  Empire  was  the  right  and  inheritance  of 
the  Church  of  Rome,  which,  it  was  claimed,  God  had  thus 


296  The  Time  is  at  Ha7id. 

invested  with  the  dominion  of  earth.  These  claims  were 
made  repeatedly,  and  repeatedly  denied  by  opposing  bish- 
ops, so  that  to  fix  an  exa6l  year  as  the  date  of  its  begm- 
ning  would  be  impossible.  As  for  itself,  Papacy  claims 
that  it  was  organized  in  the  days  of  the  apostles,  and  that 
Peter  was  the  first  pope ;  but  this  is  not  only  without  proof, 
but  is  most  positively  contradi6fed  by  all  history,  which 
shows  that  though  the  iniqinty  of  a7nbitio7i  worked  secretly 
for  a  long  time,  it  was  hindered  from  developing  into  Anti- 
christ, and  from  making  such  open  claims,  until  the  Roman 
Empire  began  to  disintegrate. 

Henceforth  we  deal  with  the  Antichrist,  whose  gradual 
develop7nent  and  orga7tizatio7i  from  secretly  working  ambi- 
tion are  a  fitting  prelude  to  the  terrible  chara61:er  displayed 
after  the  coveted  power  had  been  grasped — from  539  A.  D. 
to  1799  A.  D.,  1260  years.  Of  this  period  the  first  three 
hundred  years  mark  the  rise  of  this  temporal  power ;  the 
last  three  mark  its  waning  under  the  influences  of  the  Ref- 
ormation and  civilization ;  and  the  intermediate  period  of 
seven  centuries  embraces  Papacy's  glory-time  and  the  ''dark 
ages"  of  the  world,  full  of  frauds  and  deceptions  in  the 
name  of  Christ  and  true  religion. 

A  Roman  Catholic  writer  fully  corroborates  our  findings 
on  this  subje^l,  and  we  present  his  words  regardless  of  their 
gloss,  as  corroborative  testimony.  Giving,  with  glowing 
enthusiasm,  a  description  of  the  rise  of  the  Papacy  to  tem- 
poral power,  describing  it  as  a  plant  of  heavenly  origin,  and 
therefore  of  rapid  growth  and  high  exaltation  in  the  world, 
he  says: — 

"The  rise  of  the  temporal  power  of  the  Popes  presents 
to  the  mind  one  of  the  most  extraordinary  phenomena 
which  the  annals  of  the  human  race  offer  to  our  wonder 
and  admiration.  By  a  singular  combination  of  concurring 
circumstances  a  new  power  and  a  new  dominion  grew  up, 
silently  and  steadily,,  on  the  ruins  of  that  Roman  Empire 


The  Man  of  Sin,  297 

which  had  extended  its  sway  over,  or  made  itself  respedled 
by,  nearly  all  the  nations,  peoples  and  races  that  lived  in 
the  period  of  its  strength  and  glory ;  and  that  new  power, 
of  lowly  origin,  struck  a  deeper  root,  and  soon  exercised 
a  wider  authority,  than  the  empire  whose  gigantic  ruins  it 
saw  shivered  into  fragments  and  mouldering  in  dust.  In 
Rome  itself  the  power  of  the  successor  of  Peter  grew  side 
by  side  with,  and  under  the  protecting  shadow  of,  that  of 
the  emperor;  and  such  was  the  increasing  influence  of  the 
popes,  that  the  majesty  of  the  supreme  Pontiff  was  likely 
ere  long  to  dim  the  splendor  of  the  purple. 

"The  removal  by  Constantine  of  the  seat  of  empire  from 
the  West  to  the  East,  from  the  historic  banks  of  the  Tiber 
to  the  beautiful  shores  of  the  Bosphorus,  laid  the  broad 
foundation  of  a  sovereignty  wJiich  in  reality  commences  from 
that  momentous  cha7ige.  Pra6tically,  almost  from  that  day, 
Rome,  which  had  witnessed  the  birth,  the  youth,  the 
splendor,  and  the  decay,  of  the  mighty  race  by  whom  her 
name  had  been  carried  with  her  eagles  to  the  remotest  re- 
gions of  the  then  known  world,  was  gradually  abandoned 
by  the  inheritors  of  her  renown ;  and  its  people,  deserted 
by  the  emperors,  and  an  easy  prey  to  the  ravages  of  the 
barbarians  whom  they  had  no  longer  the  courage  to  resist, 
beheld  in  the  bishop  of  Rome  their  guardian,  their  protec- 
tor, their  father.  Year  by  year  the  temporal  authority  of 
the  popes  grew  into  shape  and  hardened  into  strength, 
without  violence,  without  bloodshed,  without  fraud,  by  the 
force  of  overwhelming  circumstances,  fashioned,  as  if  visibly, 
by  the  hand  of  God." 

While  Roman  Catholics  thus  represent  the  rise  of  the 
Papacy  on  the  ruins  of  Pagan  Rome  as  a  triumph  of  Chris- 
tianity, those  who  are  acquainted  with  the  true  spirit  of 
Christianity  look  in  vain  to  see  any  trace  of  that  spirit  ni 
the  prostitution  of  the  Church  and  her  unholy  alliance  with 
the  world.  Neither  can  the  true  Christian  see  in  the  ad- 
vantages furnished  by  ignorance,  superstition,  calamities, 
and  the  various  circumstances  of  the  times  of  which  the 
Church  of  Rome  took  advantage,  any  evidence  of  divine 
interposition  in  her  favor.     Nor  yet  can  they  discover,  in 


298  The'  Time  is  at  Hand. 

the  exaltation  of  the  Church  of  Rome  to  earthly  power  and 
glorv;  any  verification  of  the  Lord's  promise  to  the  true 
Church,  to  exalt  her  in  due  time — after  the  Antichrist  has 
come  and  gone ;  for  the  exaltation  of  the  true  Church  is 
not  to  be  to  a  blood-stained  and  crime-polluted  throne,  such 
as  the  throne  of  the  Papacy  has  been  from  its  very  begin- 
ning :  neither  will  the  true  Christ  ever  need  to  call  upon 
earthly  kings  to  establish  or  defend  his  power.  The  marks 
which  distinguish  the  counterfeit  from  the  real  kingdom  of 
Christ  are  easily  recognizable  by  those  acquainted,  through 
the  Scriptures,  with  the  real  Christ  and  his  body,  the  true 
Church,  with  the  principles  upon  which  his  kingdom  is  to 
be  established,  and  with  the  objecft  for  which  it  is  to  be  set  up. 

But  let  no  one  suppose  that  the  real  Church  of  Christ, 
even  in  those  corrupt  times,  was  either  extinguished  or  lost 
sight  of.  ''  The  Lord  knoweth  them  that  are  his"  in  every 
age  and  under  every  condition.  As  wheat  they  were  per- 
mitted to  grow  in  the  midst  of  a  field  overrun  with  tares ; 
as  gold  they  were  in  the  furnace,  being  tried  and  purified 
and  "  made  meet  for  the  inheritance  of  the  saints  in  light." 
True,  the  course  of  the  multitude,  who  called  themselves 
Christians,  occupies  the  most  prominent  place  on  the  pages 
of  history  ;  but  undoubtedly  a  faithful  few  through  all  'the 
persecutions,  and  in  the  midst  of  all  the  deceptive  arts  of 
the  Mystery  of  Iniquity,  walked  worthy  of  their  high  call- 
ing, were  laid  to  rest  and  recorded  of  God  as  heirs  to  the 
crown  that  fadeth  not  away,  reserved  in  heaven  for  them. 

Thus,  clearly,  on  the  pages  of  history,  the  fa6t  is  pointed 
out  that  this  Man  of  Sin,  Antichrist,  was  born  in  Rome ; 
and,  though  at  first  opposed,  he  gradually  raised  himself  up 
to  power;  or,  as  expressed  in  Daniel's  prophecy,  as  '^a 
little  horn,"  it  came  up  out  of  the  head  of  that  old  Roman 
beast,  that ' '  great  and  terrible  beast,"  for  which  Daniel  could 
find  no  name,  which  had  such  power  to  hurt  and  to  destroy. 


The  Ma?t  of  Sin.  299 

And,  as  we  proceed,  we  shall  find  that  Antichrist's  history 
corresponds  exadly,  not  only  with  Daniel's  prophecy,  but 
with  all  the  prophecies  recorded  concerning  him. 

antichrist's  character  in  history. 

Having  located  Antichrist,  we  next  proceed  to  compare 
the  character  of  Papacy  with  the  prophecies  recorded,  de- 
scriptive of  the  chara(5ter  and  deeds  of  the  Antichrist  or 
Man  of  Sin. 

Some  may  query  whether  it  be  right  to  pass  over  the  em- 
perors of  Rome  (who  claimed  to  be  Supreme  religious 
rulers),  without  calling  their  system  Antichrist,  and  to  apply 
that  title  complete  and  entire  to  the  organized  Papal  sys- 
tem. We  answer.  This  is  certainly  right ;  and  we  refer  the 
reader  again  to  the  definition  of  Antichrist  already  given, 
as  used  in  the  scriptures,  viz..  In  the  place  of.  Instead  of ,  i.  e., 
A  counterfeit  oft\\Q  true  Christ.  To  be  this,  it  must  claim 
to  be  a  spiritual  empire:  it  must  claim  to  rule  the  kingdoms 
of  earth  by  this  spiritual  authority ;  it  must  thus  be  not 
only  an  antagonist  but  a  counterfeit,  misrepresenting  and 
pretending  to  be  Christ's  kingdom,  and  exercising  what 
will  in  God's  due  time  be  the  authority  of  the  true  Christ, 
the  church  glorified  and  complete  under  the  only  true  Head 
and  Lord, — the  real  Pontifex  Maximus. 

Not  only  does  Papacy  claim  to  be  the  glorified  king- 
dom of  Christ  promised  by  the  Lord,  the  apostles  and  the 
prophets,  but  it  applies  to  itself  and  its  successive  heads  (the 
popes,  who,  it  claims,  take  the  place  of  Christ,  as  Pontiff, 
Chief  or  King  of  this  kingdom)  all  those  passages  of  the 
prophets  which  describe  the  Millennial  glory  of  the  Christ. 
And,  '' deceiving  [others]  and  being  deceived"  themselves 
(by  their  false  theories,  developed  slowly  by  sinful  ambition 
for  greatness,  during  centuries),  the  popes  have  piece  by  piece 
arranged  the  titles  of  all  associated  in  the  hierarchy,  their 


300  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

gorgeous  clothing,  their  imposing  ceremonials,  their  grand 
cathedrals  with  solemn,  awe-inspiring  services,  on  a  scale 
to  correspond  as  nearly  as  possible  with  their  claims — the 
gorgeous  surroundings  and  clothing  and  ceremonies  match- 
ing, as  best  they  can  make  them  match,  the  glories  and 
grandeur  portrayed  by  the  prophets. 

For  instance,  Psalm  2:12  reads,  ''Kiss  the  Son,  O  ye 
kings  of  the  earth,  lest  he  be  angry,  and  ye  perish  by  the 
way,  when  his  anger  is  kindled  but  a  little. '  *  This  is  not 
a  command  to  kiss  literally,  but  to  yield  willing,  cheerful 
submission  to  our  Lord,  and  applies  to  the  present  hour, 
when,  preparatory  to  the  great  and  true  Millennial  reign  of 
the  true  Christ,  the  kings  or  great  ones  of  earth,  politically, 
socially,  financially  and  ecclesiastically,  are  being  tested  by 
their  willingness  or  unwillingness  to  bow  to  the  righteous 
regulations  now  due  to  go  into  operation.  Those  who  re- 
sist righteousness  resist  the  scepter  of  this  King  of  glory, 
and  all  such  shall  be  overthrown  in  the  great  time  of  trouble 
which  ushers  in  the  Millennial  reign  of  the  new  King :  all 
who  would  not  have  him  reign  shall  be  slain.  (Luke  19:27.) 
*'  His  enemies  shall  lick  the  dust" — be  vanquished. 

Misapplying  this  prophecy  to  his  counterfeit  kingdom, 
Antichrist's  representative  head,  the  pope,  in  the  palmy 
days  of  his  prosperity  caused  kings  and  emperors  to  bow 
before  him,  as  before  Christ,  and  to  kiss  his  great  toe — ap- 
plying the  same  as  the  fulfilment  of  this  prophecy, 

Claims  like  these  are  very  generally  passed  over  lightly 
by  prophetic  students  and  writers,  while  they  search  out 
and  specially  notice  immoralities ;  but  herein  they  greatly 
err,  for  criminalities  have  been  plentiful  enough  in  every 
age,  and  would  need  no  such  special,  prophetic  delin- 
eations as  are  given  of  Antichrist.  Could  it  be  proved 
that  those  conned ed  with  the  papal  system  have  been  very 
models  of  morality,  it  would  be  none  the  less  identical 


The  Man  of  Sin.  301 

with  the  chara6ler  noted  in  Scripture  as  the  great  Anti- 
christ— the  counterfeit  which  has  arrogated  to  itself  the 
titles,  privileges,  powers  and  reverence  belonging  to  the 
Lord's  Anointed.  As  a  counterfeit,  it  has  also  misrepre- 
sented the  plan  of  God  with  reference  to  the  sele6tion  of  a 
*'  little  flock,"  or  Church,  in  the  present  time;  and  it  has 
entirely  set  aside  the  real  hope  of  the  Church,  and  the  Lord's 
provision  for  the  blessing  of  the  world  during  the  Millen- 
nial reign  of  Christ — which  it  represents  as  fulfilled  in  its 
own  reign. 

The  ill  effe6ls  of  such  perversion  and  misrepresentation  of 
God's  plan  can  scarcely  be  estimated.  They  have  been  the 
dire6t  source  from  which  sprang  all  the  corrupt  do6trines 
which,  one  after  another,  were  introduced  to  support  the 
claims  and  add  to  the  dignity  of  Antichrist.  And  though 
the  Reformation,  three  centuries  ago,  ushered  in  an  era  of 
Bible  study  and  liberty  of  thought,  and  led  to  the  reje6tion 
of  many  evils  and  errors,  yet  the  counterfeit  was  on  so  elab- 
orate a  scale,  so  complete  in  all  its  parts  and  arrangements, 
and  had  so  thoroughly  deceived  the  whole  world  that, 
even  after  Luther  and  many  others  had  recognized  Papacy 
as  the  outcome  of  the  great  falling  away — the  Antichrist 
of  prophecy — they,  while  denouncing  it  as  a  system,  held 
firmly  to  the  false  theory  which  led  to  its  peculiar  errors 
of  do6lrine  and  pra6lice.  To  this  day  the  great  majority  of 
Protestants  of  all  denominations  support  the  theory  of  An- 
tichrist, that  Christ's  Kingdom  has  been  set  up.  Some  have 
endeavored  to  do  as  Papacy  did — to  organize  their  church 
under  some  one  person  as  its  head — while  others  supply  the 
place  of  this  head  with  a  council  or  synod ;  but  all  are 
under  the  delusion  imposed  by  the  false  and  misleading 
interpretations  of  Scripture  do6trines  started  by  Anti- 
christ— that  now,  and  not  at  a  future  time,  is  the  reign  of 
Christ's  Kingdom;  and,  denying  the  coming  age,  as  the- 


302  The  Tifne  is  at  Hand. 

Antichrist  does,  they,  like  that  system,  are  careless  of  the 
full  development  of  holiness  among  believers  and  are  zeal- 
ous rather  for  the  accomplishment  now  of  the  work  of  the 
next  age  (the  conversion  of  the  world) — so  much  so,  that 
they  are  often  willing  to  misrepresent  God's  plan  and  "Word, 
and  to  invent  theories  to  frighten  and  drive  the  world  into 
a  profession  of  godliness;  and  willing  also  to  resort  to 
questionable  and  worldly  methods  to  add  to  their  attrac- 
tions, to  make  their  various  systems  the  more  enticing  to 
the  unco7iverted,  whom  they,  like  Antichrist,  are  willing  to 
count  in  for  pride's  sake  and  to  make  a  good  showing. 

Such  find  it  difficult  to  see  that  Papacy  is  Antichrist. 
How  could  they,  while  faith  is  not  yet  free  from  the  poison, 
and  reason  is  still  greatly  blinded  by  the  very  essence  of 
Antichrist's  error.  The  greatness,  the  grandeur  and  the 
necessity  of  Christ's  Millennial  Kingdom  and  its  work  of 
blessing  all  the  families  of  the  earth  must  be  seen,  before 
the  greatness  of  the  Antichrist  counterfeit  can  be  appreci- 
ated, or  its  havoc  to  the  truth  and  its  desolating  and  defiling 
influence  in  the  nominal  church  or  temple  of  God  can  be 
rightly  estimated. 

None  need  be  surprised  at  the  completeness  of  this  coun- 
terfeit, when  Ave  reflect  that  it  is  Satan's  workmanship,  and 
has  been  patterned  after  the  types  and  illustrations  of  future 
glory  presented  in  the  Scriptures.  Seeing  that  the  time 
for  the  sele6lion  of  the  Church  had  come,  and  that  the 
truths  planted  by  the  Lord  and  the  apostles  had  gained  rapid 
headway  against  all  the  heathen  religions,  seeking  out  the 
meek  wherever  it  Avent,  the  great  adversary  sought  to  de- 
stroy the  purity  of  the  Church  and  to  turn  into  other  and 
false  channels  that  which  he  could  not  stop.  Thus  the 
triumph  of  Antichrist,  as  well  as  its  present  power,  has  really 
been  Satan's  success.  But  here  we  behold  the  wisdom  of 
God  ;  for  while  the  success  of  Antichrist  seemed  to  presage 


THE    CHURCH   OF   GOD, 

THE    ROYAL    PRIESTHOOD. 


THE   REALITY 

TRUE    TYPE.  DURING  COUNTERFEIT. 

THE    MILLENNIUM. 

Aaron —                    Christ  Jesus,  The  Popes, 
and  successors — Chief  our    Lord   and    Head  in  turn,  High-Priests  of 
or   High  Priest,    head   and  representative ;  the  the  Papal  Hierarchy;  its 
and  representative  and   High-Priest  of  our  pro-  lord,  head  and  mouth- 
mouthpiece,                      fession  or  order.  piece. 

Under-Priests,   deriv-  The  Church  glorified,  The  Church  of  Rome 

ing  their  official  digni-  the  Body  of  Christ,  consists  of  the  bishops 

ty  and  rights  and  privi-  sharers  of  his  glory,  and  prelates,  who  share 

leges  of  service  through  majesty,  and  office   of  the  dignities  of  the  hie- 

Aaron,   whose   body  ruler :  whose  offices  will  rarchy,  though  differing 

they  represented,  typi-  differ,  as  star  differeth  in  degrees  of  honor — 

fiedtheChurchof  Christ,  from  star  in  glory.  cardinals,  bishops,  etc. 

Subject  to  the  Hierarchy  are  assistants,  as  follows  : — 

The  Levites,  The  earthly  phase  The  under-priests 
who  did  services  con-  ofthe  Kingdom  of  God;  of  Papacy,  not  parts  or 
neifled  with  the  typical  through  whom  the  glori-  members  of  the  church 
Tabernacle — teaching,  fied  Chxu-ch  will  have  or  hierarchy,  but  called 
etc.,  etc.  An  inferior  moredirecfl contadl with  "Brothers"  and  "Sis- 
order  of  priests  not  per-  the  world,  in  teaching,  ters."  Of  these  are  the 
mittedto  enter  the  Most  governing,etc.,andwho  teachers,  nurses,  etc., 
Holy San(ftuary (typical  also  will  have  closest  in  dire(5l  conta6l  with 
of  the  spiritual  nature),  communion  with  the  the  people  as  well  as 
neither  to  look  therein.  spiritualChurchinglory.  with  the  hierarchy. 

All  Israel  was  taught  The   World   will    be  Papacy   claims  the 

and    direded    by   the  taught,  dire<5led,  ruled  obedience  of  the  World 

above   described    hie-  and  helped  by  the  above  to  its  rule  and  teachings 

rarchy.   And  in  Moses,  described  Kingdom  of  — as  being  the    King- 

who  was  a  type  of  the  God  and  its  earthly  rep-  domofGod.  The  lower 

complete   Christ,  they  resentatives,  which  will  priesthood  is  its  agent, 

had   prophet,    priest  have    all    power,   and  When  in  power,  it  at- 

and  king  united,  typical  must  be  obeyed;  and  all  tempted  to  enforce  its 

of  Christ's   Millennial  who  obey  not  will  be  laws,  and  to  "  cut  off" 

authority. — A<5ls  3 :  22.  "  cut  off." — Ads  3 :  23.  those  who  obeyed  not. 


304  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

the  defeat  of  God's  plan  it  was  really,  though  unwittingly, 
co-operating  to  insure  the  success  of  his  plan ;  for  by  no 
other  means  could  the  truly  consecrated  have  been  so  thor- 
oughly tried,  and  their  faithfulness  to  God's  Word  so  thor- 
oughly tested,  as  by  the  permission  of  this  great  counterfeit. 

The  accompanying  table  will  serve  to  show  how  complete 
has  been  the  counterfeit  of  the  future  organization  of 
Christ's  kingdom  in  Papacy,  and  how  it  was  drawn  from 
the  Jewish  typical  priesthood. 

Mosheim,  explaining  the  rise  of  the  hierarchical  system 
in  the  Church,  very  clearly  shows  this  counterfeiting,  in 
these  words.  Vol.  I.,  p.  337  :  — 

*'  Whilst  the  least  probability  remained  that  Jerusalem 
might  at  one  time  or  other  again  rear  its  head  from  the 
dust,  the  Christian  teachers  and  elders  assumed  to  them- 
selves no  titles  or  distin6lions,  at  least  none  but  the  most 
modest  and  humble  ones  ;  but  when  the  fate  of  that  city  had 
been  sealed  by  Hadrian  [A.  D.  135],  and  not  the  most  dis- 
tant hope  could  any  longer  be  entertained  by  the  Jews,  of 
seeing  their  ancient  government  re-established,  these  same 
pastors  and  ministers  conceived  a  wish  to  have  it  believed  by 
their  flocks  that  they  themselves  had  succeeded  to  the  rights 
of  the  Jewish  priesthood.  The  bishops,  therefore,  made  it 
their  business  to  inculcate  the  notion  that  they  were  invested 
with  a  charadter  resembling  that  of  the  great  High  Priest 
of  the  Jews,  and  were  consequently  possessed  of  all  those 
rights  which  had  been  recognized  as  belonging  to  tJie  Jewish 
Pontiff.  The  fun6lions  of  the  ordinary  Jewish  priest  were, 
in  like  manner,  stated  to  have  devolved,  though  under  a 
more  perfe6l  form,  on  the  presbyters  of  the  Christian 
Church :  and  finally  the  deacons  were  placed  on  a  parallel 
with  the  Levites,  or  inferior  ministers," 

THE  HEAD  AND  MOUTH  OF  ANTICHRIST. 
HIS    GREAT  SWELLING  WORDS. 

The  pope  (each  pope  in  his  turn)  is  the  head  of  the  false 
church,  which  is  his  body,  even  as  Christ  Jesus  is  the  head 


The  Man  of  Sin.  305 

of  the  true  Church,  which  is  his  body.  Since  the  head  is 
the  representative  of  the  body,  and  its  mouth  speaks  for 
the  body,  we  find,  as  we  should  expe6l,  this  feature  of 
Antichrist  prominently  referred  to  in  the  Scriptures.  In 
Daniel  7:8,  11,  25,  and  Rev.  13:5,  6,  the  mouth  of  Anti- 
christ is  brought  specially  to  our  notice  as  a  leading  char- 
a6leristic.  Daniel  says  this  horn  had  ''  eyes  like  the  eyes 
of  man," — symbolic  of  intelligence  and  a  far-sighted 
policy.  This  ^'- horn^^  was  to  be  different  from  all  the 
other  powers ;  it  was  to  be  more  wise,  more  cunning,  than 
other  empires  which  attempted  to  rule  the  world  ;  its  power 
was  to  be  that  of  its  mouth  (utterance)  guided  by  its  eyes 
(knowledge),  rather  than  that  of  physical  force.  And  no 
one  acquainted  with  the  history  of  Papacy  can  deny  that 
the  figures  used  to  illustrate  its  power  and  methods  are 
strikingly  good. 

''And  there  was  givefi  unto  him  a  mouth  speaking  great 
things.  And  he  opened  his  mouth  in  blasphemy  agaijist 
God,  to  blaspheme  his  7iame,  and  his  tabernacle,  and  them 
that  dwell  in  heaven.''''  "And  he  shall  speak  great  words 
against  the  Most  High.'' — Rev.  ij:Sy  ^ >'  Dan.  y  :8,  25. 

It  should  not  be  forgotten  that  these  are  figurative  ex- 
pressions descriptive  of  the  chara6ter  and  claims  of  a  sym- 
bolic ''beast"  (government)  and  ''horn"  (power)  out  of  the 
old  Roman  beast  or  empire.  In  some  respedls.  Papacy  was 
a  new  government  ("beast"),  distin6l  from  the  old  Roman 
empire ;  and  in  others,  it  was  a  horn  or  power  among  others 
out  of  that  empire,  which  for  a  time  held  superior  control 
over  the  other  horns  or  powers.  It  is  presented  in  symbol 
from  both  these  standpoints  so  as  most  thoroughly  to  locate 
and  designate  it. 

Antichrist's  great  swelling  words,  or  blasphemies,  cover 
the  whole  period  of  his  long  career.  The  expression,  "blas- 
phemy," in  our  day,  is  usually  given  only  a  coarse  meaning, 


3o6  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

as  if  it  related  to  the  most  vulgar  forms  of  cursing  and  pro- 
fanity only.  But,  in  its  true  significance,  the  word  ''blas- 
phemy" is  applicable  to  a7iy  indignity  offered  to  God.  Bou- 
z//Vr  defines  it  thus:  ^^  Blasphemy  is  to  attribute  to  God 
that  which  is  contrary  to  his  nature,  and  does  not  belong  to 
him, — and,  to  deny  what  does. ' ' — See  Webster's  Unabridged 
Dictionary  under  heads  of  Blasphemy  and  Blasphemously. 
And  in  evidence  that  this  is  the  sense  in  which  the  word 
*' blasphemy"  is  used  in  the  Scriptures,  notice  the  manner 
in  which  our  Lord  and  the  Pharisees  used  it :  ''The  Jews 
answered,  For  a  good  work  we  stone  thee  not,  but  for 
blasphemy ;  and  because  thou,  being  a  man,  makest  thyself 
God."  Jesus  answered  them,  "  Say  ye  of  him  whom  the 
Father  hath  san6tified,  and  sent  into  the  world,  Thou  blas- 
phemest,  because  I  said,  I  am  the  Son  of  God?" — John 
10:33,  3^-     See  also  Mark  14:61-64. 

With  this,  the  proper  definition  of  "  blasphemy,"  before 
us,  how  evident  it  must  be  to  the  simplest  minds  that  Pa- 
pacy's great  swelling  words  and  boastful  claims  have,  one 
and  all,  been  blasphemies.  The  establishment  of  a  coun- 
terfeit Kingdom  of  God  was  a  libel  upon  God's  government, 
a  gross  blasphemy,  and  a  misrepresentation  of  his  chara6ler 
and  plan  and  word.  God's  chara6ler,  /.  «f.,  his  "  ;/^w<?," 
was  blasphemed  in  the  thousand  monstrous  edi6ls,  bulls  and 
decretals  issued  in  his  name,  by  the  long  line  of  those  who 
claimed,  as  vice-gerents,  to  represent  his  Son ;  and  God's 
tabernacle,  the  true  Church,  was  blasphemed  by  the  false 
system  which  claimed  to  take  its  place — which  claimed  that 
its  faithful  were  the  true  and  only  tabernacle  or  Church  of 
God.  But  we  must  let  history  teP  us  of  these  great  swell- 
ing words,  these  blasphemous  assumptions,  which  successive 
popes,  as  the  head  of  Antichrist,  uttered  and  approved. 

In  a  work  entitled,  "  The  Pope  the  Vicar  of  Christ,  the 
Head  of  the  Church,"  by  the  celebrated  Roman  Catholic, 


The  Man  of  Sin. 


307 


IMonsignor  Capel,  is  a  list  of  no  less  than  sixty-two  blas- 
phemous titles  applied  to  the  pope;  and,  be  it  noticed,  these 
are  not  mere  dead  titles  from  the  past,  for  they  were  ar- 
ranged by  one  of  Papacy's  foremost  living  writers.  We 
quote  from  the  list  as  follows  : — 

''  Most  Divine  of  all  Heads." 

''  Holy  Father  of  Fathers." 

''  Pontiff  Supreme  over  all  Prelates." 

**  Overseer  of  the  Christian  Religion." 

"  The  Chief  Pastor— Pastor  of  Pastors." 

"Christ  by  Una  ion." 

"Abraham  by  Patriarchate." 

"  Melchisedec  in  Order." 

"  Moses  in  Authority." 

"  Samuel  in  the  Judicial  Office." 

"High  Priest,  Supreme  Bishop." 

"  Prince  of  Bishops." 

"  Heir  of  the  Apostles  ;   Peter  in  Power." 

"  Key-bearer  of  the  Kingdom  of  Fleaven." 

"  Pontiff  Appointed  with  Plenitude  of  Power." 

"Vicar  of  Christ." 

"Sovereign  Priest." 

"  Head  of  all  the  Ploly  Churches." 

"  Chief  of  the  Universal  Church." 

"Bishop  of  Bishops,  that  is.  Sovereign  Pontiff." 

"  Ruler  of  the  House  of  the  Lord." 

"Apostolic  Lord  and  Father  of  Fathers." 

"  Chief  Pastor  and  Teacher." 

"  Physician  of  Souls." 

"  Rock  against  which  the  proud  gates  of  hell  prevail  not." 

"Infallible  Pope." 

"  Head  of  all  the  Holy  Priests  of  God." 

In  addition  to  the  long  list  of  titles  of  which  the  above 
are  instances,  the  author  gives  the  following  quotations  from 


3o8  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

a  letter  which  St.  Bernard,  Abbott  of  Clairvaux,  wrote  to 
Pope  Eugenius  III.,  A.  D.  1150: — 

"  Who  art  thou? — The  High-Priest,  the  Supreme  Bishop. 
Thou  art  the  Prince  of  Bishops,  thou  art  the  Heir  of  the 
Apostles.  Thou  art  Abel  in  Primacy,  Noah  in  government, 
Abraham  in  the  patriarchal  rank,  in  order  Melchisedec,  in 
dignity  Aaron,  in  authority  Moses,  Samuel  in  judicial  office, 
Peter  in  power,  Christ  in  Unction.  Thou  art  he  to  whom 
the  keys  of  heaven  are  given,  to  whom  the  sheep  are  in- 
trusted. There  are  indeed  other  door-keepers  of  heaven, 
and  other  shepherds  of  the  flocks ;  but  thou  art  the  more 
glorious  in  proportion  as  thou  hast  also,  in  a  different  fash- 
ion, inherited  before  others  both  these  names.  .  .  .  The 
power  of  others  is  limited  by  definite  bounds :  thine  ex- 
tends even  over  those  who  have  received  authority  over 
others.  Canst  thou  not,  when  a  just  reason  occurs,  shut 
up  heaven  against  a  bishop,  depose  him  from  the  episcopal 
office,  and  deliver  him  over  to  Satan?  Thus  thy  privilege 
is  immutable,  as  well  in  the  keys  committed  to  thee  as  in 
the  sheep  intrusted  to  thy  care.  " 

All  these  blasphemously  flattering  titles  have  been  applied 
to  and  received  by  the  Roman  pontiffs  with  complacency 
and  marked  satisfa6tion,  as  rightfully  belonging  to  them. 

From  Pope  Boniface  VIII.  we  have  the  following  decree, 
which  is  still  extant  in  the  common  law :  ' '  We  declare, 
say,  define,  pronounce  it  necessary  to  salvation  for  every 
human  creature  to  be  subje6t  to  the  Roman  pontiff."  Pope 
Gregory  VH.,  who  in  the  year  1063  ordained  that  the  pope 
should  be  called  father  of  fathers,  draws  the  following  from 
Gen.  1:16,  to  support  papal  pretensions:  ''God  made 
two  great  lights  in  the  firmament  of  heaven ;  the  greater  light 
to  rule  the  day  and  the  less  to  rule  the  night ;  both  great, 
but  one  the  greater.  ^In  the  fii^mament  of  heaven,^  that  is, 
the  universal  church,  'God  made  two  great  lights;'  that  is, 
he  instituted  two  dignities,  which  are  the  pontifical  author- 
ity and  the  regal  power ;  but  that  which  presides  over  the 
cjay,  that  is,  the  spiritual,   is  the  greater^  but  that  which 


The  Man  of  Sin.  309 

presides  over  carnal  things  is  the  less ;  for  as  the  sun  differs 
from  the  moon,  so  do  popes  differ  from  kings."  Other 
popes  have  adopted  this  interpretation,  which  has  done 
much  to  enforce  the  idea  of  papal  supremacy. 

St.  Antonius,  Archbishop  of  Florence,  after  citing  Psalm  8 : 
4-8,  "  Thou  hast  made  him  a  little  lower  than  the  angels," 
etc.,  and  applying  it  to  Christ,  transfers  it  to  the  pope  in 
the  following  words  :  "  And  because  he  left  us  in  his  bod- 
ily presence,  he  left  his  vicar  [substitute]  on  the  earth,  viz., 
the  chief  pontiff,  who  is  called  papa,  which  means  father  of 
fathers ;  so  that  these  words  may  be  fitly  expounded  of  the 
pope.  For  the  pope,  as  Hostiensis  saith,  is  greater  than 
man  but  less  than  an  angel,  because  he  is  mortal ;  yet  he 
is  greater  in  authority  and  power.  For  an  angel  cannot 
consecrate  the  body  and  blood  of  Christ,  nor  absolve  or 
bind,  the  highest  degree  of  which  power  belongs  to  the 
pope  ;  nor  can  an  angel  ordain  or  grant  indulgences.  He 
is  crowned  with  glory  and  honor ;  the  glory  of  commenda- 
tion, because  he  is  called  not  only  blessed,  but  most  blessed. 
Who  shall  doubt  to  call  him  blessed  whom  the  very  top  of 
such  great  dignity  hath  exalted?  He  is  crowned  with  the 
honor  of  veneration,  so  that  the  faithful  may  kiss  his  feet. 
A  greater  veneration  cannot  exist. — ^ Adore  his  footstool.'* 
(Psa.  9:9.)  He  is  crowned  with  the  magnitude  of  author- 
ity, because  he  can  judge  all  persons,  but  can  be  judged  of 
none,  unless  he  be  found  to  deviate  from  faith  [the  faith 
of  Antichrist,  of  course].  Hence  he  is  crowned  with  a 
triple,  golden  crown,  and  is  '■  placed  over  all  the  works  of 
his  hands,'  to  dispose  of  all  inferiors.  He  opens  heaven, 
sends  the  guilty  to  hell,  confirms  empires,  regulates  the 
whole  clergy." 

The  Council  of  Lateran  in  ics  first  session  gave  to  the 
pope  the  appellation  of  ''  Prince  of  the  Universe;"  in  its 
second  session  it  called  him  '^Priest  and  King,  who  is  to 
be  adored  by  all  people,  and  who  is  very  like  unto  God ;" 
and  in  its  fifth  session  it  referred  prophecies  of  Christ's 
glorious  reign  to  Leo  X.  in  these  terms:  '*  Weep  not, 
daughter  of  Zion,  for  behold,  the  Lion  of  the  tribe  of  Ju- 


316  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

dah,  the  root  of  David  :  behold,  God  hath  raised  thee  up 
a  savior." 

From  Ferraris'  Ecclesiastical  DiBionary,  a  standard  Ro- 
man Catholic  authority,  we  quote  the  following  condensed 
outline  of  papal  power  as  given  under  the  word  papay 
article  2nd: — 

*'  The  pope  is  of  such  dignity  and  highness  that  he  is  not 
simply  a  man  but,  as  it  were,  God,  and  the  vicar  [repre- 
sentative] of  God.  .  .  .  Hence  the  pope  is  crowned  with 
a  triple  crown,  as  king  of  heaven,  of  earth  and  of  hell. 
Nay,  the  pope's  excellence  and  power  are  not  only  about 
heavenly,  terrestrial  and  infernal  things,  but  he  is  also 
above  angels,  and  is  their  superior ;  so  that  if  it  were  pos- 
sible that  angels  could  err  from  the  faith,  or  entertain  sen- 
timents contrary  thereto,  they  could  be  judged  and  excom- 
municated by  the  pope.  .  .  .  He  is  of  such  great  dignity 
and  power  that  he  occupies  one  and  the  same  trihmal  with 
Christ ;  so  that  whatsoever  the  pope  does  seems  to  proceed 
from  the  mouth  of  God.  .  .  .  The  pope  is,  as  it  were,  God 
on  earth,  the  only  prince  of  the  faithful  of  Christ,  the 
greatest  king  of  all  kings,  possessing  the  plenitude  of  power; 
to  whom  the  gove7'nme7it  of  tJie  earthly  and  heavenly  kingdo7n 
is  entrusted. ' '  He  further  adds  :  ''  The  pope  is  of  so  great 
authority  and  power  that  he  can  modify,  declare  or  inter- 
pret the  divine  law."  ''  The  pope  can  sometimes  counter- 
a6l  the  divine  law  by  limiting,  explaining,  etc." 

Thus,  Antichrist  not  only  endeavored  to  establish  the 
Church  in  power  before  the  Lord's  time,  but  it  was  auda- 
cious enough  to  attempt  to  '^  countera6l"  and  ''modify" 
divine  laws  to  suit  its  own  schemes.  How  clearly  did  it 
thus  fulfil  the  prophecy  which  over  a  thousand  years  before 
declared — ''  He  shall  think  to  change  times  and  laws^ — 
Dan.  7:25. 

In  a  bull,  or  edi6l,  Sixtus  V.  declares : 

''  The  authority  given  to  St.  Peter  and  his  successors,  by 
the  immense  power  of  the  eternal  King,  excels  all  the 
power  of  earthly  kings  and  princes.  It  passeth  uncontrol- 
lable sentence  upon  them  all.     And  if  it  find  any  of  them 


The  Man  of  Sin.  311 

resisting  God's  ordinance,  it  takes  more  severe  vengeance 
on  them,  casting  them  down  from  their  thrones,  however 
powerful  they  may  be,  and  tumbling  them  down  to  the 
lowest  parts  of  the  earth  as  the  ministers  of  aspiring  Lucifer.'* 

A  bull  of  Pope  Pius  V.,  entitled  *'The  damnation  and 
excommunication  of  Elizabeth,  queen  of  England,  and  her 
adherents — with  an  addition  of  other  punishments,"  reads 
as  follows : — 

"  He  that  reigneth  on  high,  to  whom  is  given  all  power 
in  heaven  and  in  earth,  committed  one  holy,  catholic  and 
apostolic  church  (out  of  which  there  is  no  salvation)  to  one 
alone  upon  earth,  namely,  to  Peter,  the  Prince  of  the  apos- 
tles, and  to  Peter's  successor,  the  bishop  of  Rome,  to  be 
governed  in  fulness  of  power.  Him  alone  he  made  prince 
over  all  people  and  all  kingdoms,  to  pluck  up,  destroy, 
scatter,  consume,  plant  and  build." 

St.  Bernard  affirms  that  ''none  except  God  is  like  the 
pope,  either  in  heaven  or  on  earth." 

*'The  Emperor  Constantine,"  says  Pope  Nicholas  I., 
**  conferred  the  appellation  of  God  on  the  pope ;  who, 
therefore,  being  God,  cannot  be  judged  by  man." 

Said  Pope  Innocent  III. — ''  The  pope  holds  the  place  of 
the  true  God ;"  and  the  canon  law,  in  the  gloss,  denomi- 
nates the  pope — ''  our  Lord  God." 

Innocent  and  Jacobatius  state  that  ''the  pope  can  do 
nearly  all  that  God  can  do,"  while  Decius  reje6ts  the  word 
nearly,  as  unnecessary.  Jacobatius  and  Durand  assert  that 
"  none  dare  say  to  him  any  more  than  to  God — Lord,  what 
doest  thou  ?"     And  Antonius  wrote  : — 

"  To  him  [the  pope]  it  belongs  to  ordain  those  things 
which  pertain  to  the  public  good,  and  remove  those  things 
which  prevent  this  end,  as  vices,  abuses  which  alienate  men 
from  God.  .  .  .  And  this  according  to  Jeremiah  1:10  [Here 
again  appropriating  to  Antichrist  a  prophecy  which  belongs 
to  Christ's  Millennial  reign]:  'Behold,  I  have  placed  thee  over 
the  nations  and  kingdoms,  to  root  up  and  destroy,  to  scat- 
ter and  disperse,'  that  is,  as  it  regards  vices;   '  to  build  up 


3T2  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

and  plant,'  that  is,  as  it  regards  virtues.  ...  In  regard  to 
the  power  of  the  pope  over  those  in  hell,  who  are  desig- 
nated by  the  fishes  in  the  sea  (Psalm  8.) — because,  as  the 
fishes  are  continually  agitated  by  the  waves  of  the  sea,  so 
those  in  purgatory  are  continually  exercised  by  the  afflic- 
tions of  punishment — God  hath  subje6led  to  the  pope  also 
the  fishes  of  the  sea,  that  is,  those  who  are  in  purgatory,  to 
relieve  them  by  indulgences. 

"  Pagans  are  subje6l  to  the  pope,  who  presides  in  the 
world  in  the  place  of  Christ.  But  Christ  hath  full  power 
over  every  creature.  The  pope  is  the  vicar  of  Christ,  and 
no  one  can  lawfully  withdraw  himself  from  his  obedience, 
as  no  one  can  withdraw  himself  lawfully  from  obedience  to 
God.  .  .  .  The  pope  can  punish  pagans  and  barbarous  na- 
tions. .  .  .  And  though  pagans  cannot  be  punished  with 
the  spiritual  punishment  of  excommunication  and  the  like, 
yet  they  can  be  punished  by  the  church  with  pecuniary  pun- 
ishment, and  by  princes  with  corporeal  punishment  also. 
.  .  .  The  church  can  punish,  indire6lly,  the  Jews  with  spir- 
itual punishment,  by  excommunicating  Christian  princes  to 
whom  the  Jews  are  subject,  if  they  neglect  to  punish  them 
with  temporal  pujzishment  when  they  do  anything  against 
Christians.  ...  If  the  conversion  of  some  should  be  de- 
sii-ed,  they  may  be  compelled  by  terrors  and  stripes,  not 
indeed  to  receive  faith,  but  that  they  should  present  no  ob- 
stacle to  faith  by  an  obstinate  will.  For  the  conversion  of 
infidels,  the  judgment  of  God  ought  to  be  imitated." 

Here  is  an  illustration  of  how  error  of  do6lrine  produces 
unrighteousness.  Men  may  speedily  be  led  into  every  form 
of  cruelty  and  oppression,  if  first  they  can  convince  them- 
selves that  in  the  exercise  of  such  depravities  they  are  the 
more  like  God — imitators  of  God.  The  wonder  is  that  men 
are  as  kind  and  moderate  as  we  find  them,  with  all  the  ter- 
rible, false  ideas  and  do6lrines  concerning  God's  plan  for 
mankind,  with  which  Satan  has  blinded  and  deluded  them 
through  the  papal  fountain  of  error,  leading  them  in  a 
course  congenial  to  their  fallen  nature.  Continuing,  the 
same  writer  adds : — 


The  Mtm  of  Sin.  313 

*'  The  power  of  the  pope  is  exercised  over  heretics  and 
schismatics,  denoted  also  by  oxen,  because  they  resist  the 
truth  with  the  horn  of  pride.  God  hath  subje6ted  these 
also  under  the  feet  of  the  pope  to  be  punished  in  a  four- 
fold way,  viz.,  by  excommunication,  deposition,  the  depri- 
vation of  temporal  goods  and  military  persecution.  But 
then  they  are  only  to  be  taken  for  heretics  when  they  refuse 
to  reform  their  pestiferous  do6lrines,  and  are  ready  pertina- 
ciously to  defend  them.  .  .  .  The  pope  can  choose  or 
ele6l  the  emperor.  The  emperor  is  the  minister  [servant] 
of  the  pope,  in  this,  that  he  is  the  minister  of  God,  whose 
place  the  pope  fills ;  for  God  hath  deputed  the  emperor  as 
the  minister  of  the  pope.  ...  I  suppose  it  to  be  said  as  a 
truth,  that  the  pope,  the  vicar  of  Christ,  hath  universal 
jurisdi6lion  of  spiritual  and  temporal  things,  in  the  whole 
world,  in  the  place  of  the  living  God.^^ 

The  following  utterances  of  the  popes,  culled  from  Fox's 
'' A(?ts  and  Monuments,"  by  H.  G.  Guinness,  an  English 
writer  of  note,  deserves  a  place  of  prominence ;  and  we  can 
sympathize  heartily  with  this  writer's  comment  on  the  system 
whose  mouth  gives  forth  such  utterances,  when  he  says — 
''  If*  he  that  exalteth  himself  shall  be  abased,'  what  degrada- 
tion can  be  commensurate  with  such  self-exaltation  as  this  ?" 

<'  Wherefore,  seeing  such  power  is  given  to  Peter,  and  to 
me  in  Peter,  being  his  successor,  who  is  he  then  in  all  the 
world  that  ought  not  to  be  subje(5l  to  my  decrees,  which 
have  such  power  in  heaven,  in  hell,  in  earth,  with  the  quick 
and  also  the  dead.  ...  By  the  jurisdiction  of  which  key 
the  fulness  of  my  power  is  so  great  that,  whereas  all  others 
are  subjects — yea,  and  emperors  themselves  ought  to  subdue 
their  executions  to  me — only  I  am  subje6l  to  no  creature, 
no,  not  to  myself;  so  my  Papal  majesty  ever  remaineth  un- 
diminished ;  superior  to  all  men,  whom  all  persons  ought 
to  obey  and  follow,  whom  no  man  must  judge  or  accuse  of 
any  crime,  no  man  depose  but  I  myself.  No  man  can  ex- 
communicate me,  yea,  though  I  commune  with  the  excom- 
municated ;  for  no  canon  bindeth  me  :  whom  no  man  must 
lie  to,  for  he  that  lieth  to  me  is  a  heretic,  and  an  excom- 
municated person.     Thus,  then,  it  appeareth  that  the  great- 


314  ^'f^^   Time  is  at  Hand. 

ness  of  priesthood  began  in  Melchisedec,  was  solemnized  in 
Aaron,  perfe6tionated  in  Christ,  represented  in  Peter,  ex- 
alted in  the  universal  jurisdiBion,  and  manifested  in  the 
Pope.  So  that  through  \.\\h  p7'e- eminence  of  f?iy  priesthood, 
liaving  all  things  subje6l  to  me,  it  may  seem  well  verified 
in  me,  that  was  spoken  of  Christ,  *  Thou  hast  subdued  all 
things  under  his  feet. ' 

"And,  likewise,  it  is  to  be  presumed  that  the  bishop  of 
that  church  is  always  good  and  holy.  Yea,  though  he  fall 
into  homicide  or  adultery,  he  may  sin,  but  yet  he  cannot  be 
accused,  but  rather  excused  by  the  murders  of  Samson,  the 
thefts  of  the  Hebrews,  etc.  All  the  earth  is  my  diocese,  and  I 
am  the  ordinary  of  all  men,  having  the  authority  of  the  King 
of  all  kings  upon  subje6ls.  I  am  all  in  all,  and  above  all,  so 
that  God  himself,  and  I,  the  vicar  of  God,  have  both  one 
consistory,  and  I  am  able  to  do  almost  all  that  God  can  do. 
In  all  things  that  I  list  my  will  is  to  stand  for  reason,  for  I  am 
able  by  the  law  to  dispense  above  the  law,  and  of  wrong 
to  make  justice  in  corre6ting  laws  and  changing  them. 
Wherefore,  if  those  things  that  I  do  be  said  notto  be  done 
of  man,  but  of  God — What  can  you  make  me  but  God  ? 
Again,  if  prelates  of  the  church  be  called  and  counted  of 
Constantine  for  Gods,  I  then,  being  above  all  prelates, 
seem  by  this  reason  to  be  above  all  Gods.  Wherefore,  no 
marvel  if  it  be  in  my  power  to  change  time  and  times,  to 
alter  and  abrogate  laws,  to  dispense  with  all  things,  yea, 
with  the  precepts  of  Christ ;  for  where  Christ  biddeth  Peter 
put  up  his  sword,  and  admonishes  his  disciples  not  to  use 
any  outward  force  in  revenging  themselves,  do  not  I,  Pope 
Nicholas,  writing  to  the  bishops  of  France,  exhort  them  to 
drawout  their  material  swords?  .  .  .  And  whereas  Christ  was 
present  himself  at  the  marriage  in  Cana  of  Galilee,  do  not 
I,  Pope  Martin,  in  my  distin6tion,  inhibit  the  spiritual 
clergy  to  be  present  at  marriage-feasts,  and  also  to  marry  ? 
Moreover,  where  Christ  biddeth  us  lend  without  hope  of 
gain,  do  not  I,  Pope  Martin,  give  dispensation  for  the  same? 
What  should  I  speak  of  murder,  making  it  to  be  no  murder 
or  homicide  to  slay  them  that  be  excommunicated  ?  Like- 
wise, against  the  law  of  nature,  item  against  the  apostles, 
also  against  the  canons  of  the  apostles,  I  can  and  do  dis- 
pense ;  for  where  they,  in  their  canon,  command  a  priest 


The  Man  of  ^tn.  315 

for  fornication  to  be  deposed,  I,  through  the  authority  of 
Sylvester,  do  alter  the  rigor  of  that  constitution,  consider- 
ing the  minds  and  bodies  also  of  men  now  to  be  weaker 
than  they  were  then.  .  .  .  If  ye  list  briefly  to  hear  the 
whole  number  of  all  such  cases  as  properly  do  appertain  to 
my  Papal  dispensation,  which  come  to  the  number  of  one- 
and-fifty  points,  that  no  man  may  meddle  with  but  only  I 
myself  alone,  I  will  recite  them.     [Here  follows  the  list.] 

'*  After  that  I  have  now  sufficiently  declared  my  power 
in  earth,  in  heaven,  in  purgatory,  how  great  it  is,  and  what 
is  the  fulness  thereof  in  binding,  loosing,  commanding,  per- 
mitting, eleding,  confirming,  dispensing,  doing  and  undo- 
ing, etc.,  I  will  speak  now  a  little  of  my  riches  and  of  my 
great  possessions,  that  every  man  may  see  my  wealth  and 
abundance  of  all  things — rents,  tithes,  tributes;  my  silks, 
my  purple  mitres,  crowns,  gold,  silver,  pearls  and  gems, 
lands  and  lordships.  For  to  me  pertaineth  first  the  imperial 
city  of  Rome;  the  palace  of  Lateran  ;  the  kingdom  of  Sicily 
is  proper  to  me;  Apula  and  Capua  be  mine.  Also  the 
kingdoms  of  England  and  Ireland,  be  they  not,  or  ought 
they  not  to  be,  tributaries  to  me?  To  these  I  adjoin  also, 
besides  other  provinces  and  countries,  in  both  the  Occident 
and  the  Orient,  from  the  north  to  the  south,  these  domin- 
ions by  name.  [Here  follows  a  long  list.]  What  should  I 
speak  here  of  my  daily  revenues,  of  my  first-fruits,  annates, 
palls,  indulgences,  bulls,  confessionals,  indults  and  rescripts, 
testaments,  dispensations,  privileges,  ele(5lions,  prebends, 
religious  houses,  and  such  like,  which  come  to  no  small 
mass  of  money  ?  .  .  .  whereby  what  vantage  cometh  to  my 
coffers  it  may  partly  be  conje6tured.  .  .  .  But  what  should 
I  speak  of  Germany,  when  the  whole  world  is  my  diocese, 
as  my  canonists  do  say,  and  all  men  are  bound  to  believe. 
Wherefore,  as  I  began,  so  I  conclude,  commanding,  de- 
claring, and  pronouncing,  to  stand  upon  necessity  of  salva- 
tion ^  for  every  human  creattcre  to  be  subjeH:  to  me. ' ' 

It  is  presumed  by  many  to-day  that  these  boastings  of 
the  Papacy  belong  only  to  the  distant  past,  and  that  a 
great  change  has  come  over  that  system  in  later  times ;  but 
a  little  refle6lion  and  observation  prove  that  these  senti- 
ments of  the  Papacy  are  still  unchanged.     We  should  bear 


31 6  *  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

in  mind,  too,  that  the  constant  claim  of  Papacy  is  that  its 
do6lrines  are  unchangeable :  that  the  decrees  of  its  popes 
and  councils  are  infallible ;  and  that  those  decrees,  breath- 
ing out  blasphemy  against  God,  and  persecution  against  his 
saints,  are  still  held  sacred  by  the  Roman  Catholic  Church 
of  the  present  day.  The  change  in  Papacy  is  merely  the 
loss  of  pov/er  brought  about  by  the  awakening  of  the  Refor- 
mation. The  will  is  still  possessed,  but  the  power  to  do  is 
curtailed  by  the  increase  of  knowledge  and  liberty  in  which 
the  Bible  has  been  the  principal  fa6lor.  Antichrist  is  be- 
ing gradually  ''rendered  powerless"  by  the  true  Christ — 
by  the  "  spirit  of  his  mouth" — his  Word.  Soon  the  bright 
shining  of  Immanuers/r<?j-^;/r<?  will  utterly  destroy  the  vain- 
glorious counterfeit,  and  wholly  free  the  world  from  the 
chains  of  its  delusive  claims  and  errors. 

For  an  illustration  of  latter  time  assumptions,  note  the 
fa6l  that  the  present  pope,  upon  ascending  the  papal  throne, 
took  the  title  of  Leo.  XIII,  and  shortly  after  subscribed 
himself  ^^Leo  de  tribtis  Juda  " — i.e.,  "  The  Lion  of  the  tribe 
of  Judah  "; — one  of  the  titles  of  the  true  Head.  Surely  in 
presumptuous  claims,  therefore,  he  is  not  behind  those  who 
held  the  same  office  during  the  dark  ages. 

The  following,  called  The  Adoration,  is  still  a  part  of  the 
ceremony  conne6led  with  the  installation  of  a  new  pope. 
The  new  pope,  clad  in  Avhite,  studded  with  many  brilliant 
gems,  and  wearing  red  shoes  with  large  gold  crosses  for 
buckles,  is  condu6led  to  the  altar,  where  he  kneels. 
Then, — ''The  pope  rises,  and,  wearing  his  mitre,  is  lifted 
up  by  the  cardinals  and  placed  by  them  upon  the  altar- 
throne  to  sit  there.  One  of  the  bishops  kneels,  and  the  sing- 
ing of  Te  Dewn  [We  praise  thee,  O  God.]  begins.  Mean- 
time the  cardinals  kiss  the  feet  and  hands  and  face  of  the 
pope."  A  coin  representing  this  ceremony,  struck  in  the 
Papal  mint, bears  the  words,  "Whom  they  create,they  adore. ' ' 


The  Man  of  Sin.  317 

Cardinal  Manning,  Papacy's  chief  representative  in  Eng- 
land, endorses  and  draws  public  attention  to  the  following 
clause  of  the  Catholic  faith  : — 

*'We  declare,  affirm,  define,  and  pronounce  it  necessary 
to  salvation,  for  every  human  creature  to  be  subje6l  to  the 
Roman  Pontiff."  And  in  a  published  discourse  he  repre- 
sents the  pope  as  saying,  ^'  I  claim  to  be  the  Supreme  Judge 
and  Dire6tor  of  the  consciences  of  men  ;  of  the  peasant 
that  tills  the  field,  and  the  prince  that  sits  on  the  throne ; 
of  the  household  that  lives  in  the  shade  of  privacy,  and  the 
Legislature  that  makes  laws  for  kingdoms.  I  am  the  sole, 
last.  Supreme  Judge  of  what  is  right  and  wrong. ' ' 

Surely,  too,  in  observing  modern  instances  of  Papacy's 
**  great  swelling  words  of  vanity,"  we  should  not  overlook 
the  notable  decree  of  the  Ecumenical  Council,  held  in 
Rome  in  A.  D.  1870,  declaring  the  infallibility  of  the  Pope. 
True,  it  had  been  claimed  now  and  then  in  the  past,  by  su- 
percilious popes,  that  they  were  infallible  ;  and  bishops  and 
princes  desirous  of  flattering  their  pride  had  virtually  so 
pronounced  them,  in  the  declaration,  ''Thou  art  another 
god,  o?i  earth;' '  but  it  remained  for  a  Papal  Council  in  this 
enlightened  nineteenth  century  to  coolly  and  deliberately 
inform  the  world  how  great  this  ''god  on  earth"  is, — that 
he  is  almost  as  perfect  as  the  other  God,  in  heaven ;  that 
he  cannot  err  more  than  the  other  ;  that  in  his  ex  cathedra 
utterances  the  pope  is  infallible — unerring. 

The  vote  of  the  council  was  taken  July  13th,  1870,  and 
on  the  1 8th  the  decree  was  formally  promulgated,  with  cere- 
mony, at  the  great  St.  Peter's  Cathedral  in  Rome.  The 
following  description  of  the  event,  by  Dr.  J.  Cummings,  of 
London,  will  be  read  with  interest.     He  says: — 

"The  Pope  had  a  grand  throne  eredled  in  front  of  the 
eastern  window  in  St.  Peter's,  and  arrayed  himself  in  a  per- 
fect blaze  of  precious  stones,  and  surrounded  himself  with 
cardinals  and  patriarchs  and  bishops  in  gorgeous  apparel,  for 
a  magnificent  spe6lacular  scene.     He  had  chosen  the  early 


3i8  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

morning  hour  and  the  eastern  window, — that  the  rising  sun 
should  flash  its  beams  full  upon  his  magnificence,  and  by  it 
his  diamonds,  rubies  and  emeralds  be  so  refradled  and  re- 
flected that  he  should  appear  to  be  not  a  man,  but  what 
the  decree  proclaimed  him,  one  having  all  the  glory  of 
God.  .  .  .  The  pope  posted  himself  at  an  early  hour  at  the 
eastern  window,  .  .  .  but  the  sun  refused  to  .  .  .  shine. 
The  dismal  dawn  darkened  rapidly  to  a  deeper  and  deeper 
gloom.  The  dazzle  of  glory  could  not  be  produced.  The 
aged  eyes  of  the  would-be  God  could  not  see  to  read  by 
daylight,  and  he  had  to  send  for  candles.  Candle-light 
strained  his  nerves  of  vision  too  much,  and  he  handed  the 
reading  over  to  a  cardinal.  The  cardinal  began  to  read 
amid  an  ever  blackening  gloom,  but  had  not  read  many 
lines  before  such  a  glare  of  lurid  fire  and  such  a  crash  burst 
from  the  inky  heavens  as  was  never  equaled  at  Rome  before. 
Terror  fell  upon  all.  The  reading  ceased.  One  cardinal 
jumped  trembling  from  his  chair,  and  exclaimed,  ^  It  is  the 
voice  of  God  speaking,  the  thunders  of  Sinai.'  " 

Among  the  blasphemous  pretentions  of  Antichrist  should 
be  remembered  several  of  its  do6trines,  particularly  the  doc- 
trine of  the  Mass,  which  we  will  notice  in  a  subsequent  vol- 
ume. Passing  over  the  worshiping  of  saints  and  of  Mary, 
we  note  some  of  the  still  more  grievous  errors. 

Church  Infallibility  was  one  of  the  first,  and  paved  the 
way  to  others.  It  was  claimed  before  the  office  of  Pope  was 
acknowledged.  It  has  been  a  most  serious  error,  and  has 
barred  the  way  against  the  re61ifying  of  errors  when  after- 
ward discovered.  It  has  placed  the  decrees  of  church  coun- 
cils beyond  contradi6lion  or  questioning,  either  by  reason 
or  Scripture  and  has  made  human  ignorance  and  weaknes- 
ses and  misconceptions  the  sfa?idards  of  faith  instead  of 
God's  word — the  Bible;  for,  once  conceded  that  the  voice 
of  the  church  council  was  i?ifallible  (unerring),  everything 
must  be  forced  to  conform  thereto ;  and  each  council 
felt  bound  to  render  no  decisions  contrary  to  preceding 
councils;   and   those  which  did  otherwise  were   liable  to 


The  Man  of  Sin.  319 

be  repudiated.  So  an  error  once  affirmed  could  not  be 
denied  nor  even  dropped,  and  the  Bible  and  reason  had  to 
be  interpreted  and  twisted  to  match  the  infallible  decrees 
of  fallible  men.  No  wonder  it  was  found  that  it  required 
a  very  expert  theologian  to  interpret  the  Scriptures  so  as  to 
make  them  agree  with  the  so-called  infallible  decrees.  No 
M'Onder  either  that,  from  expediency,  Antichrist — 

Proscribed  the  Bible.  The  history  of  Papacy  shows  clear- 
ly that,  while  professing  to  reverence  the  Bible  as  the  Word 
of  God,  it  has  kept  it  in  the  background  and  i^s  own  infal- 
lible words  in  the  front.  Not  only  so,  but  it  has  proscribed 
God's  Word  entirely,  as  unfit  to  be  read  and  dangerous  to  the 
people,  that  its  own  infallible  word  might  have  full  control. 
It  well  knew  that  the  Bible  was  dangerous  to  its  power,  and 
a  constant  denouncement  of  its  blasphemous  pretensions. 

In  the  days  of  Papal  power,  the  possession  or  reading  of  the 
Bible  by  the  people  was  treated  as  a  criminal  offence.  The 
art  of  printing  and  the  general  revival  of  learning  resulting 
therefrom,  about  the  sixteenth  century,  secured  the  resur- 
.redlion  of  the  Bible  from  the  sepulcher  of  dead  languages 
where  Antichrist  had  long  kept  it  hidden,  forbidding  the 
translating  of  it  under  severe  penalties.  And  when  an 
awakening  spirit  of  independence  began  to  scatter  it  in 
living  languages  among  the  people,  Bible-burning  was  no 
uncommon  thing ;  and  long  and  loud  were  the  merciless 
curses  that  issued  from  the  Vatican  against  the  presumptuous 
sinners  who  dared  to  translate,  publish  or  read  the  Word 
of  God. 

When  Wickliffe  published  his  translation,  Pope  Gregory 
sent  a  bull  to  the  Oxford  University  condemning  the  trans- 
lator as  "  run  into  a  detestable  kind  of  wickedness. ' '  Tyn- 
dale's  translation  was  also  condemned ;  and  when  Luther 
published  his  German  translation.  Pope  Leo.  X.  issued  a 
bull  against  him.     Nevertheless,  the  work  went  grandly  and 


320  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

steadily  forward  :  the  Bible  was  to  have  a  complete  resiir- 
re6lion,  and  was  destined  to  shed  light  upon  men  of  every 
nation  and  language.  Slowly  the  Church  of  Rome  came 
to  realize  this,  and  resolved,  therefore,  to  permit  the  trans- 
lation of  the  Scriptures  into  modern  languages,  by  Catholic 
translators,  accompanied  with  Catholic  notes.  These,  how- 
ever, were  not  to  be  given  to  the  people,  except  where  there 
was  danger  of  their  receiving  the  Protestant  translations. 
The  Rhemish  translation  declares  this. 

The  following  show  the  char6ler  of  some  of  the  Notes 
of  the  Rhemish  translation — which,  however,  is  in  recent 
years  being  superseded  by  the  Douay  translation,  very  sim- 
ilar, but  with  less  pointed  notes.  A  note  on  Matt.  3  reads : 
''  Heretics  may  be  punished  and  suppressed ;  and  may,  and 
ought,  by  public  authority,  either  spiritual  or  temporal,  to 
be  chastised  or  executed."  One  on  Gal.  i  :8  reads:  "Cath- 
olics should  not  spare  their  own  parents,  if  heretics."  On 
Heb.  5  :7  the  note  reads :  "The  translators  of  the  Protest- 
ant Bible  ought  to  be  translated  to  the  depths  of  hell." 
And  on  Rev.  17:6  the  comment  reads:  "But  the  blood 
of  Protestants  is  not  called  the  blood  of  saints,  no  more 
than  the  blood  of  thieves,  man-killers,  and  other  malefac- 
tors, for  the  shedding  of  which,  by  the  order  of  justice,  no 
commonwealth  shall  answer." 

The  following  are  some  of  the  restri6lions  imposed  when 
it  was  found  that  the  reading  of  the  Bible'  could  not  be  en- 
tirely prevented.  The  fourth  rule  of  the  Index  Expurga- 
toris  says : 

"  If  any  shall  have  the  presumption  to  read  or  possess  the 
Bible  without  written  permission,  he  shall  not  receive  ab- 
solution until  he  have  first  delivered  up  such  Bible  to  the 
ordinary.  Book-sellers  who  shall  sell  or  otherwise  dispose 
of  Bibles  in  the  vulgar  tongue,  to  any  person  not  having 
such  permission,  shall  forfeit  the  value  of  the  books,  .  .  . 
and  be  subjedled  by  the  bishop  to  such  other  penalties  as 


The  Man  of  Sin.  321 

the  bishop  shall  judge  proper,  according  to  the  quality  of 
the  offence. ' ' 

Said  the  Council  of  Trent,  in  its  session  A.  D.  1546: — 

''  In  order  to  restrain  petulant  minds,  the  council  decrees 
that  in  matters  of  faith  and  morals,  and  whatever  relates  to 
the  maintenance  of  Christian  do6lrine,  no  one,  confiding 
in  his  own  judgment,  shall  dare  to  wrest  the  sacred  Script- 
ures to  his  own  sense  of  them,  contrary  to  that  which  hath 
been  held,  and  still  is  held,  by  the  holy  mother  church,  whose 
right  it  is  to  judge  of  the  true  meaning." 

From  the  bull  of  Pius  VII. ,  against  Bible  Societies,  issued 
June  29,  1816,  to  the  Primate  of  Poland,  we  quote:  — 

''We  have  been  truly  shocked  at  this  most  crafty  device, 
by  which  the  very  foundations  of  religion  are  undermined ; 
and  having,  because  of  the  great  importance  of  the  subje6l, 
conferred  in  council  with  our  venerable  brethren,  the  cardi- 
nals of  the  holy  Roman  Church,  we  have,  with  the  utmost 
care  and  attention,  deliberated  upon  the  measures  proper  to 
be  adopted  by  our  pontifical  authority,  in  order  to  remedy 
and  abolish  this  pestilence  as  far  as  possible.  ...  Of  your 
own  accord  you  have  already  shown  an  ardent  desire  to  de- 
tect and  overthrow  the  impious  machinations  of  these  inno- 
vators ;  yet,  in  conformity  with  our  office,  we  again  and 
again  exhort  you  that  whatever  you  can  achieve  hy  power ^ 
provide  by  counsel,  or  effe6l  by  authority,  you  will  daily  ex- 
ecute with  the  utmost  earnestness.  .  .  .  The  Bible  printed 
by  heretics  is  to  be  numbered  among  other  prohibited 
books,  conformably  to  the  rules  of  the  Index." 

The  same  pope,  in  the  year  181 9,  issued  a  bull  against 
the  use  of  the  Scriptures  in  the  schools  of  Ireland.  From 
it  we  quote  : — 

"  Information  has  reached  the  ears  of  the  sacred  congre- 
gation that  Bible  Schools,  supported  by  the  funds  of  the 
heterodox,  have  been  established  in  almost  every  part  of 
Ireland ;  in  which  the  inexperienced  of  both  sexes  are 
invested  with  the  fatal  poison  of  depraved  doctrines.  .  .  . 
Every  possible  exertion  must  therefore  be  made,  to  keep 
the  youth  away  from  these  destructive  schools.  .  .  .  Do 
you  labor  with  all  your  might  to  keep  the  orthodox  youth 
from  being  corrupted  by  them — an  obje6t  which  will,  I 

21   B 


322  The  Twte  is  at  Hand. 

hope,  be  easily  effe6led  by  the  estabhshment  of  Cathohc 
schools  throughout  your  diocese." 

Here  we  have  a  candid  admission  of  the  real  obje6l  of 
the  establishment  of  Catholic  parochial  schools  in  Great 
Britain  and  North  America,  viz. :  to  protect  their  lines. 
Antichrist  has  no  other  obje6l  in  offering  education  to  the 
common  people.  Ignorance  and  superstition  are  Papacy's 
bulwarks ;  and  the  centuries  of  its  power,  including  what  is 
known  as  the  "dark  ages,"  prove  this.  The  education  of 
the  clergy  under  **  restri6lions"  was  not  negle6led;  but, 
that  no  provision  was  made  for  the  education  of  the  people, 
the  dense  ignorance  of  all  old  Roman  Catholic  countries 
is  strong  proof.  Schools  and  Bibles  have  ever  been  Anti- 
christ's unendurable  enemies,  and  would  not  be  tolerated, 
except  as  they  became  necessities — upon  which  a  false  light 
must  be  thrown  for  the  preservation  of  Antichrist's  existence. 

From  a  bull  by  Leo  XII.  to  the  Roman  Catholic  clergy 
of  Ireland,  A.  D.  1825,  we  quote:— 

*'  It  is  no  secret  to  you,  venerable  brethren,  that  a  cer- 
tain society,  vulgarly  called  the  Bible  Society,  is  audaciously 
dispreading  itself  through  the  whole  world.  After  despis- 
ing the  traditions  of  the  holy  fathers,  and  in  opposition  to 
the  well  known  decree  of  the  Council  of  Trent,  this  society 
has  colle6ted  all  its  forces,  and  dire6ls  every  means  to  one 
obje6l : — to  the  translation,  or  rather  to  the  perversion,  of 
the  Bible  into  the  vernacular  languages  of  all  nations." 

Even  the  late  Pope  Pius  IX.  expressed  his  anguish  of 
heart  at  the  triumph  on  every  hand  of  this  great  enemy  of 
Antichrist — the  Bible.  He  said,  "  Accursed  be  those  very 
crafty  and  deceitful  societies  called  Bible  Societies,  which 
thrust  the  Bible  into  the  hands  of  the  inexperienced  youth. ' ' 

True,  it  was  decreed  at  the  Roman  Catholic  Plenary 
Council  of  Baltimore,  A.  D.  1886,  that  an  approved  Bible 
shall  be  permitted  in  Catholic  schools  of  the  United  States. 
This,  however,  betokens  no  change  in  the  real  senti- 
ment of  Antichrist  i  it  is  but  another  stroke  of  its  far- 


The  Man  of  Sin.  323 

sighted  policy,  in  deference  to  the  spirit  of  liberty  in  this 
country,  which  abhors  such  restraints.  They  well  knew, 
however,  that  the  liberty  and  not  the  Bible  was  wanted; 
and  inquiry  discovers  that  now,  two  years  after,  the  Bible 
is  not  to  be  found  in  Catholic  schools  hereabouts. 

The  do6trine  of  the  natural,  inherent  immortality  of  man 
(that  a  human  existence  once  begun  can  never  cease) 
was  another  fruitful  error,  borrowed  from  Grecian  philoso- 
pihy.  And,  being  admitted,  it  led  naturally  to  the  conclu- 
sion that  if  existence  must  contifuie  forever,  then  the  Bible 
expiessions  concerning  the  destru(5lion  of  finally  wilful 
sinners,  the  second  death,  etc.,  must  be  construed  to  mean 
the  opposite  of  what  they  say,  viz. :  everlasting  life,  in  some 
condition.  Next,  it  was  easy  to  decree  that  to  the  wicked 
it  must  be  a  life  of  suffering ;  and  the  torments  were  fre- 
quently pi6lured  upon  the  walls  of  the  churches  as  well  as  by 
the  words  of  zealous  priests  and  monks.  This  error  was 
the  more  easily  impressed  upon  converts  because  the  Greek 
philosojohers  (then  the  leaders  of  the  world  in  matters  of 
science,  religion  and  philosophy — whose  ideas,  as  Josephus 
shows,  had  even  begun  to  tin6lure  Judaism)  had  long  held 
and  taught  a  punishment  for  the  wicked  in  death.  To 
their  credit,  however,  be  it  noted  that  they  never  descended 
to  the  horrible  blashphemies  of  God's  chara6ler  and  govern- 
ment taught  to  the  world  by  Antichrist.  Next,  it  was  in 
order  to  fix  a  place  for  this  torment  and  call  it  hell,  and 
to  seek  passages  of  Scripture  referring  to  sheol  and  hades 
and  gehenna  which  describe  the  real  wages  of  sin — the  first 
and  second  deaths — and  dextrously  to  apply  these  and  the 
parables  of  our  Lord  and  the  symbols  of  Revelation,  so  as 
tu  delude  themselves  and  the  whole  world  on  this  subjedl 
and  most  grievously  to  malign  and  blaspheme  the  charadler 
and  plan  of  God,  our  all-wise  and  gracious  Heavenly  Father. 

Purgatory  was  brought  in,  to  relieve  and  make  endurable 


324  The  Time  is  at  Hand, 

this  terrible  dose  of  do6lrine,  and  withal  to  give  Antichrist 
a  firmer  hold  upon  the  people.  It  claimed  to  hold  the  keys 
of  heaven  and  hell  and  to  have  power  to  remit  the  pains  of 
purgatory :  not  only  the  Adamic  penalty,  and  the  weaknesses 
inherited  thereby,  but  also  the  penalties  of  wilful,  deliber- 
ate sins.  What  a  leverage  of  power  this  gave,  over  an  ig' 
norant  people,  can  be  easily  imagined — especially  when  the 
emperors  and  chief  men  of  earth  acknowledged  and  bowed 
before  the  deceiver. 

Masses  for  the  dead  followed  ;  and  rich  and  poor  alike 
felt  it  a  duty  to  pay,  and  liberally,  too,  to  have  these.  The 
efficacy  of  masses,  for  the  relief  of  purgatorial  sufferings,  is 
claimed  to  be  omnipotent — so  that  not  even  Jehovah  or 
Christ  could  interfere  with  it.  This  became  a  source  of 
great  income  to  Antichrist ;  for  the  priests  were  not  slow 
to  remind  the  dying,  if  wealthy,  of  the  propriety  of  leav- 
ing liberal  bequests  for  masses  for  themselves — lest  those 
who  inherited  their  wealth  should  negle6t  the  matter.  And, 
indeed,  within  the  present  year  warnings  of  a  similar  kind 
have  appeared  in  Roman  Catholic  journals,  urging  that  less 
money  be  spent  upon  funeral  flowers,  that  the  more  might 
be  spent  for  masses  for  the  dead. 

Indulgences  came  in,  some  time  before  the  "  Crusades"  : 
we  know  that  indulgences  were  offered,  as  a  bounty,  to  secure 
volunteers  for  these  ^'  Crusades' '  or  ''  Holy  Wars. ' '  By  Papal 
edi6l,  whoever  would  engage  in  these  holy  wars  would  not 
only  have  forgiveness  for  sins  past,  but  also  merit  to  offset 
sins  future ;  and  thus  be  guaranteed  against  certain  purgatorial 
sufferings.  These  indulgences,  Roman  Catholics  tell  us,  are 
not  designed  to  be  licenses  to  commit  sins,  but  are  rewards 
of  merit  which  offset  or  cancel  a  certain  number  of  days  or 
years  of  purgatorial  anguish :  so  that  if  a  man's  sins  made  him 
liable  to  one  thousand  years  of  suffering,  and  he,  at  one 
time,  or  at  various  times,  secured  indulgences  to  the  amount 


The  Ma7i  of  Sin.  325 

of  one  thousand  years,  either  for  money,  or  for  services  ren- 
dered to  Papacy,  or  by  penances  done,  he  would  go  free  ;  if 
he  had  to  his  credit  nine  hundred  years  indulgence,  he  would 
have  to  endure  one  hundred  years  of  suffering ;  and  if  in- 
dulgences were  reckoned  to  much  overbalance  his  penalties, 
he  would  probably  be  accounted  a  saint,  of  special  influence 
in  heaven,  to  be  prayed  to  and  adored.  Of  this  order  Louis, 
king  of  France,  the  Crusader,  would  be  an  example.  He  was 
canonized,  and  is  now  adored  and  prayed  to  as  Saint  Louis. 

There  is  indeed  a  difference  between  this  view  of  Indul- 
gences and  a  license  to  commit  sins ;  and  yet  it  is  very 
slight ;  for  Papacy  affixed  to  various  common  sins  a  certain 
amount  of  suffering,  and  not  only  could  sins  past  be  thus 
offset  and  cancelled,  but  those  who  had  reason  to  think  that 
they  might  commit  certain  sins,  in  the  future,  could  thus 
provide  beforehand  merit  to  cancel  them.  Besides  this, 
some,  called  '^plenary  [complete,  entire]  indulgences," 
are  certainly  understood  to  cover  all  sins,  past  and  future. 

The  pra6lice  even  at  the  present  day  seems  scarcely  cred- 
ible. Romanists  have  certain  prayers,  a  repetition  of  which 
constitutes  a  ground  for  indulgence  for  a  limited  period ; 
and  many  added  together,  they  claim,  will  prote6l  from 
wrath  a  long  time.  Thus,  those  who  say  the  ''Hail,  Holy 
Queen'''  are  granted  forty  days  of  indulgence,  while  for  say- 
ing the  ''Lita7iy  of  the  Blessed  Virgin''  *  there  is  an  indulgence 
of  two  hundred  days ;  and  for  those  who  say  the  ^'Blessed 
be  the  Holy,  Immaculate  and  Most  Pure  Conception  of  the 
Virgin  Mary ' '  one  hundred  years  indulgence  is  granted,  etc. , 
etc.  In  the  ''  darker  ages,"  when  indulgences  were  freely 
offered  for  money  and  for  services  in  the  persecution  of  in- 
fidels and  heretics,  it  may  readily  be  imagined  to  what  cor- 
ruption this  blasphemous  dodrine  led. 

To  crimes  generally  committed  by  the  rich,  who  cr^nld 
pay  liberally,  enormous  penalties  were  affixed,  while  the 


326  The   Tz7ne  is  at  Hand. 

basest  violations  of  justice,  more  common  among  the  poorer 
classes,  were  lightly  excused.  Thus,  marriage  with  a  first 
cousin  cost  ^5000,  while  wife-murder  or  parricide  cost  only 
$20.  Spanheim  says  :  "  'I'he  institution  of  Indulgence  was 
the  mint  which  coined  money  for  the  Roman  Church ;  the 
gold  mines  for  the  profligate  nephews  and  natural  children 
of  the  popes ;  the  nerves  of  the  Papal  wars ;  the  means  of 
liquidating  debt,  and  the  inexhaustible  fountain  of  luxury 
to  the  popes." 

To  regulate  this  traffic  a  graded  scale  of  penalties  was 
affixed  to  various  sins — so  many  days  or  years  in  purgatory 
for  each  ;  and  a  scale  of  prices  was  also  arranged  to  corre- 
spond, so  that  those  obtaining  indulgence  for  a  murder  or 
a  theft,  for  infanticide,  or  adultery,  or  perjury,  or  other  sins, 
could  be  charged  at  different  rates.  By  this  means  pen- 
ances were  canceled  and  the  torments  of  purgatory  miti- 
gated or  ended,  at  the  pleasure  of  Antichrist's  agents.  We 
cannot  wonder  that  the  people  speedily  got  to  understand 
that  so  much  money  paid  for  so  much  sin. 

To  such  an  extent  was  crime  increased  by  these  indulg- 
ences, that  the  indignation  of  the  better  classes  of  society 
was  roused  to  rebellion  against  the  church.  Men's  eyes  be- 
gan to  be  opened,  and  they  saw  the  clergy,  from  the  high- 
est dignitaries  of  the  church  down  to  the  lowest  orders  of 
officials,  steeped  in  iniquity. 

As  the  darkest  hour  precedes  the  storm,  so  just  before  the 
great  Reformation  movement  was,  morally,  the  darkest 
hour  of  Antichrist's  dark  reign.  There  the  open  and  shame- 
ful traffic  in  indulgences  produced  nausea,  and  led  Luther 
and  other  zealous  papists  to  question  and  examine  the  en- 
tire system,  both  in  its  moral,  and  afterward  in  its  doc- 
trinal, aspects.  Finally,  Luther  struck  the  true  idea — that 
Papacy  was  indeed  the  Antichrist.  And,  having  discov- 
ered this,  he  fearlessly  pointed  out  some  of  the  symbols  of 


The  Man  of  ^tn.  ^2/ 

Revelation,  and  siliowed  their  applicability  and  partial  ful- 
filment in  the  Papal  Hierarchy. 

On  this  subject  we  quote  the  following  from  the  pen  of 
the  well  known  clergyman,  Lyman  Abbott.     He  says : — 

"Among  other  conditions,  for  which  indulgences  were 
formerly  granted  more  than  now,  was  the  contribution  of 
money  to  the  church.  This  traffic  reached  its  height  in  the 
beginning  of  the  sixteenth  century,  under  Leo  X.,  who  pub- 
lished indulgences  to  all  who  would  contribute  toward  the 
eredlion  of  St.  Peter's  [Cathedral]  at  Rome.  His  chief 
agent  for  the  sale  of  indulgences  in  Germany  was  one  John 
Tetzel.  The  notorious  vices  of  Tetzel  did  not  prevent  him 
from  being  sele6ted  as  the  bearer  of  these  pardons  to  other 
purer  souls,  and  no  extravagance  seemed  to  him  too  great, 
so  that  it  brought  money  to  his  coffers.  He  declared  that 
the  red  cross,  which  accompanied  him  wherever  he  went, 
had  as  great  efficacy  as  the  cross  of  Christ — that  there  was 
no  sin  so  great  that  he  could  not  remit  it.  '  Indulgences 
save  not  the  living  alone,  they  also  save  the  dead.  The 
very  moment  that  the  money  chinks  against  the  bottom  of 
the  chest,  the  soul  escapes  from  Purgatory  and  flies  free  to 
heaven. '  Such  were  some  of  his  blasphemous  declarations. 
A  regular  scale  of  prices  was  established.  '  Polygamy  cost 
six  ducats ;  sacrilege  and  perjury,  nine ;  murder,  eight ; 
witchcraft,  two.'  It  was  this  open  and  shameless  traffic 
which,  more  than  anything  else,  led  to  the  Reformation. 
Indulgences  continued  to  be  granted,  not  only  for  a6ls  of 
worship,  but  also  for  contributions  in  money  to  the  church  ; 
but  the  public  and  open  sale  of  indulgences  is  now  banished, 
for  the  most  part,  from  thf;  Church  of  Rcme." 

Another  writer  quotes  letzel's  language  further,  thus: — 
"  Draw  near  and  I  will  give  you  letters  duly  sealed,  by 
which  even  the  sins  you  shall  hereafter  desire  to  commit  shall 
be  all  forgiven  you.  There  is  no  sin  so  great  that  indulgence 
cannot  remit.  Pay,  only  pay  largely  and  you  shall  be  for- 
given. Ye  priests,  ye  nobles,  ye  tradesmen,  ye  wives,  ye 
maidens,  ye  young  men,  hearken  to  your  departed  parents 
and  friends,  who  call  to  you  from  the  bottomless  abyss, 
'We  are  enduring  horrible  torment;  a  small  alms  would  de- 


32S  The  Time  is  at  Band. 

liver  us.  You  can  give  it,  Will  you  not  ?'  With  ten  gro- 
schen  you  can  deliver  your  father  from  purgatory.  Our 
Lord  God  no  longer  deals  with  us  as  God — He  has  given 
all  power  to  the  Pope." 

The  following  is  handed  down  as  a  copy  of  the  blanks 
used  by  Tetzel — filled  out  with  the  name  of  the  purchaser, 
his  sins,  etc. :  — 

''  Our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  have  mercy  on  thee.  .  .  ., 
and  absolve  thee  by  the  merits  of  his  most  holy  sufferings. 
I,  in  virtue  of  the  Apostolic  power  committed  to  me,  absolve 
thee  from  all.  .  .  .  excesses,  sins  and  crimes  that  thou 
mayest  have  committed,  however  great  and  enormous  they 
may  be,  and  of  whatever  kind,  ...  I  remit  the  pains 
thou  wouldst  have  had  to  endure  in  purgatory,  .  .  . 
I  restore  thee  to  the  innocence  and  purity  of  thy  baptism, 
so  that,  at  the  moment  of  death,  the  gates  of  the  place  of 
torment  shall  be  shut  against  thee,  and  the  gates  of  paradise 
open  to  thee.  And  if  thou  shouldst  live  long,  this  grace 
continueth  unchangeable  till  the  time  of  thy  end.  In  the 
name  of  the  Father,  and  of  the  Son,  and  of  the  Holy  Ghost, 
Amen.  The  brother,  John  Tetzel,  commissary,  hath  signed 
this  with  his  own  hand.     ." 

As  to  the  immediate  present  we  cannot  say,  but  we  know 
that,  only  a  few  years  since,  printed  indulgences  with  prices 
affixed  were  kept  on  sale,  at  tables,  in  some  of  the  large 
Roman  Catholic  churches  of  Mexico  and  Cuba. 

«'  IT  WAS  GIVEN  HIM  TO  MAKE  WAR  WITH  THE  SAINT£ 

AND  TO  OVERCOME  THEM"— TO  "WEAR  OUT 

THE  SAINTS  OF  THE  MOST  HIGH." 

Did  the  papal  counterfeit  kingdom  hold  and  exercise 
power  over  the  truly  consecrated  children  of  God,  and  over- 
come them, — ''  wear  them  out"  by  a  long  period  of  oppres- 
sion, or  crushing,  as  the  Hebrew  text  implies  ?  We  answer. 
Yes :  every  means  that  could  be  thought  of  was  employed 
to  crush  out  the  very  spirit  of  true  Christianity  (John  8 :36; 
Gal.  5:1;   2  Cor.  3:17),  and  to  substitute  the  spirit,  doc- 


The  Man  of  Sin.  329 

trines  and  forms  of  Antichrist.  It  was  at  first  less  of  an 
open  attack  on  the  faithful  than  of  a  slow,  persistent, 
crushing  oppression,  dealing  more  particularly  with  oppos- 
ing teachers ;  and  wearing  out  the  patience  and  also  the 
faith  of  many.  This  persistent  worrying,  and  wearing  out, 
are  well  illustrated  in  the  institution  of  the  Confessional,  in 
which  Antichrist  not  only  took  cognizance  of  every  criti- 
cism and  every  word  of  objedlion  to  that  system,  uttered  in 
the  hearing  of  the  confessing  one,  but  under  threat  of  future 
penalties  compelled  him  to  confess  and  repent  of  any  op- 
posing thoughts  or  a6ts  of  his  own.  This,  too,  was  soon 
so  backed  by  the  civil  power  that  to  utter  any  protest  against 
the  church  could  be  construed  as  treason  against  the  civil 
power,  which  was  upheld  by  papal  authority. 

In  the  first  flush  of  papal  exaltation,  the  people  as  a  whole 
were  nominally  members  of  the  church  or  else  pagans  ;  and 
all  who  professed  Christ  were  expe6ted  to  conform  to  the 
usages  and  regulations  of  the  gradually  self-exalting  hierar- 
chy. Error,  always  more  popular  than  truth,  when  exalted 
to  influence  and  power,  hunted  down,  proscribed  and  made 
disreputable  the  truth,  and  all  who  held  it.  This  was  the 
time  when,  as  pictured  in  Revelation,  the  true  Church 
(woman)  fled  into  the  wilderness — into  solitude  (Rev.  12:6) 
— an  outcast  because  of  her  fidelity  to  the  truth,  and  to  the 
true  Lord  and  Head  of  the  Church.  In  this  time,  when 
apostates  were  being  exalted  as  princes,  the  true,  humble 
saints  were  experiencing  what  the  Lord  had  warned  them, 
and  all  who  will  live  godly  (in  this  present  time),  to  expe(5l, 
viz.,  persecution.  The  mother-in-law  was  against  the 
daughter-in-law,  father  against  son,  and  brother  against 
brother ;  and  a  man's  foes  were  often  indeed  they  of  his 
own  household.  Could  anything  be  conceived  of  more 
likely  to  wear  out  or  crush  the  saints  of  the  Most  High  than 
such  a  course,  persisted  in  for  centuries  ? 


330  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

To  gain  an  idea  of  the  ferocity  and  relentlessness  of  this 
persecution,  we  must  again  turn  to  the  pages  of  history. 

The  persecutions  of  the  Christians  under  Pagan  Rome 
were  not  worthy  of  comparison  with  those  under  Papal 
Rome,  being  less  frequent,  more  limited  in  extent  and 
much  less  severe.  It  is  stated,  on  the  authority  of  the  early 
Christians,  that  the  majority  of  the  Roman  magistrates  who 
exercised  in  the  provinces  the  authority  of  the  emperor,  or  of 
the  senate,  and  in  whose  hands  was  the  power  of  life  and 
death,  behaved  like  men  of  polished  manners  and  liberal 
education,  who  respe6led  the  rules  of  justice.  They  fre- 
quently declined  the  odious  task  of  persecution,  dismissed 
charges  against  the  Christians  with  contempt  (as  Pilate  and 
Herod  attempted  to  do  in  the  case  of  our  Lord — Luke 
23:14-16,  20,  22;  Matt.  27:24),  or  suggested  to  accused 
Christians  some  legal  evasion.  When  possible,  they  used 
their  power  much  oftener  for  the  relief  than  for  the  op- 
pression of  Christians ;  and  the  Pagan  tribunals  were  often 
their  surest  refuge  against  their  Jewish  accusers.*  The  cruel 
persecution  under  the  execrable  tyrant  Nero,  who  burned 
some  of  the  Christians  to  divert  public  suspicion  from  him- 
self, forms  one  of  the  darkest  pages  in  the  history  of  Pagan 
Rome  ;  but  his  vi(5lims  were  comparatively  few.  The  vi6lims 
of  Pagan  persecution  were  not  communities  generally,  but 
prominent  individuals.  These  persecutions  of  leading  rep- 
resentatives, even,  were  not  so  much  a  fixed,  persistent  de- 
termination of  opposition  on  the  part  of  the  government 
as  a  result  of  uncontrollable  popular  clamor,  awakened  by 
superstition,  which  it  seemed  to  the  rulers  necessary  to  sat- 
isfy in  the  interest  of  peace  and  order.  Several  instances 
illustrative  of  this  are  found  in  the  career  of  the  Apostle 
Paul,  as  well  as  of  other  apostles. — See  A6ls  19:35-41; 
25:24-27;   26:2,  3,  28.     Even  the  more  general  perse- 

*  Gibbon,  Vol.  Ii.,  pages  31-33. 


The  Man  of  Sin.  331 

cutions,  under  the  Roman  emperors,  l^isted  for  but  brief 
periods,  except  that  under  Diocletian,  which  continued 
with  varying  severity  for  ten  years.  Between  these  perse- 
cutions were  often  long  periods  of  peace  and  quiet.  Under 
the  emperors,  though  greatly  harrassed, Christianity  was  not 
worn  out,  but,  as  we  have  seen,  it  greatly  prospered. 

How  different  the  persecutions  of  Papacy,  which  laid 
hold  not  only  of  prominent  opposers  but  of  all,  and  whose 
persecutions  lasted  not  for  a  few  months  only,  but  inces- 
santly !  What  under  Pagan  emperors  had  been  a  passing 
rage  or  frenzy,  under  the  pojDes  was  reduced  to  a  regular 
system,  animated  by  religious  fanaticism  and  scheming  am- 
bition,— and  inspired  with  a  Satanic  zeal,  energy  and  cru- 
elty unparalleled  in  the  annals  of  history.  The  apostate 
church  laid  aside  the  sword  of  the  spirit,  and,  grasping  the 
arm  of  the  empire,  turned  its  carnal  weapons  with  relent- 
less fury  upon  every  weaker  opponent  that  stood  in  the  way 
of  its  ambition ;  while  it  courted,  flattered  and  deceived 
those  in  authority  until  it  gained  their  confidence  and 
usurped  their  place  and  power. 

Both  heathenism  and  heresy  then  became  the  subje6ls  of 
persecution — especially  the  latter.  The  so-called  Christian 
clergy,  says  Edgar,  ''misapplied  the  laws  of  the  Jewish 
theocracy,  and  the  transa6lions  of  the  Jewish  annals,  for 
the  unchristian  and  base  purpose  of  awakening  the  demon 
of  persecution  against  the  mouldering  remains  of  Grecian 
and  Roman  [heathenish]  superstition.  .  .  .  They  dis- 
solved the  ancient  fabric  of  Polytheism  and  transferred 
its  revenues  to  the  use  of  the  church,  the  state  and  the 
army.  .  .  .  Gentilism  was  expelled  from  the  Roman 
territory.  .  .  .  Coercion  in  general  was  substituted 
for  conviction,  and  terror  for  the  gospel.  One  blushes  to 
read  of  a  Symmachus  and  a  Libanius,  two  heathen  orators, 
pleading  for  reasofi  and  persuasion  in  the  propagation  of 


332  The   Tune  is  at  Hand. 

religion,  whilst  a  Theodosius  and  an  Ambrosiiis,  a  Christian 
emperor  and  a  Christian  bishop,  urge  violence  and  con- 
straint." 

Upon  the  accession  of  Constantine  to  the  sovereignty  of 
Rome,  he  was  inclined  to  tolerate  all  religions,  as  was 
shown  by  the  celebrated  edi(5l  of  Milan,  which  granted  re- 
ligious freedofii  to  every  individual  of  the  Roman  empire. 
Such  a  measure  should  have  been  hailed  with  joy  by  the 
Christian  Church,  which  had  so  longed  for  liberty  under 
previous  persecutions;  but  such  was  not  the  case.  The 
true  spirit  of  Christianity  had  departed,  and  now  the  ambi- 
tion of  the  church  was  to  exalt  itself  as  rapidly  as  possible 
by  crushing  out  every  spark  of  liberty  and  subduing  all 
things  to  itself.  Accordingly,  says  Gibbon,*  "  His  [Con- 
stantine's]  ecclesiastical  ministers  soon  contrived  to  reduce 
the  impartiality  of  the  magistrate,  and  to  awaken  the  zeal 
of  the  proselyte ;  .  .  .  and  he  extinguished  the  hope 
of  peace  and  toleration,  from  the  moment  that  he  assem- 
bled three  hundred  bishops  within  the  walls  of  the  palace. ' ' 
The  emperor  was  there  persuaded  to  declare  that  those  who 
resisted  the  judgment  of  this  clerical  body  in  matters  of 
faith  should  prepare  themselves  for  immediate  exile.  And 
their  decisions  were  declared  to  be  of  divine  authority. 
This  spirit  of  intolerance  soon  ripened  into  bitter  and  re- 
lentless persecution.  Constantine  issued  two  penal  laws 
against  heresy,  and  his  example  was  followed  by  succeed- 
ing emperors — Valentinian,  Gratian,  Theodosius,  Arcadi- 
us  and  Honorius.  Theodosius  published  fifteen,  Arcadius 
twelve,  and  Honorius  no  less  than  eighteen  of  these  statutes. 
These  are  recorded  in  the  Theodosian  and  in  the  Justinian 
codes,  to  the  disgrace  of  their  priestly  and  imperial  authors. 

What  Antichrist  was  pleased    to  call  heresy  (much  of 
which  was  truth  and  righteousness  endeavoring  to  hold  a 

*  Vol.  II.,  page  236. 


The  Man  of  Sin.  333 

footing)  was  classed  as  worse  than  infidelity,  and  both  were 
opposed  b}^  kings,  emperors  and  theologians ;  and  both 
were  persecuted,  especially  the  former,  by  the  Inquisition. 
When,  about  the  beginning  of  the  thirteenth  century,  there 
came  a  revival  of  learning,  and  men  began  to  awaken  from 
the  sleep  and  troubled  dreams  of  the  "dark  ages,"  those 
from  whose  minds  the  truth  had  not  been  entirely  eradi- 
cated were  stimulated,  and  the  standard  of  truth  was  raised 
in  opposition  to  the  grosser  errors  of  Antichrist.  Then 
the  persecuting  spirit  of  Antichrist  was  aroused  to  furious 
a6lion,  to  crush  out  the  opposition. 

Kings  and  princes  who  trembled  for  the  security  of  their 
crowns,  if  they  to  any  extent  incurred  the  pope's  displeasure, 
and  whose  realms  might  be  laid  under  a  dreaded  interdicSl, 
should  they  or  their  people  refuse  to  render  absolute  obe- 
dience to  the  pope's  commands,  were  sworn  to  exterminate 
heresy,  and  admonished  to  purify  their  provinces  from  he- 
retical perversity,  on  the  pain  of  having  their  dominions 
wrested  from  them ;  and  those  barons  who  negle6led  to  aid 
in  the  work  of  persecution  forfeited  their  estates.  Kings 
and  princes,  therefore,  were  not  tardy  in  their  efforts  to 
comply  with  the  mandates  of  the  Papacy,  and  the  barons 
and  their  retainers  were  at  their  service,  to  aid  in  the  work 
of  destru6lion. 

Even  before  this  awakening,  as  early  as  the  year  A.  D. 
630,  the  Council  of  Toledo  compelled  the  king  of  Spain, 
on  his  accession  to  the  throne,  to  swear  to  tolerate  no  he- 
retical subje6ls  in  the  Spanish  dominions ;  and  it  was  de- 
clared that  the  sovereign  who  should  violate  such  oath 
would  "be  accursed  in  the  sight  of  the  everlasting  God, 
and  become  the  fuel  of  eternal  fire."  But  the  awful  import 
of  such  demands  was  much  more  fully  realized  when  the 
awakening  began,  and  when  Antichrist  had  obtained  the 
maximum  of  his  power. 


334  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

The  Council  of  Oxford  in  1160  consigned  a  company  of 
Waldenses,  who  had  emigrated  from  Gascony  to  England, 
to  the  secular  arm  for  punishment.  Accordingly,  King 
Henry  11.  ordered  them,  men  and  women,  to  be  publicly 
whipped,  branded  on  the  cheek  with  a  red-hot  iron,  and 
driven,  half-naked,  out  of  the  city  in  the  dead  of  winter ; 
and  none  were  permitted  to  show  them  pity  or  to  grant 
them  the  slightest  favor. 

Frederick,  the  empeior  of  Germany,  A.  D.  1224,  sen- 
tenced heretics  of  every  description,  alive,  to  the  flames, 
their  property  to  confiscation,  and  their  posterity,  unless 
they  became  persecutors,  to  infamy.  Louis,  king  of  France, 
A.  D.  1228,  published  laws  for  the  extirpation  of  heresy, 
and  enforced  their  execution.  He  forced  Raymond,  Count 
of  Toulouse,  to  undertake  the  extermination  of  heresy  from 
his  dominions  without  sparing  friend  or  vassal. 

From  the  earliest  encroachments  of  the  power  which  by 
degrees  developed  into  the  papal  system,  resistance  was 
made ;  but  that  resistance  was  offered  only  by  a  faithful  few, 
whose  influence  made  little  impression  on  the  overwhelming 
tide  of  worldliness  that  swept  in  upon  the  church.  Grad- 
ually, as  they  discerned  the  error,  some  quietly  withdrew 
themselves  from  the  great  apostasy,  to  worship  God  accord- 
ing to  the  dictates  of  conscience,  even  at  the  risk  of  perse- 
cution. Notable  among  these  were  some,  afterward  called 
Waldenses,  Albigenses,  Wyclifiites  and  Huguenots.  These, 
though  called  by  several  names  had,  so  far  as  we  can  judge, 
a  common  origin  and  a  common  faith.  "  Waldensianism," 
says  Rainerous  (3.4),  the  noted  Inquisitor  of  the  thirteenth 
century,  ''  is  the  ancientest  heresy ;  and  existed,  according 
to  some,  from  the  days  of  [pope]  Sylvester,  and  according 
to  others,  from  the  days  of  the  apostles."  Sylvester  was 
pope  when  Constantine  was  emperoj  and  confessed  Chris- 
tianity ;  and  thus  we  see  that  the  truth  was  not  without  its 


The  Man  of  Sin.  335 

adherents  from  the  first,  who,  though  humble  and  unpopu- 
lar, resolutely  resisted  Papacy  and  the  papal  doctrines  of 
purgatory,  image-worship,  invocation  of  saints,  worship 
of  the  Virgin  Mary,  prayer  for  the  dead,  transubstantiation, 
celibacy  of  the  clergy,  indulgences,  mass,  etc. ,  and  discount- 
enanced pilgrimages,  festivals,  the  burning  of  incense,  sa- 
cred burial,  the  use  of  holy  water,  sacerdotal  vestments,  mon- 
achism,  etc.,  and  held  that  the  teaching  of  the  Sacred 
Scriptures  should  be  received,  in  opposition  to  the  tradi- 
tions and  claims  of  the  Church  of  Rome.  They  regarded 
the  pope  as  the  head  of  all  errors,  and  claimed  that  the  re- 
mission of  sins  is  obtained  through  the  merits  of  the  Lord 
Jesus,  only. 

The  faith  and  works  of  this  people  were  a  stand  for  ref- 
ormation, and  a  protest  against  error,  long  before  the  days 
of  Luther ;  and  they,  and  other  opposers  of  Romanism, 
were  hunted  and  hated  and  persecuted  with  pitiless  fury, 
by  papal  emissaries.  The  Waldenses  and  Albigenses  were 
the  most  numerous  bodies  of  Protestants  against  Papacy ; 
and  when  the  literary  awakening  of  the  thirteejith  century 
came,  it  was  mainly  from  these  that  the  truth  shone  out, 
though  refle6led  and  intensified  in  utterance  by  Wycliffe, 
Huss,  Luther,  and  others.  And  their  doctrines,  backed  by 
simplicity  and  morality,  shone  out  with  the  greater  luster 
in  contrast  to  the  pompous  pride  and  flagrant  immoralities 
of  the  then  exalted  Papacy. 

Then  it  was  that  popes,  councils,  theologians,  kings,  cru- 
saders and  inquisitors  combined  their  fiendish  powers  to  ex- 
terminate every  opponent,  and  to  extinguish  the  faintest 
rays  of  dawning  light.  Pope  Innocent  IIL  first  sent  mis- 
sionaries to  the  distri6ls  in  which  the  do6trines  of  the  Al- 
bigenses had  gained  foothold,  to  preach  Romanism,  work 
miracles,  etc.;  but,  finding  these  efforts  unavailing,  he  pro- 
claimed  a  crusade  against   them  and  offered   to  all  who 


33^  The  Time  is  at  Hatid. 

would  engage  in  it  the  pardon  of  all  sins  and  an  immediate 
passport  to  heaven  without  passing  through  purgatory. 
With  full  faith  in  the  pope's  power  to  bestow  the  promised 
rewards,  half  a  million  men — French,  German  and  Italian 
—rallied  around  the  standard  of  the  cross,  for  the  defence 
of  Catholicism  and  the  extin6lion  of  heresy.  Then  followed 
a  series  of  battles  and  sieges  covering  a  space  of  twenty 
years.  The  city  of  Beziers  was  stormed  and  taken  in  1209, 
and  the  citizens,  without  regard  for  age  or  sex,  perished  by 
the  sword  to  the  number  of  sixty  thousand,  as  reported  by 
several  historians.  The  blood  of  those  who  fled  to  churches, 
and  were  murdered  there  by  the  holy  crusaders,  drenched 
the  altars  and  flowed  through  the  streets. 

Lavaur  was  besieged  in  1 2 1 1 .  The  governor  was  hanged 
on  a  gibbet,  and  his  wife  was  thrown  into  a  well  and  crushed 
wuth  stones.  The  citizens  were  without  discrimination  put 
to  death,  four  hundred  being  burned  alive.  The  flourish- 
ing country  of  Languedoc  was  devastated,  its  cities  burned, 
and  its  inhabitants  swept  away  by  fire  and  sword.  It  is  es- 
timated that  one  hundred  thousand  Albigenses  fell  in  one 
day;  and  their  bodies  were  heaped  together  and  burned. 

All  this  rioting  in  blood  and  villainy  was  done  in  the 
name  of  religion  :  professedly  for  the  glory  of  God  and  the 
honor  of  the  church,  but  really  to  uphold  Antichrist,  sit- 
ting in  the  temple  of  God  [the  church],  showing  himself 
that  he  is  a  god — a  powerful  one — able  to  conquer  and  de- 
stroy his  enemies.  The  clergy  thanked  God  for  the  work 
of  destru6lion,  and  a  hymn  of  praise  to  God  for  the  glori- 
ous vidlory  at  Lavaur  was  composed  and  sung.  The  dread- 
ful carnage  at  Beziers  was  accounted  as  the  "  visible  judg- 
ment of  heaven"  on  the  heresy  of  Albigensianism.  The 
crusaders  attended  high  mass  in  the  morning,  and  proceeded 
throughout  the  day  to  waste  the  country  of  Languedoc  and 
murder  its  inhabitants. 


The  Man  of  Sin.  337 

Be  it  remembered,  however,  that  these  open  crusades, 
against  the  Albigenses  and  Waldenses,  were  undertaken 
merely  because  the  so-called  *'  heresy"  had  gained  a  strong 
hold  upon  large  portions  of  these  communities.  It  would 
be  a  great  mistake  to  suppose  that  the  crusades  were  the  only 
persecutions  :  the  quiet,  steady  crushing  of  individuals,  in 
the  aggregate  numbering  thousands,  all  over  Papacy's  wide 
domain,  went  steadily  on — wearing  out  the  saints  of  the 
Most  High. 

Charles  V.,  Emperor  of  Germany  and  King  of  Spain 
and  the  Netherlands,  persecuted  the  friends  of  the  Refor- 
mation throughout  his  extensive  dominions.  Supported  by 
the  Diet  of  Worms,  he  proscribed  Luther,  his  followers  and 
his  writings  ;  and  condemned  all  who  should  aid  Luther  or 
read  his  b)Ooks,  to  the  confiscation  of  their  property,  the 
ban  of  the  empire  and  the  penalty  of  high  treason.  In 
the  Netherlands  the  men  who  followed  Luther  were  to  be 
beheaded,  and  the  women  buried  alive  or  if  obstinate  to 
be  committed  to  the  flames.  Though  this  wholesale  law 
was  suspended,  the  work  of  death  in  all  its  horrid  forms 
proceeded.  The  Duke  of  Alva  boasted  of  the  execution  of 
18,000  Protestants  in  six  weeks.  Paolo  reckons  the  number 
who  in  the  Netherlands  v/ere  executed  on  account  of  their 
religion  at  50,000 ;  and  Grotius  gives  the  list  of  the  Belgic 
martyrs  at  100,000.  Charles,  with  his  dying  breath,  ex- 
horted his  son,  Philip  II.,  to  carry  on  to  completion  the 
work  of  persecution  and  extermination  of  heresy  which  he 
had  begun — which  advice  Philip  was  not  slow  to  follow. 
With  fury  he  stimulated  the  spirit  of  persecution,  consign- 
ing Protestants  to  the  flames  without  discrimination  or  pity. 

Francis  and  Henry,  the  French  kings,  followed  the  ex- 
ample of  Charles  and  Philip  in  their  zeal  for  Catholicism 
and  the  extermination  of  heresy.  The  massacres  of  Mer- 
indol,  Orange  and  Paris  are  forcible  illustrations  of  their 

22  B 


^3^  The   Time  is  at  Hand, 

zeal  in  the  cause  of  Antichrist.  The  massacre  of  Merindol, 
planned  by  the  French  king,  and  approved  by  the  French 
parHament,  was  committed  to  the  president,  Oppeda,  for 
execution.  The  president  was  commissioned  to  slay  the 
population,  burn  the  towns,  and  demolish  the  castles  of  the 
Waldenses,  large  numbers  of  whom  resided  in  that  se6lion. 
Roman  Catholic  historians  admit  that  in  compliance  with 
this  commission  thousands,  including  men,  women  and 
children,  were  massacred ;  twenty-four  towns  were  ruined, 
and  the  country  left  waste  and  desolate.  Men,  women  and 
children  fled  to  the  woods  and  mountains  for  safety,  and 
were  pursued  and  put  to  the  sword.  Many  who  remained 
in  the  towns  met  the  same  or  a  worse  fate.  Five  hundred 
women  were  thrown  into  a  barn,  which  was  set  on  fire,  and 
when  any  leaped  from  the  windows  they  were  received  on 
the  points  of  spears.  Women  were  violated,  and  children 
were  murdered  in  sight  of  their  parents ,  who  were  power- 
less to  protect  them.  Some  were  dashed  over  precipices 
and  others  were  dragged  naked  through  the  streets. 

The  massacre  of  Orange,  A.  D.  1562,  was  of  a  similar 
chara6ler  to  that  of  Merindol,  and  is  described  with  precision 
by  Catholic  historians.  The  Italian  army  sent  by  Pope 
Pius  IV.  was  commanded  to  slay  men,  Avomen  and  children; 
and  the  command  was  executed  with  terrible  cruelty.  The 
defenseless  heretics  were  slain  with  the  sword,  precipitated 
from  rocks,  thrown  on  the  points  of  hooks  and  daggers, 
hanged,  roasted  over  slow  fires,  and  exposed  to  shame  and 
torture  of  every  description. 

The  massacre  in  Paris  on  St.  Bartholomew's  day,  August 
24th,  A.  D.  1572,  equaled  in  cruelty,  but  exceeded  in  ex- 
tent, the  massacres  of  Merindol  and  Orange.  This  has  also 
been  detailed  by  Catholic  historians,  one  of  whom,  Thu- 
anus,  stigmatizes  it  as  "a  ferocious  cruelty,  without  a  par- 
allel in  all  antiquity."     The  tolling  of  the  tocsin  at  mid- 


The  Maji  of  Sin.  339 

nifght,  August  23d,  gave  the  signal  of  destru6lion,  and  the 
dreadful  scenes  of  Merindol  and  Orange  began  to  be  re-en- 
adled  against  the  hated  Huguenots.  The  carnival  of  death 
lasted  seven  days  j  the  city  flowed  with  human  blood ;  the 
court  was  heaped  with  the  slain  on  which  the  king  and 
queen  gazed  with  extreme  satisfadtion.  The  body  of  Ad- 
miral Coligny  was  dragged  through  the  streets ;  and  the 
river  Seine  was  covered  with  floating  dead  bodies.  Ac- 
counts of  the  number  killed  vary  from  5,000  to  10,000. 
The  work  of  destru6tion  was  not  confined  to  Paris,  but  ex- 
tended very  widely  through  the  French  nation.  On  the 
preceding  day  special  messengers  were  dispatched  in  every 
dire6lion  ordering  a  general  massacre  of  the  Huguenots. 
The  same  scenes  were  accordingly  ena6led  in  nearly  all 
the  provinces,  and  estimates  of  the  number  slain  vary  from 
25,000  to  70,000. 

In  these  dreadful  scenes  of  carnage  Antichrist  found  ex- 
treme satisfa6lion.  The  pope  and  his  court  exulted  at  the 
vi6lory  of  Catholicism  over  Waldensianism  at  Merindol, 
and  the  impious  Oppeda  was  styled  "  The  defender  of  the 
faith  and  the  hero  of  Christianity."  The  French  king 
went  to  mass,  and  returned  solemn  thanks  to  God  for  the 
vi6lory  over  and  massacre  of  the  Huguenots  at  Paris.  This 
carnage,  san6lioned  by  the  French  king  and  parliament 
and  Roman  Catholic  subjects,  was  probably  at  the  dire6l 
instigation  of  the  pope  and  the  Papal  Hierarchy.  That  it 
was  highly  approved,  at  least,  is  evident  from  the  fa6l  that  at 
the  Papal  Court  the  news  was  received  with  great  rejoicing. 
The  pope,  Gregory  XHL,  went  in  grand  procession  to  the 
church  of  Saint  Louis  to  render  thanks  to  God  for  the 
signal  vi(5lory.  He  at  once  proclaimed  a  jubilee,  and  sent 
a  nuncio  to  the  French  court,  who  in  the  pope's  name  praised 
''  the  exploit  so  long  meditated  and  so  happily  executed 
for  the  good  of  religion. ' '     A  medal  was  struck  by  the  king 


34©  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

in  memory  of  the  massacre,  bearing  the  inscription,  **/'/- 
etas  Excitavit  Jusiitiain  " — Piety  Excited  Justice. 

Medals  commemorative  of  the  event  were  also  coined  in 
the  Papal  mint  by  order  of  the  pope.  One  of  these  is  now 
on  exhibition  in  Memorial  Hall,  Philadelphia,  Pa.  Its  face 
presents  a  raised  figure  of  the  pope  and  the  abbreviated  in- 
scription, '^Gregorius  XIII.,  Poniifex  Maximus  Anno  /.," 
— the  first  year  of  his  pontificate,  viz.,  A.  D.  1572.  On  the 
reverse  side  of  this  medal  is  a  representation  of  a  destroy- 
ing angel,  bearing  in  the  left  hand  a  cross,  and  in  the  right 
hand  a  sword,  before  whom,  prostrate  and  fleeing,  a  band 
of  Huguenots,  men,  women  and  children,  is  represented, 
whose  faces  and  figures  express  horror  and  despair.  Under 
this  are  the  words,  ^'■Ugonottorum  Strages  1^72^' — which 
signifies,  **The  slaughter  of  the  Huguenots,  1572." 

A  picture  of  the  St.  Bartholomew  Massacre  was  hung  in  the 
Vatican.  It  had  a  scroll  at  the  top,  on  which  was  inscribed, 
in  Latin,  words  signifying,  ^^  The  Pontiff  approves  the  fate 
of  ColignyV  Coligny  was  a  prominent  leader  of  the  Hu- 
guenots and  one  of  the  first  to  fall.  After  he  was  killed, 
his  head  was  severed  from  his  body  and  sent  to  the  queen 
(who  had  it  embalmed  and  sent  as  a  trophy  to  Rome), while 
his  body  was  dragged  by  the  populace  through  the  streets 
of  Paris.  The  king  was  shortly  afterward  seized  with  the 
horrors  of  remorse  from  which  he  never  recovered.  It  is 
recorded  that  to  his  confidential  physician  he  said,  *^  I 
know  not  what  has  happened  to  me,  but  in  mind  and  body 
I  am  shaking  as  in  a  fever.  It  seems  to  me  every  moment, 
whether  waking  or  sleeping,  that  mangled  bodies  present 
themselves  to  me  with  hideous  faces  and  covered  with 
blood."  He  died  in  great  agony,  covered  with  a  bloody 
sweat. 

In  164T  Antichrist  proclaimed  a  "war  of  religion"  in 
Ireland,  and  called  on  the  people  to  massacre  the  Protest- 


The  Man  of  Sin.  341 

ants  by  every  means  in  their  power.  The  deluded  people 
heard  the  command  as  the  voice  of  God,  and  were  not 
slow  to  execute  their  commission.  Protestant  blood  flowed 
freely  throughout  Ireland,  houses  were  reduced  to  ashes, 
towns  and  villages  were  almost  destroyed.  Some  were  forced 
to  murder  their  own  relatives,  and  then  to  take  their  own 
lives — the  last  words  that  fell  upon  their  ears  being  the  as- 
surances of  priests,  that  their  dying  agonies  were  but  the 
beginnings  of  eternal  torment.  Thousands  died  of  cold 
and  hunger,  while  endeavoring  to  emigrate  to  other  lands. 
In  Cavan,  the  road  for  twelve  miles  together  was  stained 
with  the  bloody  tracks  of  wounded  fugitives ;  sixty  children 
were  abandoned  in  the  flight,  by  parents  fiercely  hunted, 
and  it  was  declared  that  any  who  should  in  any  way  help 
these  little  ones  should  be  buried  by  their  sides.  Seven- 
teen adults  were  buried  alive  at  Fermaugh.  and  seventy-tv/o 
at  Kilkenny.  In  the  province  of  Ulster  alone,  over  154,- 
000  Protestants  were  either  massacred  or  expelled  from 
Ireland. 

O'Niel,  the  primate  of  Ireland,  pronounced  this  "  a  pious 
and  lawful  war,"  and  the  pope  (Urban  VIII.)  issued  a  bull 
dated  May  1643,  granting  ''  full  and  absolute  remission  of 
all  their  sins"  to  those  who  had  taken  part  in  "gallantly 
doing  what  in  them  lay,  to  extirpate  and  wholly  root  out 
the  pestiferous  leaven  of  heretical  contagion." 

THE  INQUISITION  OR  "  HOLY  OFFICE." 

To  Dominic,  the  leading  spirit  in  this  crusade,  is  ascribed 
the  honor  of  inventing  the  infernal  Inquisition,  though 
Benedi6l,  who  is  zealous  in  ascribing  to  Saint  Dominic  the 
honor  of  being  the  first  Inquisitor  General,  is  doubtful  as 
to  whether  the  idea  first  suggested  itself  to  Pope  Innocent 
or  to  Saint  Dominic.  It  was  first  established  by  Pope  In- 
nocent III.,  in  A.  D.  1204. 


342  The   Ti?ne  is  at  Hand. 

St.  Dominic  was  a  momter,  devoid  of  every  feeling  of 
compassion,  who  seemed  to  find  his  chief  delight  in  scenes 
of  torture  and  misery.  During  the  crusade  against  the  Al- 
bigenses,  with  a  crucifix  in  his  hand  he  led  and  encouraged 
the  holy  warriors  to  deeds  of  death  and  destru6lion.  The 
Inquisition  or  Holy  Office  is  to-day  a  tribunal  in  the  Ro- 
man Catholic  Church  for  the  discovery,  repression  and 
punishment  of  heresy  and  other  offences  against  the  Church 
of  Rome.*  But  in  Dominic's  day  it  had  no  legal  tribunal, 
nor  were  the  instruments  of  torment  brought  to  the  per- 
fe6lion  exhibited  in  later  days.  Nevertheless,  Dominic, 
without  such  machinery,  found  abundant  means  of  torture, 
in  dislocating  joints,  tearing  nerves,  and  lacerating  the  limbs 
of  his  victims,  and  in  burning  at  the  stake  those  whose  con- 
vi6lions  were  unshaken  by  other  means,  and  who  would  not 
renounce  their  faith  and  liberties. 

Under  his  commission  from  Pope  Innocent,  to  punish 
with  confiscation,  banishment  and  death  the  heretics  who 
would  not  receive  his  gospel,  Dominic  stimulated  the  civil 
magistracy  and  populace  to  massacre  the  heretical  Walden- 
ses;  and  he  at  one  time  committed  one  hundred  and  eighty 
Albigenses  to  the  flames.  It  was  for  such  faithfulness  in 
the  service  of  Antichrist  that  he  was  canonized  a  saint,  and 
is  to-day  adored  and  prayed  to  by  Roman  Catholics.  The 
Roman  Breviary  (somewhat  like  a  Prayer  Book),  referring 
to  St.  Dominic,  lauds  ''  his  merits  and  do6trines  which  en- 
lightened the  church,  his  ingenuity  and  virtue  which  over- 
threw the  Tolossan  heretics,  and  his  many  miracles  which 
extended  even  to  the  raising  of  the  dead."  The  Roman 
Missal  (which  embraces  the  service  conned ed  with  the  ad- 
ministration of  the  Lord's  supper)  eulogizes  his  merits,  and 
prays  for  temporal  aid  through  his  intercession.  Thus  An- 
tichrist still  upholds  and  honors  its  faithful  heroes. 

*The  Cbair  of  St.  Peter,  page  589. 


The  Man  of  Sin.  343 

It  would  be  impossible  briefly  to  convey  any  adequate 
conception  of  the  horrors  of  the  Inquisition,  or  of  the  dread- 
ful fear  which  it  inspired  among  the  people.  Those  not 
loud  in  their  praise  of  Antichrist,  or  who  ventured  a  criti- 
cism of  his  methods,  were  suspe6ted  of  heresy ;  and  such 
persons,  without  warning  or  redress,  were  liable  to  impris- 
onment in  a  dungeon  for  an  indefinite  time  until  a  conven- 
ient season  for  trial — both  the  accuser  and  the  accusation 
often  being  equally  unknown  to  them.  The  proceedings 
of  these  trials  were  condudled  secretly,  and  tortures  were 
often  employed  to  extort  confessions.  The  tortures  in- 
fli6led  were  almost  too  appalling  to  be  credited  in  this  age 
and  land  of  freedom,  yet  their  reality  is  confirmed  by  evi- 
dence which  even  Catholic  historians  cannot  deny;  and 
their  fruitless  attempts  to  apologize  for  them  only  tend  to 
substantiate  the  evidence.  Instruments  of  torture,  relics 
of  the  Inquisition,  are  still  in  existence  which  would  render 
denial  unavailing.  The  ''Holy  Office"  even  employed 
physicians  to  watch  the  process  of  torture  and  stop  it  when 
death  seemed  likely  to  relieve  the  sufferer ;  and  the  vidlim 
was  allowed  partially  to  recover,  that  the  torture  might  be 
applied  a  second  or  even  a  third  time.  These  tortures  were 
not  always  infli6led  as  punishments  for  the  offence  of  heresy : 
they  were  in  general  for  the  purpose  of  compelling  the  accused 
to  confess,  retract  or  implicate  others,  as  the  case  might  be. 

Even  within  the  present  century,  after  the  Inquisition 
had  lost  many  of  its  horrors,  it  was  still  terrible.  The  his- 
torian of  Napoleon's  wars,  describing  the  capture  of  Toledo 
by  his  army,  incidentally  mentions  the  opening  of  the  In- 
quisition prison,  and  says  : — 

*'  Graves  seemed  to  open,  and  pale  figures  like  ghosts  is- 
sued from  dungeons  which  emitted  a  sepulchral  odor.  Bushy 
beards  hanging  down  over  the  breast,  and  nails  grown  like 
bird's  claws,  disfigured  the  skeletons,  who  with  laboring 


344  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

bosoms  inhaled,  for  the  first  time  for  a  long  series  of  years, 
the  fresh  air.  Many  of  them  were  reduced  to  cripples,  the 
head  inclined  forward  and  the  arms  and  hands  hanging 
down  rigid  and  helpless.  They  had  been  confined  in  dens 
so  low  they  could  not  rise  up  in  them,  and  in  spite  of  all 
the  care  of  the  [army]  surgeons  many  of  them  expired  the 
same  day.  On  the  following  day  General  Lasalle  minutely 
inspedled  the  place,  attended  by  several  officers  of  his  staff. 
The  number  of  machines  for  torture  thrilled  even  men  in- 
ured to  the  battle  field,  with  horror." 

"  In  a  recess  in  a  subterranean  vault,  contiguous  to  the 
private  hall  for  examinations,  stood  a  wooden  figure  made 
by  the  hands  of  monks  and  representing  the  Virgin  Mary. 
A  gilded  glory  encompassed  her  head,  and  in  her  right 
hand  she  held  a  banner.  It  struck  all  at  first  sight  as  sus- 
picious that,  notwithstanding  the  silken  robe,  descending 
on  each  side  in  ample  folds  from  her  shoulders,  she  should 
wear  a  sort  of  cuirass.  On  closer  scrutiny  it  appeared  that 
the  fore  part  of  the  body  was  stuck  full  of  extremely  sharp 
nails  and  small  narrow  knife-blades,  with  the  points  of  both 
turned  toward  the  spe6lator.  The  arms  and  hands  were 
jointed,  and  machinery  behind  the  partition  set  the  figure 
in  motion.  One  of  the  servants  of  the  Inquisition  was  com- 
pelled by  command  of  the  General  to  werk  the  machine  as 
he  termed  it.  When  the  figure  extended  her  arms,  as 
though  to  press  some  one  lovingly  to  her  heart,  the  well- 
filled  knapsack  of  a  Polish  grenadier  was  made  to  supply 
the  place  of  a  living  vi6lim.  The  statue  hugged  it  closer 
and  closer,  and  when  the  attendant,  agreeably  to  orders, 
made  the  figure  unclasp  her  arms  and  return  to  her  former 
position,  the  knapsack  was  perforated  to  the  depth  of  two 
or  three  inches,  and  remained  hanging  on  the  points  of  the 
nails  and  the  knife  blades." 

"Racks"  of  various  sorts  were  invented,  and  applied  as 
means  of  torture.  One  of  the  simplest  methods  is  explained 
thus:  The  vi6lim,  stripped  of  all  clothing,  had  his  arms 
fastened  behind  his  back  with  a  hard  cord,  with  which,  by 
the  action  of  a  pully,  he  was  raised  off  his  feet,  to  which 
weights  were  attached.     The  sufferer  was  several  times  let 


The  Man  of  Sin.  345 

fall,  and  raised  with  a  jerk,  which  dislocated  the  joints  of 
his  arms  and  legs,  while  the  cord  by  which  he  was  suspended 
penetrated  the  quivering  flesh  to  the  very  bone. 

A  reminder  of  such  outrages  in  the  name  of  Christ  came 
to  public  notice  recently.  A  Bible  Society's  printing-office 
in  Rome  being  crowded  for  space,  it  rented  a  large  room 
near  the  Vatican.  A  large  and  peculiar  ring  in  the  ceiling 
attra6led  attention,  and  inquiry  discovered  the  fa6l  that  the 
room  in  which  they  are  now  busy  jDrinting  the  Bible, — *'  the 
sword  of  the  spirit,  which  is  the  Word  of  God,"  by  which 
Antichrist  has  already  been  rendered  ^^ powerless ' '  to  oppress 
and  wear  out  the  saints, — is  the  very  room  once  used  by 
the  Inquisition  as  a  torture-chamber ;  the  pulleyring  having 
probably  been  used  to  rack  many  a  poor,  gagged  sufferer. 

Those  convi6led  of  heresy  were  sometimes  sentenced  to 
what  was  called  an  ''A6t  of  Faith."  The  ecclesiastical  au- 
thority transferred  the  condemned  to  the  secular  power, 
while  the  clergy,  in  pretense  of  mercy,  implored  the  magis- 
tracy to  show  compassion  to  the  condemned,  and,  holding 
up  the  cross,  pleaded  with  the  victim  to  recant  and  save  his 
present  and  future  life.  The  magistrates  knew  well  their  part, 
and  showed  no  mercy  except  to  recanters ;  thus  gaining 
the  blessings  and  titles  of  "  Defender  of  the  Faith,"  and 
*'  Exterminator  of  Heretics."  The  condemned  ''  heretic," 
dressed  in  a  yellow  coat  variegated  with  pictures  of  dogs, 
serpents,  flames  and  devils,  was  led  to  the  place  of  execu- 
tion, tied  to  the  stake  and  committed  to  the  flames. 

Torquemada,  another  famous  Inquisitor  General,  fur- 
nished a  marked  illustration  of  the  spirit  of  Antichrist. 
Roman  Catholic  writers  admit  that  he  caused  ten  thousand 
two  hundred  and  twenty  (10,220)  persons,  men  and  women, 
to  be  burned  alive.  Llorente,  who  was  for  three  years  the 
Secretary  General  of  the  Inquisition,  and  had  access  to  all 
the  documentary  evidences,  in  his  Reports,  published  A.  D. 


346  The   7\'me  is  at  Hand. 

181 7  (4  vols.),  shows  that  between  the  years  1481  and  1808, 
by  order  of  this  "  Holy  Office"  alone,  no  less  than  31,912 
persons  were  burned  alive,  and  nearly  300,000  tortured  and 
condemned  to  serve  penances.  Every  Catholic  country  in 
Europe,  Asia  and  America  had  its  Inquisition. 

We  cannot  here  trace  Antichrist's  persecutions  of  every- 
thing resembling  reforms,  liberty  of  conscience  or  political 
freedom.  Suffice  it  to  say,  this  persecution  extended  to 
every  country  where  Papacy  had  a  footing — to  Germany, 
Holland,  Poland,  Italy,  England,  Ireland,  Scotland,  France, 
Spain,  Portugal,  Abyssinia,  India,  Cuba,  Mexico  and  some 
South  American  states.  Space  forbids  our  reciting  individ- 
ual cases  which  would  serve  to  show  that  many  of  the  mar- 
tyrs were  truly  saints  and  heroes,  who  under  the  most  hor- 
rible sufferings  had  grace  sufficient,  and  were  often  enabled, 
while  dying  by  inches,  to  sing  hymns  of  praise  and  thanks 
to  the  true  Head  of  the  true  Church,  and,  like  him,  to  pray 
for  their  enemies  who,  as  he  had  foretold,  persecuted  them 
for  his  sake.* 

Neither  will  we,  for  the  same  reasons,  particularize  all  the 
awful,  sickening,  soul-harrowing  tortures,  inflicted  upon 
some  of  the  Lord's  jewels  because  of  faithfulness  to  their 
convi6tions.  It  is  estimated,  by  those  who  seemingly  have 
given  the  subje6l  thorough  investigation,  that  Papacy,  dur- 
ing the  past  thirteen  hundred  years,  has,  dire6lly  or  indi- 
re6tly,  caused  the  death  oi  fifty  millions  of  people.  And  it 
may  safely  be  said  that  human  and  Satanic  ingenuity  were 
taxed  to  their  utmost  to  invent  new  and  horrible  tortures, 
for  both  the  political  and  religious  opponents  of  Antichrist ; 
the  latter — heretics — being  pursued  wdth  tenfold  fury.     Be- 

*To  those  desiring  a  fuller  account  of  these  awful  times  and  scenes 
we  commend  Macaulay's  History  of  England ;  Motley's  Dutch  Repub- 
lic ;  D' Aubigne's  History  of  the  Reformation ;  White's  Eighteen  Chris- 
tian Centm-ies ;  Elliot  on  Romanism ;  and  Fox's  Book  of  Martyrs. 


The  Man  of  Sin.  347 

sides  the  common  forms  of  persecution  and  death,  such  as 
racking,  burning,  drowning,  stabbing,  starving  and  shoot- 
ing with  arrows  and  guns,  fiendish  hearts  meditated  how 
the  most  delicate  and  sensitive  parts  of  the  body,  capable 
of  the  most  excruciating  pain,  could  be  affe6led ;  molten 
lead  was  poured  into  the  ears ;  tongues  were  cut  out  and 
lead  poured  into  the  mouths ;  wheels  were  arranged  with 
knife  blades  attached  so  that  the  vi(5lim  could  be  slowly- 
chopped  to  pieces ;  claws  and  pincers  were  made  red  hot  and 
used  upon  sensitive  parts  of  the  body ;  eyes  were  gouged 
out ;  finger  nails  were  pulled  off  with  red  hot  irons ;  holes, 
by  which  the  vi6tim  was  tied  up,  were  bored  through  the 
heels  ;  some  were  forced  to  jump  from  eminences  onto  long 
spikes  fixed  below,  where,  quivering  with  pain,  they  slowly 
died.  The  mouths  of  some  were  filled  with  gunpowder, 
which,  when  fired,  blew  their  heads  to  pieces ;  others  were 
hammered  to  pieces  on  anvils ;  others,  attached  to  bellows, 
had  air  pumped  into  them  until  they  burst ;  others  were 
choked  to  death  with  mangled  pieces  of  their  own  bodies ; 
others  with  urine,  excrement,  etc.,  etc. 

Some  of  these  fiendish  atrocities  would  be  quite  beyond 
belief  were  they  not  well  authenticated.  They  serve  to 
show  to  what  awful  depravity  the  human  heart  can  descend; 
and  how  blind  to  right,  and  every  good  instindt,  men  can 
become  under  the  influence  oi  false,  counterfeit  religion. 
The  spirit  of  Antichrist  degraded  and  debased  the  world  as 
the  spirit  of  the  true  Christ  and  the  power  and  influence 
of  the  true  Kingdom  of  God  would  have  elevated  and  en- 
nobled men's  hearts  and  a6lions ; — and  as  they  will  do, 
during  the  Millennium.  This  is  to  a  slight  extent  illustrated 
by  the  advance  in  civilization,  and  the  increase  of  justice 
and  mercy,  since  the  power  of  Antichrist  began  to  wane, 
and  the  word  of  God  began  to  be  heard,  and  heeded,  even 
slightly. 


348  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

Truly,  no  device  of  which  we  can  conceive  could  have 
been  better  calculated  to  deceive  and  oppress  mankind. 
Advantage  has  been  taken  of  every  depraved  disposition  and 
weakness  of  fallen  men  ;  every  base  passion  has  been  stim- 
ulated and  appealed  to,  and  the  gratification  of  those  pas- 
sions rewarded.  The  vicious  were  thus  allured  and  enlisted 
as  its  devotees,  while  those  of  nobler  cast  were  engaged  by 
other  means — by  an  outward  and  hypocritical  show  of  piety, 
self-denial  and  charity  manifested  in  its  monastic  institu- 
tions, but  which  served  only  to  lead  many  such  far  from 
the  paths  of  virtue.  The  gay  and  the  frivolous  found  am- 
ple satisfadtion  in  its  parade  and  show,  its  pomp  and  cere- 
mony ;  the  enterprising  and  chivalrous  in  its  missions  and 
crusades  \  the  profligate  in  its  indulgences ;  and  the  cruel 
bigot  in  its  enterprises  for  oppressing  its  opponents. 

In  horror  and  wonder  we  ask  ourselves.  Why  did  kings, 
and  princes,  and  emperors,  and  the  people  at  large,  permit 
such  atrocities?  Why  did  they  not  arise  long  ago  and 
smite  down  Antichrist  ?  The  answer  is  found  in  the  Scrip- 
tures (Rev.  18:3):  The  nations  were  dru?ik  (stupefied), 
they  lost  their  senses  in  drinking  the  mixed  wine  (doctrine, 
false  and  true  mixed)  given  them  by  the  apostate  church. 
They  were  deceived  by  the  claims  of  Papacy.  And,  truth 
to  tell,  they  are  only  partly  aroused  from  their  stupor  yet ; 
for  though  the  ambassadors  of  kings,  falling  before  the  pope, 
do  not  as  of  old  address  him  as  the  '*  Lamb  of  God  that 
taketh  away  the  sins  of  the  world,"  nor  think  of  him  as  ''  a 
God  with  power  over  all  things  on  earth  and  in  heaven," 
yet  they  are  still  far  from  realizing  the  truth, — that  Papacy 
has  been,  and  is,  Satan's  counterfeit  of  the  true  Kingdom. 

While  kings  and  soldiers  wearied  of  such  inhuman  work, 
it  was  not  so  with  the  holy  (?)  hierarchy ;  and  we  find  the 
General  Council  of  Sienna,  A.  D.  1423,  declaring  that  the 
spread  of  heresy  in  different  parts  of  the  world  was  due  to 


The  Mail  of  Sin.  349 

the  reinissness  of  the  Inquisitors — to  the  offence  of  God, 
the  injury  of  Catholicism  and  the  perdition  of  souls.  Princes 
were  admonished,  by  the  mercy  of  God,  to  exterminate 
heresy  if  they  would  escape  divine  vengeance;  and  plenary 
indulgences  were  granted  to  all  who  would  engage  in  the 
work  of  destruction  or  provide  arms  for  the  purpose.  These 
enactments  were  published  in  the  churches  every  Sabbath. 
And  Roman  Catholic  theologians  and  historians  are  by 
no  means  few  who  have  wielded  their  pens  in  the  imholy 
cause  of  justifying,  recommending  and  praising  the  per- 
secution of  heresy.  Bellarmine,  for  instance,  declares  that 
the  apostles  ''abstained  from  calling  in  the  secular  arm  only 
because  there  were  in  their  day  no  Christian  princes." 
Do6lor  Dens,  a  celebrated  Roman  Catholic  theologian, 
published  a  work  on  theology  in  1758,  which  is  regarded 
by  papists  to-day  as  standard  authority,  especially  in  their 
colleges,  where  it  ranks  as  Blackstone  does  on  English  civil 
law.  This  work  breathes  the  spirit  of  persecution  through- 
out. It  condemns  the  patrons  of  heresy  to  confiscation  of 
goods,  banishment  from  the  country,  confinement  in  prison, 
infii6lion  of  death  and  deprivation  of  Christian  burial. 

One  of  the  authorized  curses  published  in  the  Romish 
Pontifical,  to  be  used  against  Protestants,  reads  as  follows : — 

"May  God  Almighty  and  all  his  saints  curse  them  with 
the  curse  with  which  the  devil  and  his  angels  are  cursed. 
Let  them  be  destroyed  out  of  the  land  of  the  living.  Lot 
the  vilest  of  deaths  come  upon  them,  and  let  them  descend 
alive  into  the  pit.  Let  their  seed  be  destroyed  from  the 
earth — by  hunger,  and  thirst,  and  nakedness  and  all  dis- 
tress let  them  perish.  May  they  have  all  misery  and  pes- 
tilence and  torment.  Let  all  they  have  be  cursed.  Always 
and  everywhere  let  them  be  cursed.  Speaking  and  silent 
let  them  be  cursed.  Within  and  without  let  them  be  cursed. 
From  the  crown  of  the  head  to  the  sole  of  the  foot  let 
them  be  cursed.  Let  their  eyes  become  blind,  let  their 
ears  become  deaf,  let  their  mouth  become  dumb,  let  their 
tongue  cleave  to  their  jaws,  let  not  their  hands  handle,  let 


35  o  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

not  their  feet  walk.  Let  all  the  members  of  their  body  be 
cursed.  Cursed  let  them  be,  standing  or  lying,  from  this 
time  forth  forever;  and  thus  let  their  candle  be  extinguished 
in  the  presence  of  God,  at  the  day  of  judgment.  Let  their 
burial  be  with  dogs  and  asses.  Let  hungry  wolves  devour 
their  corpses.  Let  the  devil  and  his  angels  be  their  com- 
panions forever.     Amen,  Amen  ;  so  be  it,  so  let  it  be." 

This  is  the  spirit  of  Papacy;  and  all  who  possess  the 
spirit  of  the  true  Christ  should  readily  recognize  so  base  a 
counterfeit. 

Since  errors  of  do6lrine  lie  at  the  very  foundation  of  all 
these  errors  of  condu6l,  it  cannot  be  doubted  that  if  cir- 
cumstances were  again  favorable,  the  do6lrines  being  un- 
changed, their  bad  spirit  and  bad  fruits  would  shortly  again 
appear,  in  similar  a6ts  of  injustice,  oppression,  superstition, 
ignorance  and  persecution  ;  and  any  and  all  means  conceiv- 
able would  be  resorted  to,  for  restoring,  upholding  and  ex- 
tending the  counterfeit  Kingdom  of  God.  In  proof  of  this, 
let  us  cite  a  few  incidents  which  recently  chanced  to  come 
to  our  attention,  as  follows: — 

In  Ahuehuetitlan,  Guerroro,  Mexico,  August  7th,  1887,  a 
native  Protestant  missionary,  named  Abraham  Gomez,  and 
two  assistants,  were  murdered  in  cold  blood  by  natives,  at 
the  instigation  of  a  Roman  Catholic  priest.  Father  Vergara, 
who,  when  celebrating  mass  the  day  previous,  is  reported 
to  have  urged  his  people  to  "make  an  example. of  the  min- 
ister of  Satan"  who  had  come  among  them;  adding,  that 
they  might  ''kill  him"  with  all  safety,  counting  upon  pro- 
te6lion  from  the  chief  of  police  as  well  as  the  priest.  The 
priest's  word  was  law  to  the  benighted  people,  and  to  the 
civil  authorities.  The  mangled  body  of  the  poor  missionary, 
shot  and  hacked  to  pieces,  was  dragged  through  the  streets^ 
subje6l  to  all  sorts  of  indignities,  a  wa7'ni?ig  to  others.  For 
this  no  redress  could  be  obtained. 

The  New  York  Independent  having  called  attention  to  this 


The  Man  of  Sin.  35 1 

bloody  massacre,  the  following  retort  was  made  by  the  Free- 
man, an  influential  New  York  Roman  Catholic  journal : — 

''They  [Protestant  missionaries]  see  honest  people  kneel, 
at  the  sound  of  the  Angelus,  in  honor  of  the  Annunciation 
and  the  Incarnation.  The  Bible,  they  say,  will  soon  wipe 
out  such  '  superstition.*  A  light  burns  before  an  image  of 
the  Mother  of  God.  '  Ha  ! '  cries  the  missionary,  *  We 
shall  soon  teach  the  benighted  to  break  that  symbol !  *  and 
so  on.  If  the  killing  of  a  few  missionaries  of  this  kind 
would  keep  others  like  them  at  home,  we  should  almost — 
we  Papists  are  so  wicked  ! — be  inclined  to  say  :  '  On  with 
the  dance;  let  joy  be  unconfined.'  " 

A  minister  by  the  name  of  C.  G.  Moule  tells  a  painful 
story,  which  has  gone  the  rounds  of  the  press,  of  the  per- 
secution, in  Madeira,  of  Robert  Kelley  and  the  converts 
resulting  from  his  labors,  who,  with  their  children,  nearly 
one  thousand  persons  in  all,  suffered  expatriation  as  the 
penalty  for  receiving  a  crumb  of  truth. 

In  "  Protestant  Prussia,"  so  called.  Pastor  Thummel  has 
been  arrested  for  "  insulting  the  Roman  Catholic  Church." 
He  published  a  pamphlet  criticising  Papacy,  in  which  one 
of  the  *'  insulting"  remarks  was  to  the  effe6t  that  Papacy 
is  an  apostasy  "built  upon  superstition  and  idolatry." 

Recently  the  Caroline  Islands  were  in  dispute  between 
Prussia  and  Spain,  and  the  pope  got  himself  appointed  arbi- 
trator or  judge,  to  settle  the  dispute.  (Much  in  this  re- 
minds one  of  his  former  power  and  policy  as  arbiter  or  su- 
preme judge  of  nations.)  The  pope  decided  in  favor  of 
Spain.  A  man-of-war,  fifty  soldiers  and  six  priests  were  at 
once  dispatched  by  Spain ;  and  on  their  arrival  Mr.  Doane, 
an  American  missionary,  was  made  a  prisoner  and  cut  off 
from  all  intercourse  with  his  converts,  without  cause,  except 
that  he  refused  to  surrender  his  mission  work  and  property 
to  the  priests ;  and  because,  the  islands  now  belonging  to 
Spain,  and  Spain  belonging  to  the  pope,  none  but  the  pope's 
j-eligion  could  be  tolerated. 


352 


The  Time  is  at  Hand. 


A  gentleman,  formerly  a  Roman  Catholic,  and  a  friend 
of  the  writer,  states  that  recently,  when  traveling  in  South 
America,  he  was  assaulted  with  stones  and  obliged  to  flee 
for  his  life,  because  he  would  neither  uncover  his  head  nor 
kneel  with  the  multitude,  Avhen  the  Romish  priests  bearing 
the  crucifix  and  host  passed  along  the  streets.  And  a  sim- 
ilar case,  in  which  three  Americans  were  struck  by  the 
priests,  mobbed  by  the  people  and  arrested  by  the  police  in 
the  city  of  Madrid,  Spain,  for  a  like  offence,  is  no  doubt 
still  fresh  in  the  minds  of  many  who  read  the  daily  papers. 

The  Converted  Catholic  quotes  as  follows  from  the  Watch- 
man, a  Roman  Catholic  journal  published  at  St.  Louis,  Mo. : 

*'  Protestantism  !  We  would  draw  and  quarter  it.  We 
would  impale  it  and  hang  it  up  for  crows'  nests.  We  would 
tear  it  with  pinchers  and  fire  it  with  hot  irons.  We  would 
fill  it  with  rnoulten  lead,  and  sink  it  in  hell-fire  a  hundred 
fathoms  deep." 

In  the  light  of  the  past,  it  is  entirely  probable  that  with 
such  a  spirit,  if  the  power  were  possessed,  the  Editor  of  the 
Watchman  would  soon  extend  his  threats  beyond  ''  Protest- 
ant-ism  ' '  to  the  persons  of  Protestants. 

In  Barcelona,  Spain,  by  order  of  the  government,  a  large 
number  of  copies  of  the  Bible  were  recently  burned — of 
course  at  the  instigation  of  the  Church  of  Rome.  The 
following,  translated  from  the  Catholic  Banner,  the  organ 
of  Papacy  there,  shows  that  they  approved  and  appreciated 
the  a6lion.     It  said  : — 

"Thank  God,  we  have  at  last  turned  toward  the  times 
when  those  who  propagated  heretical  dodlrines  were  pun- 
ished with  exemplary  punishment.  The  re-establishment 
of  the  Holy  Tribunal  of  the  Inquisition  must  soon  take 
place.  Its  reign  will  be  more  glorious  and  fruitful  in  re- 
sults than  in  the  past.  Our  Catholic  heart  overflows  with 
faith  and  enthusiasm  ;  and  the  immense  joy  we  experience, 
as  we  begin  to  reap  the  fruit  of  our  present  campaign,  ex- 


The  Man  of  Sin,  353 

ceeds  all  imagination.  What  a  day  of  pleasure  will  that  be 
for  us,  when  we  see  Anti-clericals  writhing  in  the  flames  of 
Inquisition !  " 

To  encourage  another  crusade,  the  same  paper  says : — 
'*We  believe  it  right  to  publish  the  names  of  those  holy 
men  under  whose  hands  so  many  sinners  suffered,  that  good 
Catholics  may  venerate  their  memory: — 

**By  Torquemada — 
Men  and  women  burnt  alive,  .         .         .  10,220 

Burnt  in  effigy, 6,840 

Condemned  to  other  punishments,   ,       .         .  97j37i 

*'  By  Diego  Deza — 
Men  and  women  burnt  alive,     ....         2,592 

Burnt  in  effigy, 829 

Condemned  to  other  punishments,     .         .         .        32,952 

^'By  Cardinal  Jiminez  de  Cisneros — 
Men  and  women  burnt  alive,         ....     3,564 

Burnt  in  effigy,         .         .         .         .         .         .         2,232 

Condemned  to  other  punishments,         .         .         .    48,059 

'*  By  Adrian  de  Florencia — 
Men  and  women  burnt  alive,         .         .         .  1,620 

Burnt  in  effigy,         ......  560 

Condemned  to  other  punishments,        .         .         .   21,835 


"  Total  number  of  men  and  women  burnt  alive,  un- 
der the  ministry  of  45  holy  Inquisitor-Generals,  35,534 
Total  number  burnt  in  effigy,         .          .          .  18,637 
Total  number  condemned  to  other  punishments,  293,533 

"Grand  total, 347,704 


THE  PAPAL  MILLENNIUM. 

As  the  true  Kingdom  of  the  true  Christ  is  to  last  a  thous- 
and years,  so  the  Papal  counterfeit  looks  back  upon  the 
period  of  its  greatest  prosperity,  which  began  A.  D.  800 
and  closed  in  the  dawn  of  the  present  century,  as  the 
fulfilment  of  the  Millennial  reign  foretold  in   Rev.   20. 

And  the  period  since,  in  which  Papacy  has  gradually  lost 
2%  B 


354  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

all  of  its  temporal  power,  suffered  many  indignities  from 
nations  formerly  its  supporters,  and  been  greatly  despoiled 
of  territories,  incomes  and  liberties  long  claimed  and  pos- 
sessed, Romanists  regard  as  the  "  little  season"  of  Rev.  20: 
3,  7,  8,  at  the  close  of  the  Millennium,  during  which  Satan 
was  to  be  loosed. 

And  the  dates  which  mark  the  beginning  and  the  close 
of  Papacy's  Millennium  of  ignorance,  superstition  and  fraud 
are  clearly  shown  in  history.  A  Roman  Catholic  writer* 
thus  refers  to  the  beginning  of  this  religious  empire:  *'The 
coronation  of  Charlemagne  as  Emperor  of  the  West,  by  Pope 
Leo.,  A.  D.  800,  was  really  the  commencement  of  the  Holy 
Roman  Empire,  "f 

Although  Papacy  was  organized,  as  a  religious  system, 
long  before,  and  was  even  ''set  up"  in  temporal  power  in 
A.  D.  539,  yet  it  was  Charlemagne  who  first  a6lually  be- 
stowed and  formally  recognized  the  temporal  doi7iinio7i  of 
the  pope.  As  Charlemagne  was  the  first  emperor  over  the 
*'  Holy  Roman  Empire,"  A.  D.  800,  so  Francis  U.  was 
the  last,  and  he  voluntarily  surrendered  his  title  in  A.  D. 
1 806. 1  As,  prior  to  the  year  800,  Papacy  was  rising,  sup- 
ported by  the  Roman  ''  beast"  (people)  and  by  its  *' horns" 

*TheChairof  St.  Peter. 

f"  The  Holy  Roman  Empire'''  was  the  title  of  the  great  political  in- 
stitution of  the  middle  ages.  It  had  its  start  m  Charlemagne.  Fisher's 
Universal  History,  page  262,  describes  it  thus :  "  In  theory  it  was  the 
union  of  the  world-state  and  the  world-church, — an  undivided  com- 
munity under  Emperor  and  Pope,  its  heaven-appointed  [?]  secular  and 
spiritual  heads."  And,  since  the  popes,  as  in  Christ's  stead,  anointed 
the  emperors,  it  follows  that  they  were  the  real  heads  of  it. 

J"  By  the  battle  of  Marengo,  1800,  and  o^  Austerlitz,  1805,  Germany 
was  twice  laid  prostrate  at  the  feet  of  Napoleon.  The  main  result  of  the 
latter  defeat  was  the  establishment  of  the  Confederation  of  the  Rhine, 
under  the  protedorate  of  the  French  ruler.  This  event  tut  an  end  to  the 
old  German  or  \_Holy'\  Roman  Empire,  after  a  dur^t^op,  of  a  thousand 
years." —  White  U  IJniversal  History,  p'^g^ S^^' 


The  Man  of  Sin.  355 

(powers),  so  since  1800  it  has  been  cast  off  from  temporal 
authority  over  kings  and  peoples,  and  has  been  torn  and  pil- 
laged by  those  who  formerly  gave  it  support.  (Rev.  17:16, 
17.)  To-day,  though  still  the  recipient  of  honors,  and  still 
possessed  of  a  wide  influence  over  the  consciences  of  the 
people,  PajDacy  bemoans  its  loss  of  everything  resembling 
temporal  dominion. 

The  careful  student  will  note  four  periods,  more  or  less 
distinctly  marked,  in  the  development  and  exaltation  of 
Antichrist,  and  the  same  number  distin(5tly  marking  its  fall. 
In  its  development  the  four  dates  are  : — 

ist.  In  Paul's  day,  about  A.  D.  50,  a  beginning  of  the 
secret  working  of  the  iniquitous  ambition  was  the  start. 

2nd.  Papacy,  '^  the  Man  of  Sin,"  was  orgaftized  as  a  hie- 
rarchy; /.  <?.,  the  church  came  to  an  organized  condition, 
and  the  popes  came  to  be  recognized  as  the  Head,  repre- 
senting Christ,  reigning  in  the  church  and  over  the  nations, 
gradually,  from  about  A.  D.  300  to  494.* 

3rd.  The  time  when  the  popes  began  to  exercise  civil 
authority  and  power,  as  will  hereafter  be  shown,  A.  D.  539. 
(Vol.  III.,  Chap,  iii.) 

*The  popedom  struggled  long  for  mastery  as  the  head  of  the 
church,  and  gradually  obtained  recognition  and  dominion;  and  that  this 
dominion  was  generally  recognized  as  early  as  A.  D.  494,  is  clearly 
shown  by  the  Romanist  writer  of  The  Chair  of  SL  Peter,  page  1 28. 
After  giving  in  detail  acknowledgments  of  the  Roman  Bishop  as  supreme 
pontiff  by  various  councils,  bishops,  emperors,  etc,  he  summarizes  thus : — 
**  These  words  were  written  as  far  back  as  the  year  of  our  Lord  494. 
...  On  the  whole,  then,  it  is  clear,  from  the  foregoing  authentic  evi- 
dence, that  the  primacy  of  the  Chair  of  St.  Peter  [the  Bishopric  of 
Rome]  had  so  far  developed  itself  m.  the  fifth  century,  that  the  pope  was 
then  universally  regarded  as  the  center  of  Christian  unity — the  Supreme 
Ruler  and  Teacher  of  God's  church,  the  Prince  of  Bishops,  the  Final 
Arbiter  of  appeals  in  ecclesiastical  causes  from  all  parts  of  the  world, 
and  the  Judge  and  Moderator  of  General  Councils,  over  which  he  pre- 
sided by  his  legates." 


356  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

4th.  The  time  of  exaltation,  A.  D.  800,  when,  as  already- 
shown,  the  *' Holy  Roman  Empire"  was  formed,  and  the 
pope,  crowning  Charlemagne  emperor,  was  recognized  as 
himself  King  of  kings.  Emperor  of  emperors,  *' another 
God,  on  earth." 

The  four  periods  of  the  fall  of  papal  influence  are  as  fol- 
lows : — 

ist.  The  period  of  the  Reformation,  which  may  be  said 
to  have  had  its  beginning  about  A.  D.  1400,  in  the  writings 
of  Wycliffe, — followed  by  Huss,  Luther  and  others. 

2nd.  The  period  of  Napoleon's  success,  the  degradation 
of  the  popes,  and  the  casting  aside  finally  of  the  title  "  Em- 
peror of  the  Holy  Roman  Empire,"  by  Francis  II.,  A.  D. 
1800-1806. 

3rd.  The  final  reje6lion  of  the  pope  as  ruler  over  Rome 
and  the  so-called  Papal  States  of  Italy,  by  the  pope's  sub- 
je6ls  and  the  King  of  Italy,  A.  D.  1870,  by  which  Anti- 
christ is  left  without  the  slightest  temporal  authority. 

4th.  The  final  extindtion  of  this  counterfeit  hierarchy, 
near  the  close  of  the  ''  Day  of  wrath"  and  judgment  already 
begun — which  will  close,  as  shown  by  the  '^  Times  of  the 
Gentiles,"  with  the  year  A.  D.  1914. 

IS   THERE   ROOM    FOR    DOUBT? 

We  have  traced  Antichrist's  rise,  out  of  an  apostasy  or 
*' falling  away"  in  the  Christian  Church;  we  have  heard 
its  blasphemous  claim  to  be  Christ's  Kingdom  and  that  its 
pope  is  Vicegerent  of  Christ — '■ '  another  God,  on  earth ; "  we 
have  heard  its  great  swelling  words  of  blasphemy,  arrogat- 
ing to  itself  titles  and  powers  belonging  to  the  true  Lord 
of  lords  and  King  of  kings ;  we  have  seen  how  terribly  it 
fulfilled  the  predi6lion,  "  He  shall  wear  out  the  saints  j"  we 
have  seen  that  the  truth,  crushed  and  deformed,  would  have 
been  completely  buried  under  error,  superstition  and  priest- 


The  Ma?i  of  Sift,  357 

craft,  had  not  the  Lord,  at  the  proper  moment,  prevented  by 
raising  up  reformers,  thus  helping  his  saints — as  it  is  written, 
**They  that  understand  among  the  peqple  shall  instrudl  many; 
yet  they  shall  fall  by  the  sword,  and  by  flame,  by  captivity, 
and  by  spoil,  many  days.  Now  when  they  shall  fall,  they 
shall  be  holpen  with  a  little  help." — Dan.  11  '.2,2,,  34- 

In  view  of  all  this  testimony,  is  there  room  for  doubt  that 
it  was  concerning  Papacy  that  the  apostles  and  prophets  were 
inspired  to  write,  describing  minutely  as  they  do  its  prom- 
inent charadleristics  ?  We  think  there  should  remain  no 
doubt  in  any  unbiased  mind  that  Papacy  is  the  Antichrist, 
the  Man  of  Sin  ;  and  that  no  one  man  could  jDossibly  fulfil 
the  predi6tions.  Papacy's  unparalleled  success,  as  a  coun- 
terfeit Christ,  deceiving  the  whole  world,  has  amply  fulfilled 
our  Master's  predi6tion,  when,  after  referring  to  his  own 
own  reje6lion,  he  said,  "  If  another  shall  come  [boastingly] 
in  his  own  name,  him  ye  will  receive.'" — John  5  :43. 

It  will  be  observed,  no  doubt  with  surprise,  by  many, 
that  in  our  examination  of  the  subjecft  we  have  in  general 
omitted  reference  to  villainies,  gross  immoralities,  on  the 
part  of  the  popes  and  other  officials,  and  to  the  dark  deeds 
of  ^'expediency"  pra6liced  by  the  Jesuits  and  other  secret 
orders,  who  do  all  sorts  of  dete6live  work  for  Papacy.  We 
have  omitted  these  intentionally,  not  because  they  are  un- 
true, for  even  Roman  Catholic  writers  acknowledge  many 
of  them ;  but  because  our  line  of  argument  does  not  re- 
quire these  evidences.  We  have  shown  that  the  Papal  Hie- 
rarchy (even  if  it  were  composed  of  the  most  moral  and  up- 
right of  men — which  is  not  the  case,  as  all  history  testifies) 
is  the  Man  of  Sin,  the  Antichrist,  the  counterfeit  and  mis- 
representative  of  Christ's  Millennial  Kingdom,  skilfully  ar- 
ranged so  as  to  deceive. 

The  words  of  Macaulay,  the  English  historian,  serve  to 
show  that  some  without  special  prophetic  light  can  see  Pa- 


358  T/ie  Time  is  at  Hand, 

pacy's  wonderful  system  ; — the  counierfeii  of  the  most  won- 
derful of  all  systems,  the  Kingdom  of  God,  yet  to  come. 

He  says  : — ^'  It  is  impossible  to  deny  that  the  polity  of 
the  Church  of  Rome  is  the  very  masterpiece  of  human  [we 
would  say  Satanic]  wisdom.  In  truth,  nothing  but  sucli  a 
polity  could,  against  such  assaults,  have  borne  up  such  doc- 
trines. The  experience  of  twelve  hundred  eventful  years, 
the  ingenuity  and  patient  care  of  forty  generations  of  states- 
men, have  improved  that  polity  to  such  perfection,  that 
among  the  contrivances  which  have  been  devised  for  deceiv- 
ing and  oppressing  mankind,  it  occupies  the  highest  place.** 

ANTICHRIST'S   FINAL  END. 

We  have  traced  Papacy  to  the  present  time,  to  the  Day  of 
the  Lord — the  time  of  Immanuers/;rj^?/r(?.  This  Man  of  Sin 
has  been  developed,  has  done  his  awful  work,  has  been  smit- 
ten with  the  sword  of  the  Spirit — the  Word  of  God.  The 
spirit  of  Christ's  mouth  has  rendered  \\\Wi powei'less  to  per- 
secute the  saints  openly  and  generally,  no  matter  how  strong 
the  desire ;  and  now  we  ask,  What  next  ?  What  says  the 
Apostle  concerning  Antichrist's  end? 

In  2  Thess.  2:8-12,  the  Apostle  Paul  declares  concern- 
ing Antichrist : — **  Whom  the  Lord  Jesus  will  consimie  with 
the  spirit  of  his  mouth,  and  annihilate  with  the  bright 
shining  of  his  presence.''^  The  light  of  truth  is  to  penetrate 
every  subje6l.  By  exposing  rights  and  wrongs  it  will  lead 
into  the  great  struggle  between  these  principles,  and  between 
the  human  exponents  of  each — causing  the  great  time  of 
trouble  and  wrath.  In  this  struggle,  wrong  and  evil  shall  fall, 
and  right  and  truth  shall  triumph.  Among  other  evils  now  to 
be  finally  and  utterly  destroyed  is  Antichrist,  with  which 
nearly  every  evil,  of  theory  and  pra6lice,  is  more  or  less 
diredtly  conne6ted.  And  it  will  be  this  bright-shining,  this 
sunlight  from  the  Lord's  presence,  which  will  produce  the 
*'  day  of  trouble,"  because  of  and  in  which  Antichrist,  with 


The  Man  of  ^in.  359' 

every  other  evil  system-,  will  be  destroyed.  "Whose  presence 
is  with  [accompanied  by  or  during]  aii  energetic  operation  of 
Satan  [Satanic  energy  and  a6lion]  v/ith  all  power,  and  signs,- 
and  lying  delusions,  and  with  every  iniquitous  deceptibii^  fof 
those  perishing;  because  they  did  not  receive  the  love  of 
the  truth,  that  they  might  be  preserved.  And  for  this  reason^ 
God  will  send  to  them  a  deluding  power,  that  they  might 
believe  the  error :  so  that  all  not  believing  the  truth,  but 
taking  pleasure  in  iniquity,  may  be  judged"  unworthy  to 
share  the  Millennial  Kingdom  as  joint-heirs  with  Christ. 

We  understand  these  words  to  imply  that  in  the  time  of 
the  \iOX^'% pi-esence  (the  present  time — since  1S74),  through 
this  Antichrist  system  (one  of  the  principal  of  Satan's  agen- 
cies for  deceiving  and  controlling  the  world),  as  well  as 
through  all  his  other  agencies,  the  devil  will  make  a  most 
desperate  resistance  to  the  new  order  of  things  about  to  be 
established.  He  will  take  advantage  of  every  little  cirami- 
stance,  and  all  the  inherited  vv^eaknesses  and  selfishness  of 
the  human  family,  to  enlist  their  hearts  and  hands  and  pens 
in  this  final  struggle  against  liberty  and  the  full  elucidation 
of  truth.  Prejudices  will  be  enkindled  where,  if  the  truth 
were  clearly  seen,  none  would  exist ;  and  passionate  zeal 
will  be  evoked,  and  partisan  unions  formed,  which  will  de- 
ceive and  mislead  many.  And  this  will  be  so,  not  because 
God  has  not  made  the  truth  clear  enough  to  guide  all  the 
fully  consecrated,  but  because  those  who  will  be  deceived 
were  not  sufficiently  in  earnest  in  seeking  out  and  using 
the  truth  provided  as  "  meat  in  due  season."  And  thus  it 
will  be  manifested  that  the  class  misled  received  not  the 
truth  in  the  love  of  it,  but  rather  through  custom,  formality 
or  fear.  And  the  Apostle's  assurance  seems  to  be  that,  in 
this  final  death-struggle  of  Antichrist,  notwithstanding  he 
shall  seem  to  gahi  increased  power  in  the  world  by  new 
stratagems,  deceptions  and  combinations,  yet  the  true  Lord 


360  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

of  earth,  the  King  of  kings,  in  the  time  of  "^ys, presence,  will 
prevail ;  and  shall  finally,  during  the  great  time  of  trouble, 
utterly  annihilate  Antichrist  and  destroy  forever  his  power 
and  deceptions. 

As  to  the  exa6l  form  in  which  this  closing  struggle  should 
be  expedled,  we  can  only  make  suggestions,  based  largely 
upon  the  symbolic  views  of  the  same,  given  in  Revelation. 
We  anticipate  the  gradual  formation  throughout  the  world 
of  two  great  parties — from  both  of  which  the  faithful, 
overcoming  saints  will  stand  separate.  These  two  great 
parties  will  be  composed  on  the  one  side  of  Socialists,  Free- 
thinkers, Infidels,  discontents,  and  true  liberty-lovers  whose 
eyes  are  beginning  to  open  to  the  fa6ls  of  the  case  as  they 
relate  both  to  political  and  religious  mis-government  and 
despotism :  on  the  other  side  will  be  gradually  associated  the 
opponents  of  human  liberty  and  equality — Emperors,  Kings, 
Aristocrats ;  and  in  close  sympathy  with  these  will  stand  the 
counterfeit  of  God's  Kingdom,  Antichrist,  supporting  and 
being  supported  by  earth's  civil  despots.  We  expedl,  too, 
that  Antichrist's  policy  will  be  somewhat  modified  and 
softened  to  seek  to  win  back  into  sympathy  and  pradtical 
co-operation  (not  a6lual  union)  extremists  of  all  Protestant 
denominations,  who  even  now  are  panting  for  a  nominal 
union  with  each  other  and  with  Rome — forgetful  that  the 
only  true  union  is  that  produced  and  continued  by  the 
truth,  and  not  by  creeds,  conventions  and  laws.  Improba- 
ble asinthis  co-operation  of  Protestants  and  Catholics  may 
feeem  to  some,  we  see  unmistakable  signs  of  its  rapid  ap- 
proach. It  is  being  hastened  by  the  secret  workings  of 
Papacy  among  its  people,  whereby  such  politicians  as  are 
willing  to  co-operate  with  Papacy  are  assisted  into  promi- 
nent positions  in  governmental  affairs. 

Laws  may  be  expe6ted  soon  through  which,  gradually, 
personal  liberty  will  be  curtailed,  under  the  plea  of  neces- 


The  Ma?i  of  S{?i.  361 

stty  and  the  public  welfare ;  until,  one  step  after  another 
being  taken,  it  will  finally  be  necessary  to  formulate  some 
^^si7nple  law  of  7'eligion  ;  "  and  thus  Church  and  State  may 
be  in  a  measure  united,  in  governing  the  United  States  of 
America.  These  laws,  simple  as  they  can  be  made,  to  suit 
all  so-called  ^^oi-thodox'"  (J.  e.,  popular)  religious  views, 
will  be  calculated  to  repress  and  prevent  further  growth  in 
grace,  and  in  the  knowledge  now  ^'meat  in  due  season." 
The  plea  will  probably  be,  the  prevention  of  socialism, 
infidelity,  and  political  eruption,  of  the  lower  and  the  in- 
dependent classes. 

Evidently,  in  the  near  future,  as  a  part  of  its  trouble,  and 
even  before  the  severity  of  the  great  trouble  of  this  *'  day  of 
wrath"  has  burst  upon  the  world  and  wrecked  the  entire 
social  fabric  of  earth  (preparatory  to  the  new  and  better  one 
promised  under  the  true  Christ),  there  will  be  a  severe  hour 
of  trial  and  testing  of  the  truly  consecrated  Church,  much 
as  it  was  in  the  days  of  Papacy's  triumph  ;  only  now  the 
methods  of  persecution  will  be  more  refined  and  will  com- 
port better  with  the  more  civilized  methods  of  the  present 
day :  the  spikes  and  pincers  and  racks  will  have  more  the 
form  of  sarcasm  and  denunciations,  restri6Lions  of  liberties, 
and  social,  financial  and  political  boycotting.  But  con- 
cerning this,  and  the  new  combinations  which  Antichrist 
will  form  in  this  final  struggle  against  the  establishment  of 
the  true  Millennial  Kingdom,  more  anon. 

In  concluding  this  chapter  we  desire  to  again  impress 
our  readers  with  the  fa6l  that  Papacy  is  the  Antichrist,  not 
because  of  its  moral  obliquity,  but  because  it  is  the  comiter- 
feitoi  the  true  Christ  and  the  true  Kingdom.  It  is  because 
of  a  failure  to  realize  this  fa6l  that  many  Protestants  will  be 
deceived  into  co-operation  with  Papacy  in  opposition  to  the 
true  King  of  Glory. 


362  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

FAITHFUL  UNTIL  DEATH. 


"  Am  I  a  soldier  of  the  cross, 
A  follower  of  the  Lamb? 
And  shall  I  fear  to  own  his  cause. 
Or  blush  to  speak  his  name  ? 

«  Must  I  be  bome  to  Paradise 
On  flowery  beds  of  ease, 
While  others  fought  to  win  the  prize. 
And  sailed  through  bloody  seas  ? 

"  Are  there  no  foes  for  me  to  face  ? 
Must  I  not  stem  the  flood  ? 
Is  this  vain  world  a  friend  to  grace, 
To  help  me  on  to  God  ? 

**  Sure  I  must  fight  if  I  would  reign. 
Increase  my  courage.  Lord. 
I'll  bear  the  toil^  endure  the  pain. 
Supported  by  thy  Word. 

«  Thy  saints  in  all  this  glorious  war 
Shall  conquer,  though  they  die. 
They  see  the  triumph  from  afar, 
By  faith  they  bring  it  nigh. 

«  Wlien  thine  illustrious  day  shall  rise. 
And  all  thy  saints  shall  shine, 
And  shouts  of  vidl'ry  rend  the  skieSj 
The  glory,  Lord,  be  tmne.'' 


CHAPTER   X. 

THE  TIME   IS   AT    HAND. 

Nothing  Intervenes. — The  Establishment  of  Christ's  Kingdom,  the  Work 
NOW  IN  Pkogress. — The  Testimony  of  Prophecy  Concurs. — The  Worldly- 
wise  See  Much. — The  Watching  Saints  See  More  Distinctly. — The  Im- 
port.^nce  to  All,  of  Open  Eyes  in  the  Right  Direction. 

'l^HE  Time  is  at  Hand  for  the  establishment  of  the  Re- 
-■■  deemer's  Kingdom.  This  is  tlie  concurrent  testimony  of 
the  foregoing  chapters.  Nothing  intervenes.  We  are  already 
living  in  the  seventh  millennium — since  061. 1872.  The  lease 
of  power  to  the  Gentile  kingdoms  must  terminate  with  the 
year  191 4.  The  great  antitypical  Jubilee,  the  Times  of  Res- 
titution of  all  things,  had  its  beginning  in  the  year  1874, 
when  the  presence  of  the  great  Restorer  was  also  due.  The 
manner  of  his  return  and  the  chara6ler  of  his  work  up  to 
the  present  time  are  in  exa6l  correspondence  with  the  de- 
tails of  prophecy  thus  far.  The  closing  features  of  this  dis- 
pensation, now  observed,  are  in  perfe6l  accord  with  those 
of  its  Jewish  type.  The  Elias  has  come,  and  is  received  as 
foretold  ;  and  the  predicted  curse — the  great  time  of  trouble 
- — is  already  impending.  The  Man  of  Sin  has  been  revealed 
in  all  his  hateful  deformity,  and  has  almost  run  his  predi6led 
course.  The  establishment  of  the  long  promised  Kingdom 
of  Messiah  is  therefore  the  great  event  just  before  us.  Not 
only  so,  but  its  establishment  is  now  in  progress.  The 
necessary  undermining  and  overturning  of  the  kingdoms 
of  this  world  under  the  prince  of  darkness — ''the  prince 
of  this  world" — are  now  visible  to  some  extent  even  to 
the  natural  eye  of  the  children  of  this  world,  but  are  much 
more  clearly  seen,  as  they  should  be,  by  those  who  look 

3^3 


3^4  The  Time  is  at  Hand. 

upon  transpiring  events  through  the  field-glass  of  God's 
Word,  which  at  proper  focus  brings  distant  matters  and 
results  close  to  view,  and  enables  God's  children  to  recog- 
nize the  minutiae  which  the  natural  eye  cannot  discern,  as 
well  as  the  leading  features  which  the  world's  statesmen 
and  philosophers  see  in  but  dim  outline.  Even  the  worldly- 
wise  can  discern  the  social  trouble  fomenting,  as  the  dom- 
inance of  ignorance  gives  place  to  greater  general  knowl- 
edge and  personal  independence.  And  though  they  vainly 
hope  for  some  unknown  and  unexpe6led  favorable  turn 
of  affairs  to  occur,  yet,  as  described  in  the  Scriptures,  their 
hearts  are  failing  them  for  fear  and  for  looking  after  the 
things  coming  upon  the  earth — because  they  see  the  shak- 
ing of  the  symbolic  heavens  now  in  progress,  and  perceive 
that  with  such  a  shaking  and  removal  of  the  power  of  er- 
ror, superstitions  and  religious  restraints  from  the  masses 
of  the  people,  violence  and  anarchy  must  result. 

But,  from  God's  standpoint,  from  which  the  waking  ones 
of  the  household  of  faith  are  privileged  to  look,  not  only 
the  severity  of  the  trouble  is  more  distin6l,  but  also  the 
blessed  results,  which  under  God's  providence  it  shall  sub- 
serve by  ushering  in  the  Millennial  Kingdom.  And  this  is 
a  comfort,  and  more  than  an  offset  for  all  the  tribulation 
even  though  we  or  our  dearest  ones  may  share  it. 

That  we  might  now  have  the  comfort  of  this  knowledge, 
and  not  be  in  doubt  and  perplexity,  was  but  part  of  the  ob- 
je(5l  in  the  giving  of  the  time-prophecies.  Another  obje<5l 
was,  that,  as  the  representatives  of  that  kingdom  among  men, 
we  should  be  aware  of  the  great  dispensational  changes  now 
in  progress,  and  able  to  bear  testimony  before  the  world, 
regarding  God's  plan,  etc.,  which,  though  unheeded  now, 
will  greatly  benefit  them  by  and  by,  and  help  them  the 
sooner  to  recognize  the  Lord's  presence  in  the  great  day 
of  wrath,  drawing  on.     Another  objedl  is,  that  the  faithful, 


The  Time  is  at  Hand  365 

thus  armed  and  strengthened  by  God's  Word, may  be  enabled 
to  stand  firm,  when  so  many  will  be  falling  into  infidelity  and 
various  other  deceptive  errors,  which  will  soon  sweep  over 
"  Christendom."  Another  obje6l  is,  to  give  force  and  point 
to  the  entire  Plan  of  the  Ages :  for  it  is  a  general  experi- 
ence that,  while  the  first  glimpse  of  God's  gracious  plan  for 
blessing  the  whole  world  through  the  Church,  during  the 
Millennial  age,  fills  the  hearts  and  enlists  the  zeal  of  his 
faithful  children  to  the  utmost,  yet  as  their  efforts  to  en- 
lighten others  are  coldly  received,  and  they  find  that  only  a 
very  few,  comparatively,  have  ''an  ear  to  hear,"  the  tend- 
ency is  to  settle  down  to  the  quiet  enjoyment  of  the  pre- 
cious knowledge,  in  such  a  manner  as  will  bring  the  least 
reproach  and  opposition. 

Seeing  this,  our  natural  weakness,  the  Lord  has  provided 
time-prophecies  as  a  spur,  to  quicken  and  awaken  us  fully, 
and  keep  us  a6live  in  his  service.  Being  already  in  the  ''  har- 
vest' '  time,  harvest  work  should  engage  th'S  time,  service  and 
thoughts  of  the  Lord's  servants,  who  now,  like  the  disciples 
at  the  first  advent,  are  to  do  the  reaping  work.  (John  4: 
35-38.)  Let  us  each  seek  to  do  what  our  hands  find  to  do, 
in  obedience  to  the  instru6lions  of  the  great  Chief  Reaper. 
But,  with  reference  more  particularly  to  the  time  and  order 
of  events  in  this' 'harvest,  "we  must  refer  the  reader  to  the  suc- 
ceeding volume  of  this  series,  wherein  the  conclusions  of  the 
foregoing  and  other  time  prophecies  are  brought  to  a  focus, 
and  the  various  foretold  signs  and  corroborative  testimonies 
of  the  Master's  presence  and  the  progress  of  his  work  are 
marked,  proving — that  the  "Time  of  the  End"  has  come; 
that  the  Days  of  Waiting  for  the  Kingdom  are  fulfilled ; 
that  the  Cleansing  of  the  San^luary  is  accomplished ;  that 
the  great  Harvest  Work  is  in  progress  ;  that  the  Re-gather- 
ing of  Israel  is  apparent ;  that  the  Battle  of  the  Great  Day 
of  God  Almighty  is  impending;  and  that  the  complete  es 


•7^^  The   Time  is  at  Hand. 

tablishment  of  the  glorious  Kingdom  of  God  at  the  time 
appointed,  the  end  of  the  Times  of  the  Gentiles,  is  an  un- 
questionable certainty ;  and  showing,  further,  the  work  of 
the  saints  during  the  harvest ;  marking  the  close  of  the  *Miigh 
calling,"  and  the  '^  change  *'  of  those  saints  who  "  are  alive 
and  remain;"  and  showing,  also,  that  the  Great  Pyramid  of 
Egypt  is  one  of  God's  Witnesses  (Isa.  19:19,  20),  whose  won- 
derful message  is  a  full  and  complete  corroboration  of  God's 
plan  of  the  ages,  together  with  its  times  and  seasons. 

MILLENNIAL  DAWN. 


*'  All  things  are  onward  moving ! — Let  the  blessed  time  begin ! 
The  Old  is  swiftly  passing,  and  the  New  is  coming  in ! 
The  golden  bells  are  ringing,  and  the  pageant  sweeps  along 
Like  an  army  that  is  speeding  to  the  measure  of  a  song. 

•*  Dark  theories  now  are  waning:  they  are  weak  to  build  upon; 
The  light  is  on  the  hill-tops,  and  Truth  is  marching  on : — 
Many  landmarks  are  but  shadows,  which  now  fade  and  flee  away 
Before  the  mighty  forces  that  are  coming  in  to-day. 

*'  O  brother,  why  this  waiting  ?  And  sister,  why  so  mute  ? 
Up  with  the  early  sunshine !  Watch  for  the  golden  fruit ! 
O  poet,  why  this  sorrow  ?  O  minstrel,  why  this  hush  ? 
And  painter,  why  so  long  delay  the  heavenly  tint  and  blush  ? 

**  Up  with  the  larks  of  morning !  Up  with  the  rising  sun ! 
Waiting  not  for  noon -day,  nor  halting  when  begun ! 
For  everything  is  moving ;  let  the  blessed  time  begin ! 
The  Old  is  swiftly  passing,  and  the  New  is  coming  in  ! 

**  The  heavenly  light  is  spreading, — spreading  at  the  King's  command ! 
It  is  spreading  in  its  glory,  speeding  onward  through  the  land. 
Human  creeds  are  downward  tending ;  let  them  droop  and  fade  away. 
Following  in  the  dawning  sunlight,  we  can  see  a  better  way. 

*♦  Oh,  let  us  all  be  ready  for  the  work  we  have  to  do, — 
Toiling  late  and  early,  for  the  laborers  are  few ! 
Reaping,  as  instructed,  in  the  morning  light ; 
Reaping  in  the  harvest  field, — ^toiling  for  the  right  I 

"  All  things  are  onward  moving !     Let  earth's  Jubilee  begin ! 
The  Old  is  swiftly  passing,  and  the  New  is  coming  in ! 
It  is  coming  !  Oh  'tis  coming !  My  raptured  eyes  behold ! 
The  light  is  on  the  hill-tops,  the  Shepherd  with  his  Fold." 


I  K  D  H  X 

MILLENNIAL  DAWN,  VOL.  II. 


GENESIS  33:20 131,132  JUDGES. 

I:l6 308  33:20-23 131  3:8,14 89 

1:28 74.94,96  34:28 132      3:9,15 88 

3:15       -•.       98  34:29-35 131         4:2,3 89 

5:3-28 43  34:30-33 134      6:11-22 127 

7:6 43  LEVITICUS.  ;°:7'8 89 

7:11.13 48  2^:1';,  16...    .    175        ^^-^ ^9 

8:13 43  '^;2ii3...;..    ill       ^3:3-20    127 

9:11 ^^^  25:9 187  I.KINGS 

11:10-32 44  25:10 177,197       6:1 53 

12:1 45  26:17,18,2428.     88       17:5-9 256 

12:1-3 •     9»  26:18,21,2428     89  18:2,40,41,45    256 

'2  =  4-. 4^,231  26:34 192       19:1-4 256 

12:5-7 4t>  26  :  35 188,  192 

12:7,8 45  26:43 192  "-KINGS. 

13:14-18 45  26:44.45 90      ^'-^-'^ ^55 

18    127  26-lt  q2         2:19-22 266 

18:17 21  ^^'45 92  4:i_7,i8-44..    266 

21:5 231  NUiMBERS.  5:1-10 266 

25126.!! 231  4:3 58         8:17 52 

26:3,4 45  10:11-13 48      9:1-37 266 

28:14      13  13:3-26 48         10:28 266 

35:9-12 45  14:33,34 91   12:1 52 

46:2-4 45  32:8-13 48   16:2 52 

46  :  3  213  33-3 48   20 : 4 67 

47  :28  231  24:8 53 

49-IO  ..81,87  DEUTERONOMY.  24:8-16 52 

49:28 213  8:2. 47   24:14 52 

50:24 45  ^^^5 177   25:12,26 52 

^   ^  26:5 213,217 

EXODUS.  29  :  29 18  I.  CHRON. 

3:2 124  33:3 157         29:27 50 

12  :  40 46  48  34  :  6 130 

12:41 231  11.  CHRON. 

12  :  41-43  ...  46,  47                    JOSHUA.  9  :  30-36  :  II .  .  .      50 

12:42 47  10:42 48       21:5 52 

12:47,50,51..  46,47  11:23 48       24:1 52 

16:20,33  .    ...    130  14:7,10 48       28:1 52 

19    131  17:12,13 184       36:9 52.53 

19:5-8 207  18:2,3 184  36:1017,21..      52 

20:19-21 131  23:4,7, 13,  15..  184       36:11 48 

367 


368 


Index  of  Texts. 


36: 17-21 191 

36:20,  23.... 51,  64 
Z^-^^-^Z 79 

EZRA. 
I  :  1-4 206 

1  :  3  •  •  •    66 

2  :  70     206 

5  :  13 67 

6:  1-12 67 

7  :  7-14 66 

NEHEMIAH. 

2:3-8 67 

4   6s 

6:15 67 

7:1 67 

II  :  I,  20 206 

PSALMS. 
2:8,  9 100 

2:9 77 

2:12 300 

8   312 

8:6 157 

8:4-8 309 

18:  12,  13 153 

37  :  I-I4 138 

46  :  10 78 

47    loi 

50  :  5  .  .  104,  164,  229 

69  :  22-28 215 

72  :  I-I9 138 

72  :  19 99 

91  :  12 157 

95  :  8-10 47 

99  :  5 309 

no:  I 157 

no  :  6 loi 

137    ^Z 

149  :  8,  9  . .  .  100,  loi 

ISAIAH. 

1:9 215 

2  :  18-21 139 

2:19 147 

2:21 140,  147 

6:3 99 

8:  14.26,215,229,241 

8:  19 126 

9:6 227 

10:22,23 70*215 


13  :  4 147 

19  :  19,  20 366 

26:5-11 138 

28:  17 102,139 

40  :  2 72,  227 

45  :  13 67 

52:7  ..142,157,254 

52  :  II 240 

53:  10-12 65 

62  :  10 31 

63  :  4 222 

JEREMIAH. 

16  :  9-13 216 

16:13-15 217 

16:  18 218 

25  :  II .       191 

29  :  10 64,  191 

31  :  29-34 92 

52:1,3-7 48 

EZEKIEL. 

4:  1-8 91 

4:6 66 

7  :  17-19 139 

20  :  49 23 

21  :  24-27 76 

21:  25-27....  73,   79 

DANIEL. 

2:34 78 

2:37,38 96,  100 

2:44 99.  170 

3  :  19-25 162 

4   93 

4:16,23,25,32  89 
4 : 16. 23-26  ...  90 
7:8 272,305 

7:11     305 

7  :  21 272 

7:25  ..  .91,305,310 
9:2,17-19....  64 
9:23-27     63 

9  :  24-27 58,  91 

9:25     ...66  67,235 

9  :  26,  27 71 

9:27     234 

10:5-8    124 

II  :3I 271 

11:33,  34 357 

12:  I  .  .101,  145,  149 

12:4 15.19,87 


12:7 91 

12:8 23 

12:9 15,  18 

12  :  10. .15,  18,  19,87 
12  :  II 271 

AMOS. 
3:7 22 

8:11 256 

HABAKKUK. 

^•-z  ••••• 15 

2:14 99 

ZEPHANIAH. 
3:8 162 

ZECHARIAH. 
9:9 224 

9  :  10 225 

9  :  12 224    225 

12  :  10 72,   130 

^Z-1 Ill 

14:4 157 

MALACHI. 
3:1-3 147.    249 

3  :  13-18 249 

3:  ^7 ••  •    164 

4:1 150,  249 

4:5,  6    249 

MATTHEW. 

2:1 61 

2:2 21 

2:14-16 56,  57 

2  :  23 29 

3:2 14 

3:11 233,  240 

3:  12..  205,  233,  261 

3:16 66 

4:8.9 293 

5  :  14 141 

5:18 173.    187 

9  :  37 15    160 

10: 5-7  ....  117,  207 
10:7,35-38...-    2=36 

II  :  14     253 

II  :  15 16 

11  :  25 29 

12  :  10,  13 40 

13:10-17     ....      27 

n-^^i 23 


Index  of  Texts.  369 

13:  24..  15,  205, 234  13:  32,33.37..  18  160   24:36-49 115 

13:30 14:27 Ill   24:45-48 124 

15,  150,  164,  234        14  :  61-64 306        24  :  48-52 120 

13:36 28,234        16  :  I HI        24:48 123 

13:39.15,160,233,234  LUKE.                          24:50,51 154 

14:4     261         1:17 253 

14:25-32 191         1:26 58,62  JOHN. 

15:14 28        1:36 58        I  :  18 122 

15  :  24 207        2:21 61        I  :  26 253,  261 

16:1-4 27       2:25-38 21        1:45 27,177 

17:1-9 255        2:34 228       2:4 158 

17  :  II 254       3  :  1-3 60  2:  19,  21,  22.  .  .    114 

17:12 260       3:1,23 58,60       3:29 238,240 

18  :  10 132       3:15 21,66,240       4:23 30 

21:4-9 225       4:30 126  4:35-38233,238,365 

21:5,9 238       5:4-11 118       5:6-9 40 

21:43 119.225        11:36 156       5:35 260 

23:2 182         12:29,30 119         5:37 122 

23:37-39 226   12:32 190,205   5:43- 357 

23:38 70-212   12:37 171,196   5:46 177 

24:1 160   12:51-53 236   6:51-58 130 

24:3 159   13:11-16 40   7:19 84 

24: 15. .  160  270, 271   13:30 206   7:23 40 

24  :  22 160   14 :  1-5 40   7  :  30 25 

24:  23,  26..  160,  165   16:17 179   7:39 120,129 

24:27 144,155  17:20,26,27..  142   8:36 328 

159,  160,  165   17  :  24 156   9:4 257 

24:30     143        17:28 161  10:33.36...    .    306 

24:31 164  17:26-29  ..162,  167        10:34,35 274 

24:37 159    160       18:18-30 27        12:1., 111,224 

163,  167,  187  19  :  12  ..... .    120       12  :  12-15 225 

24:38 142        19:27 300        12:12-19 Ill 

24  :  39 .    ...  142,   159  19  :  40-42     .  .    .    225        14  :  2,  3 105 

160,167,    189       19:41 226,239        14:3,19     154 

24:42      163         19:44 26,237  14:7 122 

24:45-47 165        21:22 251        14:26 IIO 

27:1 61      21:24 73      14:30 131 

27:12 251  21  :  28  ...  ...25,  190       15:1-6 234 

27:24 330         21:34 158         16:  12 110,120 

28:5-10 112         21:34-36 23         16:13 

28:18 Ill      21:36 162  16,110,169,262 

28  :  20 105,  203       22  :  20 69        16  :  22 154 

23  :  I     61  17  :  17,  19  .    ...      22 

MARK.  23:14-16,20,22     330         18:36,37 14 

1:15 25,  78    236         24:1,10 Ill  19:23,24 128 

4:10 28      24:13-32 27       19:30 68 

4:11-12 170     24:13-35 113     19:37 130 

7:1-23..   ..    27    24:22,23 112    20:2 112 

7  :  9'  13 241   24  :  32 49   20  :  5-7 128 

11:15-17 239   24:33,49 27   20:17 113 


^yo  Index  of  Texts. 


20:19 115,127      8:14 205  3:17 44,46 

20:24 27,116        8:22     40  4:4 25 

20:26 116,127    8:29 134  :  =  ! 328 

20  :  27-29  .    ...    125       9:6 86,  205  6:16 204 

21  :  I-I2 27         9:27 205,206  EPHESIANS. 

21:3 117  9:28 70^215  3:2,5,6 202 

ACTS.         9:32  33 215  4.1 28 

l:e  119   l°=^-3 ;,  206  5.33 202 

1.6-15 120  11:5  --205,206,  215  6:15 157 


1:7 "18  78,120  "=7 119.215   6:17 100 

I  :  10 49  11-910 215  PHILIPPIANS. 

.:n  144,153  "/'^■"° '°''      1:26 159 

1  :  lA 121  11-25 •  2:  Q.  .  .  .  108,  iijq.  2^8 

2:1' 121  „7yo, 92,  206,210      ^^9^ ;^59,^3^ 

2  :  27,  31 129  "  •  20 /  COLOSSIANS. 

!!36 207  ;;;^7. .......    ^^     ^^^s ^3^ 


2:41 71 


13:1 81        I  :  24 202 


^  :  1Q-21 49  1.  COR.  I-  THES. 

3:22,23 302  2:12-16 123  2:19 159 

4:4 71  3:16,  17.. -209,  239  l'-^^ ^59 

4  :  10-13,  23-30  263  8:5 274  4:15 159 

\  :  .9-4'    ■.'■-b\  9-7 |8  4:  .6  . .  134.  H  ,  .49 

7:2-5 45  10:  II 188  5-1-4    21,209 

7.4  ^     46  10:18 204  5:4 169 

7:36    48  11:18 158  5:5 22 

7:40,43 274  11:25 69  5:23 159 

9:4 281  15:4 25  jj^  THES. 

9:17,18 133  15:8 134  1:7 143 

10 71.214  15:21,45 107  j.g 143,151 

10:17 49  15:23 159  2:1 159,269 

10  :  37,  38 66  15  :  25,  26 106  2:2 158 

10  :  40-42 124  15  :  27 lOb  2:3 267 

11  :  19 263  15:42-51 133  2:4 275 

13:19-21 49  15:50,51 128  2:7 88 

13:21 50  i'i:52 148  2:8 101,159 

15:14 86,217  16:17 159  2:8-12 358 

17:23 274  II.  COR.  2:9 159 

17  :  26 78  3  :  17     328 

19:35-41 330  5:  16 107 

25:24-27  .....    330  7:6,7 159  ^    .  ,^, 

26:2,3.28....     330  10:10 158  r      .••a-*".8    \l 

26:7.. 206  1J.2 238  6:15,16...     78,132 

ROMANS  11:13.14 157  II.    TIMOTHY. 

2-i;6q,  10...     138  GALATIANS.  3:! 15^ 

3:20 84         1:8 320  3:1-13 259 

5:6 25         3:16 13  3:12 137 


I.  TIMOTHY. 
2:5,6 132 


Index  of  Texts. 


371 


3:17 39 

4:1 145 

4:3 258,  263 

HEBREWS. 

1:3 108 

1  :  14 203 

2:9 108 

2  :9,  15 238 

3^5,6 205 

3:8 47 

3:9 48 

4:16 158 

S'-l 320 

5:  14 196 

7  :  9.  10 47 

8:2 208 

8:5 173 

8:6 207 

9  :  I,  2,  10 208 

9:4 130 

9:9,  23 ... .  208,  209 

9  :  26 68 

10:  I 173,  209 

10:4,5 107 

10:5 155 

10  :  16,  17 92 

11:8,9 47 

12:  21 131 

JAMES, 

I  :  I 207 

1:18 22 

5:7,8 159 

5  ••  17 256 

I  PETER. 

I  :  10-12 23 


l:ll 89 

1  :  12  ....  22,  23,  203 
2:5 208 

2:9 75,  208 

2  :  10 208 

2:21 203 

3  :  18 108 

II.  PETER. 

1:4 207 

I  :  16..  .20,  159,  255 

1  :  19 20,  141 

2^:  I 167 

3:4,  12  ...159,  167 

3:8 40,  168 

3  :  10.  .  .40,  167,  168 

I.  JOHN. 

2  .  18-27 272 

2:  iS,  19 281 

2  :  28 159 

3:1 264 

3:2 109,  128 

JUDE. 

9 130 

rp:velation. 

1  :  I 203 

1:7 138,  143 

2:7 16 

2  :  20 256 

2  :  26 100 

2:  27 77,  100 

Z'1 24 

3:  12 209,  239 

3  :  16 235 


3  :  18 189,  238 

6:  15-17 139 

7:1 169 

7:3 235,  264 

10:  7 149 

11:3 256 

":  15-19 

145,  148,  149 
17.. 87,  loi,  239 
18.  .87,  loi,  149 
6. .  ,91,  256,  329 

14 -78.  91 

16 256 

1-8 271 

2 288 

5  91,305 

6 305 

17 259,  263 

1-4 171 

14  .150,238,239 

16 150 

18-20 171 

12 209 

14 loi,  141 

15 142 

5 208,  261 


6.... 

14  ... 
16,  17 

3  •••• 

4  .... 
7  .... 

15  ••• 

3,7,8 


320 
238 
355 
348 
24c 
256 
100 
354 
153 


"GO  YE  ALSO  INTO  THE  VINEYARD." 


^*He  that  reapeth  receiveth  wages^  and  gather eth  fruit. ^'' — John  4:36. 

All  interested  in  the  presentations  of  this  volume,  and  who  consider 
its  presentations  to  be  "meat  in  due  season,"  will  feel  more  or  less  con- 
strained to  become  servants  of  the  truth,  and  to  bear  the  "things  new 
and  old"  to  yet  others  of  the  "household  of  faith."  Your  measure  of 
zeal  for  such  service  will  of  course  measure  your  a(ftivities  in  its  service, 
and  determine  how  much  of  time,  influence,  means,  etc.,  you  will  de- 
vote to  its  spread.  We  are  glad  to  cooperate  with  all,  that  those  who 
love  much  may  do  much,  and  that  those  who  love  some  may  do  some- 
thing, in  the  name  of  the  great  Shepherd  and  in  the  interest  of  his  sheep. 

To  this  end  we  wish  you  to  know  that  special  provision  has  been 
made  whereby  you  may  be  a  co- laborer  in  tliis  work,  regardless  of  whether 
you  have  financial  means  to  invest  or  not.  We  have  a  large  variety  of 
excellent  tradls,  which  we  supply  free  and  in  large  quantities  for  ju- 
dicious circulation.  We  also  publish  twice  a  month  a  16-page  journal, 
Zion's  Watch  Tower,  and  desire  that  our  list  should  bear  yourname, 
if  you  are  interested.  If  interested  in  this  volume  you  will  undoubtedly 
be  interested  in  the  journal,  which  is  edited  by  the  same  pen,  and  we 
are  prepared  to  supply  you  wilh  it  upon  your  own  terms; — you  may  have 
it  on  credit  if  it  is  not  convenient  to  pay  for  it  in  advance,  and  if  never 
able  to  pay  for  it  we  will,  upon  application,  cancel  the  indebtedness. 
If  you  have  no  prospedl  of  being  able  to  pay  for  it  you  will  be  welcome 
to  it  free  as  one  of  the  "Lord's  poor,"  on  application,  and  upon  renewal 
of  the  same  yearly.     If  you  can  afford  to  pay  the  price  is  ^i  a  year. 

We  have  various  helps  for  Bible  study,  which  we  supply  to  all  who 
are  on  our  Watch  Tower  list  at  extremely  low  prices — these  include 
various  translations  of  the  Bible,  Concordances,  etc.,  and  especially  the 
Millennial  Dawn  series, — "The  Bible  Keys." 

COLPORTEURING  AND   LOANING  DAWN. 

Some  have  numbers  of  friends  to  whom  they  take  pleasure  in  sup- 
plying the  Dawns  gratis;  others  keep  a  quantity  at  hand  which  they 
keep  constantly  loaned  amongst  their  friends,  after  the  manner  of  a  cir- 
culating library;  §.nd  still  others  enter  the  Colporteur  work,  as  being  one 
of  the  most  favorable  opportunities  to  them  for  serving  the  truth  to  others, 
travelling  from  town  to  town  introducing  the  "Bible  Keys,"  soliciting 
orders  and  delivering  the  books.  Our  Society  does  all  in  its  power  to 
facilitate  these  various  methods  of  circulating  the  truth,  encouraging  each 
to  serve  the  cause  to  the  extent  of  his  zeal  and  ability,  according  to  his 
own  preference;  assisting  in  the  matter  very  materially  by  supplying  the 
books  at  remarkably  low  prices.  For  instance,  to  all  such  the  first  vol- 
ume of  the  Dawn  series,  which  is  generally  the  best  for  new  readers,  is 
supplied  in  lots  of  ten  to  one  address  for  ^i,  postage  paid  by  us. 

We  shall  be  glad  to  hear  from  you,  and  to  cooperate  with  you,  and 
we  assure  you  that  you  will  find  a  blessing  in  every  sacrifice  you  may 
make  on  behalf  of  the  truth.     Very  truly,     Your  fellow-servants, 

WATCH   TOWER   BIBLE   AND   TRACT   SOCIETY, 

"BIBLE  HOUSE,"   ALLEGHENY,  PA.j  U,  S.  A. 


THINGS   YOU    OUGHT   TO   KNOW 

CHRISTIAN  BIBLE  STUDENTS 


THE  SATISFACTORY  PROOFS  THAT— 

— The  Bible  is  a  divine  revelation — reasonable  and  trustworthy, 

revealing  a  systematic  plan  full  of  Justice,  Wisdom  and  Love. 
— "  The  Key  of  Knowledge"  of  the  Scriptures,  long  lost  (Luke    ' 

II :  52),  is  found,  and  gives  God's  faithful  people  access  to  the 

the  "Hidden  Mystery."— Col  i :  26. 
— The  Lord   Jesus   and  his  faithful  are  to  be  not  only  priests 

but  kings, 
— This  Kingdom   is  to  come  and  God's  will  be  done  at  the 

Second  Advent. 
— God  s  plan  is  to  seledl  and  save  the  Church  in  the  Gospel  age, 

and  to  use  this  Church  in  blessing  the  world  in  the  Millennium. 
— A  ransom  for  all  implies  an  opportunity  for  restitution  to  all. 
— The  Day  of  Judgment  is  1 ,000  years  long—  the  world'strial-day. 
— Spiritual  and  human  natures  are  distincfl  and  separate. 
— '*  The  narrow  way"  of  self-sacrifice  will  cease  with  this  age. 
— "The   highway"  of  righteousness  without  suffering  will  be 

open  to  all  the  redeemed  race  in  the  Millennium. — Isa.  35  : 8, 9. 
— "  The  kinn;doms  of  this  world"  are  but  for  an  ordained  period 

and  must  then  give  place  to  the  '' Kingdom  of  Heaven" — 

"Thy  Kingdom  Come." 

Especially  You  Ought  to  Know 

— Why  God  has  permitted  evil  for  six  thousand  years,  and 
— The  relationship  of  God's  j^eople  to  this  "  Reign  of  Sin  and 
Death"  and  to  the  results. 

These  subjects  and  many  others  of  deep  interest  to  all  of  God^s 
people  are  discussed  fully  and  in  language  easy  of  comprehension  in 

"T^bie   ^lar)    of  the   Ages" 
(In  English,  German,  Swedish,  Dano-Norwegian  and  French) 

355  PAGES- CLOTH  BOUNO,   5O    CENTS,    POSTAGB,    lO    CENTS    BXTRA ;    PAPBR 
COVERS,  25  CENTS,  POST-PAID 


ADDRESS  ORDERS   TO   PUBLISHERS 

WATCH  TOWER  BIBLE  &  TRACT  SOCIETY 

BIBLE   HOUSE 

ALLEGHENY,  PA.,  U.  S.  A. 


CHRISTIAN  BIBLE  STUDENTS 


THERE  ARE  EVIDENCES  THAT— 

—Six  thousand  Years  from  Adam  ended  in  A.  d,  1872. 

— The  Date  of  our  Lord's  Birth  was  Odiober,  B.  C.  2. 

— The  Date  of  Annunciation  to  Mary,  Dec.  25th,  B.  c.  3. 

— The  Date  of  our  Lord's  Baptism  was  Odober,  a.  d.  29. 

— The  Date  of  our  Lord's  Crucifixion,  April,  A.  d.  ^^. 

— The  "Seventy  Weeks  "  of  Israel's  favor  ended  A.  d.  36. 

— The  Jewish  Age,  "Harvest,"  was  40  years,  A.  D.  30  to  70, 

—The  Christian  Age,  "Harvest,"  40  years,  A.  D.  1874-1914. 

— The  Jewish  Jubilees  were  Typical  of  the  "  Times  of  Restitu- 
tion of  all  Things." — Ads  3  :  19-21. 

— The  Typical  Jubilees  Mark  the  Date  of  their  Antitype. 

—The  "Times  of  the  Gentiles"  will  end  with  A.  D.  1914. 

— The  Jewish  Age,  in  its  Length,  its  Ceremonies,  etc.,  Typified 
the  Realities  of  the  Christian  Age  and  its  Length. 

— Elias  or  "  Elijah  the  Prophet"  was  a  Type.— How  fulfilled. 

—The  Antichrist  Has  Come!— What?   When?   Where? 


TAese  subj'etfls  and  many  others  deeply  interesting  to  *^  the 
Household  of  Faith, ^^  and  ^' Meat  in  due  season^^  to  all  who 
love  and  study  God^s  Word,  can  be  had  in 

"T*t)e   Virqe  is  at  fiar)d  " 
(In  English,  German,  Swedish  and  Dano-Norwegian) 

360    OAGBS — CLOTH    BOUND,    50  CENTS,    POSTAGK,  lO   CHNT3  KXTRA  ;    PAPBR 
COVERS,  25  CENTS,  POST-PAID 


ADDRESS  ORDERS  TO   PUBLISHERS 

WATCH  TOWER   BIBLE   &   TRACT   SOCIETY 

BIBLE  HOUSE 

ALLEGHENY,  PA.,  U.  S.  A. 


THINGS  YOU  OUGHT  TO  KNOW 


CHRISTIAN  BIBLE  STUDENTS 


DO  YOU  KNOW  THAT 

— We  are  now  living  in  "the  Time  of  the  End"  of  this  Gospel  age? 

— Our  epoch  is  '•  the  Day  of  God's  Preparation"  for  the  Millen- 
nial age  ? 

—  I  he  "Days  of  Waiting"  are  ended  and  the  "Cleansing  of  the 
Sancfluary" — the  Church,— the  separating  of  its  Wheat  and 
lares,  is  now  in  progress  ? 

— This  is  the  reason  for  the  beginning  of  the  Return  ot  Divine 
Favor  to  Fleshly  Israel — blinded  for  centuries — to  permit  the 
gathering  of  an  eledt  class  from  among  the  Gentiles  ? 

— This  favor  is  gradually  taking  shape  and  known  as  Zionism  ? 

— Immanuel's  Kingdom  is  now  in  process  of  establishment  ? 

— The  Great  Pyramid  in  Egypt  is  a  Witness  to  all  these  events 
of  the  ages  and  of  our  day — testifying  in  symbols  ? 

— The  Pyramid's  downward  passage  under  "A  Draconis"  sjm- 
bolizes  the  course  of  Sin?  Its  First  Ascending  Passage  sym- 
bolizes the  Jewish  age?  Its  Grand  Gallery  symbolizes  the 
Gospel  age?  Its  Upper  Step  symbolizes  the  approacbingf  cr- 
ied of  tribulation  and  anarchy, **Judgments,"upon  Christendom? 
Its  King's  Chamber  the  Divine  Nature,  etc.,  of  the  Overcom- 
ing Church — the  Christ,  Head  and  Body?  Its  Ante-Chamber 
the  Corre(5\ion  in  Righteousness  of  the  ""Great  Company" 
etc.?  Its  Queen's  Chamber  those  of  Israel  and  the  world  who 
attain  Restitution  ? 

All  these  interesting  topics  with  ten  Pyramid  illustrations 
can  be  had  in 

'*  Thy  j<ingdorr)  Corr)e  " 
(In  English,  German  and  Swedish) 

3*0  VAGBS — CLOTH    BOUND    50   CENTS,     POSTAGE,     lO    CENTS    EXTKA  ;    PAPBR 
COVERS  25  CENTS,  POST-PAID 


ADDRESS  ORDERS  TO  PUBLISHERS 

WATCH   TOWER   BIBLE   &   TRACT   SOCIETY 

BIBLE  HOUSE 

ALLEGHENY,  PA.,  U.  S.  A. 


M 


'S/Si^./S.^»^y»^»^i^»>JWf*.^»^%>«W^/«»l?^^ 


THINGS  ALL  NEED  TO  KNOW  | 

-=«-  BUT  WHICH  «—  ^ 


"NONE  OF  THE  WICKED  WILL        | 
UNDERSTAND  " 

—  DAN.  12  :  IO.«=- 

•«  THE  WISE  SHALL  UNDERSTAND  "  THAT— 

—The  Gospel  age  is  to  dole  with  a  "  Day  of  Veqge<ance." 
—It  will  ane(^  the  whole  world  but  sp.eeiaUy  "  Christendom." 
—All  Political,  Social,  Financial  and  Religious  systems  will  falL 
—These  judgments  must  begin  with  the  House  of  God  and  ex- 
.  tend  to  all.  '  V 

—This  period  is  noted  by  the  Prophets  as  *  the  Day  of  Jehovah." 
— It  is  symbolically  styled  "a  Dark  Day,"  a  "Day  of  alouds,"  etc. 
—Its  trouble  is  symbolically  lilceued  to  a  Hurricane,  to  a  Flood, 
to  a  Fire,  etc.,   these  strong  figures  being  used  to  give  an  ap- 
preciation, yet  to  hide  the  real  nature,  of  that" Time  ©fXrouWe 
suchasNever  Has  Been  since  there  was  a  Nation.  ' — Dan. 1 2; I. 
—Preparations  for  this  symbolic  "Fire"  and  "Ten  pest"  are  now 

well  under  way  and  shortly  will  rage  furiously. 
— It  will  be  a  contest  between  the  Masses  and  the  Classes, 
— Many  see  it  commg  and  trust  to  various  schemes  to  avert  it, 
— But  all  worldly  Schemes  aud  Panaceas  will  fail  utterly. 
— God's  Kingdom,  the  only  hope  for  Church  and  World,  is  sure. 
— Main  s  extremity  will  prove  to  be  God's  opportunity — in  the 
establishment  of  God's  Kingdom — Christ's  Millennial  King- 
dom which  will  establish  righteousness  by  force, — Rev.  2 :  20, 
27;   Dan.2  :  34,  35»  44-,  45 - 

All  these  subjedls  are  simply  yet  forcefully  treated^  and  Matthew 
s^^h  Chapter  elucidated,  in 

^*Vhe   Oay  of  Verigeenee  " 
(In  English  only.    German  edition  in  preparation.) 

<6o    PAGES — CLOTH    BOUND,    75  CHNTSj   POSTAGE,  12  CENTS  EXTRA  \   PAPER 
COVERS,   35  CENTS,  POST-PAIB 


! 


ADDRESS  ORDERS  TO  PUBLISHHR3 

WATCH  TOWER  BIBLE  &  TRACT  SOCIETY 

BIBLE    HOUSE 

ALLEGHENY,  PA.^  O.  S.  Ao 


THE  AT-ONE-MENT   IS   BELIEVED    IN 
BY 

ALL  CHRISTIAN  BIBLE  STUDENTS 

Nevertheless,  but  few  even  of  the  best  infonned  could  explain  ; 

either  the  fadl  or  the  philosophy  of  the  At-One-Ment 

between  God  and  man. 

ALL   SHOULD   KNOW 

— What  the  Scriptures  declare  respedling  the  great  Author  of 
The  At-one-ment,  Jehovah  God 

And  concerning  the  great  Mediator  of  the  At-one-ment,  our 
Lord  Jesus  Christ. 

— Respedling  the  necessity  for  the  At-one-ment 

And  the  necesssity  that  the  ''Only  Begotten"  must  be  "made   ' 
flesh,  and  then  die,   and  then  rise  from  the  dead  in   order  to 
I         effedi  the  At-one-ment. 

— Respe6liiig  the  ©ffice  and  work  of  the  holy  Spirit  in  connedlion 
with  theAt-one-ment 

And  the  important  part  of  the  At-one-ment  not  yet  finished — 
which  awaits  the  Second  Coming  of  our  Lord  in  his  Kingdom 
gloiy. 

— Respe(5ling  the  central  dodlrine  of  At-one-ment,  namely,  the 
Ransom — what  it  was ; — why  it  was  and  is  the  center  or  "hub" 
around  which  and  into  which  all  Bible  dodlrines  fit. 

— How  this  doclrine  is  the  test  re  the  truth  or  falsity  of  all  doc- 
trines; so  that  once  understood  clearly  it  is  a  guard  against 
error  in  every  form. 

— Respedling  man,  the  subjecfl  of  the  great  At-one-ment,  his 
nature  ;  his  sin  ;  his  penalty ;  his  deliverance  through  Christ ; 
his  future  possibilities  through  acceptance  of  the  At-one-ment. 

All  these  interesting  and  very  importatit  themes  are  lucidly  dis 
cussed  in  siynple  la^tguage,  and  corroborated  by  four- 
teen hundred  Scripture  citation^  in 

^'The  At«©ne-N|er)fe  between  @od  agd  NJan" 
(In  English  only.) 

507  PAGES — CLOTH  BOUND,  50  CFNTS,    POSTAGE,    lO  CENTS    EXTRA  .      PAPER 
COVERS,  25  CENTS,  POST-PAID 


ADDRESS   ORDERS   TO    PUBLISHERS 

WATCH  TOWER  BIBLE  &  TRACT  SOCIETY, 

BIBLE  HOUSE 

ALLEGHENY,  PA.,    U.  S.  A, 


WHAT  SAY 

THE  SCRIPTURES 

ABOUT 


^"piTiiualism  ? 


PROOFS     THAT     IT     IS     DEMONISM 


**THE    SPIRITS    IN    PRISON"     AND    WHY    ARE    THEY     THERE? 


The  necessity  for  this  little  brochure  lies  in  the  fa6l  that 
Spiritism  is  showing  an  increased  activity  of  late,  and 
meeting  with  considerable  success  in  entrapping  Christians 
who  are  feeling  dissatisfied  with  their  present  attainments 
and  craving  spiritual  food  and  better  foundation  for  faith. 
The  aim  is  to  show  the  unscripturalness  of  Spiritism, 
and  to  point  those  who  hunger  and  thirst  for  truth  in  the 
direction  of  God's  Word — the  counsel  of  the  Most  High. 
''Thou  shalt  guide  me  with  thy  counsel,  and  afterward  re- 
ceive me  to  glory," — Psa.  73:  24. 


~^' 


119  pages;  in  paper  covers  10  cents,  in  leatherette  covers 
embossed,  25  cents. 

^ 

ADDRESS  :  — 

WATCH  TOWER   BIBLE    AND   TRACT    SOCIETY 

BIBLE    HOUSE,    ARCH    STREET 

ALLEGHENY,    PA.,    U.    S.    A. 


WHAT  SAY  THE   SCRIPTURES 
ABOUT  HELL? 

AN    EXAMINATION    OF    EVERY    TEXT   OF  SCRIPTURE   IN   WHICH   THE 
WORD    "HELL"     IS    FOUND. 

A  CORRECT  understanding  of  the  subje(5l  of  this  booklet  is  almost 
a  necessity  to  Christian  steadfastness.  For  centuries  it  ha.s  l)een  the 
teaching  of  "orthodoxy,"  of  all  shades,  that  God,  before  creating  man, 
had  created  a  great  abyss  of  fire  and  terrors,  capable  of  containing  all 
the  billions  of  the  human  family  which  he  purposed  to  bring  into  being; 
that  this  abyss  he  had  named  "hell;"  and  that  all  of  the  promises 
and  threatenings  of  the  Bible  were  designed  to  deter  as  many  as  possi- 
ble (a  "little  flock")  from  such  wrong-doing  as  would  make  this  awful 
place  their  perpetual  home. 

While  glad  to  see  superstitions  fall,  and  truer  ideas  of  the  great, 
and  wise,  and  just,  and  loving  Creator  prevail,  we  are  alarmed  to  notice 
that  the  tendency  with  all  who  abandon  this  long  revered  do(5lrine  is 
toward  doubt,  skepticism,  infidelity.  Why  should  this  be  the  case, 
when  the  mind  is  merely  being  delivered  from  an  error? — do  you  ask? 
Because  Christian  people  have  so  long  been  taught  that  the  foundation 
for  this  awful  blasphemy  against  God's  charadler  and  government  is 
dceplaid  and  firmly  fixed  in  the  Word  of  God — the  Bible — and  con- 
sequently, to  whatever  degree  their  belief  in  "  hell  "  is  shaken,  to  that 
extent  their  faith  in  the  Bible,  as  the  revelation  of  the  true  God,  is 
?jhaken  also; — so  that  those  who  have  dropped  their  belief  in  a  "hell," 
of  some  kind  of  endless  torment,  are  often  open  infidels,  and  scoft'ers  at 
God's  Word. 

Guided  by  the  Lord's  providence  to  a  realization  that  the  Bible 
has  been  slandered,  as  well  as  its  divine  Author,  and  that,  rightly  uu' 
derstood,  it  teaches  nothing  on  this  subjedl  derogatory  to  God's  char- 
a(5ter  nor  to  an  intelligent  reason,  we  have  attempted  in  this  booklet  to 
lay  bare  the  Scripture  teaching  on  this  subje<ft,  that  thereby  faith  in 
God  and  his  Word  may  be  reestablished,  on  a  better,  a  reasonable 
foundation.  Indeed,  it  is  our  opinion  that  whoever  shall  hereby  find 
that  his  false  view  rested  upon  human  misconceptions  and  misinterpre- 
tations will,  at  the  same  time,  learn  to  trust  hereafter  less  to  his  own 
and  other  men's  imaginings,  and,  by  faith,  to  grasp  more  firmly  the 
Word  of  God,  which  is  able  to  make  wise  unto  salvation;  and  on  this 
mission,  under  God's  providence,  it  is  sent  forth. 

PRICE  ID  CENTS  PER  COPY — 8o  PAGES. 

Special  wholesale  rates  to  colporteurs  and  those  who  desire  to  aid  in 

circulating  these  booklets  widely. 
ADDRESS: — 

WATCH  TOWER  BIBLE  AND  TRACT  SOCIETY 

BIBLE  HOUSE,  58  ARCH  ST.,  ALLEGHENY,  PA. 
U.  S.  A. 


ZION'S  WATCH  TOWER 

AND    HERALD   OF    CHRIST'S    PRESENCE- 

SIXTEEN   PAGES — SBMI-MONTHLV. 


EDITED  BY  THE  AUTHOR   OF  MILLENNIAL  DAWN. 


This  magazine  is  religious  but  not  se6larian.  It  is  de- 
voted to  the  investigation  of  all  Bible  subje6ls,  in  the  interest 
of  the  truth  only.  With  charity  toward  all,  it  is  in  bond- 
age to  no  party,  system  or  creed,  but  to  Christ  alone.  It 
recognizes  all  consecrated  believers  in  Christ's  atoning 
work,  as  members  of  the  one  and  only  Church  established 
by  our  Lord  and  the  Apostles. 

Its  principal  obje6t  is  to  preach  the  * 'Gospel  of  the  King- 
dom," and  the  work  to  be  done  in  and  by  the  Kingdom  of 
God,  under  Christ,  who,  by  his  death  and  resurre6lion,  be- 
came Lord  both  of  the  dead  and  of  the  living  (Rom.  14:9); 
and  to  assist  those  who  are  striving  to  make  sure  their  call- 
ing and  ele6tion  to  a  ruling  place  in  that  Kingdom  (2  Pet. 
I  :io,  11)  by  being  conformed  to  the  image  of  God's  dear 
Son  (Rom.  8: 29) — changed  from  glory  to  glory  of  chara6ler 
by  the  spirit  of  the  Lord. — 2  Cor.  3:18. 

If  interested  in  Millennial  Dawn,  you  cannot  afford 
to  do  without  Zion's  Watch  Tower  ;  am''  its  price  is 
small — one  dollar  a  year,  in  advance — free  to  any  of  the 
Lord's  children,  who  through  age  or  accident  or  other  ad- 
versity are  unable  to  pay,  and  who  will  s^nd  a  postal  card, 
yearly,  stating  their  case  and  requesting  tiie  paper. 

Sample  copies  sent  free  upon  request. 

Address:-— 
WATCH  TOWER  BIBLE   AND  TRACT  SOCIETV^ 

BIBLE  HOUSE,  ARCH  STREET,  ALLEGHENYp  PA. ,  tj.  B.  A. 


WATCH  TOWER 
BIBLE  AND  TRACT  SOCIETY, 

ALLEGHENY,  PA.,  U.  S.  A. 

This  Society  never  solicits  donations,  but  it  uses  volun- 
tary contributions  as  wisely  and  economically  as  possible 
in  the  propagation  of  Christian  knowledge  along  the  lines 
presented  in  Millennial  Dawn.  It  yearly  circulates  tons 
of  tra(5ls  and  papers  free,  through  the  mails  and  through 
voluntary  agents. 

It  justifies  that  portion  of  its  name  which  relates  to  the 
Bible — (not  by  publishing  Bibles,  nor  by  circulating  them 
gratuitously,  but) — by  ^applying  Bibles  and  Bible-study 
helps  at  wholesale  prices; — and  often  below  the  usual 
wholesale  rates.  We  mention  a  few  of  these  on  succeeding 
pages,  of  course  ranking  Millennial  Dawn  as  the  most 
important  helps  or  ibhKeys,  and  Zion's  Watch  Tower, 
semi-monthly,  their  efficient  supplement. 

Readers  who  desire  to  cooperate  in  the  circulation  of 
Millennial  Dawn  will  be  supplied  at  cost  prices,  and  can 
have  tracts  ad  libitum.     Write  to  us  respedting  this  I 


OLD  THEOLOGY  TRACTS 

treating  live  topics,  supplied  free. 
Samples  will  be  sent  free  to  any  one  requesting  them: 
and  quantities  for  free  circulation  will  be  supplied  free  to 
all  subscribers  to  Zion's  Watch  Tower,  they  being  con- 
sidered working  members  of  the  Society,  whether  they  spe- 
cially contribute  to  its  funds  or  not.    Send  for  free  samples. 


THE  EMPHATIC  DIAGLOTT, 


This  work,  widely  and  favorably  known,  is  a  Greek  New 
Testament  with  a  literal,  word  for  word,  English  transla- 
tion, under  the  Greek  text.  It  also  gives  an  arranged  En- 
glish translation  in  a  side  column.  Furthermore,  it  indi- 
cates the  grammatical  emphasis  of  the  Greek  text,  so  im- 
portant yet  so  little  appreciated,  and  not  shown  at  all  in 
the  common  version. 

The  retail  price  of  this  work  is  $^.00,  postage  16  cents. 
But  a  Brother,  very  anxious  that  all  the  Tower  readers 
should  possess  this  help,  in  order  to  bring  it  within  the 
reach  of  all,  arranged  to  supply  the  books  at  ^1.50,  if  we 
would  pay  freight  and  postage,  so  that  even  the  poor  might 
have  this  blessing.  We  accepted  the  proposition,  which 
still  continues,  but  is  limited  to  WATCH  TOWER  SUB- 
SCRIBERS—07ie  copy  each. 

YOUNG'S  ANALYTICAL  CONCORDANCE. 

—  GREEK,  HEBREW  AND  ENGLISH. — 

This  work  is  at  once  a  Greek  and  Hebrew  Lexicon,  giv- 
ing the  meaning  of  the  original  terms  in  English,  and  also 
a  Concordance,  giving  all  the  words  of  Scripture,  and  the 
words  which  they  translate.  The  value  of  the  work  is  be- 
coming more  apparent  daily,  as  theorists  attempt  to  palm 
off  a  private  interpretation  under  the  guise  of  *^a  better 
definition  of  the  original^ 

In  this  superb  volume  every  word  is  arranged  under  its 
own  Hebrew  and  Greek  original,  exhibiting  311,000  refer- 
ences and  30,000  various  readings.  Its  size  is  large  quarto : 
1094  pages.  Our  price  is  ^5.00,  delivered,  by  mail  or  ex 
press,  and  the  purchaser  may  order  any  five  volumes  of 
Millennial  Dawn,  paper  bound,  as  a  premium.  This  is 
the  ''Author's  Edition,"  and  the  latest,  A.  D.  1893, 
revision. 


OliD   THEOliOGY  QUflHT'IiV 

—  FOR    THE  — 

PROMOTION  OF  CHRISTIAN  KNOWLEDGE. 

PUBLISHED   BY   THE 

WATCH  TOWEH  BiBLiE  8l  TH^CT  SOC'V 

BIBLE  HOUSE,  ALLEGHENY,  PA.,  U.  S.  A. 

BRITISH  BRANCH,  I3I  GIPSY  LANE,  FOREST  GATE,  LONDON  E.,  ENGLAND 


NO.     3.  PROTESTANTS,  AWAKE  ! 

NO.      7.  THE  WONDER-  bL  STORY,  32  pp. 

NO.  12.  WHY  EVIL  W.vS  PERMITTED. 

NO.  21.  DO    YOU  KNOW? 

NO.  37.  HOW  READE5T  THOU  ? 

NO.  38.  HOPE  OF  IMMORTALITY. 

NO.  40.  WHAT  IS  THE  SOUL  ? 

NO.  41.  MUST  WE    ABANDON  HOPE  OF  A  GOLDEN  AGB  f 

NO.  42.  CROSSES   TRUE  AND  FALSE. 

NO.  44.  GATHERING  THE  LORD's  JEWELS. 

NO.  49.  WHICH    IS  THE  TRUE  GOSPEL? 

NO.  52.  OUR  lord's  return. 

NO.  53.  THE  WAGES    OF    SIN. 

NO.  54.  A  DARK  CLOUD  AND  ITS  SILVER   LINING. 

NO.  57.  CALAMITIES — WHY   GOD    PERMITS   THEM. 

Nos.  21,  28,  40  and  53  can  be  had  in  Swedish. 

Nos.  21,  27  and  53  can  be  had  in  Dano-Norwegian. 

Nos.  3,  12,  21,  22,  28,  38,  40,  49  and  53  can  be  had  m  German. 

Nos.  21  and  22  can  be  had  in  French. 

Extra  copies  of  the  above  tracts  will  be  supplied  free,  on  application, 
to  subscribers ;  or  a  single  sample  to  any  one  Thus  many  may  be  co- 
workers with  us  and  with  God  in  scattering  the  truth — "the  hail." — Isa. 
28  :  17  Hundreds  of  thousands  are  being  circulated  thus,  the  funds 
being  supplied  by  voluntary  contributions  from  those  whose  hearts  and 
heads  have  been  refreshed  by  these  * '  glad  tidings  of  great  joy  which 
shall  be  unto  all  people." 

BOOKII^BTS 

THE  WONDERFUL  STORY,  "THE  OLD,  OLD  STORY."    Illustrated. — 6o  pp. 

WHAT  SAY  THE  SCRIPTURES  ABOUT  HELL? — 88  pages.     Also  in  German. 

WHAT  SAY  THE  SCRIPTURES  ABOUT  SPIRITISM? — 128  pages.    Also  in  German. 

TABERNACLE  SHADOWS  OF  BETTKF  SACRIFICES.    111. — 130  pp.    Also  in  Jerman. 
Extra  Copies  of  the  above  booklets  are  supplied  to  subscribers  at  loc  (5d.) 
each,  or  50c  (.s/^)  per  dozen :  those  below  at  5c  (2^d. )  each,  25c  ( //j) 
per  dozen. 

THE  BIBLE  VS.  THE  EVOLUTION  THEORY.     48  pp.     Also  in  German. 

THE  PAROUSiA  OF  OUR  LORD.     78  pp.    Also  in  Swedish. 

EPiSTi.E  TO  THE  HEBREWS.     Illustrated.— 64  pp.     In  Yiddish,  only. 

Gepman  Watch  Tower  &  Old  Theology  Quarterly— Translations. 

—  QUARTERLY  FOR  ONE  YEAR,  25  CENTS.  — 

We  can  supply  copies  of  the  first  19  issues  at  the  rate  of  19  copies  for  25  cents. 
Sample  copies  for  free  circulation,  gratis,  postpaid. 


/ 


THE  NEW 

REF 

This  book  is 
tak 

YORK  PUBLIC  LIBRARY 
ERENGE  DEPARTMENT 

under  no  circumstances  to  be 
en  from  the  Building 

1 J       i    ' 

,1^'  '  ■•■  H 

?? 

m 

1 

m 

i 

m 

\    fur  III  Jill